Chapter Text
Volume 1; Beacon Saga – Chapter 1: Journey of a New Warrior, Beacon Academy Here I Come!
It’s a beautiful morning for all of Remnant. The sun is beating down to create a warm atmosphere that fills everyone with a certain joy that only the sun could give. For those who live outside the kingdoms, days like these are crucial. It’s the best days for farming, best days to hunt or fish for meat, best days to generally get anything done. However, these are still dangerous times for those who need to venture outside any safe zones. Grimm still prowl about the forests, ready to make any human or Faunus their next meal.
Even for Huntsmen, Grimm are a major threat if not dealt with in a group. That simple fact makes it worrisome for regular people to travel on their own. Thankfully, for a small village near Mt. Glenn, they have someone to rely on when they need protection. One of those hopeful civilians travel with a small backpack along the makeshift dirt road to gather food and herbs for their village. It’s a lone woman who’s holding a small book against her chest as if it was her talisman of safety. There’s no true reason to be scared, and she knows these emotions will attract the Grimm instantly, but she can’t help but feel fear even on such a beautiful day such as this.
Her nerves jump when she hears something moving through the trees around her. She comes to a complete halt, her eyes frantically scanning all around her to try and find the source of the noise. Perhaps it’s just a squirrel or a bird… perhaps it’s a bloodthirsty Beowolf. She can’t be certain until she sees it, but she won’t be calm until she knows. She slowly begins to back up towards the opposite side of the tree line. She keeps her eyes keen on any more movements and her ears open to the smallest noises that could be made. Of course she doesn’t hear what’s right beside her until it’s too late.
“Heya!”
“AAAAAAAH!” She screams with the highest pitch she can to mirror the fear in her heart.
She spins around and slaps whatever made the sound, which connects with a satisfying sound that ripples through the forest. When she finally opens her eyes she sees a young boy hanging upside down with a confused look on his face and a red cheek. He’s extremely muscular for his age, having more definition than bulk, but still having a good amount of the second. He has two notable features. One is his brown monkey tail that is currently holding him to a branch, and the second is his wild black hair. It’s some of the most unique hair she’s ever seen for two reasons. One being that it’s basically thrown forward with little spiking at the back, but the front more than makes up for it as it goes up and forward in every direction, with two major patches falling somewhat in front of his face. The second curious this is that, for as long as she’s remembered, his hair has been the same. No haircuts, no styling, nothing has been done to it and yet it remains as odd as ever. It’s funny to see, especially with his silly, confused face.
Despite all that, her cheeks flare up when she sees the lack of clothes on his body. He’s only wearing a pair of boxers that are failing their goal in covering the private areas.
“W-What’re you doing? You scared me!” She squeals, angrily staring into his eyes that have no real colour – only white and black
You rub your cheek where she slapped you, not because it hurt, but because you’re confused.
“What? I just said hi,” you smile before tossing yourself off the branch with your tail and landing a small distance from the woman.
You look back at her, smiling. Crystal, one of your friends from the village. She has short, mousey blonde hair and bright blue eyes. Of course she’s sporting her typical outfit of a white crop top and blue shorts, but it makes sense for the weather. It is a hot day, and you can’t argue while you’re wearing nothing but your boxers. Your tails wiggles behind you, not daring to touch the ground as you remain still.
“You know what you did! Besides, you can’t just approach a woman like that and expect not to get a reaction,” she states.
You look down at yourself, not really seeing a problem considering what you’re going to go do. Unsure of her argument, you simply shrug and start walking.
“Well, come on then. I don’t want to be late, or else your dad’ll get mad at me, and he’s really scary when he’s angry. He might not feed me!” You shiver at the thought.
Crystal rolls her eyes at your obliviousness but follows anyway. She needs to keep by you no matter what since you’re one of the few in the village who can actually take on the Grimm.
Crystal catches up to you and proceeds to follow down the path. You’re more or less there, with only less than a minute of walking until you reach your destination, so not much is said in that time between you two until you reach your goal. It’s a fairly large pond that branches through multiple paths that eventually lead to a small lake a few kilometers away. That’s usually where you can find game like elk, wolves, and occasionally Grimm. But here? Here is where you can find all the fish you could desire. Crystal turns around so you can slip out of your underwear, and returns her gaze the moment she hears a splash.
You keep your eyes open as you descend into the cold water. It’s a refreshing change to the warmth above ground, but that’s all in the future. Right now you’re looking for some fish to feed the entire village for a week. It’s the great thing about being in this area – the fish are astoundingly big. Nobody’s quite sure why, but it does make for less fish to catch. You don’t want to ruin their ecosystem, of course. Speaking of that, you spot a fish come through the bend into the large section of calm water you’re inhabiting. These fish are slightly aggressive, so provoking them will result in them attacking you. You have no fear since you’ve dealt with these fish dozens of times before. You swim closer to the fish, using your tail to give you a little speed boost as you shuffle through the water. The fish takes note of you but continues on its merry way. Its back is to you, which just makes this a whole lot easier.
Meanwhile, Crystal is sitting on the edge of the water, reading her book while she waits for you to be done. She doesn’t even finish two pages before she hears a giant splash. She looks to the sky and sees a fish flying towards her location. She swiftly moves out of the way for safety before the fish slams onto the ground a few meters from her previous location. Suddenly a second fish flies out of the water and lands beside the first one. Crystal examines the fish to make sure they’re fit for eating. They’re definitely big, rivaling a young teenager in size, so there’s plenty of meat for the village.
Soon enough you pop out of the water, landing beside your underwear. Crystal makes sure she doesn’t take a peek at you since you have yet to put any clothes on. She reaches into her backpack and throws a towel at you. You nab it midair and start drying yourself.
“Thanks, Crystal. So, what’d you think?” You say with a big smile as you dry your legs.
“They’re great! I’m still amazed how you catch these things.”
You simply chuckle, not really giving her an answer. Once you’re dry enough you slip back into your boxers and whistle, signaling the coast is clear. She turns to you, ready to catch the towel. You toss it to her as you approach your catch. You grab the first fish and lift it with one hand, then hold the other with your free hand.
“How do you manage to carry both of those fish with just one hand?” Crystal giggles as you two begin to make your way back to the village.
“Um… I don’t know. They just aren’t that heavy,”
You start whistling as you two walk back.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
It doesn’t take an unreasonable amount of time for you two to return to the village. It’s fairly crowded with stalls and people wandering between those street vendors. Crystal’s father runs the butcher shop, which is why you’re helping him out with the food collection. The people of the village are used to seeing you in your boxers from all the times you’ve gone out to collect food. You two approach the butcher shop but take a detour to use the back entrance. You’ve always been told if you brought food through the front you wouldn’t get any of it. When you enter the building you hear her father at the front of the shop serving a customer, so you just set the fish on a free table for him. You wipe your hands together in satisfaction with your handiwork.
“Alright Crystal, I’ll see you guys later. I’m gonna get back in my gi and get some quick training in.”
Crystal sighs, but ends up smiling.
“Yeah, just be back in time for some dinner. Wouldn’t want you to miss out on any of the fresh catch.”
You nod with a big smile plastered on your face.
“Definitely! Well, I’ll see you later!” You shout as you run out of the back.
Crystal sighs at your silliness, but she’s used to your childish happiness and naivety. Crystal returns her gaze to the back and starts to clean up the small bits of bone or excess meat her father left during a job. Once she cleans the floor her father walks in, looking tired from all his work. He too has a very light tone of hair, but his large build more than makes up for anything. He’s got strong arms for cutting and gutting all the meat he deals with, but still somehow has a big round belly to add a few extra pounds to his total.
“Oh, Crystal. I wasn’t expecting you back yet.” He looks around the room as if he’s looking from someone. “Where’s (Y/N)?”
“Oh, he ran off already,” she smiles, moving her hands behind her back and smiling. “He needed to get some clothes. Also, I think he’s scared of you, Lucent,” she giggles.
“Hey… its dad back here. Only Lucent when I’m at the counter,” he sternly says, though Crystal isn’t taking it at all.
“Alright, dad,” she smiles.
Lucent places his hands on his hips and sighs.
“Shame, I even needed to speak with the boy. He got a letter…”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You run out of the backroom and immediately jump into the air. With no effort at all, you start flying through the air, soaring over the village towards the mountain. The wind flows against your wild black hair as you fly. It’s such a fun experience to glide high over the ground and take a bird’s eye view of everything. No matter how amazing the experience is, the main use of it is just to get from point A to point B the fastest. You don’t always fly because it’s not quite as fun to speed over nature rather than walk through and experience it. Besides, you’d rather put on your gi as quickly as possible so you don’t have to make people feel awkward. You don’t understand why it’s weird, but there’s no need to argue it.
Within a minute you make it to your small hut in a small clearing. As you let yourself fall you curl into a ball and spin forward until you land gracefully on your feet. You look to your small hut and walk to it. It’s not locked, so you walk in and look for your clothes. They’re neatly sitting atop a dresser that only holds your weapon and clothes. You grab your gi and start to put it on. You start by slipping into your loose, black pants. Right away you put on your blue boots with gold trimmings complimented with a red rope above the ankles. You tuck your pants into your boots for reassurance. With your lower body out of the way you grab your black t-shirt and slip it on, letting it fall slightly below your waist. You cover some of it with a very loose, orange gi with a major V-neck that falls a short bit past the black t-shirt, with blue trimmings around them. You throw the right side over the left so you can tie a blue sash around your waist, keeping it all together. To finish your outfit you grab two black wrist guards that reach from your wrist to shortly before your elbow.
You smile at the comfort of being in your regular clothes. Lucent and Crystal got this attire for you for your seventeenth birthday. It was meant to replace your old, ripped up one that took part in dozens of training sessions and Grimm battles. This one fits amazingly and doesn’t get in the way of your fighting style. You debate grabbing your weapon, but there’s no need to grab the Power Pole for this escapade. You only plan to do a small amount of training then return to the village.
You leave the dresser behind and exit your small hut to return to the beautiful outdoors. You step out of your home, waving your arms back and forth to warm them up. You start lightly bouncing, barely getting a few centimeters off the ground with each jump, getting higher and higher each time. Once you’re making regular jumps you leap forward, crouch all the way down, and then zoom into the air at an unparalleled speed, letting out a joyful howl that can’t be matched by anyone you know. You fly over the land, letting your arms out to the side so the wind can push against them. As you look ahead you can see the Kingdom of Vale and the prized Beacon Academy. It’s far off in the distance, but it wouldn’t take you much time to fly over there if you tried. But you’re just looking for a good spot to work in some training. Maybe even find a pack of Beowolves or something to take down as a public service.
Of course one of your wishes comes true as you spot a Nevermore flying over the Emerald Forest.
“Seems as though he’s taking up my airspace,” you comment, flipping upside down and assuming a sitting position. “I suppose it’s only fair that I take him down a notch.” You chuckle at your own words before bursting towards the Nevermore, leaving a white trail in your wake.
You reach the Nevermore and come to a complete halt, crossing your arms as you hover through the air.
“Excuse me, Mr. Nevermore. I don’t think you’re very welcome here. Don’t you think you could migrate or something?” You shout, hoping it’ll just listen to you.
The Nevermore lets out an ear-piercing cry as it changes its course to you. You pout at its lack of compliance, but Grimm were never as understanding as regular animals. Still, Grimm can be a problem, even for you. They’re incredibly strong and resilient to most ballistics, but you got something better than bullets.
You let your arms droop to the side, waiting for the Nevermore to attack. It has more bone armour than some other ones you’ve faced, but it shouldn’t be that much of a problem. You quickly shoot yourself up and over the Nevermore so fast that it can’t react. You hover over it for a moment then dive down with one leg extended to connect with the Nevermore’s back. It starts squawking at your attack, struggling to stay in the air. You easily pass it at its sluggish speed and stop ahead of it. You open one hand and charge your secret weapon up. Your hand becomes the host of a brilliant yellow light that might blind any who aren’t prepared. You throw your hand forward, shooting the Ki blast at the Nevermore’s face. It explodes on contact, erupting in smoke and black feathers. Mere seconds later the Nevermore drops out of the cloud and falls to the ground.
You nod at your work and fly off. You didn’t stay behind to watch it dissipate, but it’s unlikely the Nevermore survived that blast. It wasn’t the strongest you’ve ever made, but it still packed more than enough of a punch to take down a creature of Grimm. People always called this power your natural born gift – your semblance. If they’re right, you have quite a flexible semblance. Nobody else you know can fly or shoot energy like you can, but maybe it’s a Faunus thing. You’ve never met another Faunus so it may just be that Faunus have more traits and abilities than regular humans.
Thankfully there’s no other Grimm in the air so your trip is a smooth flight. You land around the edge where the grass meets the sand. This gives you a beautiful view of the ocean. The sun makes the water sparkle and dance, combination of water, sand and flora fills your nose with a breathtaking scent. You leap forward and gently land on the sand, leaving a boot imprint to mark your arrival. It doesn’t really matter since the water usually covers your tracks once you’re all done. You approach the water and stop when the waves can hit your boots.
You’ve trained here hundreds of times throughout your life. You used to bring your book out here and test out all it had to offer. It’s been so long that you can’t exactly remember how you attained such a book, but it contained skills and techniques that you’ve been able to master over the years, including your Ki blasts and flying. It was hard to learn something just by reading it, hence why it took you years, but by this time you’ve learned everything from that book and even manipulated some of those teachings to create your own techniques. You can only imagine how this terrain is still lively, or how many ships you may have disturbed with that same training.
Either way, you’re here to practice and that’s what you’re gonna do. You drift your gaze to the ground then swiftly close your eyes. You focus your energy around yourself to practice basic Ki control. Doing this inadvertently lift the water around you in small globs. The mixture of sand and dirt joins the water in circling you like the moon circling the planet. Your tail wiggles as your power surges through your body. You open your eyes, relaxing your body and Ki; you’re ready to start. The water, dirt, and sand around you fall back to their place of origin.
This is very reminiscent of where you used to train with your first teacher, Master Roshi the Turtle Hermit. All it took was the word of mouth from the villagers when you were only ten years old that lead you on a journey to find the Turtle Hermit. That, after two months, led you to an island where Master Roshi resided. You trained under the Turtle Hermit for the required eight months and remained his student for another four years before returning to your home to aid in the village’s defense. You still visit Roshi and Turtle every month or so to pay respects to your teacher and show him how much stronger you’ve become. One of your trump cards was acquired through that man, one you have yet to use against any form of life.
But you still practice it every day in this very spot to make sure you don’t get rusty. A proper training ground would be better but there’s a certain charm to the natural areas. Training along the shoreline and deep in the forest provides you with some tactical sense that someone wouldn’t get from training a dojo or training room. Granted those places have a low chance of a Grimm attacking you or running into a group of raiders, but you consider those run-ins to be improvised training.
But now is the time to fulfill a daily routine. You lock your feet in the ground and take a deep breath in followed by a full exhale. You slide your right foot behind your body and lock your stance.
“Ka…” You connect your palms in front of you. “Me…” The very air around you is sucked into the glowing and growing ball of blue energy being created in your hands. “Ha…” The ball glows even brighter, blinding anyone who dares look at it. “Me…” The blast is ready, your target acquired. “Ha-“ You start to throw your hands forward but stop midway.
The blast dissipates as your control of the ki is lost. You urgently turn around and look at every inch of the forest behind you. You could sense… something. No, not sense. You’re lackluster in that area and there’s no way you would have felt something without intending too. This was a natural reflex – your body stopped itself.
“Hello?” You shout, though not expecting any response. You wait a few seconds for a response but none was given to you. “Maybe I should go somewhere else for training. I kinda got the heebie-jeebies now.”
You slowly lift yourself off the ground before bursting into the air and flying across the Emerald Forest.
“I gotta get my mind off that. Oh, I know! Reflex training!”
You push yourself to your maximum speed then dive into the forest. Immediately you almost slam into a tree, but you twirl past it just in time. This threat comes up again and again as you seemingly teleport around each tree, leaving an afterimage for just a moment. Your mind is in constant focus as you take in your surroundings. You have to since your eyes are closed. This is one of your favourite exercises for the thrill and because it works on your aforementioned shoddy sensing ability. This both refines your geographic sensing, but how fast you can make out the environment in your mind and react to it. It’s not quite the same as feeling for another human being, but plants and animals have a life force of their own that can be sensed. Granted the energy of a person is far stronger than that of a tree, but the concept still stands.
You reach the other end of the forest, bursting out to hover over the water. You then speed backwards, your back towards the trees now, and repeat the process. To others, this would seem harder than going straight at them, but considering your eyes are closed both times it’s merely a matter of moving left or right. At points you completely change your direction, making a sharp right and going somewhere completely off course. You keep this up for about a minute before you decide to stop. You pull in your leg and thrust it forward, kicking a tree right off its stump. You spin around, landing on a tree and springing off towards your now airborne log. With two swift punches, the tree shatters into over a dozen smaller pieces for a fire. You land beside the pile and finally open your eyes.
“Hehe, still got it.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You return to the village with the large pile of wood you collected. Though nobody is in desperate need of firewood, it’s always good to collect for those cold nights. You set them down outside Lucent’s woodshed, just behind his house, then loop around to the entrance. You knock on the door then wait patiently for a response. Crystal is the one to open the door, happily greeting you with a warm smile.
“Hey, (Y/N). Good to see you clothed,” she giggles. “Have fun?”
“Mhm,” you nod. “I brought some wood for your dad. I left it by his hut.”
You take a moment to smell the air and all the delicious aromas enter your nose. Crystal can tell you’re in the mood to chow down.
“Come in. Dad’s just done making dinner. In fact, he made extra for you,” she says, moving out of the doorway so you can enter. You rush in, quickly taking off your shoes so you can get to eating. Though in a rush, you set your boots in the usual spot and rush to the dinner table. Crystal follows, though more calmly, and takes a seat beside you.
“Is that you, (Y/N)?” Lucent calls out.
“It is, daddy,” Crystal replies for you. “And he’s really hungry!”
“Like always. Alright, this’ll be special for ya.”
Lucent comes into the dining area, his arms lined with bowls and plates as if he was a waiter bringing food to a large group. He sets it all down two at a time, then grabs three more bowls for himself and Crystal. There’s a plethora of different meats, cows, chickens, and pigs, along with rice, steamed vegetables, plenty of water, everything you could ask for. You eagerly wait for the man to sit down and give you the go-ahead. Once he’s seated he bows to his food, honouring whoever, you don’t really care. Once he goes for his first bite you dig in, chowing down the first bowl of rice like it’s nothing. Lucent and Crystal can’t help but be amused no matter how many times they’ve seen this happen. Before they even get their first bite you’re already on your third plate of pork. You drink a cup of water to wash it down then move onto some chicken, rice, and vegetables. Your constant chewing and odd grumbles make for an interesting soundtrack for their meal, but they enjoy it nonetheless.
The empty bowls pile up one after another and in no time you’re finished with your dinner, topping it off with the final glass of water. You pat your stomach and let out a satisfied sigh.
“Now that was a dinner. Thanks a ton! What was the occasion? You don’t usually make this much.”
Just now finishing their dinners, Lucent and Crystal share a proud look. Crystal reaches into her pocket and pulls out a folded letter.
“This came from a courier. It was meant for you,” she explains as she hands it to you.
You take the piece of paper from Crystal and open it up to read. Your eyes light up as you read the page.
“Seems you got into Beacon,” Crystal happily says.
“AW YEAH!” You shout, throwing your hands into the air. “Can you imagine it? I’m gonna meet people who’ve been fighting for their whole life! Maybe they’ll let me fight the teachers? I can see their moves!” Your mind floods with possibilities.
“Didn’t you already meet the Turtle Hermit?” Lucent inquires.
“Of course, but these are new people! When do I go? When does it say?” You ask yourself, reading through it again. “The third… that’s less than a week!”
“Three days, to be exact,” Lucent speaks. “Curious how your message came so late.”
“Maybe they just couldn’t find him. He’s not the easiest to track down,” Crystal giggles.
“That’s also true. Well, (Y/N), seems you’ve got some packing to do.”
You nod, getting out of your chair.
“Definitely. Thank you for the meal, Lucent,” you clap your hands and bow to him. “It was delicious. I’ll make sure to drop by before I go.”
Without another word you rush out the door and soar into the sky, heading towards your home.
“How do you think he’ll do, dad? You used to be a Huntsman,” Crystal inquires.
Lucent leans back in his chair and crosses his arms.
“He’s definitely skilled, but I’m unsure he has the discipline yet. Maybe that’ll change at Beacon.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Three Days Later
In the end, you really don’t have much to bring. You have a few pairs of clothes… which are just duplicates of your current outfit. Other than that the only thing you have is your Power Pole. You didn’t have much in your house to begin with which, admittedly, made packing really easy. With a small pouch and your weapon wrapped around your back, you leave your house and look towards the city. You pat your chest to make sure the paper is still there.
“Alright, I better see Crystal and Lucent before I go. Nimbus!” You shout to the sky.
In seconds a speeding yellow cloud parks in front of you, ready to take you anywhere.
“Hey buddy, ready to head out?”
You hop on the Nimbus and fly towards the village. Ever since you learned how to fly your use of the Nimbus is few and far between. It helped during your Turtle School days, but now it’s more of a luxury when you’re feeling a little tired or lazy. The yellow cloud zooms swoops behind Lucent’s house for you to say goodbye.
“I’ll be right back, buddy,” you say as you leap off and run inside. “Crystal? Lucent? You here?”
The only response you receive is silence. You scratch your head.
“Huh, I thought they’d be around. Maybe they’re at the shop?”
You run out the front door, closing it behind you, and sprint to Lucent’s shop. It’s oddly quiet for midday. Nobody’s on the streets, no vendors… it’s like a ghost town.
“What happened? Did everyone just take a day off? Go to the beach? No, that’s Saturday. There’s no fire or ruined buildings so no Grimm.”
You reach the butcher shop and, to no surprise, it’s completely empty. You rub the back of your head, shaking your unkempt black hair.
“I… guess they forgot? Hm… well, I probably would too. I guess I’ll just come back in a few days and let them know how it’s going. Nimbus!” Nimbus passes over the buildings and stops beside you. “Alright, I guess we’re going. To Vale!”
You hop on the Nimbus and instantly take off, soaring through the sky and over the forest. Vale and Beacon get closer and closer by the second. You grab the slip of paper and double check something which you forgot.
“Alright, am I… yeah, I have to go to a ship. Easy enough.”
You pass over the wall and hover over Vale, searching for the docks that bring everyone to Beacon. It’s easy to spot since there are four large airships with a flock of people entering them.
“Thanks, Nimbus. I’ll call you another time!”
You jump off the yellow cloud and dive towards the docking area. You’re loving every second of the adrenaline-fueled ride. Seeing the buildings and people become larger as you fall faster and faster. Your tail waves in the wind along with your clothes. You spin around a few times before flipping forward and slowing yourself down. You come to a gentle landing on the sidewalk, shocking some of the passersby. You pay no mind to them and instead start running to the airship. You slow down when you become part of the massive wave of students entering the various airships.
After what feels like forever, you enter one of the airships. After a few more people enter the hatch closes, signaling you’ll be taking off soon. You don’t pay much attention to your fellow students and instead decide to step outside for some fresh air and a better view. You’ve seen Beacon a dozen times but never up close like this. It’s definitely bigger than you thought. After about ten minutes the airship finally stops at Beacon and allows the students to disembark. You hop off the top railing and land ahead of everyone, then start running forward.
“So many people, so many buildings! I can’t wait to see what everyone can do. Maybe there’s someone really strong here!” You gush at the endless wonders and possibilities that are in store for you here. “Now… I think I’m supposed to go to a conference or something?” You scratch your head, looking around the grounds which are now full with other students. “Where am I supposed to go..?”
You cross your arms and tap your muscle, thinking on what to do now. You aimless walk forward with varying speed. You’re so in thought that you fail to notice an explosion a short distance behind you. This absence of mind leads to you bumping into a new face. She falls to the ground, yelping at the sudden change. This rattles your mind and brings you back to reality. You look down and see another young Faunus girl. She has long brown hair and brown eyes. She’s wearing a uniform that you’ve seen others wear, so you gather that it’s the Beacon uniform. The most noticeable feature of the woman is her long, brown rabbit ears.
“Oh, I’m sorry. I didn’t mean to knock you over,” you chuckle, offering your hand.
“That’s okay. Are you new?”
You pull her onto her feet and release her hand.
“Yeah, I’m not really sure where to go,” you admit without shame. “Not used to places like this.”
“I’ll be happy to help you,” she smiles, offering her hand to shake. “My name’s Velvet.”
“(Y/N)” You respond while shaking your hand.
“Well, (Y/N), do you have your scroll?”
“Scroll?” You cock your head to the side.
Velvet scratches her head.
“You… don’t have a scroll?”
You shake your head.
“Those are those glass things, right?
Velvet turns around and starts walking deeper into Beacon’s grounds. You follow beside her, taking a gander at all the buildings, décor, and students.
“I see you’re a fellow Faunus,” Velvet points out, taking a peek at your tail.
“Oh, yeah. Had the tail all my life,” you smile.
“It’s unique. I’ve never seen a monkey Faunus have different hair and tail colours.”
You scratch your head then shrug.
“I always thought it was normal. I’ve never seen another monkey Faunus before, so… well, maybe it happens.”
“Seems so! Most people here are very welcoming to Faunus. You don’t have to worry about discrimination here,” Velvet says with a happy tone.
“That’s… cool,” you apathetically respond. “So you’ve been here for a while, right? Who’s the really strong guys?”
“Oh, um… Yastuhasi is really strong. He’s part of my team! The professors here are very impressive too. You’ll see everyone’s abilities during your time here. There are practice matches between students almost every day.”
“That sounds awesome. A lot better than training on my own,” you say with excitement.
“So you trained at Signal?”
“Hm? Oh, no, I’m all self-taught!” You say, putting your thumb to your chest. “Well, actually no, that’s a lie. I trained with the Turtle Hermit for a while.”
Velvet cocks her head to the side.
“The… Turtle Hermit?”
“Yeah, Master Roshi. He’s great! I’m sure you’d like him. He’d probably like you too. He’s fond of most women, come to think of it,” you bring your hand to your chin whilst thinking on it.
“Is he a Huntsman?”
“Oh, no,” you shake your head. “He’s a martial artist. He taught me and some other students for a long time. It got me used to using my fists instead of my Power Pole,” you explain, pointing to your back.
At this point you and Velvet have reached the cafeteria. All the new students have made their way to the meeting grounds. Velvet opens the door, letting you walk in first.
“You’re very enthusiastic. It’s good to see, some people lose that enthusiasm,” she says, closing the door behind her to walk in with you. “But now you… wait…”
In the cafeteria is… the cafeteria. No elaborate setup, no Headmaster, just some students loitering the place before classes. Another young woman waves to Velvet as she approaches. She’s easily recognizable by her interesting attire consisting of a cocoa-coloured shirt wrapped in a dark brown waist cincher, yet her stomach is still slightly visible. Her trousers and high-heeled boots are also dark brown. Her many accessories also share a brown theme, though all in different shades. Her eyes are covered by a pair of glasses which, in turn, are slightly obstructed on the left by one wavy strand of dyed hair.
Huh, she wears a lot of stuff.
You cross your arms and cock your head as you look at the girl.
“Velvet, good to see you,” she greets, then lays her eyes on you. “Who’s this?”
“A new student. He didn’t know where to go so I lead him here, but…”
“Yeah, surprised me too,” Coco cuts off, knowing what her teammate will say. “They changed up the meeting place this year. It’s in the auditorium.”
“Oh, no… I’m sorry, (Y/N). I’ve made you late,” she says, lowering her head slightly in shame.
“Don’t worry about it, I just need to know where the auditorium is.”
Coco pats Velvet’s shoulder, getting her attention.
“Fox and Yatsuhasi are over at that table. Why don’t you go see them while I direct the new kid?”
Velvet nods in response then passes by Velvet, waving at you before you leave. You wave back, then follow Coco out the door.
“Alright, kid, you gotta go straight, then follow the path to the left. It’ll lead you right to the building. And… you better hurry. You’re late as it is.”
“Okay. Thank you… uh…”
“Coco Adel,” she introduces herself. “And you’re (Y/N). We can talk another time. Welcome to Beacon.”
“Right, thanks! I’ll hurry!”
You burst into the air and fly forward, leaving Coco completely dumbfounded.
“He flies… huh,” she shrugs. “Never seen that before. Wonder what else this one will do,” she speaks to herself, watching you fly forward and follow the left path.
Since you’re flying it takes you practically no time to reach the building Coco told you about. You descend, hands to the side, and land a short distance away. The moment your feet touch the ground you start running. Your eagerness and excitement leads you to be a little absent-minded in the power department. You push against the doors with more force than you intended. The doors break off their hinges, glide over the students and slam into the walls on either side of the stage where a grey haired in a black and green suit, along with a blonde haired woman in a white shirt with a black skirt and black-brown stockings stand. All eyes are on you now, making this more awkward than this needed to be.
“I… uh… hehe, sorry.”
You bring your hands back, your tail hiding behind your left leg in shame. You have no idea how to justify your actions except to nervously chuckle. The man on stage looks at you with intrigue. He remembers you. It’s hard to forget someone with hair like that.
“An… interesting way to enter a room,” the woman says with a condescending voice as she waves her wands at the two doors.
She removes them from the walls and puts them back into place as if nothing happened.
“Whoa, that was cool,” you smile at the repaired behind you. “I wish I could do it like that.”
“As I was saying,” she clears her throat. “You will gather in the ballroom tonight. Tomorrow your initiation begins. Be ready… and try not to destroy any Beacon property,” this generates a few snickers at your expense. “You are dismissed.”
Other students pass you by, remarking your Faunus status and your idiotic entrance. You become one with the crowd as students funnel out of the building.
“The ballroom tonight… well, where’s the ballroom? What am I supposed to do in the meantime?” You bring your hand to your chin as you think on these questions. The wave of students break off as they all go their separate ways.“I wonder if we’re allowed to spar on the grounds? Or training! Can I do my normal training here? Maybe there’s a room for it or something. I should have asked these questions,” you scold yourself.
“Hello there, young man.”
You look to the left and spot the same man who was on stage. He’s facing you, his hands planted on his cane.
“Oh, hello,” you smile. “You’re a teacher, right?”
“Headmaster, actually,” Ozpin politely corrects. “But you may call me Professor Ozpin.
“Oh! Uh…” You clap your hands together and bow. “It’s an honour to meet you. Thank you for accepting me into your school.”
Ozpin is pleasantly surprised at your actions, though he doesn’t make it apparent.
“Of course. We’re always looking for bright new Huntsmen and Huntresses. I remember your file. Your combat prowess surpassed every student.”
You straighten yourself and smile.
“Well, thanks! I’ve trained a lot and hope I can get even better here. I really wanna see what the others can do. I heard that we spar with each other, is that true?”
“That is true,” Ozpin chuckles at your enthusiasm. “Well, it was a pleasure speaking with you. I wish you luck for tomorrow’s initiation.”
“Thank you! Oh, before you go… where’s the ballroom?”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You made sure to spend the rest of the day memorizing Beacon’s layout so you wouldn’t be tricked once more. But now it’s time to rest. All the new students have gathered in the ballroom where they claim a sleeping bag that’s been laid out for them. You chose one near the near the corner of the room. You set your pouch and Power Pole against the wall. You were given the opportunity to store the weapon away in a locker, but you decided to keep it with you.
Students all over are speaking with their friends or getting right to bed. You… haven’t really made any friends today, at least out of the new batch of students. The only people you talked to were Velvet and Coco at the beginning of the day, minus Professor Ozpin, of course. You’re not too bothered by it, however. You sit against the wall, intending to fall asleep like this. Though you’re unsure how that’ll go when you spot a blonde staring at you with hungry eyes. Thankfully a blonde boy in a onesie distracts her vicious gaze.
“Initiation, huh… shouldn’t be too hard,” you whisper to yourself whilst closing your eyes. “I’ll be sure to ace it!”
So… yeah, new story. Isn’t that something? Yes, it’s the Dragon Ball x RWBY, Saiyan x Yang story. I’ve actually wanted to do a Dragon Ball story since my first year of writing. Originally this was going to be Frozen x Dragon Ball but… I don’t want to do Frozen………. I don’t want to do Frozen anymore…..
Anyway, I hope you’ll like it! I’m really passionate about this one! A few thing you might like to know is that I’m changing stuff up. I know I started it identically to RWBY Volume 1, but I’ll be blending the two stories together and… well, kinda making my own thing. It’ll have a combined skeleton of both RWBY and Dragon Ball, but with a Chinsangan twist.
“B-B-B-But Chinsangan how are RWBY characters supposed to match up with Dra-“
Yeah, I know, I thought of that. You’ll just have to wait and see. But don’t worry, Cardin isn’t becoming Planet level anytime soon. That’s in Volume 5.
So I hope you all stick around and enjoy! For now this and Crimson Shadow will be my only two stories. Maybe in a few months I’ll release a third story (whether that will also be RWBY or not I’m unsure) but I’ll just be happy with my two. So, I’ll see you all later!
Want to keep up with me? Know what chapter’s coming out next and the progress of them? Follow me on Twitter! Twitter . com (slash) Chinsangan
Questions? Comments? Concerns? Advice? Send me a message! See ya!
Chapter 2: Introduction to Beacon! Show'em what you Got!
Chapter Text
Chapter 2: Introduction to Beacon! Show’em what you Got!
The morning sun beams through the glass windows of the building. Some students have already awoken and are preparing for the trials ahead, others are still relaxing in their slumber. You’re part of the latter, strewn about in the corner, taking up two beds worth. Your snores disrupt the peace of the building, but nobody bothers to wake you up yet. The students beside you weren’t too happy with you considering you spread out so much. Not the best first impression, but you don’t even know these people, nor will you remember your unpleasant meeting.
The rumbling of all the students doesn’t disturb your sleep in the slightest. It’s not until a woman approaches you, her heels echoing through the room.
“Your initiation is in twenty minutes and you have yet to even wake yourself,” Glynda scolds you.
Your response is a sharp snore, licking your lips, then moaning as you become comfortable again. Glynda rolls her eyes. She asked politely once, now she’ll force you up. With her Semblance, she lifts you up by the head and holds you midair. This still does not wake you. Unwilling to hit a student, even to wake them, Glynda thinks back on advice Ozpin had given for you. How he knew that was anyone’s guess. If anything, she assumes Lucent shared some tips with the headmaster, which also means you’re a handful to deal with. Nevertheless, she follows through with what she was told. Glynda sets you down gently, steps away, then clears her throat.
“For all students undergoing initiation today, the cafeteria is providing a free meal.”
Your eyes burst open as you hop to your feet.
“I remember where that is!”
“Unbelievable,” she pinches the bridge of her nose.
You grab your small stash of equipment and run out of the room, leaving many of your fellow initiates behind for the promise of food.
“Oh, right,” you look down at yourself, only wearing briefs. “Lucent and Crystal said this wasn’t right. I don’t want to be kicked out already. Where’s a bathroom?” You look around the courtyard for any signs of your desired building.
Luckily, you spot one just across the way. You swiftly glide across the ground and land in front of the building. There are two entrances, each with a different symbol. You, however, don’t bother looking at those symbols. You run into the first door you see, ignorant to the existence of another. The room is steamy and warm thanks to the showers.
“Oh, I could use one! I guess I’ll set my stuff down here,” you place your clothes, pouch, and Power Pole and the nearest bench. “And off with this,” you slide down your briefs using your trusty tail, then use that tail to place it on your clothes. “Now… which one is free?”
You follow the separate showers, each having their own door for privacy. You can still spot feet with the opening at the bottom of the door, thus you have to find one with nobody in it. The first line of showers are filled, so you step back and cross your arms.
“Um…” You hear a voice behind you.
You turn around to see a somewhat familiar face. The same blonde haired girl who looked at you funny before you went to sleep. A towel is wrapped around her chest, covering her breasts down to her legs. She’s staring at you with curiosity and disgust, but she has yet to scream or attack. You cock your head to the side.
“Hm, strange. Well if we sleep in the same room I guess we shower in the same room,” you shrug.
“I don’t believe it… he has no idea,” Yang whispers to herself.
She can tell you’re not lying. She’s had many years to see the difference between naïve ignorance and lies, thanks to her sister’s antics. You may not be Ruby, but you share a similar posture and tone of voice when speaking.
“He’s not trying to peep… and he… evidently has no shame,” she says, referring to your exposed lower body. “Well,” she sighs. “I guess I’ll break it to him. Hey,” she raises her voice for you to hear. “This isn’t your room, you know? The guys are on the other side.”
“Oh, really? That makes sense. Most places I’ve been it’s like that, plus I thought the room was kinda small,” you respond as your eyes trail around the area. “Well, thanks for letting me know,” you smile at her. “I’ll look for the guys’ shower room!”
You walk away, leaving Yang to watch.
“I… don’t even know what to think. I don’t think he’ll make it,” she shakes her head. “Well, I should get ready too.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Unfortunately, you never got the chance to eat your promised meal. The moment you stepped out of the bathroom you were approached by one of the Professors, a large man with a grey moustache, who lead you to the rest of the initiates.
Now you’re forced to wait as everyone readies themselves. Unlike you, they put their weapons in designated lockers for safekeeping. The safest place your weapon could be is at your side. It is interesting for you to see such a diverse cast of people. Before Beacon, you barely spoke with anyone. There were the villagers, though that mostly consisted of Lucent and Crystal. Aside from that, there was your training at Kame House. Master Roshi, Turtle, and another student were the only ones there. Unfortunately the other was killed, so you spent much of your time with your master. Three others came to train under the Turtle Hermit, but you left shortly before they arrived. In total, that’s only three people who you ever really made a connection with – who you even really spoke to. Having this plethora of new people is very new to you.
In truth, you do hope to make friends with them eventually. It would be a shame if everyone hated you, but at the same time, you’re here to learn and fight. It’s not a foreign concept to be alone, anyway. In fact, the thought of so many people is unnerving to you. The thought truly amuses you. You're capable of fighting the largest of Grimm or the toughest of men without breaking a sweat, yet the thought of a crowd gives you shivers.
You stand at the exit of the building with the two teachers, Glynda Goodwitch and Professor Ozpin. You’re waiting for the others to finish gearing up and group up outside the building.
“Are you excited? Anxious?” Ozpin asks, approaching you.
“Oh, of course not. Just curious. Well, maybe anxious. I want to get to the action.”
“There will be time for that… as long as you balance it with study.”
You slouch forward, huffing.
“Yeah…”
Before you can continue conversing, some of the students exit the building. The first is a young woman who’s almost entirely white or light blue. Her white hair is done up in a ponytail, though not centered. An odd fashion choice. The rest is reasonable, being a white and pale blue dress and jacket. One thing you notice is the scar running down her left eye.
“Heya, how’d you get that scar?” You say with a warm smile.
Weiss stares at you, confused.
“Who do you think you are to-“
She’s cut off by a loud, rumbling sound coming from your stomach.
“Aaah, man… I really wish I didn’t miss breakfast,” you whine while holding your stomach.
Weiss shakes her head as she walks past you. You’re definitely someone she’ll be avoiding from now on.
Others approach your small group, all varying in size and appearance. One you recognize from earlier – the yellow-haired, lilac-eyed woman from the showers. She’s accompanied by a smaller girl with black hair complimented with red accents, silver eyes, and attire that consists of black and red. Her hood is an interesting addition to her attire, but also one that could be easily exploited in battle. She’s carrying another man whom you’ve seen before. His casual attire, that being blue jeans and a black hoodie, is overlaid with white armour on his chest and arms. He looks dazed and confused for whatever reason, clearly needing the help of the young woman.
You wave at the blonde woman, to which she hesitantly waves back.
“Who’s that, sis?”
“Nobody. Don’t worry about it,” she quickly dismisses.
“Now that you’re all here,” Ozpin announces. “We’ll be taking Bullheads to the Emerald Forest. Please, follow us.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Glynda aligns each of you with one of the pads stationed along the Cliffside. It’s a nice view, but you’ve been in the forest dozens of times before. It’s nothing new. You’re in the middle beside a student wearing almost entirely white. She does her best to ignore you despite your small remarks about your growling stomach.
“For years, you have trained to become warriors and today your abilities will be evaluated in the Emerald Forest,” Ozpin states.
“Now, I’m sure many of you…”
Glynda’s words trail off as you stare at the grey-haired man drinking from his mug.
This guy feels so strange. I can’t get a read on him. I know I suck at sensing, but at this distance, it should be easy. It’s like he’s purposefully hiding his power.
The man is speaking, but despite your immense attention towards Ozpin, you aren’t listening to a word he’s saying. You’re squinting, you’re thinking. That’s all disrupted when you’re suddenly sprung off the ground and sent flying into the air, spiraling forward. You immediately catch yourself a few meters off the cliff, holding your position upside down, and look back at the other students who have yet to be launched.
“Hey! What was that?” You complain.
Ozpin and Glynda turn around, curious at who could be speaking from the air. Ozpin, upon seeing you, chuckles.
“Evidently you weren’t listening to a thing I said.”
Weiss and another girl with red hair are launched next, forcing you to maneuver out of the way.
“Whoa, hey! I’m still here!”
“You shouldn’t. I suggest you carry on with your assignment.”
The rest of the students are flung passed you, including Jaune he cries as he soars.
“Well, I don’t want to be left behind,” you say before flying into that general direction.
“Please tell me why you allowed him in. His scores may have excelled in combat but his studie-“
“That is the young man Lucent told us about, remember? A recommendation from a Huntsman like him doesn’t happen very often,” Ozpin answers before sipping his drink.
Glynda leans on her hip.
“Well, I hope he’s true to his word. This one has been nothing but a disappointment.”
“I wouldn’t jump to conclusions just yet, Glynda,” Ozpin counters. “I believe there’s more to this student than anyone knows… including him,” he finishes into his cup.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
All the students land with their own strategies. You, on the other hand, just let yourself fall somewhere in the Emerald Forest. You stop yourself just before hitting the ground to land gently. Unintentionally you stopped yourself a fair distance away from everyone else, leaving you alone. Not that you’re worried about that. You’re on the ground with… an objective…
“What was I supposed to do here, again?” You rub the back of your head. “Ah well, I’m sure I’ll figure it out as I go,” you shrug.
You cross your arms and lazily stroll through the Emerald Forest. It’s not the first time you’ve been here, but you haven’t been in this section. You also never heard the sounds of gunfire echoing through the trees.
“Must be the other students. Oh, maybe we have to kill the most Grimm,” you exclaim. “It would show how capable we are as Huntsmen. Well, I guess I’ll just keep walking until I find something or someone.”
You begin your stroll through the forest. As you walk you readjust the rope keeping your weapon on your back. It’s clear that the entire place is filled with Grimm and the few students you saw on the cliff. With no point in dallying, you lift yourself ever so slightly off the ground and dash forward, whizzing past the trees and over the bushes. You’re barely going faster than running speed as to not miss any people or Grimm along your path, but this gives you more mobility and freedom.
You bring yourself to a halt when you spot smoke rising from an area north-east of your location.
“Hm… someone might be in trouble. I should check it out, just in case.”
You glide across the ground towards the source of the smoke. With your speed, you make it within seconds and are exposed to a grand spectacle. Beowolves are howling while the trees around them are ablaze.
“Grimm don’t shoot fire to my knowledge. Maybe another student was here,” you bring your hand to your chin, not caring about the Grimm around you.
The Grimm, however, notice you despite the threat of the fire. You’re totally absent-minded to the threat around you… well, not really a threat. One of the beowolves lunge at you, but you simply lean back and drive your knee into its stomach so hard that splits the beast in half. It dissipates before the two halves can hit the ground. You look around at the dozen Beowolves that stay for a fight.
Guessing it’s a pack, meaning one is more experienced than the others. If it’s been in a fight before…
You uncross your arms as you slide your left leg back. Your right arm tucks in beside your stomach, tightening into a fist, while your left arm is ahead of you – hand parallel to your jaw and fingers slightly curled. Your left foot faces forward while the other shifts right. You’ve had this stance since you were a child, so you’ve learned possible flaws and how to counter anyone who attempts to exploit them.
“Well, let’s see how it goes,” you smile.
You burst off your right foot, charging forward with your right shoulder towards the Grimm ahead of you. You swing your left hand, clobbering its head to dust. You found the perfect amount of strength to defeat simple Grimm a long time ago, so it makes it easier to weed out those immune to blunt force. Once your punch connects, you immediately burst backward, your chest facing the sky as you fly past another one of the Grimm, then crush the Beowolf with your heels. You land on the ground, immediately using a shockwave fist to kill one farther away.
“Man, this isn’t that fun,” you mumble.
Another Beowolf, this one having more bone armour than the others, jumps at you from behind. You turn around and slam your elbow into its snout. Instead of turning to smoke like the others, it flies back and slams into the closest tree. This catches your attention.
“I see, so you’re the elder. I guess I’ll have to be a little more creative.” You lift your hand towards it and fire a moderately sized yellow blast. It consumes the beast, eradicating it from existence. “Or not, I guess.” You sigh. “Really not as fun.”
With their leader killed, the few remaining Beowolves flee to fight another day. You cross your arms and watch both the running Beowolves and burning trees.
“I probably shouldn’t stay here. Maybe I can find some other students or something.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“It seems almost all the students have partnered up. One seems to be… lost,” Glynda reports as she scrolls through hidden cameras.
She and Ozpin focus on the one showing you, standing in the middle of the burning forest watching the Grimm flee.
“It seems he doesn’t know what he’s doing,” Glynda remarks. “How can you put faith into a boy so… inept?”
“An ignorant child, one could say. Is it not our duty to teach him?” Ozpin queries.
“I suppose… his techniques are… interesting. I’ve never seen someone who can fly and… fire whatever it is those were. Do you know something, Professor Ozpin?”
“Of course not,” he blatantly lies. “But I do see potential.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You saunter through the forest, no clear goal in mind. You have no idea what you’re supposed to do or where anyone else is. That is until you hear a feminine scream echo across half the forest.
“Huh… that’s definitely not something I was expecting to hear. Is this part of the test?” You scratch your head. “Well, I should check it out just inca-“
A Nevermore’s screech fills the air, followed by its beating wings. You look up at see the beast soar over you for just a moment.
“Now that’s interesting,” you smile before bursting off the ground to follow the flying Grimm.
As you catch up to it you notice this Nevermore is an older one than those that normally inhabit the forest. It has light bone armour along its wings, indicating its grown from battle. Shouldn’t be a problem for you, however. Before you attack it you notice red and white on the hide of the beast. You speed towards them and keep pace, staring at them with curiosity. They share the same look, though clearly more baffled than curious.
“What’re you doing up here?” Ruby shouts.
“I could ask you the same thing!”
“Even he thinks it’s a bad idea!” Weiss says towards Ruby.
“Then we’ll just jump!” Ruby declares before leaping off the beast.
You watch the young girl pass you by and fall towards a clearing below. You return your gaze to Weiss, who’s annoyed at the moment.
“Do... do you want me to fly you down?”
“Obviously!” She screeches.
You move closer to the Nevermore, wrap your hand around Weiss’ waist, and descend to the ground. There are some ruins along with students – one of them being chased by a rather large Deathstalker.
“Well, I found people.”
“Can you please get me to the ground,” Weiss whines.
“Right, right,” you nod before increasing your speed.
You land beside the group just before the armoured redhead crashes beside them. You set Weiss down and look to your fellow students.
“Great, the gang’s all here. Now we can die together,” Yang remarks.
“Not if I can help it,” Ruby confidently says before charging at the incoming Deathstalker.
“Ruby, wait!” Yang shouts.
You look back to the Nevermore circling back for another run. With nothing better to do, you burst back into the air towards the black creature. It hovers in midair for a moment then flaps its wings hard, sending a barrage of its feathers at you.
“Gonna take more than that!” You say with a smile, weaving through its attack.
You fail to notice the feather’s pinning Ruby and halting Yang, but that’s not your concern at the moment. You twirl through the feathers and deliver a heavy blow to the creature’s stomach. You quickly follow up with a second punch, then fly upwards for a powerful uppercut, and finish with another punch downwards. The bird spirals into the forest, toppling trees and bushes as it slides to a halt. You wipe your hands in pride.
“Easy enough.” You look down at the sight of a Deathstalker’s claw stuck in ice. “Are we leaving now?” You shout to everyone.
“Yeah!” Ruby responds, waving to you. “We just have to get th-“
The Nevermore screeches from the forest, angered at your assault.
“Alright, just do what you’re doing and I’ll follow!”
“Has he grabbed a Relic yet?” Yang cocks her head to the side.
“I didn’t see him grab one,” Ren adds.
“Guys, we shouldn’t waste time. That Deathstalker will break free,” Jaune speaks with a hint of fear.
“If he’s buying us time then we should use it,” Pyrrha says with a nod. “Let’s go!”
You fly around the Nevermore, dodging its feathers and attempted chomping. The entire time you’re watching the others to make sure they’re on the move. Finally, they run past the Deathstalker and into the thicker part of the forest. Once they’re a decent distance away, you blitz around the Nevermore and hammerfist onto the Deathstalker. The two Grimm crash along the ground, tearing up grass and dirt as they tumble. You immediately fly towards the forest, descending so you can spot your fellow students. With your speed, you easily catch up to them and join them in running.
“You took care of it by yourself?” Jaune asks with surprise.
“I do it all the time. It’s not that bad. You just gotta find out what they’re weak to,” you respond, keeping your eyes forward.
“What they’re weak to?” Jaune repeats with uncertainty.
“Yeah, don’t you know?” You ask with a small chuckle. “Grimm evolve as they battle. If they survive a fight they become immune to whatever damaged them.”
“Whoa, really?”
“It’s true,” Pyrrha chimes in. “That’s why Huntsmen need to be paired up. If someone with a blade encounters a Grimm immune to that, then they’ll need someone to assist them.”
“Blunt force, explosives, whatever else,” you continue. “But I got something that almost no Grimm has faced, so there’s no need to worry!” You say with a confident tone.
“Ehehe… if you say so,” he hesitantly agrees.
The group of nine sprints through the forest, hopping over fallen trunks and squishing growing grass. Finally, you reach a clearing of flat plains. Your path is set by two stone structures that have clearly aged. Ahead appears to be a large stone tower that’s taken damage over time. Considering the architecture and layout, everything might have been connected for ease of access. The thing that piques your interest the most is a Nevermore soaring over your group.
“Well, I guess that’s what I get for leaving it,” you say in passing. Suddenly a Deathstalker pushes its way through the trees behind you. “Also my bad.”
“What do we do?” Jaune questions.
“Keep running. I let these guys catch up with us so I’ll deal with it!”
“That Deathstalker is ancient. I don’t think we have the weapons to beat it,” Pyrrha points out.
“Trust me, we do,” you smirk. “Just keep running! Head for the cliff!”
You launch yourself off the ground, towards the Nevermore. You have to get it out of everyone’s way else they’ll be stuck.
I’ll take’em both out in one shot!
You circle around the Nevermore twice, firing shockwave punches to anger it. The beast unleashes a roar and follows you.
“That’s it – now…” You look down to the Deathstalker still in pursuit of the others. “Get down!” You scream to your allies.
You swoop down over them and towards the Grimm. You rev up your speed to render any sort of retaliation useless. You fly past the Deathstalker, grabbing hold of its stinger and dragging it along with you. You match the Nevermore’s altitude then start spinning yourself around.
“And a one… and a two… and..!” You throw the Deathstalker right at the Nevermore.
It slams into the bird, provoking a painful screech from both. The students suddenly realize you’ve moved from in front of the Grimm to behind them, about in their falling trajectory. You lower your hands to your right hip, connecting them by the base of their palms.
“Ka… Me…” The air pressure around the forest increases dramatically, the wind racing faster than before. “Ha… Me…” Your voice echoes through the forest, a raspy tone to it as you focus your power.
“What is he doing?” Weiss questions, but she’s quickly cut off.
“HAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAA!” You throw your hands toward the beasts, unleashing a blinding blue beam of raw power.
The pressure and power released from your hands blows back everything in the immediate area. The stone structures crumble, trees are pushed back, and the students struggle to remain stationary.
“What is that?” Yang shouts.
“He’s going to kill us all!” Weiss retorts.
The beam engulfs the two Grimm as it goes, blasting past them and towards the sky.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
From the cliff, Professor Ozpin, Glynda, and the others students watch the spectacle. As the other students watch in awe, Ozpin remains unfazed, simply taking a drink.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
After the clouds part, the sky shifts colours, and you’re satisfied, you stop feeding the Kamehameha. The beam disappears from your hands and well enough the area calms… mostly. Out of the dust, the Nevermore soars towards you.
“What the?” You strafe to the side, avoiding the Nevermore’s open maw. “How could… ooooh, wait a second,” you turn yourself around and smile at beast’s behind. “You’re the Nevermore from the other day, aren’t you? I didn’t kill you with that simple blast. Ah, that makes sense,” you cross your arms and nod.
But if it is, that crosses out fists and energy. Which means my next option is…
You look over your shoulder towards the sea line.
“Drown it.”
You grab the Power Pole from its scabbard then twirl it in your right hand. You quickly point it just under the Nevermore.
“Power Pole extend!”
The red beam extends at an alarming rate, quickly catching up to the Nevermore. Right when it reaches its stomach, you lift up, catching the Nevermore and directing it however you please. The bird screeches as you lift it over you and towards the ocean. Once it passes over your location, you retract the power pole and speed towards it. Since its off balance, you have no problem reaching its stomach. You burst into its stomach, throwing rapid punches to direct its movement. You keep the beast moving over the Emerald Forest and towards the water. After passing the shoreline, you keep going so you can bury this thing deep. After reaching your intended destination, you deliver a powerful blow downwards, sending the Nevermore towards the water. You blitz it once more, delivering even more blows to its stomach. Soon enough you break the ocean line and delve into the water. With your cheeks filled with air, you persist in punching the Grimm further and further into the sea. The light soon fades from the water, and that’s the indication for you to back out. You erupt from the water, hands cupped once more.
“Kamehameha!” You say far quicker than before, releasing a more condensed version of the beam.
It connects with the Nevermore’s body, forcing it even farther into the water below.
“You’re not gonna come back from this one, friend!” You pointlessly speak out. After a few seconds, you separate your hands and stop the blast. “Should be near the bottom of the ocean at this point. Though it’s funny how-“
A sudden explosion causes a rush of water to spurt from your beam’s position and all over you. As the water rains down, you’re left soaking wet. You look down at yourself and… start laughing.
“Aaah… not as fun as people,” you shake your head.
With your enemies defeated, you fly back to the ruined ruins where your fellow students await you. You land beside them, ignoring their shock and amazement.
“So we’re going to the cliff, right?”
“You fly… you… do that thing you do… you even punch- who are you?” Yang demands.
“Well, I’m just (Y/N),” you shrug, then proceed to laugh.
“How did you get your weapon to do that,” Ruby asks, eying your weapon from behind.
“The Power Pole?” You say, looking over your shoulder at the young girl. “That’s just how it is.”
“I would suggest we return to the Professors. We’ve taken up more time than the others,” Ren points out.
“He’s right. We don’t want to get a bad score,” Weiss adds.
You turn to the cliffs and start walking.
“Well, better get going then. No point standing around.”
Blake and Yang watch as you walk.
“He’s a strange one,” Blake remarks.
“You think? I’ve never seen someone do anything like that. It’s like he has multiple semblances. Is that possible?”
“I don’t think so,” Blake shakes her head. “But, who knows. Why don’t you ask him that yourself?”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
With the Nevermore defeated and the relics collected, all the students report to Ozpin and Glynda for their evaluation. Every pair forms a line to hand in their retrieved artifact. You’re at the back of the line alone, which, on its own, makes you raise an eyebrow. Why is everyone in pairs? Where did they get those wooden statues? These questions popped up in your mind more than once, but you decide to ignore it. No point dwelling on something you can’t answer.
The line moves rather quickly – Ozpin takes the relic, types something on his scroll, then brings forth the next group. The whole process is done in less than five minutes, leaving you at the very end. Ozpin examines you, immediately recognizing you have neither a relic nor a partner.
“Hm…” Is all he can muster as his fingers tap on his scroll. “That’s everyone. Please return to the Bullhead’s awaiting you a short distance away. We will have a ceremony in one hour. You are all expected to be there. If you are called on stage you have passed. If not… an airship will be ready to take you back to Vale.”
Ozpin turns away from you and walks towards the parked Bullheads. You cross your arms and cock your head to the side.
So… did I not need a thingy? Huh, cool!
The group of students all converge to the multiple Bullheads awaiting them. Each Bullhead accepts eight students into them. You’re sat with some of the ones you fought with – Jaune, Nora, Pyrrha, and Ren. Once everyone is loaded into the vehicles they all take off and back to Beacon.
“Where did you train?” Ren inquires.
You notice him looking at you, meaning you’re supposed to answer.
“Oh, uh… on an island with an old man. He taught me the Kamehameha.”
“That blue beam you did?” Pyrrha asks for clarification.
“Yeah. It’s my best move by far,” you say with a wide grin. “Master Roshi was surprised I learned it so fast. It took him decades.”
“And how long did it take you?” Jaune asks.
You cross your arms and look at the ceiling.
“Um… a week, I think. I mean, I used it the same day I saw it, but it took me a while to actually get it to that level. That wasn’t me going all out, though.”
“Really?” Nora exclaims. “So how strong are you! I wanna see.”
“He did punch a Nevermore, Nora.”
“Psh, I could do that,” she waves off.
“Really? Maybe we could have a match sometime,” you excitedly offer.
Nora leans forward with a wide, confident smile.
“You’re on.”
“Hehe, I can’t wait. I’m really hoping to find some fun people to fight.”
“That’s an unorthodox reason to attend Beacon,” Ren comments. “Most come to battle Grimm.”
“Yeah, Grimm are fine and all, but… like I told Jaune, all you have to do is find their weakness. It’s not as fun for me. I…” You lean forward, elbows pressing on your knees. “I like going up against a challenge – something I don’t know I’ll beat. That’s when my heart gets pumping.”
“It sounds like you’re a born fighter,” Pyrrha speaks.
“That’s what Master Roshi said too,” you chuckle. “But don’t worry, I’ll take out as many Grimm as I can. You won’t have to worry around me!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“Aaaah,” you let out a sigh of relief as you pat your stomach.
You’re in the cafeteria, sitting by yourself since there’s no room. Sure, people could sit beside you, but the amount of plates you’ve left fills up the entire table three times over. Others watched in awe as you ate and still don’t believe any one person could eat so much. The other students, the ones who took the trial, aren’t as surprised as the others. After seeing your Kamehameha, a large appetite is a minuscule thing to gawk at. Though students aren’t the only ones who’re shocked. The hardworking men and women who provided that food has never worked so hard in their entire career. On one hand, they hate that Ozpin allowed such an order to be made, but they’re also somewhat touched that a student adores their cooking that much.
You slip out of your seat and start stretching your legs from side to side.
“Oh yeah, that’s better. I feel like I could take on the world right now,” you happily declare.
You stand up straight and look around the room for the ones you fought with earlier. You fly over the other tables – which of course raises your mystique for others – and land with your peers.
“How much longer do we have to wait?”
“Did… did you just fly ten feet?” Ruby tilts her head.
“Yeah?” You ask, unsure why the question was posed.
“Why couldn’t he have just walked?” The young girl whispers to Jaune.
“I don’t know,” he shrugs.
“Well, if my scroll is correct, we have to convene at the auditorium in fifteen minutes. Perhaps leaving in five would be best,” Weiss calculates.
“Okie dokie. Might as well grab another bowl.”
“You’re joking,” Yang says with a short laugh.
“Food is not a joke,” you say in a deathly serious tone. “But I guess bringing back my plates would be polite,” you continue in your light-hearted manner.
“I still can’t believe you ate that much,” Blake speaks.
“Oh, hehe, yeah,” you smile at the Faunus girl. “You should have seen how much I ate with Master Roshi. Man… those were the times,” your mouth drools at the thought of all the wondrous, delicious food. “I could go for more food…”
“He’s not real…”
“Well, I’m gonna wait in the auditorium. That way there’s no way I’ll be late! It was nice talking to you!” You wave while walking to the door.
“There are some strange people here,” Weiss shakes her head.
“Meh,” Yang shrugs. “I like him.”
“Me too. OH! Maybe you can make pancakes for a contest, Ren!” Nora cheerfully shouts.
“Nope. No way,” he immediately dismisses.
“Aww, come on! Why not!”
The table fills with some laughter from Ruby, Pyrrha, and a few others. Weiss keeps to herself, finding the entire situation rather dull.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
The initiates, along with some curious seniors, gather in the Auditorium to watch the acceptance. Plenty of teams have gone up and been formed, plenty of students are nervously waiting in the crowd to be called up. You stand to the right, by the stairs. Your arms are crossed and your face is hopeful. You watch as all the teams are formed, ending with team RWBY.
“And finally… you,” he looks directly at you. “Come up.”
You walk up the small set of stairs, passing RWBY as Ruby and Yang give you a thumbs up. You stand in front of the crowd, beside Ozpin.
“(Y/N), you… utterly failed in your mission.”
Your eyes widen and your body jolts back, knocking you off your feet and onto the ground. This gets a laugh from the crowd, but your newfound friends are worried at your rejection.
“You failed to find a partner and failed to retrieve one of the Relics. Everyone in the room achieved at least one of those things.” You get back to your feet and rub your head. Your tail is completely soft, visibly showing gloom. “However… as Headmaster there are times where I bend the rules. You have shown excellent combat prowess and situational adaptability. Every so often I find a student like this… sometimes it’s later in the year, sometimes it’s right away… So, I hereby announce you this year’s one-man team. Congratulations.”
Your tail perks up just as your smile forms. Most crowd claps for your accomplishment while a few others are jealous that they weren’t selected.
“For those who didn’t make it… I encourage you to improve your skills and try again next year. For those who did, we will be assigning dorms before dusk. Rest and relax – classes start tomorrow.”
You descend the stairs and regroup with teams RWBY and JNPR.
“Looks like we all made it,” Ruby happily says.
“And my little sister is the leader. I’m so proud… but you don’t get to boss me around,” Yang quickly clarifies.
Ruby crosses her arms and raises her chin.
“You’ll have to say on my good side, then.”
“And you’re on your own. I wonder how that will work,” Blake says, focusing on you.
“It doesn’t matter to me. I’m sure it’ll be fun either way,” you say, slamming your fist into your hand before you. “And I’ll be the best fighter here.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Glynda Goodwitch shows all the students to their rooms, starting from the bottom floor. Each are assigned from top to bottom, and you’re in the middle. Halfway through the top floor hallway, RWBY and JNPR are assigned dorms opposite to one another. The rest of the students are assigned dorms along that hallway, then when reaching the small crossroads, Glynda first takes people left then back down to the right. You’re the last one to be given a room – the one at the very edge of the top floor. Glynda unlocks the door and allows you access.
“Yours is not as large as the others, but this room is made for a single person.” You enter the room behind her and see what she means. The width is about two and a half beds worth, though some of that is taken by an actual bed. “There’s a small desk there,” she points to the corner where a sturdy metal desk sits. “And besides that, there’s the washroom. If something happens to stop functioning please let us know and we’ll fix it immediately. In the meantime, there’s the public washroom and showers you can use. Your schedule has already been left on your desk, as well as a new scroll. Professor Ozpin deemed it mandatory for you to have one. Take care of it.”
You nod.
“No problem! Thank you very much, Professor,” you bow to the woman.
“Right… Have a good night,” she says before leaving you alone.
You look around the room one last time, taking it the rather bland décor and small space. With a deep breath, you contemplate a truly important question.
“I wonder if the cafeteria is still open…”
And there’s chapter 2! To be honest, things will kinda diverge from here. I started this off very RWBY-like, which may have alienated Dragon Ball fans. My apologies for that. This was the best way to start it all off, I find. Remember, this doesn’t follow RWBY or Dragon Ball exactly. This’ll be its own thing from here on out. I hope you all enjoy the new storyline that’s been cooked up! Anyway, that’s it for me. I’ll see you all soon!
Want to keep up with me? Know what chapter’s coming out next and the progress of them? Follow me on Twitter! Twitter . com (slash) Chinsangan
Questions? Comments? Concerns? Advice? Send me a message! See ya!
Chapter 3: Adapting to School? The Greatest Challenge Yet!
Chapter Text
Chapter 3: Adapting to School? The Greatest Challenge Yet!
When attending a school as prestigious as Beacon Academy, there’s always a sort of pressure put on students. It does not bode well when two teams, JNPR and RWBY, arrive just before their first class starts. Both teams slip through the door and slide into seats, RWBY positioned at the front-right of the class while JNPR is on the middle-left. Other students are situated at the various desks, leaving one open, just beside Blake.
A man with a fairly large stomach stands at the center of the room, watching all his students take their seats. His grey hair rolls down the sides of his head like waves, mimicking the prominent grey moustache he has. He’s in Professor’s attire, that being a double-breasted burgundy suit with gold buttons and lining. His pants share a similar colour, though they’re tucked into olive boots. He has a very intimidating manner as he squinted eyes drag across the room.
“Fantastic! Such young, brave looking students!” He hollers, his voice booming with enthusiasm. “I cannot wait to see you all in action, to teach you what its like to truly fight a Grimm and be remembered… like me! Haha!” Professor Peter Port locks his hands behind his back and paces back and forth. “As I look at you all I realize we are missing a student! A tardy student means a tardy Huntsman… unlike me!”
“Hey, you think it’s that one guy?” Yang whispers to Blake.
“How am I supposed to know? He’s probably in another class.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Your snores fill your room and beyond. Luckily there are no other students in the area, as all are in classes like they’re supposed to be – like you’re supposed to be. You’ve always been one to sleep longer than you should, but before it never mattered. To suddenly have a schedule that’s not strictly enforced by a teacher is doomed to fail. Though, some could argue that sleeping through classes is exactly what failure is. Glynda Goodwitch is one who’d agree with that statement. She’s patrolling each dorm to assure nobody is skipping out on their first classes. Normally she’d politely knock then enter each room to check for any students, but your snores are a dead giveaway. The woman follows the roaring sounds to your dorm.
“Why am I not surprised…” she whispers to herself whilst her scroll unlocks your door.
You’re spread eagle on your bed, covers mostly hanging off, your clothes resting on your desk, and your tail as limp as the rest of your body. “(Y/N), wake up!” She declares with a powerful voice.
Your eyes flutter open, though your mind is still muddled. You don’t fully grasp the situation you’re in. You lift your body off the bed and rustle your hair with your hand.
“Mm…” Your eyes drift to your professor. “Oh… you’re…” It takes at least ten seconds of staring at the cross-armed Professor to realize the situation. “OH WAIT!” You burst off the bed, grabbing your regular clothes then jumping out your window.
“Mr. (Y/N) you need your uniform! Mr… my goodness,” she huffs.
You sprint across the stone paths of Beacon, hastily putting on your pants while almost tripping twice, followed by your socks and boots. Your shirt and gi are easy enough to get on while running, but your ragged and wrinkled clothes clearly indicate being rushed.
“Which class was it… which one… one-oh-seven. One-oh-seven… one-oh-eight? One-oh-something.” You say to yourself as you approach the building.
You push open the first door and run through the long halls. There are different paths to take, most leading to other hallways with rooms lined along the sides. Most are classrooms, though every time and again there’s a bathroom or storage closet.
“Okay, okay… gotta be one of these… gotta be one of these… let's try… this one?”
You push open the door, drawing the attention of Professor Port’s class.
“Ah, another devoted Huntsmen-in-Training… though one who isn’t wearing his uniform…”
You look down at yourself then at your fellow classmates. All of them are similar attire that you recognize. It was set out on your bed… along with the scroll and schedule. You have brought none of those things with you.
“So, young man, are you (Y/N)?”
“Yeah. Sorry, I’m late I was… well, sleeping, hehe,” you shrug.
“Don’t you think that’s irresponsible for someone of your stature?” Port asks with a brow raised.
“Maybe. I was always told to rest well. ‘Move well, learn well, eat well, rest well,’” you recite.
“I recognize those words! You come from the Turtle School!”
You eagerly nod, happy to find a topic to discuss.
“Yeah, I trained there for a long time. I owe a lot to Master Roshi.”
A hand of a student raises, the owner being Pyrrha Nikos.
“Yes, Ms. Nikos?”
“I’ve never heard of the Turtle School before. What is it, exactly?”
“Well,” Port moves his hands behind his back and begins pacing. “It’s similar to the various training schools, like Signal Academy. The Turtle School is not quite as populated, however. There are other, smaller schools, such as the Crane School.”
“Heh, I remember them,” you whisper to yourself as you cross your arms.
“They teach fantastic techniques at those schools. It’s an honour to train there. You must be quite the talented youth!” Port declares, turning his attention back to you.
“I’m nothing special,” you chuckle, rubbing the back of your head.
“Well, please, take a seat! There’s a spot next to Ms. Belladonna – at the front of the class,” he speaks as he gestures to the location.
You trail down the stairs then pass by the other members of RWBY until you reach your seat. You sit next to Blake, giving her a quick smile before focusing on the lesson.
“Now, where were we? Oh, yes, the Grimm! As you all know, the creatures of Grimm vary in size and strength. But they all share common traits, like the attraction to negative emotions, the hunger to rip you limb from limb… and to be defeated by me! I remember, once upon a time, when…”
Your eyes glance at the whiteboard behind him. There are various Grimm diagrams detailed on each board, but none of this is new to you. Ursa, Beowolves, Goliaths, and those few Rexs that roam the land. It’s hard to find regular Dinosaurs since the population of Rexs escalated. Most Rexs have survived numerous battles against young and old Huntsmen, so their immunities become a problem.
You return your attention to the babbling Professor. Your foot taps, your fingers dance along the table, your tail waves from side to side. All these things attract the girl beside you, Blake. She’s well aware of everyone’s boredom, but not everyone is making so much noise. On the other hand, her other three teammates are in their own little squabble. Ruby and Yang are laughing while Weiss is fuming.
“… I was lucky that day. Remember, class, there’s a reason we pair you together. Grimm are extremely adaptable. Never think you can fight one alone! As Huntsmen, we must be adaptable and creative. This will be the nature of your first assignment!”
“Work already,” you moan.
“It is school,” Blake comments, still looking at the teacher.
“Yeah… but I thought we’d be training more…”
“Each pair will be given a location. You must figure out how to defeat a Grimm without using your weapons!”
“So,” you raise your hand as you speak, getting Port’s attention. “Am I gonna do it on my own?”
“Ah, yes, you are the single student… hm…” He runs his fingers along his moustache. “Ms. Belladonna, Ms. Xiao Long, would you accept him into your group?”
You look to the two girls. Yang shrugs, Blake barely moves.
“Sure, he can tag along,” Yang answers.
“Fantastic! You’ll be given your locations before class’ end. Now, let's move onto the Grimm… yes, I remember some of these,” Port glances at the Grimm detailed on his board. “This reminds me of a time when I was a stark young man… one year ago, I set off to…”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
After what feels like weeks of constant chatter, class finally ends. Blake and Yang were given their location, but you didn’t wait up for them. Now you’re wandering just outside the classroom like a lost monkey. You have no idea where to go next.
“Hm… I could go back to my room. I think that schedule thingy is there. Or maybe…” You spot Blake and Yang leaving the classroom, reading the page they were given. “Hey!” You wave, getting their attention before jogging towards them. “What’s your next class?”
“Combat training,” Yang responds. “Yours?” She tilts her head.
Your eyes light up at the sound of her words.
“T-That’s mine too! Can I walk with you? I’m not too great at finding these places,” you sheepishly admit while rubbing the side of your head.
“Sure, follow the leader!” Yang proudly points to herself. “It’s…” She looks back and forth. “Um… this way!”
“This way,” Blake walks in the opposite direction.
“This way!”
You follow the two girls through the hallways. The two girls speak of the project while you just follow them, arms crossed, eyes wandering to the other students who’re passing by. So many different people with unique fighting styles and power… it’s getting you kinda excited. You have this feeling leading all the way up to the small coliseum. Other students, including the ones from your previous class, are set along the upper seats around the center ring. You run past the girls and hop into the middle of the ring, taking in everything.
“This is awesome! Not like the tournament rings, but it’ll do. Can I fight first? I wanna fight first!” You declare.
“I see you’re enthusiastic for this,” Glynda leans on her hip.
Her words grab your full attention.
“Can I fight first, Miss? Please?”
“If you get your uniform from your room, then yes.”
“Got it!”
You quickly hover over the stands and fly out the door. Within seconds you return with a crumpled uniform in hand. You hold it out in front of your professor, a smile on your face.
“Got it, hehe.”
“I… oh…” Glynda rests her head in her hand. “Give me strength… Fine,” she flips her hand. “You at least have it. Your opponent is on his way.”
“Awesome,” you exclaim, tossing your clothes to the stands.
“You’re not- oh why do I bother…”
You hop onto the opposite side of the stage and wait for your opponent. Soon enough the pitter patter of feet echoes out of the hallway and into the arena. Jaune Arc steps out of the corridor, nervous about his first real fight with anyone. His eyes go wide when he sees you standing on the other side of the arena with a wide grin.
“Heya! Ready to spar?”
“Eh… hehe… oh, you, huh?” Jaune nervously laughs. “Great, no, yeah, just great.”
“Right? I can’t wait to see what you got,” you eagerly agree, stretching your legs. “It’s been too long since I fought someone one-on-one,” you enter your fighting stance, left arm up, right arm tucked in, legs locked in place. “You ready?”
“Eeeh…” Jaune hesitantly glances at Glynda. “A-Are we?”
Glynda clicks her scroll which brings up Jaune’s Aura gauge on the screen behind her. Yours, however, does not come up. She taps on her scroll, eyes sharply moving to you.
“You haven’t registered your scroll.”
“Oh, hehe, yeah. It’s fine, don’t worry. We’ll be fine.”
“That’s not your-“
“Ready, Jaune?”
“Ms. Goodwitch?” Jaune whimpers.
“You’re not the teacher here, (Y/N).”
“I am the fighter, though,” you smirk. “So let's do it. I’ve been itching to battle.”
“You won’t be training at all if you don’t listen to me!”
“Come on, it’ll be fun! Maybe we can have a whole battle… I’m getting excited just thinking about it.”
The students all stare in amazement at the tense situation before them. Normally tension would be brought from the fight itself and wondering who would win, but now it's from defiance on your part. RWBY and JNPR didn’t expect you to be like this. You’re blatantly ignoring Glynda’s orders just so you can train with Jaune, who, as most know, isn’t even that skilled of a fighter.
You can see the uneasiness of the class out of the corner of your eye.
“Hm… everyone’s feeling strange… maybe…”
This reminds you all too much of when you were younger. The early days of training under Master Roshi was the same. You were dismissive, brash, and obsessed with combat. That hasn’t changed much, but you remember how patient and understanding your Master was. You learned this lesson already.
You stand up straight and turn to the teacher. Glynda’s taken back when you suddenly bow.
“My apologies. I’ll be sure to respect your position more in the future.”
“I… well, thank you. But you can’t fight until your Aura is connected to our systems.”
“Those glass things? Oh yeah, I did bring that along.”
You glide over to your clothes and dig through the pants pocket, quickly finding the scroll. You fly back to Glynda and hand it to her.
“Here you go. I don’t know what you’re looking for. That gauge thing wouldn’t work for me,” you shrug whilst walking away.
Glynda takes her time to calibrate the device… but you’re correct. It’s set up properly but it’s not detecting an Aura from you. She looks up at you with intrigue. She’s seen your abilities when fighting the Grimm… and that wasn’t using Aura?
“Were you not already gauged at one of the schools?”
You casually look over at her and shake your head.
“Not really. I came from the Turtle School. We didn’t have much in the way of technology or gauges.”
The piece suddenly clicks into place. Why Ozpin’s letting you in, why you’re Aura isn’t showing up. Ozpin has mentioned people like you before. People who use Ki. But even then, they have Aura. Every human and Faunus does, it just needs to be unlocked. But that’s not her place. If Ozpin knew and didn’t enforce an Aura, there must have been a reason. She’ll hold her tongue and inquire about this later.
“I see… well, Mr. Arc, are you ready?”
“Hehe… yeah…” He sighs. “Go easy on me, alright,” he shouts.
“Of course! It’ll be a friendly match!”
“Ready..? Begin!”
Instantaneously, you disappear from Jaune’s sight. He’s freaked out for a moment, unsure where you’ve gone. His shield is up and his sword is ready, but even still he backs up. His head knocks into something, instantly making him jump forward and turn around. Your elbow is extended, but you have a confused look on your face. You switch from Jaune to the crowd.
“I didn’t even see him move…”
“Is that his semblance?”
“He has multiple?”
“Ruby, you’re fast. What happened?” Yang whispers to the young student.
“I could kind of see him. He’s… really fast. Faster than me, I think…”
You bring your arm back and scratch your head.
“You couldn’t follow me, could you?” Jaune shakes his head in response. “Hm… well, okay! You attack first, this time!” You cheerfully say as you slip back into your fighting stance.
“O-Okay… HYA!” Jaune runs at you in a fairly amateurish stance.
He slashes diagonally, which you easily just sway to the side to dodge.
“Hm… I… this isn’t what I thought it was gonna be…” You mumble to yourself.
Jaune turns his sword and attempts another slash. You lean back even more, then, once the blade passes by, you backflip a few times to get some ground. You look at your hand, clenching your fist a few times.
“Maybe…”
You pull your hand back and throw your fist forward, sending a shockwave through the air to collide with Jaune’s chest. Jaune flies back into the wall, knocking the wind out of him and cutting down his Aura to a quarter.
“Oh… hehe, I thought you were gonna dodge that. Are you okay?”
“Eh… yeah…” He slowly gets to his feet. “You didn’t even hit me.”
“Hm… I guess. No offense, but you’re kinda bad at this,” you bluntly state.
“You don’t say?” He sheepishly remarks before sheathing his blade.
“Mr. Arc’s Aura has depleted. (Y/N) is the victor,” Glynda announces the obvious. “You two go change. The next match will begin shortly.”
“Wait, that’s it? I’m done?”
“For the day, yes.”
“Aaaaaooooh,” you moan, throwing your body back then hunching. “Man, I never had this happen with Master Roshi I always had training except for that milk thing that wasn’t fighting but still…” You mumble under your breath while flying back to your clothes and down to the hallway.
You and Jaune walk down the hallway to the change room in silence. Jaune’s more embarrassed than anything at being defeated so handily.
“So… where did you train?”
“Oh, uh… in a lot of places! All around Remnant,” he quickly answers, somewhat nervous.
“Really?” You look at him in surprise. “You must’ve been pretty bad. I’m surprised you got into Beacon,” you nonchalantly say, looking ahead of you once again.
“Eeeeh… yeah…”
“Well, I’m sure you’ll get better! We all have to train, you know? I still train every day to get stronger!”
“Really? But… you’re so strong.”
You smile as you think on the subject.
“Yeah… I mean, everyone can get stronger. It’s great to go against someone else who’s strong to test your limits, you know? Maybe one day you’ll be stronger than I am.”
“I doubt that,” he chuckles.
“No, think about it seriously!” You adamantly say. “Make it your goal! I’ll even help you if you need it!”
“Well… thanks, but I don’t need any help. I can do it on my own.”
“Cool!” You hop in front of him and hold out your hand. “I look forward to a rematch, then!”
He stares into your hopeful, confident eyes. You either truly believe he’ll get stronger or are putting on an act for him. But considering your demeanor in the past, Jaune leans towards the former. He shakes your hand with a firm grip.
“A-Alright then. Next time.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
The rest of the battles were extremely fun to watch. Everyone seemed to be relatively on par with one another. They were friendly matches, but the intensity was there. Though great to watch, you wish your fight had that intensity too. But the class has to end eventually and you’re all sent out for lunch. Your class leaves the building, you trailing behind team RWBY and JNPR. The one thing that took away from all the fun was the uniform you were forced to wear. Even now you’re pulling and adjusting it in every-which-way.
“Man, this thing sucks. I just wanna get back in my Gi…”
“You’re not fond of regular clothes, are you?” Yang comments, looking over her shoulder at you.
You shake your head.
“No, I usually wore my Gi. Anything else was just… weird.”
“Hm… well, when classes are done we can all change. Blake wants to start researching this project tonight. Are you okay with that?”
“The project? Oh, right. Sure!”
“Perfect. I’ll come by your room later. I know we don’t have any more classes together – thank my little sister for that.”
“He- Yang! Don’t tell him I snooped!” Ruby flails her arms.
“Uh, sure. Bye,” you wave, though your arm is restrained by the suit. “This stupid thing…”
You make your way back to your room, forgetting you can go to the cafeteria for food. With the short break you have, you rush back to your room and immediately change back into your regular clothes. You stretch from side to side, your body free from those horrible restraints.
“Ah, that’s better. I don’t know how anyone can last in those things. I wish I could just stay in my Gi… maybe I should just avoid that one woman… yeah…” You grab your schedule and read it a few times over. “Hm… herbology? I know some of that. History… aw, man… I don’t care.” You flop onto your bed and stare at the ceiling. “I thought this would be more training and less learning… or at least learning about techniques. This is way more school then martial arts and fighting.” Your head shifts to the window where a few birds fly by. “It is just the first day, though. But if nothing changes…” You hop off your bed and walk to the window, leaning on it as you watch some students outside. “Meh, I’ll think about it some other time. Everyone always told me I’m impatient,” you end with a snicker.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
As you predicted, Herbology went extraordinarily well. The teacher, Professor Peach, didn’t even mind that you forgot to change back into your uniform after lunch. In fact, she was impressed by your expertise on the subject. Considering the fact you’ve lived off the land for practically your entire life, it’s natural that you learned what’s edible or not, which plants can mix with others and what they can be used for. You spoke the majority of that class, impressing both the teacher and the students who saw you as… not the smartest one around.
That impression will probably return when you enter History Class. You enter the room, looking around to see if anyone you know is here too. Luckily, JNPR is sitting at various spots around the room. RWBY isn’t here, but having one team works well enough. You take a seat beside Jaune, at the front of the class.
“Hey, Jaune. How’re you doing?”
“Oh, you know… getting through the day. Where were you during lunch?”
Your body perks at the sound of lunch.
“What?”
“Everyone was eating in the cafeteria. I thought you’d be there.”
You slam your head against the desk and let out a large moan that everyone, including the teacher, can hear.
“How could I miss the best part of the day,” you whine.
“Students, so happy you could all attend!” The Professor says with such speed. “Welcome, welcome to Beacon Academy! I am Professor Bartholomew Oobleck and I will be teaching you the important parts of our history!”
The speedy professor speaks much like he looks. Professional yet not, with a white shirt lazily tucked into dark green pants, a collar raised with his yellow tie loosely done around it. His green hair is slicked back, though rather messily. Lastly, he has round glasses that almost completely cover his brown eyes. His movements are extremely quick, bouncing from one end of the class to the other. These movements aren’t exactly surprising to anyone, more just jarring for it seems to be his regular pace.
“Now, I shall hand out a piece of paper for all of you,” Oobleck informs as he almost instantaneously grabs and places papers in front of every student. “I want you to write down every piece of history you can remember. Battles, names, places, anything! This will give me an understanding of you all.”
You look down at the piece of paper and pencil. Everyone, even Jaune, grabs the pencil and starts writing things down. There are obvious ones like the foundations of the Academies, the Great War, Faunus rights, all these things most people know about… unfortunately, you are not most people. You know nothing about the history of this place.
You hesitantly grab your pencil and tap it on the desk.
“Hm… there was… a… battle? I’ve been in battles though and I don’t think those are historic… what about that one against Tien? No, I don’t think the Turtle and Crane schools are considered historic…” You whispers are only heard by you.
“Thirty seconds, students!” Oobleck announces.
With the clock ticking you… still don’t write anything. Thirty seconds go by in a flash and the teacher collects your papers even faster. He returns to the front of the class, quickly reading each paper and checking the names. A third of the way in, he stops and looks to the class. This only lasts a brief moment before he barrels through them like nothing.
“Very well, I think I’ve a grasp on who remembers what,” he says before putting the pages on his desk. “Students, history is very important. The mistakes and successes of those who came before you are lessons you should have lodged in your brain.”
You tap your desk a few times, knowing he likely spotted your absolute failure in this department.
“Now, let's start immediately. We’ll begin with the very beginning of human and Faunus history!”
“Mm…” You rest your head in your hands, ready to hear an entire lecture on something you don’t care about.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
And so the school day is done and you’re relaxing in your room. It’s clear that Beacon Academy is far from what you thought, but the more you thought about that fact the more excited you got. This is something totally new! Even if you hate the classes, you’ll still learn more and become a better fighter from all this.
You place down all your notes on your work desk in a fairly messy state. After glancing over them for a moment you walk away, trailing your hand across the desk.
“I wonder if we can spar after classes? Like studying but… better,” you say to yourself.
Your thoughts are cut off when someone knocks on your door. You jog to the entrance and open it, revealing Yang Xiao Long.
“Heya,” she waves. “Are you ready to get going? Blake couldn’t make it, something about another class. She’ll take care of the write up if we do the research.”
“Oh, sure. Where did we get?”
She lifts the page in front of her for you to see.
“The Emerald Forest, actually. Might be hard but I think we can do it. You look like you know how to be… you know, creative,” she wiggles her hands before resting them at her sides. “So, ready?”
“Yep, let's go. I got something that can get us there quick,” you say as you leave your room, closing the door behind you.
“Are… look, I don’t think I want you carrying me there while you do your flying thing,” she quickly lays out as you walk through the hall.
“What? No, I wasn’t thinking of that. I gotta something that’ll take us there.”
“Why would you have a vehicle if you can fly?”
“Well…” You cross your arms as your eyes drift to the ceiling. “I mean, it’s a cloud so I don’t think you can consider it a vehicle.”
“A… flying cloud?” Yang can barely wrap her head around the concept. “One you can stand on?”
“Or sit. I usually nap on it,” you give her a goofy smile.
“Are you trying to pull my leg?”
“No. My hands are crossed,” you bluntly answer.
“I… oh, I get it,” she wags her finger at you. “You’re trying to use sass against me. I won’t let it fly!”
You blink twice at her.
“If you don’t let it fly then how will we get there?”
“I… that’s…” Yang puffs her cheeks. “I won’t let you win this war! My puns will win!”
“Okay..? I think you’d do better with a punch than a pun.”
“You…” Yang shakes her fist at you while you walk away.
You two make it through the building and to the grounds of Beacon. After a short, quiet walk, you reach the docking area.
“Okay, so where’s this ‘cloud’ you were talking about?”
“Nimbus!” You shout, hands cupping your mouth. “It’ll be here in a second. He’s a really nice yellow… kinda like your hair.”
“My… hair?”
Moments later Nimbus soar in, parking itself right in front of you.
“Hey buddy! Told you I’d need ya,” you say to the cloud before hopping on it. “Well, come on,” you beckon Yang, who’s still befuddled by what she’s seeing.
“A yellow cloud… he’s standing on it… You really are a strange one, aren’t you,” she comments.
You shrug and smile.
“I’ve been told that before. Come on, let's go. I just hope you have a pure heart.”
“What do you mean?” She asks as she walks towards the cloud.
“Well, I was told any people with a pure heart can ride Nimbus,” you say, offering your hand for Yang. “Otherwise you’ll fall right through.”
You pull Yang onto Nimbus, her body staying atop the yellow cloud. Yang squeezes your hand tight out of fear.
“I’m… standing on a cloud? I’m standing on a cloud… nobody’s gonna believe me… heh,” she looks to you with a smile. “You really are something else.” There’s a short pause before she speaks again. “I like it.”
“Hehe, thanks. Let's go, Nimbus! To the Emerald Forest!”
Nimbus speeds along the edge of the docks before turning and flying into the forest. Yang has a mix of fear and excitement as she screams and laughs. You wrap your arm around her shoulder and keep her close.
“What’re you-“
“You seem a little worried! I thought giving you some support would help?”
Yang’s too caught up in the rush to really care. You don’t seem to be trying to cop a feel or take advantage of the situation. You’re having fun, just like her.
“Yeah, why not. This is awesome!” She cheers before laughing once more.
With the wind running through her hair and sheer insanity of the situation, there’s really nothing better for a thrill seeker like Yang. Never before, and maybe never again, will she experience something quite like this. You both wiz across the land and quickly reach the Emerald Forest.
“Alright, you ready?”
“We’re jumping from here?” Yang asks, though not hating the idea.
“Lower?”
“No way!” She shouts before diving off the cloud, screaming as she closes in on the tree line.
You shrug, then jump after her.
“See ya Nimbus!” You shout whilst falling.
You watch as Yang activates her yellow bracelets, transforming them into a gleaming pair of gauntlets. She fires them diagonally, launching her in a different direction and slowing down her momentum. You easily follow her as she slows down a bit until landing on some trees, jumping from one to another until finally getting to the ground. You land beside her with your arms on your hips and a big smile.
Yang rolls her eyes then smiles.
“Show off.”
“What? You looked really cool! Flipping around and everything. Very… fancy.”
“I guess. So, the Emerald Forest,” she looks around to the Fauna surrounding you both. “How can we kill a Grimm without using our weapons or your… kame-whatever,” she waves her hand at you. “Got any ideas?”
“Well,” you cross your arms and start walking deeper into the forest. “I guess the first thing that comes to mind is fire.”
Yang nods, writing that down in her scroll.
“That’s an easy one. So what should we think on? No stabbing or slashing, no blunt force like rocks or dropping them off a cliff…”
“Drowning them is an option, but that might be hard for an average person.”
“Hm… we need to get creative here. There’s not much else-“
“Do we have Dust?”
“Me and Blake don’t really use Dust. That’s more Weiss’ thing… so I guess that would count as something.”
You shake your head before looking at the sky.
“No, that’s not what I meant. If you could generate enough heat, even from a natural fire, you might be able to bring down some lightning.”
You both stop in the middle of a dense section of the forest.
“That’s a stretch.”
“Well, when you got no other options,” you shrug, not really finishing your sentence.
“True enough. So we have lighting and fire… what if we buried them?” Yang brings up, tapping the ground with her shoe.
“Yeah, that sounds awesome!” You nod. “Make a hole then collapse it. Good thinking.”
Just then you both hear a sound. The ground is shaking every second as if something was running.
“(Y/N)…”
“Got it.”
You both move behind one another, covering every angle possible. You can hear trees falling in the distance while the ones around you shake in fear. Inch by inch the creature approaches. Finally, it breaks through the treeline, revealing itself to be a Dinosaur – large, orange, and scared. You and Yang move out of its way just in time for the creature to tumble and fall. It’s large body slides across the ground, tearing up the grass beneath it. You keep in front of Yang, a hand covering your face from the dust.
“What happened?” Yang exclaims.
“It fell… I think it might be hurt,” you hypothesize. “Let me check it out. They may not be Grimm, but Dinos are far from pushovers.”
You jog to the fallen animal, giving it a quick examination. Immediately you spot something lodged in its right leg, causing significant bleeding. The animal is panting heavily from both exhaustion and pain. You hover to its face and begin rubbing its neck.
“Hey… hey… are you okay?” The Dino lets out a small roar in response which you know is hostile. “Don’t worry, I’m not gonna hurt you,” you comfort as you continue to pet it. “Let me help you.”
You glide to its wounded leg, giving it a closer look.
“What’re you doing, (Y/N)?” Yang shouts.
“It’s hurt. I think someone’s after it,” you respond, still checking out the wound. “Keep an eye out, Yang. She wasn’t quiet, so whoever was after her is probably gonna show up.”
“Why does it matter?” Yang asks, placing a hand on her hip.
“Well,” you say as you carefully remove the tracking bullet lodged in the beast’s leg. “We can’t just let her be hunted. It’s not a Grimm, after all. You don’t go around killing regular birds instead of Nevermore, do you?”
“Well... no…”
“Exactly… here we go!” You pull the bullet out, eliciting a response from the creature. “Don’t worry, girl, its okay, its okay,” you say while rubbing her leg. “Okay… there should be some herbs around here I can use. Could you watch over her for me while I make some ointment?”
“You can do that?” She asks with genuine surprise.
“Yeah, of course, I can!” You return to the ground and approach her. “I’ll tell you about it another time. I don’t want her to be in more pain than she needs to be. I’ll be back in a flash!” You say before dashing into the forest faster than Yang can react.
Yang keeps a comfortable distance away from the large beast. It’s not much of a threat to her at the moment, but sitting beside something that could swallow her whole doesn’t sit well with the young woman.
She leans against a tree and crosses her arms, keeping an eye out for the hunters you mentioned. She’s ready to wait for a decent amount of time, but you speed back into the area, stopping right before the Dino. You have a leaf in your hand with mushed up herbs that’s been turned into an ointment. You push into it, mushing the substance around and preparing it for treatment. You approach the wound and gently rub the ointment onto the wound. This instantly elicits a response from the beast but nothing violent.
“It’s okay, don’t worry. It’ll start to feel better soon,” you soothe the beast while scooping more of the ointment.
Yang watches as you handle the creature with care and how the beast doesn’t bother to fight back. Even injured, most animals will have a flight or fight response. With flight not being an option, she’d assume it’d fight back. But no… it lets you treat its wound. This train of thought is soon cut off when she hears rustling coming from the trees. Moments later a group of seven men, all armed with guns, enters your small area.
“Look at that, boys! Someone’s trying to steal our prize!” A burly man shouts to his comrades.
You don’t bother looking at them until you’re done with the treatment. Yang, however, gives them a quick examination. They’re all wearing colours to blend in with the forest, clearly indicating hunters. Most of them have hats or masks to hide their identities, but the main one, the one who spoke, has his face clear as day. A rough looking man with a large, brown beard. This compensates for the shortage of hair on his head. Unlike the others, his coat is sleeveless, showing off a rather impressive arms.
“You should leave,” you say just loud enough for everyone to hear. “You’re not taking this life today.”
“What’re you talking about, kid? You think we’re gonna listen to some Faunus and a bimbo?”
“Hey!” Yang uncrosses her arms and marches towards the man. “I’m not some bimbo!”
“Yang, don’t worry about it,” you calmly say. “I’m done. So,” you turn around to face the group. “You have to leave. I won’t let you hurt this Dinosaur.”
“Boy… you’re instigating violence,” he says with a coy smirk. “If you threaten us we’ll have no choice but to fight back.”
Yang keeps quiet, annoyed at these guys attitude yet surprised at how calm and calculated you’re acting. She wants to see how you handle this, but she’s also hoping she can knock the teeth outta one of them. You raise your hand towards the group and conjure a small ball of yellow energy. You release the blast beside them, blowing up the small section of earth and covering the hunters with dirt and grass. They cough from the smoke, waving it away and brushing themselves off.
“What the hell was that?”
“Is he a Huntsmen? How can he fly and do that?”
“Quiet!” The leader shouts, obviously a little shaken at your sudden attack.
“That was a warning shot. Don’t make me aim,” you say with a cold demeanor that shakes everyone to their core.
“I… we…” The man grinds his teeth out of frustration. “We’re… moving out, men…”
You keep your arm raised towards them until they return to the forested area. You descend to the ground then look at Yang, smiling like you always do.
“We’ll that was something. At least she’s okay,” you say in your usual happy tone.
“You can be pretty scary, you know.”
“Hehe,” you rub the back of your head. “I just don’t like people hurting animals. Especially ones who don’t know how to hunt.”
“Do you?”
“Yeah,” you nod. “I lived out here for years so I kinda learned the ecosystem, I guess. The Grimm have made a bunch of regular animals endangered. Dinosaurs are one of them. I can’t just let them all die out, now can I?” You say with a slight smile.
“I never knew you were such a nature lover,” she remarks, looking to the dinosaur.
“Well… it's kinda like looking after your home, I guess,” you chuckle. “Plus, when we get rid of all the Grimm we’ll want as many animals as we can!” You look around the forest. “So… we can’t really leave her here…”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
A fire burns in the middle of the Emerald Forest. The warmth emanates to you and Yang as you sit on separate logs. There’s a makeshift stand that lets a pot dangle over the fire. It’s a truly cozy place, considering the fact there’s Grimm around.
“You didn’t have to stay, you know. I could have sent you back to Beacon.”
“Well, we are technically partners. Can’t leave you behind,” Yang says in a cheery tone.
“I guess,” you shrug. “You just didn’t seem like the type to spend a day in the woods.”
“Hey, I grew up on Patch! It’s practically all forest,” Yang counters.
“Oh, really? Guess you’re kinda like me, hehe.”
“Exactly. I’m not some prissy girl, you know,” Yang confidently reminds you.
“Oh… okay! That makes sense, actually,” you rest your hand on your chin. “I guess you couldn’t if you were a fighter.”
“Ha, tell that to Weiss,” Yang jokes to herself.
“Weiss… the one with the cape?”
“No, that’s my sister, Ruby. Weiss is the other girl.”
You stare blankly at Yang, the crackling of the fire aiding the atmosphere.
“The one with a bow?”
“No! God, do you not pay attention?” She asks with a layer of annoyance.
“Hehe, not really,” you rub the back of your head. “Unless it’s a fight!”
“Or animals,” she remarks as she glances at the sleeping Dinosaur.
“Yeah, I guess,” you shrug. “I think the fire needs another log. Are you still hungry?” You ask as you place another log on the fire.
“Oh, no. I’m okay. I’m actually surprised you could make food that good.”
You open the pot, releasing steam and scents that take your breath away.
“Well, kinda. It’s just a stew I learned from Lucent.”
“That’s the guy you mentioned before, right? The one who… fed and scared you?” She ends with a slight giggle.
“He’s scary! Seriously!”
Yang tucks her hands under her legs, wedging them between the wood and her legs.
“Strange to think of you being scared of something. You seem so strong and… confident. Maybe that’s because you’re dense, though,” she mumbles the last part.
“I’m not that strong. I just train a lot, you know? Anyone can do what I do.”
Yang’s brow shoots up.
“You mean… that blasty, beamy thing you did.”
“The Kamehameha? Yeah, I learned it from someone else. Anyone can learn it, I think… I actually don’t know,” your gaze trails off as you think on this subject. “Then again, I’m starting to think I’m different from some of you guys.”
“What gave you that idea?” She sarcastically remarks.
You cross your arms and move your lips to the right.
“Hm… I might be wrong. Don’t worry about it,” you smile at her. “Now, I need to get up and work off this food and work up an appetite, hehe,” you childishly grin as you hop to your feet.
Only a second later, the Dinosaur wakes itself up. You and Yang both turn to look at the beast as it pushes itself to its feet and gets a grip on its situation. Its eyes soon land on your little campsite. You stare it directly into its eyes with a warm smile on your face. You can feel it giving you respect for aiding it, even if the beast makes no noise. It turns away and walks off into the forest, soon disappearing from view entirely. You cross your arms and look back at Yang.
“Now,” you wipe your hands together. “I’d say we’re about done here.” You walk back to the pot of soup you made and start drinking it all. Yang watches with slight amazement as you just casually hold the burning pot. Once you finish it all you toss it to the side and let out a relieved sigh. “Now that hits the spot. You’re ready, right?”
“Yeah… I think I have enough…” Yang places her hands on her hips and saunters towards you. “This’ll be quite a story to tell. It’ll blow up like dinomite,” she claps in amusement, laughing at her own joke.
“What was that?” You look over your shoulder as Nimbus soars in.
“Oh, nothing! Darn it, he evaded my pun. Next time, (Y/N)…” She squints at your unsuspecting form.
And that was it! I actually had more fun with this chapter than I thought. Just some build up and character bonding. I don’t think it’ll take as long as Crimson Shadow for the main pairing to come together, but who knows. Plot first, romance second. Anyway, there’ll be another chapter this month to make up for the lack of chapters last month. I was extremely busy with my personal life so I couldn’t get much done. Sorry about that.
So, I’ll see you guys next time, whether it be Crimson Shadow or Limitless!
Want to keep up with me? Know what chapter’s coming out next and the progress of them?
Follow me on Twitter! Twitter . com (slash) Chinsangan
Questions? Comments? Concerns? Advice? Send me a message! See ya!
Chapter 4: Representing Your Race, A Conflict of Ideals!
Chapter Text
Chapter 4: Representing Your Race, A Conflict of Ideals!
Professor Peter Port sits at his desk after a long day of teaching. Though dull, he's used to sitting at his desk and reading over countless reports. This particular assignment is more interesting, however, as it shows off the creativity of his students. Extremely creative and effective ideas are sometimes shared between Headmasters as a way to expand the average Huntsmen's arsenal. He's marked and graded everyone's papers… except one group's. As if fate decreed it, a student rushes through the door as Port finishes his last paper.
"Eyo, Professor Port!" You wave, changing from running to flying. "I got all the papers you asked for," you say, landing in front of his desk.
"Greetings, young one! I expected to see your entire group!"
"Hehe, well, they were kinda mad at me."
"Well, you did submit your assignment late. There had to be some sort of punishment! In the field, a mistake can lead to death! I remember there was on-"
You scratch the back of your head. "Um, professor, I just wanted to drop off the papers. I have training I wanna do!" You finish with more excitement. "I had to write all three of those assign…" You place your hand on your chin. "Actually, I think I wasn't supposed to say that."
Port laughs. "It seems you took the full brunt of the consequences. From what I understand, it was your desire to save the dinosaur that delayed your submission."
"I guess it was worth it. It took me longer to write those papers though."
"They are three days late. One day for each paper is satisfactory. But like me, you are a man of action and not papers!"
"Exactly!" You pull your hands in. "I just wanna get to the fighting already. This history and weapon maintenance and herbolo- actually, I like the herbs but I know that stuff already," you wave it off.
"Still, being a Huntsmen is more than just fighting. You are a symbol to the common folk, the ones you protect. You show that we can fight the terrifying force that's plagued mankind for centuries. What do you show people when you only care about battle?"
You cross your arms and sigh. "I'm not much of a role model like you, Professor. I just wanna fight the strongest people I can!"
Port chuckles. "Whether you think it or not, young man, your strength has placed you in the spotlight. You cannot ignore those around you."
You tilt your head and cross your arms. "Um… I guess. Well, I have four years till I graduate so I'll worry about it then," you end with a wide smile.
"Oh boy," Port shakes his head, slightly laughing. "You're an interesting one. Now, go on, child. I have papers to grade."
"Right. Have fun Professor!" You wave before flying towards the door and exiting.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You land in front of the combat arena just behind a group of girls. They look back at you, almost disgusted.
"What?"
"You couldn't just walk?"
"Why does everyone ask that?" You scratch your chin. "But, uh, I guess. But why not go faster? Anyway, gonna pass you now. Unless you're going in for training!" You say with a smile.
"With a Faunus? No thank you," one says, instigating laughter from the others.
"Hm… I guess you're not that strong if you're scared of a certain race," you casually say. "Well, have a nice day!" You walk past them and into the building.
You quickly learned that the arena is open on Fridays and Sundays for students to practice with one another. Of course, anyone could train on the grounds of Beacon so long as it doesn't endanger anyone, but having a more sanctioned fight is always best.
You enter the room and look around for anyone else that you know… which basically consists of just JNPR, RWBY, and Velvet. Lucky for you, Yang is in the arena already laying a smackdown on some poor soul. You take a seat and happily watch as she disarms her opponents and handily drains his Aura with a flashy and effective combo. The buzzer goes off and Yang is declared the winner by a teacher you have yet to meet.
Yang upon celebrating, spots you in sitting on your own. With the match declared over she runs up the stairs and takes a seat beside you.
"You delivered those papers, right?" She starts.
"Yeah, I did. I don't know why you thought letting me do all three was a good idea but-"
"Because you like talking about fighting and that entire thing was about fighting. That's what Blake said, anyway. Probably had more detail when she said it."
"Meh, less detail is fine. I liked your fight, though. You're really good!"
"I trained a lot," Yang says with pride, puffing her chest.
"I can tell! You would have been awesome to spar with under Master Roshi. Maybe the-"
"Who would like to go next?" The teacher shouts to the stands.
You immediately stand up and raise your hand. "I'll do it!"
"Alright, come on down!"
"I'll talk to you after. I'm really in a fighting mood!"
"You're always in a fighting mood," Yang cheekily responds.
"Yeah, I am," you laugh.
You jump over the other students and land in the arena. The teacher, a short man with tidy hair and equally tidy attire, approaches you with his scroll ready.
"Alright… (Y/N), right? Let me just link you to…" He clicks a few buttons and brings up your profile for all to see. "Wait a moment… there must be a mistake…" He looks up at the larger screen, confirming what his handheld device was telling him. "Your Aura… isn't in the system."
Underneath everyone's picture is a gauge of their Aura. For you, however, it is completely empty with an "N/A" labeled in the middle.
"Oh, that stuff. Yeah, I don't know much about all that Aura stuff," you shrug. "But I'm still able to fight!"
The professor chuckles. "Lucky for you, I happen to be Beacon's expert in Aura. With your permission, allow me to unlock yours."
You shrug. "Sure."
The students watch as their Professor places his hand on your shoulders and recites some words that you don't bother paying attention to. His eyes open, a shocked expression taking place on his face.
"You… you have no Aura. That's not possible… every human, every animal, everything with a soul has-"
"I try not to think about it," you smile at him. "Besides, I don't need your… thing. I'm strong enough on my own. So… can I fight now?"
The teacher shakes his head. "No, I cannot allow you to. I need to confirm with Professor Ozpin… without an Aura, you could be injured. I cannot allow that."
"Oh come on," you hunch over. "I'm more tha-"
"That's final!" He adamantly states.
"Hey, (Y/N)!" Yang shouts from above. "Come with me! We can spar somewhere else and let others have a turn!"
You look back at Yang and smile. "That sounds like fun!" You fly back beside Yang and follow her out the door.
Some of the other students still ponder why Yang Xiao Long even bothers with a helpless, battle addicted Faunus like yourself when there are plenty of level headed humans for her to spend their time with. Of course not all factor your species into the mix, they wonder the same thing. You're not even on her team. Why bother?
You and Yang exit the building, passing the same group of girls who so graciously greeted you.
"So, you seriously don't have an Aura?" Yang asks, stretching her arms above her head.
"Oh, yeah. The, uh… the one with the stick thing and glasses. She already tested me for Aura. I didn't even know it was a thing. Weird, huh? Everyone has Ki and Aura except me."
"Ki? Oh, the thing you used to- wait, everyone has it?" Yang quickly asks.
"Oh, yeah. I can feel it in everyone. Nobody's as strong as me or my training buddies at Roshi's, but it's still there."
"So… I could do that ‘Kamehameha' thing you did?" She asks with slight hope, as she thinks that was awesome.
"And fly. But not everyone is talented with it. I've fought people who couldn't even form this," you open your palm and form a basic ball of energy. You allow it to hover in your palm for Yang to see, then you let it dissipate. "So, you know," you cross your arms and keep your eyes forward as you two follow the stone path. "It's a training thing. Plus I can use it to defend myself so I don't see why I need Aura anyway," you throw your hands in the air.
"Well, Aura protects us. It shields us and fuels our Semblance. How do you plan to fight anyone who used swords and guns?"
"Because I can do that too," you shift your focus to Yang. "Honestly, I thought Ki and Aura were the same thing when I first heard it. I can use my Ki to protect myself. It's offensive and defensive, like yours. Ozpin said I was fine to spar with other students so I guess that guy didn't get the memo."
Yang crosses her arms and chuckles. "Funny, I thought Aura was known all across the world. I didn't even know Ki was a thing. Guess we're both learning, huh?"
"Well, isn't this a school? We should be learning," you innocently point out.
"No! I meant, ugh," Yang shakes her head. "Nevermind. So, wanna get right to fighting?" She says with a cocky smile.
Your eyes drift upwards, taking in the bright blue sky and fluffy white clouds. Just seeing such a beautiful day takes you back to when you were a kid. When…
"Hey," you step in front of Yang. "You what? Let’s train later. I have a better idea."
"Wait, you don't want to fight? Did you hit your head as in the last few minutes," Yang taps your skull.
"No… not that I know of. Other than what you did right now. Anyway, come with me!" You grab Yang's hand and run over to a patch of grass that's slightly shaded by a nearby tree.
"Hey!" Yang protests.
It's unlike anyone to just grab Yang's hand… or for someone to grab anyone's hand. But before she can form words of complaint she's already at the spot. You let her hand go and lie on the grass.
"Huh, the grass is cool," you shift on the ground before looking up at the blonde. "Come on, you'd like it more than me. You show more skin."
"Are you trying to say something," she shifts on her hip.
"I thought I said something… that more of your skin is showing than mine… did I not say that?" You're genuinely confused by Yang's query.
Yang shakes her head. "Never mind."
Yang rests beside you, cupping her hands between her hair and the grass. There's a certain feeling of relaxation that instantly washes over the busty brawler.
"Huh… I haven't done this in a while."
"Me neither. When I was training under Master Roshi, he would make sure we took the time to relax. He'd have these hammocks set up for us to rest on. We'd stare up at the clouds and just talk about silly things. Sometimes he'd talk about his magazine collection but he'd never actually show it to me. Must have been something for old people," you shrug, pushing it to the back of your mind. "But he was a really good teacher. Really strong too. I remember the first time I fought him," you start chuckling as your mind rushes through the various memories of the Turtle School. "He can even-"
"Yang! Yang!" A young voice calls out.
Both you and Yang recognize the voice and sit up to get a better view. Ruby spots the two of you and jogs over.
"Yang!"
"What's up, Rubes?"
"What do you mean, my darling sister? Do you not remember promising me a trip to Vale because I do! Oh, hi (Y/N)," she happily waves.
"Heya."
"Now, are you going to live up to your agreement or are you going to be a terrible role model for your poor sister?"
"Alright, alright, no need to guilt me," Yang moans as she gets to her feet. "You're starting to sound like dad." She turns to face you. "We'll have to train another time, (Y/N). It was fun talking with you."
"You too, Yang! Have fun with… whatever, I don't know. I'll probably take a nap," you say with a yawn. "Or maybe I can find something to do. Oh, I should let Blake know I handed in the papers!"
You flip onto your feet and soar forward, passing the two girls as you go on your adventure. Yang and Ruby watch until you're out of sight.
"See, Ruby. You don't have to worry about your knees. He's got it covered," she ends with a smirk.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Your boots click on the ground as you land in front of the library. Weiss pointed you here when you visited their dorm. You open up the grand doors and enter the building. Being a library, it's fairly quiet. Anyone talking is keeping their voice down in respect for those reading, studying, or working. Since you've met Blake, you know her energy signature. You kick off your back foot and fly to the second floor. People who have yet to meet you are surprised when you fly over the railing and land. You saunter down the path and diverge to the right where Blake sits. She instantly turns to see you.
"I brought the papers to Port," you say before taking a seat across from her. "Should be all fine."
The five other students along the table take a quick peek at you then return to their activities. One is on their scroll listening to whatever they feel like listening to, three are studying, and the other is aimlessly staring forward contemplating their life.
"Good. We almost failed our first assignment because of you," she quietly scolds.
"Hey, I had a good reason! It was that reason that gave us extra time!" You swiftly defend. "So I don't know wh-"
"In other news, members of the White Fang have been spotted in Vale over the past weeks. However, Police Chief Fora Ferns was reportedly kidnapped by a member of the organization last night…"
Your small group of students looks over to the boy looking at his scroll. His friend scooches closer and nudges him. You and Blake turn back to one another and continue your conversation.
"The White Fang… they're Faunus, right?" You innocently ask.
"The White Fang," Oobleck appears behind you. "Formed to spread the word of equality and to be a symbol but has been corrupted by time and violence. You'd know more if you PAID ATTENTION IN CLASS!" He quietly yells in your ear.
"You're a Faunus and you don't know about the White Fang?" Blake asks with surprise.
You shake your head as you slip out of the chair and away from the looming professor. "Nope. I just thought there were Faunus and humans… but the White Fang are bad, right? The ones in Vale?"
"The White Fang aren't… completely evil," Blake swiftly defends only to shrink in on herself. "They're a bad example of Faunus rights."
"Indeed. Ms. Belladonna is well versed in this subject. You could learn a thing or two from her, (Y/N)," Oobleck adds.
"Why are you here, professor?"
"Doctor," he sternly corrects. "And I'm watching over the library. Now, if you'll excuse me." The strange teacher speeds away, leaving your group alone.
You place a hand on your chin and think.
"Hm… so if Huntsmen are supposed to protect both humans and Faunus… why aren't they stopping the White Fang?"
Blake chuckles at the thought. "A bunch of humans attacking the one symbol the Faunus have. It wouldn't end well."
"What if it was another Faunus?"
"What… are you getting at?" Blake questions with various assumptions running through her mind.
"Well, if we're gonna be Huntsmen then why not get started early? If these White Fang are so bad then I'll deal with them. They're in the region, right? I should be able to find them."
"It's not that simple, (Y/N)! There are powerful warriors in…" Upon hearing those two words Blake notices your excitement growing. "Listen, this isn't something you can do. Their new leader, Adam, isn't someone you can just beat!"
"Ooh, that sounds awesome!" You cheer.
Blake sighs, slightly annoyed that her attempted warnings are just motivation for you. She rubs her temples and closes her eyes. "Look, just don't think you can take on the entire White Fang on your own."
Blake looks back up to you… or where you were. Blake quickly looks around the immediate area for you, but you're gone. "Oh no…"
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
"So, the White Fang are the baddies around here. Well, I might as well try to figure that out. If they're all Faunus then maybe I can sneak in. I do have a tail after all," you chuckle, looking down at your tail. "So… they took the police chief… I guess I should check there first."
With a destination in mind, you start running and eventually soar into the air. Blake runs to where you were once standing. She watches you fly off towards Vale without any way to stop you. Her hands tremble as her mind floods with possibilities.
"If he finds Adam… no… I have to stop him!"
You reach the skies of Vale and hover over it.
"Hm… finding the White Fang…" You raise your hand to your chin and cross your legs as if you were sitting. "If they're bad guys they wouldn't sit in the city. Right? That be really weird? Hm…" You spin around and look to the forest. "Sensing around the forest would be boring. Maybe… Hm…" You start spinning around as you think. "How would I find some weirdos..? Maybe I should look for other Faunus. They might lead me to some other White Fang Faunus. Seems fair enough to me. I'm such a smarty pants," you happily laugh as you descend to the city.
You make sure to land in a less than populated area of Vale. Nobody spots you gently connect to the ground and start walking.
"Hm… baddies would be in the worse places in Vale. I should start there first. Man, is this what it's like being a Huntsmen? Like a detective or something. I remember Lucent would always talk about fighting Grimm and defending villages. Heh, I remember the one story where he had to fight another Huntsmen. I wonder if that happens often. It would be way more fun than the Grimm. Then again," you cross your arms as you saunter through town. "I haven't really had much fun fighting since-"
"Hey, monkey! What're you doing here?" A voice shouts from across the street.
"Probably since I fought Tien. That was a lot of fun. I wonder how much stronger he's gotten." You look around and realize you've fallen into the darker parts of Vale. Rundown buildings, dirty streets, shady individuals, all these set a certain tone that keeps the common folk away.
"Monkey!" The voice repeats.
"He can't hear you, mate. Doesn't know how to follow orders," another laughs.
"Or maybe it's ignoring us on purpose!"
"So, I wonder how I'm supposed to find the White Fang here? I really wish they'd just show up, already. I'm tired of the searching game." You stop moving and look around the immediate area.
There's a group of five men standing across the street, pointing and looking at you. Oddly enough, their faces are hidden behind bandanas and glasses, clearly hoping to keep their identities a secret. One is significantly larger and more intimidating than the others.
"Hm, maybe they know something. They obviously noticed me. Heya!" You gleefully wave at the strangers.
"Look at him! He's mocking us!"
"He thinks he can step on our turf, boss!"
"Despicable. Let's teach this Faunus scum a lesson!"
The group approaches you with devious intent. You instantly sense that intent and ready yourself for whatever may happen.
"Hey fellas! I'm looking for-" You dodge the first three punches from different people and immediately hops back. "Well, I guess this is gonna happen. Trust me, guys, you can't beat me. There's no point to this," you honestly speak. "I'm not looking for a fight right now. Well, that's a lie, but definitely not with you."
"Don't get cocky, monkey!"
The five men take out small weapons consisting of knives and pipes. You shake your head and sigh. "That's not even fun."
You pull your hand back and send out four waves of air that knock down the lackeys. The bigger one looks to his allies that are now moaning on the ground.
"How the… you damn Faunus."
"How does my tail have anything to do with you losing?" You shrug then cross your arms. "Maybe you shouldn't have underestimated your opponent."
You flash in front of the large man and deliver a devastating punch that instantly knocks the man out. He falls forward, completing the small collection of downed men. You huff, place your hands on your hips and look around. "Well, now I continue to look around. Huh?" You spot another person approaching you.
This woman has orange hair and sharp eyes, her figure slim and built. By her eyes alone you can tell she's not human.
"I saw how you… dealt with the racists. These filthy humans are why Faunus are superior."
You cross your arms and squint at the woman.
Hm… that's not pleasant thinking. Maybe…
"I suppose. I've just trained a lot," you humbly respond.
"Well, that's clear. You know… I have some people who might appreciate someone like you if you want to fight for Faunus rights."
Haha, look at that! This might be exactly what I'm looking for.
"Of course! Those… dirty humans," you're clearly not used to saying anything like that. "Deserve my wrath."
"Huh… well, as long as you're committed." She walks past you, keeping her eyes locked with yours. "Come with me. We can't just give you a location and have you run off. You'll meet some other recruits and… well, we'll bring you to the meeting place tonight."
"Oh… okay, sure, that's fair. I can meet some others who share my… burning hatred."
"Perfect. Come with me. Don't worry, we'll provide a meal for you."
"Oooh, now you're speaking my language!"
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
It was strange, being brought to an abandoned building with a dozen other young Faunus. You're all shuffled into an apartment with barely any furniture or commendations. They leave you all there, telling you the meeting will be soon.
"Huh, so much for us getting treated better. I had better stuff in the forest," you casually remark.
"Humans put us in this place! It's the only way we can hide," a young boy, probably Ruby's age, answers you.
This small squabble gets the attention of everyone else in the room since it's the only conversation happening. You shrug at his words. "I don't know, I was doing just fine. Maybe it's our fault and not humans."
"How could you think that? So many of us dead or beaten by humans!"
"I don't know," you shrug. "Not much has happened to me. Plus, I'm sure there are Faunus out there that's just as bad as humans."
The rest of the room huff or dismiss your words entirely. This instantly paints a target on your back despite your intentions. You don't understand the animosity between the two races because you never had to experience it. For a long time, you didn't even know there were two different races. But perhaps that's just you. Perhaps you don't see the bigger picture, the important details. That doesn't really matter to you, though. All you care about is stopping the boss of this whole operation, even if that means putting up with their philosophy.
You take your place by a broken window and look out at the gloomy alley below.
I should have thought this through. This is so boring.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Team RWBY, though a little extravagant, spends their time as any team would as the night sky blankets Remnant. Yang is lying on her bed, listening to music, Ruby is looking through a weapons catalog, Weiss is at the desk, and Blake is sitting on her bed. Despite everything, Blake has the most on her mind. You've gone off to find the White Fang, something she knows far too much about, and she can't stop worrying about what could happen. You're strong, no doubt, but there are some powerful people in the White Fang including Adam himself. She's beating herself up over just letting you go off and do whatever you want. She should be there… she should be there…
"I have to go," Blake says aloud.
She immediately bursts off her bed and runs out the door. The three other members of team RWBY all hare a confused look.
"What's with her?" Yang speaks.
"I don't know. Maybe she remembered something?" Ruby responds. "Should we follow her?"
"I'm sure she'll be fine. She'll contact us if she requires assistance," Weiss chimes in.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Though the day has been boring and the food promised wasn't as yummy as you hoped, your time has finally come. You and the other recruits were lead to a large abandoned warehouse. Everyone, including you, was made to wear a mask. The recruits like you are all in normal attire while actual members of the White Fang. There's plenty of them around on the floor and some watching over from the rafters. There's a makeshift stage at the front where most members stand. You're just part of the crowd, only noticeable because of your unique hair.
The warehouse is extremely grey, bland, and with the crowded floor, the whole situation is rather uncomfortable for the average person. You're not one of those people. You patiently wait for a possible appearance of Adam or even the captive police chief.
"Hey," a whisper reaches your ear as a hand rests on your shoulder.
You turn around and face a friendly lower face. Blake, dressed in her regular attire with a few differences. First, she has a similar mask to yours. Second, her bow is gone and instead, there's a pair of cat ears.
"Wait, Blake? You're a Faunus?"
"Shh, quiet. Listen, we can't be here."
"What're you talking about? My plan's going exactly how it should. It'll be fine."
"That's not what I-"
"Brothers! Sisters!" A large, tanned man gathers the intention. "You have chosen to fight for your people's rights, their freedoms! We have been subjugated for too long by the humans! We will show that these cities, these people who believe the crimes against our race are justified! We will show them that we won't be put down, that we won't take this discrimination! Tonight… we will show this city the power of the Faunus!" The large Faunus walks back and forth as he addresses the hopeful and manipulated Faunus in the crowd. "Our powerful leader is bringing with him a bomb, one that will truly ignite the fire for Faunus around the world."
"A bomb? Are they crazy?" Blake whispers.
"Sounds like I was right to stay."
"We will bring this pathetic, human peacekeeper," the large man signals for some grunts to pull out the beaten and bruised policewoman. Her hair has been shaved, her eyes are swollen, she's clearly a shell of her former self – a punching bag for frustrated Faunus. "As the sacrificial lamb to this revolution. Tonight, my brothers and sisters is when we truly take charge of our destiny!" He ends his speech with a boom, inciting roars and cheers from the crowd. "Now, if you're with us, then follow our men to the right. They'll get you suited up and ready to fight."
The Faunus are funneled towards the right exit, which means you and Blake are inevitably washed away in bodies.
"We can't just let them explode some part of Vale. Let's play along, stop the bomb, save the woman!" You cheerfully explain.
Blake nervously shuffles in place. "I… (Y/N), this isn't a simple mission. I'm not kidding when I say Adam is dangerous and stop smiling!" She sharply whispers.
"I'm sorry! But stop worrying, Blake. I'm sure I can handle anything that comes our way. Now let's go. We're gonna look weird standing around."
You and Blake follow the flow of the crowd as they're lead to a separate section of the building. Everyone is handed a uniform of varying sizes and tasked with suiting up. You grab your outfit without any hesitation. Sure, it's not really you're style but you'll deal with it for now. Blake, on the other hand, hesitates when handed her uniform.
"It's your size, kid. I've seen enough of your type," the Faunus says, pushing the outfit against Blake's chest.
She grabs hold of the outfit and follows you closely, staring at the uniform. There are small storage room that recruits start using to change. You and Blake secure your own closet, locking it before anyone else can enter as well.
"What's wrong with you? You look… really shaken or something," you point out.
Blake throws the outfit on the ground, her eyes still glued to it. "I… (Y/N), I'm going to tell you something you can't tell anyone else, alright?" She turns her gaze to you, sharp and serious. "I was part of the White Fang before I came to Beacon… I worked with Adam to help Faunus… I thought we were really helping, but…" Blake's arms tighten around herself. "He killed Sienna – our leader. I was scared, I ran. You don't know how this feels, (Y/N), to be right back into this after leaving!"
You scratch the back of your head as you watch Blake talk. "I… don't. But… why are you here if you're scared. I'm not, so let me handle it."
"I can't," she adamantly shakes her head. "I can't send you off to do this alone. This is my fight!"
"One you don't want to fight," you quickly correct.
"I…"
"Listen, Blake, if you came here despite all your fear that means you really want to do this. Either way, we're roped into this now. We can't let them detonate a bomb in the city. Best case scenario, I get to fight everyone and we stop this little scheme," you remove all your clothes, leaving only your boxers left. "So, let's go be heroes or something. I don't know. I just wanna see what these guys can do!"
You put on the black hooded long sleeve, pants, and boots, then finish it off with a white, light overcoat that trails down to your calve. With a pair of black gloves and a new mask, you're set to go.
"Alright, your turn."
"Eh, well…" Blake squeezes her fists. "Turn around, then."
"Sure, I guess," you shrug and turn away from Blake.
You hear the shuffling of clothes, first taking them off and then slipping into them.
"Alright…" Blake mumbles. "I… don't like wearing this."
You turn around and witness Blake in the feminine version of your own outfit. Unlike you, she pulls her hood over her hair before putting the mask on.
"Alright, let's get out there, then," you raise your fist before you. "We'll show 'em what Beacon's got!"
"Heh… yeah," your confidence, your smile is contagious. Blake smiles back. "We can do this."
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You're still unsure of what they're trying to accomplish. Bringing the police chief with them to a place they're going to bomb? Sure, she'll die, but what about all the recruits and soldiers of the White Fang? How will they escape? What exactly is Adam, or whoever came up with this operation, thinking? You don't want anyone to die, not even these Faunus. You just hope the superiors feel the same.
You were split into small teams, all assigned to regroup at the other end of the city where all the higher class citizens live. Small teams mean less suspicion. Honestly, you could have just flown there but that doesn't really fit with the whole incognito thing you're going for. Besides, Blake was put on a different team and you intend to regroup with her. You're placed with Faunus you don't know and don't care to know. Luckily, they're all extremely agile so your little cell is taking the rooftops to reach your goal. You can easily jump the gap while some other Faunus use means such as webbing, flight, or parkour. Either way, your group makes their way through Vale with ease.
Not a sound is made as you dance along the rooftops, becoming part of the night sky for those walking along the streets. You're stopped on a rooftop on the same street as your rendezvous coordinates.
"We lay low until the rest show up," the leader of your squad commands. "Once the Bullhead carrying the bomb and Adam descend, we kill any humans in our way, plant the bomb, and extract. Clear?"
"Clear," everyone but you responds.
Your group keeps low, patiently waiting for the Bullhead and for all other squads to get into place. Time ticks on ever so slowly, making the hour wait feel like an eternity. Civilians come and go, all talking, laughing, and enjoying their lives. Meanwhile, you're stuck hiding from them. Not really a fun time or an eventful mission as of yet. Thankfully your ears pick up the sound of a Bullhead. You get off the floor and look towards the direction of the sound.
"Finally," you whisper.
The others join you in standing as they watch the aircraft descend upon your rooftop. It remains there for only a quick moment. The door opens, revealing three men and a large object, about the size of a trash can. Two men dressed like you carefully bring it down while the third simple hops off the door and onto the ground.
He's a very tall man with red and brown hair that spikes backward. He bears a similar mask to yours, but it's more customized for his own uses. He wears a long-sleeved black coat that ends around his thighs. There's a red and white design on the upper right of his chest, but bland otherwise. Underneath is a red shirt that's barely visible. He compliments his upper body with long black pants and black shoes, along with black gloves that reveal no skin. Finally, he holds his weapon, a sheathed blade, in his left hand.
He seems unique. He must be Adam.
"Everything is going according to plan, Adam," he says as he bows.
"Perfect. Everything is in place. We'll set the bomb down on the street and start."
The street? So is he planning on getting attention? Hm…
"We also have a special guest, Adam. An unintended one," the Faunus smiles.
"But dealt with?"
"Of course."
"Then fine. I'll deal with them after we set up. You have the human with us?"
"Another squad, yes."
"Bring her out, tie her to the bomb. You two, get it down the ladder!" He commands.
"Of course, sir!"
The White Fang members start to reveal themselves on the streets, scaring away any random citizen. Clearly subtly is not in their agenda. You and the rest of the Faunus descend down the ladder and join up with the small army of White Fang who now occupy this street of Vale. As you group up, you spot the two guests they referred to. One is the police chief, and the other is Blake, her mask and hood no longer protecting her. She struggling against the two, larger men holding her down on her knees, but she can't do anything in her situation.
"Blake," you whisper. "Damn…"
Blake spots you thanks to your unique hair. You share a brief look, acknowledging you'll be there to help her. Adam and the bomb carriers approach the two women, but Adam is clearly interested in one more than the other.
"Well, isn't this a pleasant surprise. Hello, my darling," he says with a cocky smile as he approaches Blake. "You've returned… I hope it's with good intentions."
"Good intentions? You're trying to blow up Vale! How could I come back for something like that?" She shouts back.
Adam kneels down in front of her, his blade still at his side. "Blake, please, you should know how despicable these humans are. Their lives mean nothing in comparison to the cause we work for!"
Adam's words incite some cheers from the crowd around them. You can sense some of the humans around shuffling, running, or hiding. There's no way the police aren't on their way at this point.
"You hurt me, Blake. You knew the sacrifices we had to make for our people… and now… now we have a way for them to suffer. Our voice will be heard, Blake. Please, let your voice be one of them," he says with genuine hope.
You can tell he really wants Blake to come back with him, but Blake's face clearly isn't having it.
"With someone like you? No. Never. Not for this! You're despicable!" Blake leans back and headbutt's Adam.
It barely fazes him. The most it hurts is his pride. "Blake… your attacks are light. You're scared… I gave you a second chance," he grabs the hilt of his blade and readies himself. "You… hurt me, Blake. I wish this could have been different."
He tightens his grip on his hilt and prepares for an attack. Before he can react, he feels a devastating blow connect with his neck, sending him flying into a nearby shop. The other Faunus around you draws their guns and blades as you stand in between them and Blake, Fora, and the bomb. You take off your mask and look to your fellow Faunus brethren.
"Thought this was the best time to come in. You alright, Blake?" You look behind you.
"I'm fine. I just-"
"Don't worry about It," you step back, giving you a view of her tied hands. You release a thin beam of energy from your hands to break the ties apart.
Blake gets on her feet as she rolls her wrists. "Thanks, but I don't have my weapons."
"Don't worry, I'll handle it. So, you turn your attention to the Faunus around you. "Look, guys, girls, this isn't going to end how you want it. I'd love to fight you all, really, but I can't really do that knowing you'll blow up the people around here. So if you could all-"
"A cheap shot," Adam's voice echoes as he steps out of the broken store, brushing off pieces of glass and dust. "It seems she didn't come alone." Adam walks through the crowd of Faunus and stops ahead of you. "That was a very strong hit… and a very big mistake," he threatens.
You smile back at him. "Blake told me you were really strong. So, how about this. If I beat you, all of you gotta turn yourselves in?" You place your hands on your hips. "Cause, you know, if you don't I'll just have to beat you all to a pulp and fly you there myself."
"You're quite confident. It makes up for Blake's fear," he backhandedly compliments. "Very well," Adam slides his right leg back and hovers his hand over the hilt. "I'll kill anyone who gets in the way of our revolution."
"Blake, stay back. I'll handle this."
You burst off your foot and glide along the ground, leaving a trail of gravel and dust in your wake. The rest of the White Fang back up to give their leader more space, but one close to the bomb gets an idea in their head.
You throw the first punch which Adam blocks with his blade. It fails to cut you, but upon connecting the red bits of his clothes and hair, along with his sword, glow momentarily. You flip over him and immediately duck to dodge a swift swing of his blade. You spin around and attack with a roundhouse which, again, he blocks with his blade. You push yourself back, landing a few feet away from him, and rush at one another. You slide under his blade and get back on your feet beside him, then turn around and elbow his temple. He stabs his blade into the ground to slow himself down. Even that small attack was damaging to his aura. You raise your hand and fire two, small, yellow ki blasts at the Faunus. He raises his blade to counter each blast, glowing red each time.
He's glowing again. Every time I connect with the blade he glows. So…
The same could be said for Adam. Your hits are heavy, as he's already felt. However, you're fueling his Semblance immensely, to the point no other person has before. That being said, if you hit him directly with those attacks, you'll drain his Aura in no time.
"(Y/N)! Don't let hi-"
"I know," you casually respond, lowering your leg and facing Adam. "I'm excited to see what you have in store."
"Hm, you're a strange one. But nobody can defeat our species! We're better than humans, we should be the ones ruling over them as they did so long ago. Can you not see that?"
You shrug and cross your arms. "That doesn't really bother me. I mean, nobody's done anything to me, and I doubt you were alive during that time. Maybe you should just relax, buddy. Stop taking things so personally?"
"I carry the weight of the Faunus on my shoulders. All of us do," he gestures to the White Fang around you.
"Hm, you know you'll crack eventually if you're not strong enough. I can definitely say you're not strong enough," she ends with a coy smirk.
"How cocky of you," he twirls his sheath in his hand, transforming it into a gun. He fires multiple rounds at you, which you casually catch.
"That's not good enough, you know? You can't beat me like that," you bluntly say. "That goes for all you guys, too," you look around to the Faunus aiming their guns at you.
They all shimmy in place. The combination of your brief showing against Adam and confidence relay the fact that you aren't lying.
"So, Adam, shall we continue? You're definitely a lot of fun!"
"Don't look down on me," he growls, sheathing his blade and dashing forward.
You duck under his horizontal slash, then push off to the right to dodge another attack. Adam's attacks are fast and precise, virtually invisible to the average person. Unfortunately for him, you're far from average. Though fast, you can predict and dodge his motions with no difficulty, even as his blade chases you down the street. Left, right, ducking, jumping, you flow each of your movements together so expertly that it puts Adam to shame. His frustration grows more and more as he tries to keep up with you, cutting cars and lamp posts in half as if they were butter.
Finally, you stop, blocking his blade with your forearm.
"What?"
"Hehe, I guess you weren't as impressive as I thought," your eyes are closed, your smile wide. "So I'll finish this now."
You move his blade to the side and thrust your foot into his gut. Adam slides across the gravel, unable to truly recover and thus falling like a tumbleweed. He stops before his fellow White Fang members, all in shock at how their leader can be so utterly defeated. Blake, too, is surprised. You barely show any of your power during training sessions, and you definitely let out more during the entrance exams. Just how much are you holding back?
You slide your right leg back and connect your wrists together. "Ka… Me…" You bring your hands to your right hip, eyes locked on the helpless Adam. "Ha… Me…"
"(Y/N), you're gonna fire that at us! What're you doing?" Blake screams.
"What's that glow?"
"Why's she scared? Adam, what do we do?"
Adam's teeth are clenched as tightly as his grip on his sword… but then a smile creeps onto his face. "Do it…"
"HA!" You throw your hands forward, releasing a car-sized, blue beam right at Adam, Blake, the White Fang, and the bomb. Your beam tears the street below it apart, shaking the glass to its breaking point, scaring anyone who's still watching as they desperately wait for the police to arrive.
Adam holds his blade in front of him as the beam connects with it. He's slowly pushed back, but he's glowing more than he ever has before. You can see it from your position. The lava coloured glow emanates past the one given off by your Kamehameha. You stop the technique, leaving your hands in the same position. You watch a glowing Adam stand triumphantly.
"Now… have it back!" He sheathes his blade then slashes with all his might, activating his Semblance at the same time.
A large sonic wave blasts from the sword, cutting everything in front of him in a large, streetwide arc. Cars, stores, and even civilians who dared stay on the first floor of the building are all caught by this attack. You take it head on too, feeling the enhanced blade tear at your chest as the outfit is virtually disintegrated where you were hit. In fact, an entire shockwave makes its way down the street, progressively getting weaker as it goes.
Everyone can see that affected you. There's no way it couldn't. Adam took all your attacks and released it all in one go. He watches triumphantly as you stand as still as a statue, ready to see your body tumble, to see you lay on the ground lifeless.
"Wow, that was awesome," you shout, looking up with a smile. "But that wasn't your power. I guess I got my hopes too high," you admit as you rip off your destroyed shirt. "That was your trump card, right? I don't think you got much more than that."
Adam's cocky smile is replaced with sneering rage. "How… that could have-"
"Well clearly that's not enough, is it?" You cross your arms and listen beyond your current area. "And the police are coming. You're done."
"No, we're not!" A voice from the crowd shouts.
You, Adam, and the other White Fang look to the voice. A random Faunus stands beside the bomb, Blake forced to the ground by his blade. "The counter has started! We won't be put down!"
"What? This wasn't the time!" Adam shouts. "We're revolutionaries, not martyrs!"
"What the hell, Richard?" Another shouts.
Blake slides out from under the blade using her Semblance, then quickly knocks the Faunus down. The others raise their weapons to her but she doesn't bother defending herself.
"Do you want to die?" She shouts to her fellow Faunus. "Then shut up and let me stop this!"
Adam's gaze switches between you, Blake, and his subordinates. The bomb can't be disarmed, but if it's left to go then they'll all die. It's only set for thirty seconds, and the clock is ticking.
"No… no! Damn it!" Adam screams.
"What? How long do we have until the bomb goes off?" You exclaim to Blake, dashing past Adam.
"Twenty seconds… I don't know how to disarm it!" Blake frantically responds as her eyes quickly dart from one section of the bomb to another.
"Run for your lives!" The White Fang start shouting as they all bolt from your location.
Of course, they don't get far. As you heard, the police roll up, fully armed and densely manned for this situation. They block both sides of the street, Bullheads flying overhead to keep an eye on any trying to escape through the alleys. But none of them know the severity of the situation or the risk they've just put themselves in. The police chief is down the bomb's timer ticks, the White Fang panic. Adam's resolve slowly crumbles into rage as his entire plan falls apart in no time. But none of that will matter if you're all dead.
"Blake, move out of the way!" Adam commands as he runs to the bomb.
"Wha-"
"We're not martyrs," he bluntly repeats.
Adam opens up a hatch revealing wires, switches, buttons – a confusing assortment that would throw anyone for a loop.
"Damnit! He sabotaged it!" Adam looks down at the unconscious Faunus. His fist tightens as realization comes over he and Blake. "There's… nothing I can do."
Blake's eyes shake as she looks at her former friend. You, on the other hand, watch the timer reach its final ten seconds. You look around to the buildings around you, filled with scared people trying to live their lives. To the Faunus who just want their rights, to the police who're just doing their job… even to Adam, who just thinks he's doing what's right.
Without a second thought, you grab the bomb with both hands and burst into the sky.
"(Y/N)! What're you doing?" She screams at you.
A white trail shows where you've been and where you are. It leads out to sea, as far away from the city of Vale as you can get in these few seconds. Eventually, you leave Blake's view, leaving her imagination to run wild. She merely stands in fear as police round up the Faunus in the area, which, because of her outfit, includes her. She's forced to the ground with her hands being swiftly cuffed. Adam doesn't fight back either. He lost to you, he knows it… and now you're sacrificing yourself so both humans and Faunus can live. Out of respect, he's given up this day.
And then all of Vale hears a sound. A large, thundering boom that shakes everyone to their core. Far out to sea, over the water, the bomb explodes. Its shockwave is weaker than Blake thought it would be, which means you got farther than she thought you could. Before she can even begin to fear what happened to you, a figure lands on the street. Now your clothes are in complete tatters, barely keeping your privates protected. You're laughing, though, despite everything.
"That… packed a punch, I won't lie," you pant and chuckle. "Hey, Blake, whoa, she's not one of them!" You jog up to the police holding Blake.
"Be quiet, Faunus! You're not fooling anyone!" The police shout back, cuffs at the ready.
"Oh, come on. I just, ah…" You roll your eyes as they place handcuffs on you as well.
You have no reason to fight police officers, even if they're mistaken. So, you follow along as they drag you and Blake to one of the vans housing a dozen captured White Fang members. They force you both in and close the door, stealing the light from you.
This took me longer than I'd have liked. But… well, it happened and I won't complain. I'm glad to get it out, though. I'm actually really happy with this chapter. It was just fun to make. Plus, this should show the RWBY fans that I'm not following the story of RWBY itself. It also shows that I kinda did Blake's arc in about two chapters, if you're counting the next one. But, whatever, better or worse it had to be done. I had no use for the White Fang in the story I want to write so I thought this chapter would clear all that up. I hope you all enjoyed! I'm sorry for the lack of updates for this story. I was a little more focused on Crimson Shadow, but I won't anymore. They're even now. You'll be getting one or two chapters of this a month, depending on scheduling and efficiency.
Anyway, I actually have a quick question for the audience! Are any of you only Dragon Ball fans? I know a lot of you readers are RWBY fans and probably read Crimson Shadow as well, but I wanna know if there are any Dragon Ball nerds like myself out there too.
But that's it for me. I'll see you all next time!
Want to keep up with me? Know what chapter's coming out next and the progress of them? Follow me on Twitter! Twitter . com (slash) Chinsangan
Questions? Comments? Concerns? Advice? Send me a message! See ya!
Chapter 5: A Weekend Adventure? Another School Awaits!
Chapter Text
Chapter 5: A Weekend Adventure? Another School Awaits!
You’re confined, but not in the way everyone else is. It’s more of a mental cage for you. The bars surrounding you mean nothing. You could break it like bamboo and walk through the guards with no problems. But there’s no point. You and Blake have pleaded that you’re students of Beacon, and, to your surprise, even Adam said you weren’t part of his organization. Of course, they would never believe you despite the fact you saved Vale from exploding. That little point is being looked into, however, since there were witnesses who saw the entire fight.
Either way, you’re patiently waiting in a cell with other White Fang. They would try to attack you for jailing them, but after your display with their leader, it’s clear you’d demolish all of them. Blake, unfortunately, is in another cell so you can’t even check on her. It’s not like they’re giving you any special treatment, either. The cell is cold and damp, tight and cramped. It’s not the way you planned to spend your night.
“Save the town and get jailed. Is this what it’s like to be a-“ A sharp feeling spears through your mind. For a moment, you sensed something unimaginable but not foreign. It reminds you of the presence you felt some time ago on the beach. “What is that feeling? It’s a person, but…” You look around the area, at least where you can see.
Your hands start shaking under the pressure of this new presence… and then it’s gone. Your body relaxes but your mind is still on fire.
“What was that?” You look to your still hand. “That power… that intensity…” You look to the others in your cell, oblivious to what just happened. “Am I the only one that felt it? It’s definitely someone’s Ki, then. Heh, what else could it be,” you cross your arms. “I can’t sense Aura. I wonder if you could use Aura like Ki? Nah, I doubt it.”
Your small rambling distracts your mind long enough for a policeman to approach the cell.
“(Y/N)? Yeah, definitely you,” he looks at you. “You have that… hair,” he meekly expresses. “Come on,” he walks over to the door and unlocks it. “You’re coming with me.”
You walk past some of the White Fang and leave the confinement area. The officer puts you in cuffs immediately before escorting you out of the stone room. Once out the door, you’re greeted with what you’d imagine a police station would be. The walls, at least these ones, are a cream colour with heaters fitted along the bottom of the walls. There are other rooms, likely holding other captives, but you’re unsure thanks to the sturdy doors with no windows.
What does catch your attention is Professor Ozpin and Blake standing at the end of the hallway, just before a set of double doors. The officer stops you before undoing your cuffs.
“Sorry, kid, it was just for show,” he says as they unlock. “You’re free to go… thank you for saving our chief and our city.”
“Oh… hehe, well thanks! Keep doing your thing, officer!” You happily respond.
You quickly jog down the hall to reconvene with your Headmaster and fellow student.
“Ah, Mr. (Y/N). It seems trouble is attracted to you. Or perhaps you simply take the initiative to find it?” Ozpin greets.
“Ah, yeah. I guess so,” you cross your arms and smile. “But better me than someone else.
Ozpin’s smile becomes more prominent as he bows his head. “You did this city a great service. Not only have you stopped the White Fang but you saved a captured figure. The Vale police department apologizes for your incarceration and thanks you for what you’ve done for the city. Both of you,” he looks to Blake. “I realize you had to confront your past, Ms. Belladonna, but I believe you will grow stronger from this event.”
“I’d… rather not talk about it,” she fidgets in place.
“I understand. Well, I’d say you both deserve some sort of reward for your actions… and a little extra for being incarcerated. How does a late night dinner sound? My treat, of course.”
Your eyes turn to stars at the prospect of food. “Yes!” You drool.
Blake snickers. “I can get behind that.”
“Perfect,” Ozpin smiles. “Come, then. I’m sure you’d like to leave this building as quickly as possible.”
Your trio all walks out of the building in various ways. Ozpin, calm and regal as always, Blake, an introverted walk, and you, happily swaying as you think on the food you’ve been promised. Any policemen or women you pass bow their head in appreciation for what you’ve done for Vale. You’re apathetic to the attention while Blake would rather avoid it all together. You follow Ozpin for a few blocks until you stop at a small, wooden shack with a single old man inside. A small banner flows in front of it, reading “A Simple Wok Noodle House.” Blake’s eyes dash between you and Ozpin, nervous about this choice of dining. She’s… been here before, to say the least.
You all take a seat on the stools, leaving only one left for anyone else.
“Greets,” Ozpin starts. “I’d just like the original. These two can get whatever they want. It’s on me today.”
“Mm,” the man responds, quickly zooming to the back and bringing out a bowl for Ozpin and Blake.
You and Ozpin look over at her and the large bowl of fish placed before her. She nervously smiles at you both, causing everyone to laugh.
“It appears I’m not the only one who fancies this place. (Y/N), it’s just you now.”
“And I can get anything I like?” You ask, looking over the menu.
“Anything with no limit to how many bowls. You both deserve it.”
“Hm… okay… can I get four servings of these?” You point out five different bowls.
“Mm…” In no time at all he brings a large assortment of noodles, meat, vegetables, fish, and a large drink to wash it all down.
“There we go!” You clap your hands together and bow. “Thank you for the meal!”
You grab the stick and start chowing down, devouring an entire bowl in seconds. You put it to the side and grab another bowl, scarfing it down instantly. Blake, though not the same extent, begins eating her food as well. Ozpin chuckles at you both. “How quaint. Seems you’re both hungry.”
“M mm mhm mm,” you mumble, not taking a break from eating.
“I’ll take that as a yes.”
“Mm,” you put on a happy smile.
The bowls stack and stack as the minutes tick by. The old man actually smiles at the sight of you chowing down all his food with such eagerness. Finally, you slurp up the last bowl and exhale with relief. “Ah… can I get another round?” You end with your eyes closed and smile wide.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
A Bullhead lands on Beacon’s docks, making sure to be as silent as possible to not wake sleeping students. You, Blake, and Ozpin exit the vehicle and make your way down the platform.
“Ah, that was delish. Thanks for the meal.”
“We had our meal an hour ago. You just finished on the Bullhead,” Blake remarks.
“What can I say? It was really good!” You chuckle.
“I’m glad you both enjoyed it. However, don’t take this as an excuse to gallivant around Remnant,” he stops you both at the end of the docks. “You’re still just students. Live the part, enjoy it. Don’t bear the world’s problems on your shoulders.”
“I don’t know what you’re talking about,” you blatantly reply. “I just wanted to try fighting this guy. If there are others strong guys around the world then I wanna take them on too!” You clench your fist before you. “But, he wasn’t that good. I’ve fought better when I was younger.”
“Mm… you seem to put fighting before anything else… how very…” Ozpin stops and smiles. “Well, it makes sense for you.”
“As great as this all is, it won’t matter. With Adam gone there’s a power vacuum in the White Fang. Someone else will take his place,” Blake downplays.
“Ah, don’t worry. I’ll just beat them too if they’re bad!” You cheer.
“Huntsmen will deal with that,” Ozpin interjects. “Now, please, return to your dorms and rest.”
“Very well. I’ll… speak to you later, (Y/N). Thank you, Professor,” Blake takes her leave.
“Oh, Ozpin, can I ask you something?”
“Of course.”
You cross your arms and lean on your hip. “At the police station… was there anyone... hm… strange looking?”
Ozpin’s brow raises, signaling he’s unsure.
“Like, uh, I felt this strange presence at the station… I guess it was just my imagination. I was probably hungry,” you play it off with a laugh. “Well, I’m gonna work off everything I just ate. See ya, Ozpin!” You salute before flying off towards the inner grounds of Beacon.
Ozpin chuckles at your question as he starts walking away.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“You got arrested?” Yang laughs, smacking the table a few times to cope.
Blake cowers in on herself, moaning in annoyance as her team and JNPR as about what happened yesterday. Of course, anyone who watched the news would know what happened. Spectators took recordings of the events that happened, including you fighting Adam and flying away with the bomb.
“It seems to have paid off in the end. Criminals were put behind bars,” Weiss adds before taking a sip of her drink.
“I can’t believe you left us out!” Nora whines. “We could’ve kicked butt together!”
“Guys, really, I’d rather not talk about it,” she pleads.
“We’re just worried, Blake. It’s a good thing (Y/N) was there.”
Everyone looks at you for a response, but you’re just eating a plate of food. “Oh… uh, yeah! I mean, she came afterward, but, you know, whatever.”
“I’m curious about something… how was Blake able to blend with you?” Ren poses. “You clearly have your tail, but Blake…”
Blake lets her head fall to the table, moaning once more over all this commotion. You remember what she told you last night about being a White Fang and a Faunus. She didn’t want anyone to know and clearly, she has yet to tell her other friends. She wouldn’t have told you had you not rushed into their operation.
“We said she was my sister,” you answer. “And that humans cut off her tail. They just agreed.”
Blake turns her head so one eye can see you. With a smile on your face, you nod at her. She sighs before burying her head once more.
“Hiding any questions by using a lie that harbors more hate towards humans. I didn’t think you could come up with that,” Weiss replies.
“Oh, thanks!” You say with innocence, causing Weiss to roll her eyes.
“So, what does everyone have planned this weekend?” Ruby asks, bubbling in her seat while hoping to shift the conversation.
“Jaune and I have some class work to do,” Pyrrha answers. “Speaking of which, we should start after you’re done eating.”
“Oh… yeah,” he sighs, arms aching from all the training.
“I was thinking of taking a short trip,” you respond.
“A trip? Where?” Yang inquires.
“To my old master. I have a question or two, plus I haven’t been there in a while.”
“Is he at one of the schools?” Ruby chips in.
“No,” you shake your head. “He’s on an island! You can come if you want! He’s really friendly, especially to girls.”
“You don’t say…” Yang says with doubt in her voice.
“Actually, you should come! It’d be awesome!” You get out of your seat with excitement. “Maybe he can give you a lesson or two! He’s a really strong fighter!”
The table looks at each other, gauging everyone else’s reaction.
“I think I’m going to read this weekend,” Blake mumbles from her hole.
“I think-“
“I’ll go!” Ruby cuts in.
“Hey! I was answering!” Weiss complains.
“You were just gonna say no anyway.”
“You can’t prove that.”
You hop over the seat and start stretching your arms. “Come on, it’ll be great! I’ll even fly you there,” you say with a coy smile.
“Well… if you want to go, Ruby, then I’ll go,” Yang shrugs. “Could be fun. Plus flying with him is actually awesome!”
“Yeah!” Ruby cheers. “Let's go!”
You and the sisters wave to your friends and head towards the door. Weiss fidgets in her seat as she states. “H-Hey! Wait for me!” She wails.
The Heiress scurries to catch up with you as your group opens the main door of the cafeteria. You walk just a few seconds out in the open so you can call your trusted companion.
“Nimbus!” You shout to the skies, resulting in a yellow cloud zooming to your side.
“What the… is that made of Dust?” Weiss asks as she examines it.
“Um… it’s made of cloud?” You shrug. “Anyway, Yang you can get on the Nimbus. Ruby, you should try it too.”
Yang hops on, finding stable ground to sit on. Ruby does the same and doesn’t fall through.
“Oh, perfect. I was kinda worried,” you scratch the back of your head.
“Why?”
“Only people with a pure heart can ride Nimbus. Don’t ask how it decides. Anyway, come on, Weiss.”
“You expect to carry me like a damsel in distress?” She huffs.
“Um… I mean, I was gonna sit you on my back… but if you want me to carry you like that I-“
“No, the latter will do.”
You hover over the air and straighten out like a plank. “Okay, Weiss, hop on!” You smile.
Weiss hesitantly mounts you like a horse while Ruby pokes at the yellow cloud carrying her. Some students walking around note the commotion going on, but before they can think you and the cloud zoom into the sky.
One of those students just happens to have black hair that’s colour mimics yours. Though hers is far more luscious in its design, dancing down her shoulder and hanging over the left side. She wears a more casual outfit consisting of grey pants and boots, a beige, leather, sleeveless jacket that barely covers her entire torso. However, she has bandages wrapped around her chest underneath the jacket, assuring her breasts are properly covered. The same is done just above her pants. Some of it is blocked by a brown, round belt that various pouches are attached to. She drags her gloves hand along her chin as her mind wanders.
“What’s wrong, Cinder?” An emerald haired, dark-skinned girl asks.
“Oh, nothing. I do believe I’ll have some very interesting news for our… out of town friend,” she ends with a devious smirk.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
To nobody’s surprise, Weiss and Ruby are freaking out over their first flight. A mix of adrenaline, fun, and fear washes over them as they look down at the passing rocks, grassland, towns, anything and everything Remnant holds.
“THIS IS AWESOME!” Ruby cheers, though holding onto her sister for dear life. “I’ve can’t believe this! I feel like I’m gonna be sick but it’s so cool!”
“How are we not falling?” Weiss asks, legs tightly wrapped around your chest.
“Oh, I’m using my Ki to make a little barrier around us. Otherwise…” You release your Ki and let the air pressure smack you all.
It does little to you, but Weiss, Ruby, and Yang are all pushed back. Weiss remains tied to you, now holding on for dear life and screaming. Ruby and Yang have been pushed off Nimbus and start plummeting to the ground.
“Oh, oops, hehe,” you circle around and catch the two girls, one in each hand. “Sorry, I didn’t think you’d fly right off.”
“WHAT’RE YOU, CRAZY?” The sisters shout as they beat at your arms and chest.
You take the light abuse as you bring them back to your friend. Setting them both on the cloud once more, you erect your Ki barrier and resume your flight. Ruby clutches the cloud, breathing heavily.
“You are my only friend in this desolate place.”
“Hey!” Yang shouts back. “I’ll remember that when you’re holding onto me!”
“Look what good that did!”
You and Nimbus slowly descend as you reach the water, soon flying directly over it.
“Sometimes I come out here to relax a bit. It’s kinda cool when you feel the water splashing against your skin,” you relay. “Maybe you two can feel it sometime soon.”
“But we can’t fly like you,” Weiss points out.
“Well… I mean, it’s not the hardest thing in the world to do. I don’t know, we’ll see. We’ll be there in a second, by the way. It’s over there!” You point ahead to a small, secluded island hosting a pink house with a head roof. “Kame House” is written on the outer wall, diagonal to the door.
You and Nimbus approach it at an unrivaled speed but manage to slow down fast enough and gentle enough to not make it uncomfortable for your passengers. Set down on the ground, boots leaving a print in the sand, and let Weiss off. Ruby and Yang hop off Nimbus and look around.
“It’s so… empty,” Yang points out, observing only a few palm trees, some bushes, rocks, and a mix of sand and dirt everywhere.
“Simplistic, one would say,” Weiss adds.
“It’s great!” You cheer. “Hey, Master Roshi! You in there?” You shout as you run towards the door.
Before you reach it someone exits the house. He’s a rather short, old man with a bald head and a white beard and mustache combo. He’s wearing an orange shirt with white collars and a white line going down the front, kept together by thin strings. He also has simple blue pants and very simple black shoes with no socks. The two most notable features are his sunglasses and large turtle shell worn like a backpack. He walks out with one hand behind his back and the other holding onto a brown stick that bulges at the top.
“Well, well, well, if it isn’t (Y/N). Good to see-“ His aged voice stops when he notices the three girls a short distance behind you. “Oh? EEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEH?” His eyes widen and his smile grows wide. “Well, who're your friends?” Roshi speeds over to the girls, first admiring Weiss’ rear. “You sure know how to throw a party,” then moves to Yang’s breasts, hands hovering over them. “And some big presents for an old man!” He ends with a laugh from his belly.
His hands inch closer and closer to her breasts as his smile grows wider and nose fills with blood. Yang and Weiss’ anger boils as darkness covers their eyes. Ruby lifts her eye in confusion.
“This is your master?” Yang shakily asks, trying to hold back the urge to punch him.
“Yeah! He’s really strong. How’s it going, Master?”
“Oh, great! Great!” He cheers.
The moment Yang feels foreign skin she steps back and punches Roshi in the faces, sending him into the dirt. “Hands off!” She shouts, eyes flaring red.
“Sis!” Ruby yelps.
“Hehe, this is familiar,” you laugh as you go to your Master’s side. “This always happens to you, huh?”
“I don’t get it! Why's the youth always beating on us elders?” He slowly gets to his feet. “So, who’re these ladies?”
“Oh, they’re my classmates! I’m at Beacon Academy now?”
“Eh? That place? Hm…” He taps his stick. “Interesting. I’ll have to apply too if there are babes like these,” he ends with a prideful laugh.
“Is he always like this?” Weiss whispers with irritation.
“I like him!” Ruby cheerfully says.
“Don’t get close,” Yang warns.
“So where're the others?” You look towards the sea. “I don’t sense them nearby… then again, I can’t sense very well.”
“And you thought you’d learn that at Beacon? Eh? My new students can sense across the whole world and you can barely feel those islands!”
“Hehe,” you scratch the back of your head. “I gotta work on it. Anyway, I thought I’d stop by and say hello! My friends here, oh! I didn’t introduce them. I’m sorry,” you bow. “This is Ruby Rose,” you point to the youngest one.
“Hiya!” She waves. “Nice to meet you.”
“And that’s her big sister, Yang Xiao Long!”
“Who doesn’t like to be touched by creeps,” she cracks her knuckles.
“And Weiss Schnee!”
“Pleasure,” she bows in her own way. “But I must say that I share Yang’s sentiment.”
“Schnee, eh? One of those big company Atlas girls. I can see you’re all fighters.”
You slide to the side, positioning yourself closer to Ruby. “They use weapons, mostly. Yang is like us, though. She likes fighting with her fists!” You say with enthusiasm. “Actually, I don’t think we’ve fought yet, Yang.”
“Not yet,” she shakes her head. “But don’t worry, I’m sparing you for as long as possible,” she says with a cocky smile.
“Now you’re just teasing me!”
Roshi begins laughing at the encounter. “You’ve yet to change, (Y/N). He’s been obsessed with fighting since he was young.”
“It’s so much fun! Though, there aren’t that many strong people at Beacon. Oh! When will they be back? I wanna see how tough your students are?”
“Hm…” Roshi looks to the sun. “They were meant to come back before sundown… Well, come on in and get comfortable. I’d like to hear all about you. Especially you three,” he smiles.
“I’m sure you would,” Weiss sighs.
You happily follow Master Roshi into his simple house with the girls following slowly. You’re greeted with a tidier place than normal. There’s a TV set which has a low table and some cushioned seating for comfortable viewing. There’s also a large, white rug below the cushions and table. There’s a path to the kitchen and a door leading to the bathroom, as well as a stairwell leading to the only other floor. You all take a seat around the table, you being between your Master and the girls. They’re attempting to be as far away as possible.
“So, you seem stronger. Have you kept up with your training?”
“Of course! Sometimes I get too into it, though. Lucent and Crystal always yell at me,” you end with a chuckle.
“Who’re they?” Weiss interjects.
“Oh, I live close to them. Lucent actually trained under Master Roshi for a bit. But I surpassed him!” You say with a cheerful smile.
“I would say so. He could never focus his Ki properly because of his Aura.”
“That interrupted it?” Ruby tilts her head.
“Indeed. I can sense that you three have unlocked your Auras while my students and I have not. It’s an imbalance, I’d reckon. Not an impossible obstacle but one that’s difficult to overcome. It was never a problem with you, though. You have no Aura, to begin with.”
“Yep, hehe. I was actually thinking of showing these girls some techniques. Think you can help me out?”
Master Roshi looks over at the ladies and starts laughing. “Of course! I’d love to help out three beautiful students. Perhaps I could get a reward,” he leans closer to Yang, cheek facing her. “A kiss for an old man?”
Yang’s face twitches again at his advances. Her fist slowly rises once more
“Well, that’s not fair. You haven’t done it yet,” you say with a smile. “At least wait until you’ve helped them.”
“Yeah, so back off you old perv,” Yang says, raising her shaking fist to intimidate the old man.
“Mm, very well. (Y/N), do you think you can fetch some senzu beans for me? I believe your friends and my students will need them.”
“Oh, sure! I’ll be back!” You say, bouncing off the spot and running to the door.
“Wait! I’ll come with you!” Yang waves. “To, uh… prepare myself. Weiss look after Ruby… you get me,” she says, widening her eyes then squinting.
“Of course,” Weiss immediately picks up on her message.
“Alright ladies, let's get started!” Roshi shouts.
You and Yang close the door behind you and head for Nimbus. “We’ll just use my buddy here. It’ll be easier for us.”
You and Yang hop on then it zooms off.
“That’s an… interesting Master you have there,” Yang puts it lightly.
“Yeah, he’s great!” You smile at her, spinning around on the spot to face her. “He’s a little weird but aren’t we all?” You end with a wide smile.
“You’re extra happy today,” she points out, adopting a smile herself.
“Well, yeah! Why wouldn’t I be? I haven’t seen these guys in so long. I wonder how Korin and Yajirobe are…”
“Who?”
“Oh, they’re at the tower. Korin grows senzu beans that heal you up!”
“What… like… what?” Yang blinks twice.
“They heal you! Your stamina, your wounds, everything! Its super effective for training! You train, get tired, eat a senzu, then get right back to it! You know, sometimes I feel like I’m even tougher after eating one but Korin says they don’t do that. I think he’s lying to me,” you cross your arms, perplexed.
Yang giggles at your confused face. “Well, maybe. I’m curious about them, though. Do they heal Aura too?”
You shrug. “No idea. I would assume so. Hey, don’t get any ideas!” You point your finger at her. “It’s not fun to heal mid-battle! It’s only for after. Maybe you and I can go a few rounds with them. I’m still itching to fight you, ya know?” You end with a coy smile.
“You’re saying I’ll need them?” Yang cracks her knuckles.
“Hehe, maybe. We’re almost there, I think,” you turn to face the front and spot a tall, decorated structure. “Yep, that’s the tower. Well, the… foundation? Hm… it holds it so high. I climbed that, you know,” you remark as Nimbus stops midway up the tower.
“Wait, really?” Yang looks over the edge then straight up. “The entire way?”
“Mhm,” you nod. “Don’t worry, I won’t make us do that! Let's go, buddy!”
Nimbus swoops up to move at a straight line. Yang slips off, screaming momentarily until she feels you grip her wrist. She holds yours back, fingers tightening on the cloth of your wrist guards. You give her a thumbs up to reassure her, despite her lower body flailing thanks to gravity. For just a moment… you look strange to her. Your wide smile, bright teeth shining. Your air whipping around from the movement…
“You look…”
Nimbus swoops around once more, circling around an actual structure high in the sky. You place Yang back on the cloud, cutting off her train of thought.
“You okay? You looked at me strangely.”
“Oh, nothing. Probably just a little scared of falling.”
“You don’t have to worry. You’re in no danger when I’m around!” You say, once again flashing a smile. “Come on, I see Korin!”
Nimbus stations itself just beside the tower so you hop over the railing and head for the center. Yang follows, looking around at the fairly empty layout. Other than a fountain-like structure in the middle and a stairway leading below. She does land her eyes on a small, fat white cat holding a stick.
“Aw, a little kitty. I didn’t know you could train them to hold things. Then again,” she kneels down and starts rubbing the cat’s head. “I don’t think I’ve ever seen a cat this big before.”
“I know, I’ve gotta work on it,” the cat replies.
“Huh… GAAAAAAAAAH!” Yang shrieks, jumping back and crawling backwards. “The cat talks?”
You kneel down beside her. “Yeah, that’s Korin!”
“He’s a talking cat! He’s not even a Faunus!”
“So? How’re you doing, Korin? It’s been a while.”
“Well enough. I’m getting more visitors thanks to your Master.”
“Hehe, that’s actually why I’m here,” you cross your arms. “Do you have any extra senzu beans? Master Roshi said he needed some.”
“He’s not even phased,” Yang mumbles.
“I can lend a few, I suppose. I’ll give you a small pouch too. We all know you get in the most trouble.”
“A talking cat that grows healing beans… how secluded have I been?” She continues, having a small existential crisis.
Korin waddles towards the stairs, disappearing from sight momentarily. You look over at Yang whose still on the ground contemplating everything.
“You okay, Yang? Need a hug or something?”
“The world is so strange… I don’t understand…”
You cross your arms and adopt a perplexed visage. “Huh… I’ve never seen her like this. Strange. Hm…” You walk up behind Yang, checking to see if she notices you at all.
She doesn’t notice you after ten seconds of standing over her… so you smack the back of her head.
“Ow, hey!” She rubs the back of her head.
“You were in lala land. Come on,” you offer your hand. “We’re gonna leave soon. I don’t want to get caught up talking and leave you stuck.”
You pull Yang to her feet and pat her shoulder. “Don’t worry about Korin, by the way. He’s really nice. Just don’t go telling everyone about him. He’s a little… hm… reclusive, I guess.”
“Don’t tell my friends about the walking, talking cat that grows healing beans… yeah, yeah, okay, I can’t even make a joke out of this. You’ve officially gone beyond me.”
You tilt your head a bit. “What’re you talking about?”
“Nothing, nothing,” she waves her hands. “I’m just shocked. This isn’t what I thought today was gonna be like.”
“Hm… I guess this is all kinda normal to me. Tell you what, next time you can take me to do your stuff. Make us even! What do people call that… um… ah, a date! We’ll go on a date!”
Yang blinks twice. “Did… you just ask me out?”
“Well… technically. I asked all three of you guys out!” You say, ignorant of Yang’s meaning.
Yang releases a sigh of relief. “I was worried, but I guess you wouldn’t know that. Don’t seem like the type.”
“The type?”
“Here we are,” Korin announces, walking towards you both with a small pot and pouch in hand. “These are for you. Tell Roshi he should come visit.”
“I will!” You take the pouch first and tie it to your belt, then grab the pot. “And I’ll come back soon to talk. I wouldn’t want to keep him waiting!” You run to the edge and hop on Nimbus. “See ya, Korin! Tell Yajirobe I said hello!”
Yang embarks on the cloud too as Korin waves. “See you soon! Good to meet you, Ms.”
“You too… talking cat.”
The Nimbus speeds off once more towards Roshi’s island. You patiently sit on the cloud, sitting the pot on your lap. Yang sits behind you, a hand on your shoulder in case you decide to pull any stunts.
“You… you’re an odd one, you know?” Yang speaks.
“Huh?” You look over your shoulder. “I’m odd? I guess,” you scratch your chin. “I’ve been told that a lot. I like to think it adds to my charm,” you say with a smile. “Kinda like you!”
“Huh?”
“That way you present yourself and speak. It’s really cool! You’re a lot more expressive than most, like me!”
“Well,” Yang rubs the back of her neck. “I’m actually sorta surprised you said that. Blake and Weiss always said you only cared about-“
“Plus you like fighting too, so that’s a double bonus!”
Yang’s head falls. “Of course it is…”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Yang keeps herself strong against the foreign weight. She holds the straps tightly and smiles.
“That’s all you got?” She says through her teeth.
“Your strength is impressive, but your control is still off. You must look past your Aura, find a second power within yourself.”
“Eeehgh,” a moan from below erupts.
Roshi looks down at Ruby and Weiss who’ve failed to keep themselves standing. Weiss is completely crushed under the turtle shell while Ruby is stuck on top, unable to get back on her feet.
“This isn’t fair,” she whines, rolling around on her shell.
“I told you to get stronger, Rubes,” Yang teases, though it’s clear this is straining her as well.
Yang’s confidence immediately shatters when the ground begins shaking. She completely loses balance and falls on her back, sharing her little sister’s pain. Roshi laughs, knowing what caused the commotion.
“They never tend to be discreet, do they?”
With all her strength, Yang rolls onto her stomach to slowly and shakily get back on her feet. The shockwaves shake the ground once more but Yang manages to keep on her feet this time.
“What is that?” Ruby whines, completely blind to everything but orange sky.
“I can’t see anything but… I can feel it,” Yang comments. “Like… strikes.”
“Try to look closely… or maybe they’ll slow down. You never know with him.”
In the distance, you stop midair, not much higher than the house, and content with the constant hands and feet coming at you. Six of each, all moving on their own with separate intentions. Still, you manage to redirect or block with your arms or completely dodge in general. You smile and brace yourself for three punches. They move through you, causing your image to fade.
“An afterimage?”
“You didn’t notice, Tien?”
“No…”
“Heads up!” You shout, bursting forward and slamming the base of your heel in Yamcha, the middle ones, face. You quickly turn to the right, swinging your other foot around and launching Tien into the sea. Without losing a beat, you turn around and throw a punch at the shortest one, Krillin, but he manages to block the attack and hold his stance. He’s still pushed back a fair distance, but he’s uninjured… mostly.
“Ow, ow, ow,” he waves his arm. “You’re not pulling your punches,” he chuckles.
Krillin is a short and bald man with six dots on his forehead. Despite his size, he’s extremely well defined and a fierce fighter in his own right. He wears an outfit similar to what you used to wear – the Turtle Hermit Gi. Orange pants and shirt with Master Roshi’s symbol on the back and chest. Along with that, he has two wrist guards, an undershirt, and a belt that all share the same blue tone. He shakes his hand once more than returns to his fighting stance.
“You’re not either, Krillin! You’re way stronger than when I first fought you!”
“He’s not the only one!” A voice shouts from the side, throwing a punch that you lean back to dodge.
Yamcha, one of the men who started training before you left. His hair flows down much like Yang’s, though his is black. He sports two scars on his face, one that trails over his right eye and another on his left chin that looks like an “x.” Like Krillin, he wears the Turtle Hermit Gi but doesn’t use the undershirt.
He spins and attempts to kick your ribs, but you block and throw a punch of your own. He flips back then retreats beside Krillin. On cue, Tien rises from the water to join his allies. Tien is also bald, but instead of having six dots like Krillin he has a third eye. He’s bigger than the other two in terms of muscle mass, which is clear because he doesn’t wear a shirt. This reveals a scar that goes down the right side of his chest in a diagonal manner. Like the others, his pants and wrist guards are a shade of orange.
You roll your shoulders before tightening your body. “Man, I haven’t had a thrill like this in a while. You three are amazing! I never want to stop!”
“You’ve improved… it means I’ve been slacking,” Tien clenches his fist. “But… I’ll win this time!”
“Come on, then!” You shout back.
The three rush you in sync. It’s clear they’ve practiced teamwork which makes it harder for you to keep yourself safe. You all collide once more, your body becoming nearly invisible to Yang as you’re always striking, blocking, and moving. You all disappear and reappear in different places, each hit releasing a powerful wave that shakes the waves and trees.
“I can’t see!” Ruby shakes back and forth again. “Can I take this off?”
“If you can stand up,” Roshi bargains. “That goes for you too,” he says to Weiss, crushed beneath the shell.
Yang continues to watch to the best of her ability as you knock Yamcha into the sea then block Tien’s attack. His back it towards Krillin who’s recently began keeping his distance. Tien grabs your arm and looks down, eyes closed.
“Now, Krillin!”
Krillin raises his hands to his head. “Solar Flare!” He shouts, releasing an unbearably bright light that completely blinds you.
Now unable to see, Tien turns around and throws you over his shoulder, following it up with a few Ki blasts. The two immediately fly into the water, making it impossible for the young girl to watch.
You recover in the water and immediately cross your arms to block the fist and foot. You’re forced deeper into the water where Yamcha comes up from behind, delivering a punching elbow that completely breaks your guard. The bald men follow up with four punches in total, then slip to your back with Yamcha to release a quick, triple Kamehameha. The blue beam envelops you, careening you out of the water to eventually explode in the air. Yang covers his face with her hands while Roshi simply watches with intrigue.
“Was that the Kamehameha?” Yang looks back at the old man.
“It was indeed. It’s a move I teach all my pupils.”
“Hm…” Yang looks down at her hands. “Kamehameha!” She shouts, throwing her hands out like you do.
Roshi and Ruby look at the woman with confusion.
“Sis, what’re you doing?”
“Just trying.”
“That’s how (Y/N) did it.”
“What, really?”
Roshi nods. “He saw me do it once and managed to do it. If you learn to control your Ki it would be a simple matter.”
“And how do I-“
“Do the training I told you! Or maybe I can think of… hehe,” he closes in on Yang a little bit, hands raised to chest level. “Other methods.”
“I’ll stick with this.”
“Same here.”
“Get this off me,” Weiss huffs.
You shake your head and pat your clothes. “Man, that really got me. They’re not-“
Krillin appears in front of you, his foot pulled back to attack. You catch the foot only for Tien to appear below him and try to strike your stomach. You lift your leg to block with your knee, both shaking under pressure. You’re well aware there’s a third opponent waiting, so you take the initiative. You move your arm up and your body back, throwing Krillin higher into the air while moving your other leg closer to Tien. With a strong snap, you kick Tien’s jaw with immense power, then follow through with the movements to knock Krillin down.
Yamcha tries to attack from below but is unprepared for a speeding body. They crash into each other, spiraling back to the water. Once right-side up, you dash up to Tien and combat him. He’s recovered by then and engages you immediately with a chop. You catch it and throw your own punch which he barely leans out of the way. You angle your arm and shove your elbow into his cheek and follow up with a roundhouse kick. Tien stiffens up before turning back and connecting his fist with your face. You return the favour with a punch to the gut, he hits your chest, and the pattern repeats at unbelievable speeds. Krillin and Yamcha speed to Tien’s side, returning it to a 3v1.
Shockwaves erupt from every which-way as your battle escalates. You block all three punches then push them all back, instantly putting your hands to your side.
“Ka…me…”
The three smile and mimic your movements. “Ha… me…” They say with you.
“Oh boy…” Roshi chimes in.
“HAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAA!” The four of you holler, releasing a blinding flash of blue into the air.
The beams collide with one another, pushing everything back. There’s a clear hole in the water from the amount of pressure being given off.
“Whoa!” Yang falls to her knees, grasping at the sand to keep herself steady.
Ruby finally flips over face first into the sand. “Mfm, I’m free!”
You keep your body steady and your power flowing against the three beams. You can handle it… but holding such a thing for long isn’t safe for wildlife or the girls on the island. You push your arms forward, throwing another wave of energy. Your beam grows immensely, overpowering the others to the point where it all explodes. A large cloud erupts from the explosion, blocking all view for a short time. When the dust settles you and the others are laughing.
“Amazing… his eyes…” Yang watches you laugh. “They change so quickly… they’re so wide and innocent but in a fight, they’re so sharp. They change so fast…”
You fly over and start talking with your friends. “Hehe, that was awesome! You should grab a senzu and go a few more rounds.”
“I would enjoy that. Fighting you is true training,” Tien replies.
“Better than when you wanted to kill me,” you rub the back of your head. “So let's do it! I’m ready anytime!”
“Jeez, you’re way too addicted,” Krillin shakes his head.
“What can I say?” You end with a smile.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Cinder stands in her room, lights off and completely alone. The curtains cover the windows so no light can come in. The only bit of light is from a small device on the floor. It envelops the room, bringing Cinder into a virtual world. Before her is a clouded figure with sharp, red eyes.
“I know, I know, ‘you’re busy,’” she mocks. “But I have something that may interest you… he’s here.”
The being smiles. “At last…”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
The sun is down so the light of the moon shines over Remnant. Everyone except you and Roshi is inside the house, chatting away while having a satisfying dinner. Your eyes are closed as you float a short height above the ground. Roshi watches you carefully to see any possible mistakes or breaks in focus. After the hour of fighting, you decided to do what you intended when you arrived. You’re still slightly bruised and cut since you haven’t taken a senzu yet, but it doesn’t disturb your meditation.
You allow your mind to see things through Ki, to feel more than what is in your immediate area. The people around Remnant, either sleeping or finishing up any last minute chores, or perhaps having a lonely night in a pub or desperately fleeing from Grimm. All these things you can slowly begin to feel. It’s strange to you, in truth. You’re used to feeling things in a specific radius and not all around the world. But now you can…
“Hm… only like this,” you say aloud, breaking meditation. “I guess I still have a bit to you,” you say as you change to a standing position. “But I know what I have to do now. Thank you, Master Roshi,” you bow. “I couldn’t have done it without you.”
“Mm, leave me for another school then come back for training. What kinda logic is that, huh?”
“Hehe, I’m sorry. You’re the best around! I had to!”
“Well… as long as you come back with some of those girls then it’s okay,” he says, ending with a laugh and a very specific image in his mind.
“Oh, definitely! I guess we’ll head out. Can I use one of your senzu beans?”
Roshi pulls it out of his pocket and hands it to you. “Here you go. Don’t think you can take all of them. I saw your pouch!”
“I know, I know. Hey, Yang! We’re heading out!” You shout over your shoulder.
“Coming!” Three voices answer.
You throw the senzu bean into your mouth and chow down while you wait for your friends. Ruby, Yang, and Weiss come through the door and spot you and Roshi. They all stay behind you, keeping as far away from Roshi as possible. Nimbus is already there so Ruby and Weiss sit on it.
“Hey!” Yang complains.
“This is for not helping us with those shells!” Ruby deviously smiles.
“Yeah!”
Yang huffs. “Fine. Come on, (Y/N).”
“Yep. Well, see ya, Master! I’ll be back soon!” You wave before running to Yang.
You grab her hand and fly off, leaving her dangling in the air.
“HEY! WHAT’RE YOU DOING?” Yang shrieks.
Ruby and Weiss laugh as they follow close behind with Nimbus.
So things are really gonna pick up! I’m actually going to make this the next big chapter I put out… like, between this and Crimson Shadow. So the next chapter will be fairly soon. It’s funny, I see people ask about Kaioken, Super Saiyan, etc. To answer everyone at once, those things will come. I’m teasing a few things now but… I mean, patience is a thing. I plan to have this story go on for a long time so there’s a ton of stuff to cover. Plus I think everything is finally in place… I think. We’ll see. It’s gonna be a fun time!
So, I hope you enjoyed! I’ll see you all next time!
Want to keep up with me? Know what chapter’s coming out next and the progress of them? Follow me on Twitter! Twitter . com (slash) Chinsangan
Questions? Comments? Concerns? Advice? Send me a message! See ya!
And finally thank you to the Beta Reader: TheNameIsntImportant
Chapter 6: A Village Under Attack? Release Your Power!
Chapter Text
Chapter 6: A Village Under Attack? Unleash your Power!
“Thank you, Ms. Goodwitch. I’ll look through these papers,” Ozpin smiles at the teacher before immediately getting to work.
“If I may…” Ozpin looks up at her again, giving her permission. “A few of my fellow teachers have shared a concern for one of our students.”
“I presume you’re speaking of young (Y/N)?”
“Indeed. Aside from Herbology and Combat, he’s failing every class. We can all recognize his amazing combat prowess but he’s lacking in every other regard. You’ve dismissed students for less than him in the past. With all due respect, why haven’t you expelled him?”
Ozpin taps his papers on his desk before standing up. “Indeed, he’s an utter failure in most academic ways but… in his case that’s not what matters. One could say it’s a gamble, but I believe he has intelligence, charisma, and maturity that will make a true Huntsman…”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You toss your clothes onto the bed to have your morning shower. Once you walk into the bathroom you spot the shampoo bottle fallen on its side, cap open. You cross your arms and frown.
“Hm… empty… maybe Yang has some? There’s four girls so they probably have some extra.”
You leave your dorm room and walk down the hallway. It’s fairly empty since everyone is either just waking up or in the early stages of getting ready. You nonchalantly approach RWBY’s door and knock on the door.
“Who’s knocking so early in the morning?”
“Maybe it’s (Y/N)?”
“Or that guy whose notes you stole.”
“He doesn’t know it was me!”
“Could be a teacher.”
“We shouldn’t keep them waiting.”
“Yang’s closest!”
“What?”
“All who vote Yang opens say I!”
“I!”
“Oh, I’ll remember this,” Yang moans as she opens the door.
She’s still in her sleepwear, hair slightly messy and eyes somewhat droopy. The latter changes instantaneously when she sees you. Shock consumes her resulting in an inability to save her teammates.
“Who was it?” Ruby inquires, leaning over with the other two girls.
They all adopt a deep red tone when spotting you without any clothes or shame. You keep your innocent smile and wave.
“Morning, girls. Do you have any shampoo? I’m out.”
The four blink no less than eight times before Ruby shrieks, running back and diving on Weiss’ bed. She hides under the covers and rolls around to try and forget the grand presentation you put on.
Weiss and Blake continue to stare while Yang tries her absolute best to keep her eyes up. You look past Yang, leaning on one leg to give the other two more of a show. “Heya!” You wave. “Up bright and early! Are you all okay? You’re red… and Ruby’s acting weird.”
The door behind you opens for team JNPR.
“Is everything alright?” Pyrrha starts. “We heard Ruby…”
You turn around to face the team and smile. “You’re up too! I guess getting early training isn’t special.”
Pyrrha turns away, cheeks flustered at your surprise package. Ren and Jaune spin around and head back to their beds, unwilling to participate in whatever is going on. Nora, on the other hand, starts laughing.
“Oh boy, now you know what you’re doing!”
“Well… yeah! I just want some shampoo. But everyone’s going red…” You turn back to Yang. “Is there a reason?”
“You’re not wearing clothes!” Weiss shrieks, quickly covering her mouth but persists in looking.
“So this is what the books are like,” she mumbles to herself.
“What?” You look down at your exposed genitals then back at Weiss. “I didn’t think it mattered. Yang was cool with it last time.”
Yang’s body shakes as if she received a jolt of lightning.
“You’ve seen that before?” Nora cheers, bouncing to her side.
“I…”
“Oh, am I supposed to be wearing clothes all the time? Sorry, hehe, Yang made me think it was fine,” you rub the back of your head. “Crystal always yelled at me for this. She was red too, come to think of it,” you place your hand at your chin.
Weiss scurries to the bathroom only to throw a bottle at the door, which knocks Yang in the back of the head.
“Ow, hey!” She looks back at the Heiress.
“I’m sorry! I was… distracted. J-Just take the bottle!” Weiss shakily offers.
You take a step past Yang and kneel down to grab the plastic bottle. “Hey, thanks!” You raise the bottle at her. “I’ll return it soon. Sorry for disturbing you all,” you bow. “I’ll see you in class.”
You run down the hall and back to your room, leaving the six girls with mixed emotions. Yang isn’t as distraught as the others since, like you said, it’s the second time she’s seen your precious jewels. That doesn’t make it less awkward, however, if anything this means she’s seen your King Taijitu more than any other man… which also means you’re the first one her sister has seen too.
“Do we talk about this again?” Blake breaks the silence.
“Yes!” Nora shouts.
“No! Come on, Nora,” Pyrrha drags her partner back into her dorm and closes it behind her.
“I… really don’t feel like it was intentional,” Weiss comments.
“No, he doesn’t find it strange,” Yang adds. “I guess we just forget about it.”
“Hard to forget that,” Blake mumbles.
“Blake!”
“I’m not the only one thinking it!” She defends herself.
Yang passes by Weiss and Blake to sit with her sister, still hiding from the trauma.
“You gonna make it?”
Ruby shivers under the blankets.
“You’ll be fine,” she pats Ruby’s head. “If anything, you might’ve been spoiled. I know I am,” she ends with a chuckle.
“You’re thinking like Blake!” Weiss points at her.
“Coming from the girl who’s blushing more than all of us,” Blake smirks.
“Why… I… I would never think in such a wa-“
You knock on the open door, this time wearing some briefs. Your body is shining for the girls thanks to the water and sunshine. Your hair is also flatter than normal thanks to the water, covering your face somewhat to give you somewhat of a mysterious persona. Now that your bells and whistles are covered, all they can focus on is the body you’ve trained for years. You approach Weiss in near slow motion as all four girls watch you. Stopping in front of the white-haired girl you speak to her but your words are muffled for everyone except Ruby. They’ve been placed under a situational spell thanks to the entire scenario before them. To Weiss, Blake, and Yang, you’re talking with a deep voice, effortlessly flaunting your toned body. To Ruby, you’re offering Weiss her shampoo which she fails to take.
You look over at Ruby, eyebrow raised. “Are they okay?”
“You know…” Ruby starts chuckling. “I think you’re funny.”
“Oh… uh… thank you? Actually, you were freaking out earlier too. Ho-“
Ruby’s mind returns to the horrors of a few moments ago… she hides back under her blankets, rolling around while the others remain stationary. You have no idea what’s happening or how to deal with the situation… so you place the shampoo bottle at the foot of Weiss’ bed and walk out the door. To your surprise, JNPR’s door is open again but nobody can leave. Nora is attempting to run out of the room while Jaune and Pyrrha hold her by the waist and shoulders.
“Let me at him! LET ME AT HIM!” She chants as you walk down the hallway.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“…And so, his presence may be beneficial to Beacon. Besides, Glynda, is it not our job to educate?” Ozpin ends with a smile.
Glynda huffs. “Whatever you think is best. May I ask another thing?”
“Of course.”
“Is he… different? Like Ms. Rose?”
Ozpin chuckles. “In a way, yes. In time you will see what I see, Glynda. I know it.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You tap your pencil on the table as Oobleck rambles on about the Great War. As interesting as combat should be to you the way he describes it is less than ideal. Rather than talking about the techniques and fights it’s more about the overall strategy and history of each battle. While that could be interesting for some…
“Mr. (Y/N) you have been staring at the ceiling for TWENTY MINUTES!” Oobleck shouts, throwing you off balance.
“Ah, uh, sorry. This is just not my thing,” you answer honestly.
Students around you start mumbling about your response. Your friends, despite the scene earlier, watch with concern.
“And what exactly do you mean by that?”
“Well… I don’t really care,” you shrug. “It wasn’t my battle or my problem. They all just sound dumb – fighting over things that don’t matter.”
“Hm… there is a difference between ignorance and blatant disregard for the past. People fought for your race, the Faunus, and for freedom for all men and women.”
You shrug. “That doesn’t matter to me. Focus on the future, that’s what I think! Besides, only that one guy was really tough. I wish he was around…” You leaned back and smile. “I would have loved to face him…”
Oobleck sighs, holding his disappointment and frustration at your dismissiveness.
“This… is not how a Huntsman should act.”
“Well, to be honest, I’m not really a Huntsman. I just wanna fight!”
Yang buries her head in her hands, releasing tension in her own way. Your friends react in a similar way. They all know you’re not the smartest or sensitive to other’s opinions… but the way you’re talking to the teacher is something that won’t pass.
“Then why are you here?” Oobleck bluntly asks. “You clearly have no desire to be a Huntsman, you dismiss our lessons, and you care little for the world’s history. Everything a Huntsman is you don’t care about. Perhaps you need to reflect on yourself to figure out what you truly want,” Oobleck turns his back on you. “You’re dismissed from my class.”
Without a word or even annoyance, you leave your desk and head for the door. The entire class watches silently as you leave, different thoughts circling each head.
“What was he thinking?” Weiss whispers.
“I’m… not surprised. He does seem to have a one-track mind,” Blake responds. “Perhaps we should speak with him later?”
“When did you start caring,” Yang teases, nudging her. “I’ll handle it. I’ve talked to him the most.”
“Have you?” Ruby protests.
“Silence!” Oobleck shouts, shutting everyone up. “Do not allow this to distract you… and do not think like him. People who do not learn from the mistakes of the past are doomed to repeat them…”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“Heeya!” You throw your fist forward, cutting through the air like butter. “Well… I guess that was fun enough. Sheesh, never thought I’d get kicked out of a class before,” you cross your arms and tap the muscles. “I wonder if I said something wrong… Eh… this is way harder than anything,” you violently start rubbing your head. “I feel like I’m supposed to care about something but I don’t. I’m trying to pay attention but…” You fall onto your back and stare up at the sky. “Maybe I’m missing something. I thought a Huntsman was about saving people… I did that! Now it’s about history and boring people and stuff I already forgot… was it the King of Vale or Vacuo? That was the side that won, right?”
“Vale, yes,” a familiar voice answers.
You raise your head and spot Yang in her school uniform. She’s standing at your feet, arms crossed and smiling wide.
“Oh, hey Yang! Is class over already?”
Yang nods. “It is. You made quite the scene. It was kinda funny seeing you talk to Professor Oobleck like that.”
Yang walks to your side and lays down, mirroring your position.
“I guess… I didn’t think I said anything wrong but... well, I’ve never been one be good with people. Lucent and Crystal were the only ones who could really put up with me.”
“I can tell… well, I don’t think you’re so bad,” she nudges you. “Just remember to… well, keep your pants on.”
“Ha, right,” you readjust, uncomfortable in the uniform. “I’ll try to keep that in mind. To be honest I kinda forgot. I just needed shampoo.”
Some other students pass by, some from your class and some not. It’s lunchtime so nobody really has anywhere in particular to go, but it still baffles some why Yang would spend her time with you.
“Did you hear what he did last class?”
“No, Magenta mentioned it but, you know her, always head over heels for some new boy.”
“I heard the teachers don’t think he’ll be a good Huntsman.”
“But didn’t he save some people the other day?”
“Yeah, my mother was there! She said he was there and stopped a bomb but also got people killed.”
“Some student he is.”
“He doesn’t even like fighting Grimm, from what I’ve heard.”
The constant voices, both male and female, reach Yang’s ears. She glares at some of the people whispering and watching, quickly shooing them away without a word.
“I don’t think I can forgive you showing your junk to my sister,” she mentions in a more playful way.
“What? Oh, yeah… hehe, you know, I used to think men and women had the same parts.”
“What? Really?” Yang giggles, covering her mouth.
You push yourself onto your elbow and nod. “Yeah, when I first met Crystal I thought she was some sort of mutant or something. Hehe, she smacked me so hard when I touched her.”
Yang snorts then laughs. “No way! You really did that? How are you two still friends?”
“I’m not sure,” you lie back down. “She always said I was a piece of work but she still put up with me. Maybe it was because there was no one else our age in the village. She couldn’t fight like you, though. Speaking of!” You flip to your feet and pull Yang to hers. “You still haven’t fought me yet!”
You let go of Yang’s hand and eagerly stare at her. She brushes some of the grass off her skirt then leans on her hip.
“You know… most guys hunt me for something else.”
“What? Do you cook too?”
“I… ah…” She sighs, following it up with a chuckle. “I guess you don’t think like that, do you?”
“Hm? Think like what?”
“Oh, nothing,” she waves you off. “Why don’t we eat first? I’m sure you’re hungry.”
“Oh, that’s a good idea! I like that one!”
“Of course you do. Come on, hotshot,” she pats your shoulder. “We’ll find our friends there, I bet.”
You smile at Yang, jogging to her side and matching her pace. “You know, for a fighter you have really soft hands.”
“Heh… you do too, surprisingly.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
As usual, the airship docks to release any returning Beacon students or visitors. The second the door opens a young girl bursts out, almost tripping over herself.
“(Y/N)… (Y/N)… where are you?” She mumbles to herself as she sprints towards Beacon.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
The moment you enter the building Yang b-lines to her friends while you make your way to the food. The line is small considering how much time has passed since lunch began. You wait behind three people, joyfully looking at the good being stored behind the counter. When it comes your time the lunch lady doesn’t even ask. She grabs a platter and puts one serving of everything. You smile at her and bow your head before turning away. Instead of keeping along the sides, you weave through the tables with no issues… until a leg purposefully extends in front of your ankles. Instead of falling over, you unintentionally kick the leg and spin the owner around, causing him to fall behind you.
His friends at the table laugh at the misfortune which only fuels his frustration. His red hair could be mistaken for flames of anger.
“Hey, you knocked me over, monkey!”
“I’m pretty sure you put your leg in my way. It’s not my fault. Or did you think I didn’t notice?” You end with a wink.
“Come on, Doh, leave it,” a slightly bulkier man with lime green hair commands.
“You’re no fun, Fah. At least Reh and Mih can laugh,” he gestures to his orange haired and yellow-haired friends.
You take this time to walk away but something happens to your foot. It connects with a wall… but there’s no wall ahead of you. The three watch with a cocky smirk as confusion surges. You move the tray to one hand and start tapping on the invisible wall. One… two… and on the third you put more force into it, shattering whatever was there.
“Wha- you shattered… tsk,” he squints his eyes and forms a few more walls that block your path.
“Come on, guys, let the monkey eat. It’s hard for him to work without his mountain of food,” another girl chuckles.
You slide your right leg back and extend your left hand, palm facing the door at the opposite end of the room. In a flash of yellow, you release a condensed beam that shatters all of Doh’s walls and destroys the cafeteria door. Screams erupt from the room as realization sets in on what happened. The door is gone, people are scared, and you’re standing with a smile on your face.
“Hey, those are pretty strong,” you turn to the table. “But I just wanna eat. We can spar after, if you want.”
“No, he’s fine.”
“Who’d wanna fight a freak like you?”
“Thought he was a monkey.”
“What’s the difference?”
“Wouldn’t a freak mean there’s some sort of weird thing about me?” You counter. “I’m pretty sure I’m just a regular Faunus.”
“Don’t get smart with us.”
“Okay, boys, let's calm down,” Yang joins in, stopping beside you. “We’ll agree to disagree. No need to ruin the cafeteria anymore.”
“He did it!”
“Come on, (Y/N),” she pulls you for a few steps towards her table. “Jeez, you get in trouble wherever you go.”
“I didn’t mean it,” you shrug.
“I know,” she chuckles. “We were all watching. The look on their faces was priceless when you blasted through everything. Really shattered expectation,” she ends with a laugh at her own joke.
“I thought most people knew I could fire Ki… but I guess it would be a surprise.”
“No, I, ah…” Yang slouches. “Nevermind…”
Ruby curiously watches you two walk as she munches on some crackers she got as a side snack. You sit beside each other and greet your friends with a smile.
“You get into more trouble than I do,” Jaune attempts a joke before remembering what Cardin does to him. “Or maybe not…”
“I think Nora’s offer is still valid, Jaune,” Pyrrha speaks.
“Legs?” Nora peeks around Ren who’s between her and Jaune.
Blake’s ears slightly shake as she hears something interesting. Past the conversation at her table, beyond the walls of the cafeteria, she picks up on an unfamiliar voice shouting for a familiar name.
“(Y/N)…”
“Hm? What’s up?”
“Oh,” Blake shakes her head as you bring her back to reality. “I think someone’s calling for you.”
“You can hear that?” Ruby blinks.
“Of course I can. But… I don’t know the-“
“(Y/N)!” The woman shouts, stopping at the front of the cafeteria.
The majority of students look over at the girl, including you. Your eyes instantly light up at the girl – one with mousey blonde hair and shimmering blue eyes.
“Crystal!” You happily shout, instantly flying out of your seat, over some students, and land at the entrance. “You came! I’m so happy!” You wrap your arms around her for a warm hug… but she doesn’t really return it.
“Crystal… I remember him mentioning her,” Yang mumbles. “Anyone else see that look in her eye?”
“She’s sad,” Ruby comments.
“Yeah… come on, let's see what’s up,” Yang pats Ruby’s back as she gets out of her seat.
“Can I… I just… you have to come with me, (Y/N),” she looks up at you, tears forming in her eyes.
“Whoa, whoa, Crystal, what’s wrong? What happened?”
“Dad… he’s… everyone, (Y/N), everyone’s in trouble and I don’t know who to go to! He said he’d kill them so I can and-“
“What’s wrong?” Ruby shouts, her team stopping just before you.
“Who’re you?”
“These are my friends, Crystal,” you smile. “They… hey, can I ask a favour?” You say to the girls. “Watch Crystal for me. Tell them what happened! I gotta change clothes!”
You sprint away for a few steps before bursting off in a flash of energy. Crystal rests her hands on her chest and quietly sobs.
“So… what happened?” Yang starts.
“I… I’ll wait…” Crystal wipes the tears away before turning to the girls, a weak smile present. “I-I wanna hear about (Y/N)’s new friends!”
“You… really don’t look like you want to,” Weiss comments.
Crystal smiles for half a second then proceeds to lower her head. “I do… I really do… I’ve been thinking about him this whole time… I really have…”
“So what happened?” Blake bluntly requests. “We need to know.”
Crystal sighs. “My dad… he’s a Huntsman. He found out a wave of Grimm was approaching so he hid us all in a bunker,” she scratches her neck. “In short, when we got back someone ambushed us. They wanted to kill my father for… something. They mentioned his school but I couldn’t hear all of it. I found a time to run and… I ran… I left everyone and ran and ran,” Crystal’s voice shakes as she tells her tale. “Oh my god, what if my dad’s dead,” she whines.
“Hey, hey,” Ruby rushes to her side. “It’s okay… we can help. We’re fighters too.”
“You’d… you’d help?” She looks up at the other four, all showing their intention to aid with confident faces.
“Of course,” Yang slams her fists together. “Anyone who picks on a village deserves a butt kicking by yours truly!”
“Yeah!” Ruby throws her fist in the air. “Team RWBY’s got your back!”
“Indeed,” Weiss regally nods.
“I guess that means I’ll help too,” Blake nods.
You speed back, leaving a trail of dust behind you whilst slowing down on one leg. Your hurried nature takes over, causing you to fall on your side before all four girls.
“Ow, ow, ow,” you moan, getting to your feet and rubbing your head. “Sheesh… well, I’m ready! Let's go, Crystal!”
“Not yet!” Yang interjects. “We gotta get ready too.
“Huh?”
“They’re coming with us, (Y/N)! They’re gonna help!”
You look to the four girls, confidence on all their faces… less on Blake's, though.
“Well… alright, then. I’ll call Nimbus. We’ll meet you at the docks!”
“Right!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
The six of you soar through the sky. Yang and Ruby are on the Nimbus while you carry Crystal, Weiss, and Blake on your back. It’s not heavy by any means, just a little uncomfortable. Well, that’s also because Rogue is smacking your back.
“How could you not wear clothes? I’ve told you over and over!”
The girls laugh as you whine. “I forgot! I’m sorry,” you snicker.
Crystal huffs. “Well… at least I know you haven’t been getting into too much trouble on your own.”
“I wouldn’t say that,” Blake replies. “But he’s alright.”
Crystal looks to the four girls with a bright smile. “You know… I was really worried about (Y/N) going off on his own. He’s not a people person, and being a Faunus… I thought he might not make any friends.”
“Hey, I’m a nice guy!” You cut in.
“Yes, you are, but you’re also very silly,” Rogue giggles. “But you four… I’m glad he’s met you. You’re all really nice people. Thank you for looking after him.”
“I actually saved Blake once, you kn- OW!”
“Was that me?” Blake smirks, her fingers pinching your leg.
“I’m surprised you’ve put up with him for so long,” Yang remarks. “He’s been a handful since school started.”
“I take care of myself! I haven’t lost a battle yet!”
“I didn’t mean that…”
“He’s always thinking of battle,” Crystal giggles.
“And food,” you and Yang respond.
This causes all the girls to laugh at your expense, but thankfully not for long. The girls can’t see it since you’re flying above the clouds but you can sense the village residents below.
“We’re going down. Hold on!”
You and Nimbus circle around as you break through the clouds. Beautiful green trees and blue lakes come into view for the girls, along with the target area.
“They’re all in the open… three people surrounding the crowd in the middle,” you speak aloud. “You’re dad’s okay, Crystal!”
“Oh, thank goodness. Please, (Y/N), make sure he’s okay.”
“I will. Everyone will be fine, I promise.”
You and the Nimbus land outside of the village, just outside of a dirt path. The girls hop off you and the cloud before stretching.
“Okay, so what’s the plan?” Yang says as she finishes her warm-up.
“We’ll have to see who we’re dealing with,” Ruby responds. “(Y/N), you’re the toughest of us all. You can test the waters.”
“Yeah, no problem,” you roll your shoulders. “Crystal, you and me’ll head in first. You four watch from a distance.”
“That’s… actually a good plan,” Weiss comments.
“Hey, fighting is my thing,” you shrug. “Besides, I wanna do it all myself anyway,” you end with a smirk.
“Of course. Well, get going, hotshot,” Yang starts walking deeper into the forest. “We’ll have your back.”
You and Crystal approach the village through the main road. You can spot the people gathered in the middle.
“Should we sneak in? Wait, I see my dad!” She shouts, pointing at Lucent and a mystery man.
“Wait, Crystal!” You try to grab her but miss. “Damn… I didn’t want to run right in.”
You sprint in behind Crystal, dust spreading with each step.
“Crystal? Wait, (Y/N)? N-“
The other man slams his fist into Lucent’s skull, knocking him out on contact.
“Dad!”
“You… I’m glad you finally showed up. We weren’t sure if you’d come,” the man smirks.
Crystal, without thinking, runs right to her father and beside the strange man. You focus on the assailant who… looks oddly familiar. His entire head, save his nose and mouth, are covered by a blue, metal helmet with a grey line around the cranium and across the top of his head. His ears, or where they would be, are extended out a bit while his eyes are a red glass. His nose is prominent, sitting above the thin moustache. He dons a pink long coat accompanied by grey sleeves and pants. His hands are grey as well, but the shine to them makes you think they’re metallic.
“You… look familiar,” you cross your arms. “Have we met befor-“ You look to the right where a man you certainly remember stands. “Shen? What’re you doing here?” You growl.
The snake of the Crane School stands with his hands behind his back, wearing an outfit which resembles Roshi’s in style. This one, however, has green with yellow sleeves along with purple pants. He wears glasses too, though a bit slimmer than your master’s. Finally, he hosts a hat which has a crane’s head sprouting from the top, covering whatever hair he has aside from the two, grey wings behind his ears. His face is skinny and smug as always, though you enjoy changing it to panic.
“You think you could get away from us after stealing our students and nearly killing Tao?”
“I didn’t mean- wait, Tao?” You look back to the robotic man. “You’re… that? Huh… I didn’t think my Kamehameha would do that much damage. You deserved it, though. You tried to kill me… twice.”
“This time we’ll succeed,” Tao smirks. “And will you shut up!” He shouts, backhanding Crystal.
Your eyes shrink at the sight. “Don’t touch her!” You scream, bursting forward.
As hit the middle of the crossroads, flying over the residents, another body attacks you from the left. You turn and block at the last second, redirecting the assault into a nearby building.
Unable to see your opponent, you gauge their position with your mind. With their fist lodged into your forearm, you slip your other hand under it and release a yellow blast. This forces the other to retreat and give you breathing room. You jump out of the building and face your opponents. Shen, Tao, and now this new man stands across from the fearful citizens.
This final man wears the same outfit as Shen, save for the hat. His head is completely bald and resembles an oval in shape more than anyone you’ve ever met. Despite his somewhat goofy looks, his eyes are sharp and serious. One other thing you notice is a giant lump on his back, under his coat.
“Three of you makes no difference,” you crack your knuckles. “I won’t let you get away with any of this.”
RWBY slips around from the side of the village, entering through the tree line. They dash from building to building, keeping themselves hidden.
“We’ll wait and see if (Y/N) needs help. But get ready to get the people outta there,” Ruby whispers.
“Got it,” the other three answer.
“Well, Gamra,” Shen looks to his student. “Why don’t you deal with this Turtle School filth?”
“As you command, master,” his lifeless voice responds.
Knowing he’s going to attack, you immediately fly to the sky so the battle can take place away from the villagers. Gamra follows swiftly, launching from his position to strike you mid-air. You start spinning just before he reaches you to kick his fist away then follow up with a second kick to his head. Instead of hitting, he lowers his neck right into his shirt.
“Ew, what?” You shiver.
As your foot passes over his head he pushes out again, knocking you off balance and following up with a Ki-charged punch to the stomach. It explodes on contact, sending you twirling through the air. Recovering quickly, you block an elbow only to grab it and throw Gamra over you then spin around and lodge your foot into his stomach. With him temporarily stunned by the attack, you pull your foot back and charge him knee first. It buries itself in the same spot your foot previously occupied. You bring you both higher into the air as it delves deeper and deeper into his stomach, then you quickly flip around and slam your other foot into his back, sending the Crane School member tumbling to the forest. You reorient yourself and watch as he falls.
His back… that wasn’t skin – it was too hard.
You land on the forest’s edge and await your opponent. You look over your shoulder at the two Crane Mentors watching. They aren’t shaking in their boots yet so it’s clear the battle isn’t over. As much as you’d love to have fun with this fight there’s too much on the line to mess around… at least that’s your initial goal. Who knows what’ll happen as the fight goes on.
“I can sense you, ya know,” you shout and cross your arms. “You won’t catch me by surprise. But giving up would be best for everyone. I want to get these people to safety. If I remember correctly, their fear will attract the Grimm.”
“When did he become so calculated?” Weiss whispers.
“He really does seem different when fighting,” Blake responds.
“The two guys are moving away. We can move up,” Ruby commands.
You tap your shoulder as you wait for your opponent.
“You know, Tien wasn’t quite as-“ You hop up, dodging the hands that burst from the ground. “Fearful!” You shout, blasting a wave of Ki at the ground.
It collides with his hands and swirls to the center of his palms like a twister. You catch this development but are unable to react when an even more powerful blast erupts from his palms. You're blasted far into the air, arms crossed in a meager attempt to defend yourself. Gamra halts the flow of Ki then burst out of the ground to follow you. He circles around and kicks you out of the ki, then follows below and kicks you higher into the clouds. You recover just before hitting the lowest cloud and dash towards him. Your fists collide, releasing a shockwave that pushes all the white fluff away. You push forward with all your might, keeping a confident smirk as you slowly overpower him. His expression is still bland, if a little stressed from being overwhelmed.
You throw your punch to the left, throwing him off guard for your other hand to connect with his face. You follow up with a knee to the stomach and three punches to the face. Gamra catches the third and slams his foot into your stomach. You grab his foot, slide it along to your side and drive your fist into his cheek. He bounces back and slams his head against yours. At that moment you see colours swirl around the impact area.
An Aura? I remember seeing those on the others. So this guy has both Aura and Ki. Interesting… but his fists are light… something is right with him. His heart isn’t in this.
You pull your head back and slam it into his, repaying the favour. He attempts to do the same thing but as he throws his head forward you lean back and cut him off with a knee to the chin. Your leg further kicks him over you but he’s no longer stunned. As he moves above you he throws a Ki blast at you which you spin around and punch his cheek. He retaliates, leading to a blur of fist and foot as you both descend to the forest.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“Hm… you think this would look good on me?” Mercury remarks as he holds up a magazine for Emerald to see.
“Yeah, sure…” She halfheartedly answered.
“Wow, you really are out of it,” he replies before getting to his feet. “I showed you a picture of a dress. Thought you’d jump right on that.”
“Eh, sorry,” the green haired woman shakes her head. “Just been thinking about what Cinder said.”
“What? About that kid? Who cares,” Mercury shrugs. “It’s not like he’ll be a problem. Why not ask her about it when she comes back?”
“No, it’s not that. The way she spoke about him to… whoever’s on the other side of her calls. They spoke as if they knew him.”
“Obviously they’d have to if she recognized him.”
“More than that,” she groans with annoyance. “Like they’ve known him for a long time… or at least of him. Doesn’t that weird you out?”
“Nah,” he waves off. “Why would I be? If we can’t do something then Cinder will. If she can’t then the other boss guy will. Just relax, Em. You’ll get wrinkles or something,” he ends with a smirk.
Emerald rolls her eyes. “Whatever. Clearly, you’re not the person to talk to.”
“You’re right, it’s Cinder,” he says again. “Anyway, I’m hungry. Want anything?”
“No.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“Why’re you doing this? What do you have to gain?” You sneer.
“I follow my orders,” Gamra blandly responds, throwing two high kicks.
You block the first and grab hold of the second one, then hauling him over yourself and slamming him into the ground. You bring back your hands and connect your palms.
“Kamehameha!” You unleash the blue beam upon the grounded man, destroying the small area and surrounding it with dust.
You pull back your hands a bit but keep them connected. You’re caught off guard when a pair of feet collide with your face. You crash through a few trees before spinning around and stopping yourself against a lucky one. Gamra immediately catches up and throws his fist at you which you manage to catch at the cost of the tree. You throw him to the right and follow up, dodging a kick and punch before kicking his leg, ribs, then missing his head and receiving a blow to the gut. His punch is laced with Ki once more and is far heavier than it was before.
It’s like he took no damage from my Kamehameha. Wait… early, when I fired at him…
“You can absorb Ki, huh?” You remark, dodging and throwing punches.
“Hm… Aura at first… Ki came later.”
“Evolving your Aura, huh?” You duck under two kicks then jump out of the way to dodge a blast. “That’s impressive. I didn’t know you could do that!” You collide forearms and continue your battle.
“My Masters taught me. They’ve been good to me.”
“So you’re fighting just because they told you to? Don’t you have any goals of your own?”
“My life is theirs. I gave it up long ago.”
“I don’t think you know how life works, buddy.”
You flow through the trees as your fists and feet are constantly thrown at one another. You collide fists once more, appearing just above the village. Suddenly a bright light erupts from the sky, catching everyone off guard. You and Gamra dash back and land on opposite ends of the street as you stare up at the strange, glowing ball.
“Who did that?” Shen shouts. “I didn’t see anyone throw anything.”
“A ball made of Ki… why?” Tao mumbles to himself.
“It’s so bright! What is it?” Ruby says, looking up at the ball with her eyes slightly covered.
“Do you think this is a signal from (Y/N)?” Yang speaks.
“No, he looks just as surprised as the others,” Blake remarks.
“Hm… we can use this to get some people out. Come on,” Weiss says, creeping closer to the group.
The rest of RWBY follows, two on each side of the street. The girls wave, getting the attention of some of the scared villagers. A light of hope sparks in their eyes as they whisper to their friends. Shen and Tao return their gaze to the battle and notice you’re almost hypnotized by the strange development.
“Garma, attack while he’s distracted. Use the Tri-Beam! Finish him!” Shen shouts.
Garma looks to his master and nods. You don’t pay him any mind as you stare blankly at the ball. Your eyes are completely wide and your breathing is heavy. You can almost feel your heart beating against your chest. Garma reaches the proper altitude and slams his hands together. He takes a deep breath and concentrates to balance the amount of energy he needs to use. If not used properly, the technique could kill him. His hands start to glow a dim yellow before he slowly pulls them apart. Small bits of lightning travel between his hands from the pressure. He sets them in the proper position, making you his primary target. Sweat drips down his face, falling to the ground far below.
“You spoke to me… I don’t know why. But I will follow my Master’s orders… with this extra Ki, I’ll end your life! Tri-Beam…” The entire village is suddenly covered in a deep orange glow that confused the villagers and RWBY alike.
“What’s happening?” Ruby whispers.
“It might be (Y/N)… I’m going to check on him!” Yang decides, leaving Ruby’s side to sprint through an alleyway.
“HA!” The shine grows every brighter as his energy crashes into you.
Yang falls on her butt upon the pressure of the technique. Everyone who isn’t part of the Crane School screams as dust flies everywhere. Villagers tumble over each other, gripping at the dirt for any sort of stability. Lucent and Crystal, still unconscious, roll a few feet too.
Garma huffs and puffs as he hovers over the village. He lets his hands fall to his side in a minor attempt to relax.
“I did it… wait…”
As the dust settles there’s barely anything left. A large, square hole is the result of his blast… but you’re still in the exact same position. Your clothes are somewhat torn but your eyes are glued to the ball.
“His arms… no, his body is bigger. What’s happening to him?”
Yang coughs and waves the dust out of her face. “(Y/N)? (Y/N)!” She shouts, crawling forward.
“There’s more of them,” Tao remarks, spotting the other members of RWBY on the ground.
“It’s of no consequence. We’ll have our revenge on the Turtle School!”
“Yang! Yang!” Ruby calls out. “Are you okay? What’s happening?”
Garma’s eyes widen as he’s given a show unparalleled. Your eyes shift from black to red as your body begins to swell. Your muscles grow to an extent that tears apart your remaining clothes. Your fangs sharpen whilst your mouth completely changes into a snout. Brown hair takes over your entire body as you grow past the buildings. The terrain shakes at this ungodly transformation.
“He’s changing… into an ape? No… this is something else,” Garma remarks.
“What is that?” Tao points at the growing monster. “I didn’t know he could change!”
“Faunus can’t do that… what is he?” Shen says as he slowly starts backing away. “His power is incredible… I… we can’t beat him…”
RWBY looks in terror as their friend mutates into a monster they’ve never seen before. You’re bigger than any Grimm they’ve ever read about or witnessed. Your being towers over everyone, casting a shadow over the village. The non-fighters begin to panic and flee, not caring about the two men who held them hostage. After a horrendous transformation, you finally stop… your new, ape-like form sits still for a moment. Gamra, for the first time in years, breaks a sweat as his eyes meet your pure red ones. With speeds unnatural for a being your size, you slap Gamra into the trees, shattering his Aura and, upon contact with the trunk, breaking his neck.
You immediately start beating your chest like an animal as you let out an earth-shattering roar. Without wasting time, you turn around and spot more people running away. Your mouth fills with yellow Ki and, with an exhale, you release a devastating beam right along the street. Save for the Crane School men, nobody is able to move out of the way. Nearly all of the villagers, including Crystal and Lucent, are disintegrated in mere moments. The explosion sends shockwaves barreling through the village, shattering nearly every building and grounding all standing humans.
Yang slides across the dirt and buried under a collapsing building. She covers her face the best she can as chunks of cement and wood crash down on her.
“What’s happening?” Ruby shouts as she desperately holds onto Crescent Rose which is lodged in the ground.
Weiss’ glyphs are set below the three girls to give them some extra friction. “He changed… it’s clear he’s not himself.”
“What gave you that idea?” Blake sarcastically yells.
The shockwaves soon end, letting everyone take a moment to breathe. Tao and Shen pant as they hide behind the debris of a building.
“This is insane! He’ll kill us!” Tao whispers.
“We best flee for now. We won’t lose our lives in such a pathetic manner.”
You walk over the hole, howling with each step. These sounds scare away any and all animals in the area – Grimm included.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“Well, well, well,” Cinder recites from a distance. “Looks like I was right after all. Now that my test is done I best make my leave,” she quickly turns away, avoiding the shine of the ball. “I’d be surprised if he went unnoticed for much longer.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You release another three blasts with no rhyme or reason. They devastate the forest and kill anything unfortunate enough to be around. Shen and Tao wait for you to pass by before sprinting towards the forest. This catches your attention, giving you reason to unleash a blast at them. The two elders dash forward, barely evading the lethal attack.
“Quick, while he’s distracted!” Ruby commands.
The three girls follow Yang’s path to try and find the lost teammate. The ground shakes each time you step and blast but the girls keep steady. This works in Yang’s favour – making it easier to push off the debris atop her. She brings her hand to her mouth and coughs as she crawls away from the fallen building.
“Yang!” Ruby slides to her sister’s side. “Are you okay?”
“Yeah, I’m fine. But what about him?” She looks up at the giant Ape hounding the Cranes. “How do we get him back to normal?”
“I… don’t know,” Ruby shakes her head.
“Faunus don’t change like that,” Blake speaks. “Whatever happened to him… it’s not normal.”
“I’ve never heard of anyone changing like that in our history books,” Weiss adds. “We have nothing to go on.”
Another thunderous roar forces the girls to cover their ears. You smash trees out of your way to try and find your prey, but alas they have evaded you amongst the trees. With no clear target, you release a barrage of blasts from your mouth in any and all directions.
“What about that ball?” Weiss points to the shining object. “He changed after that thing appeared.”
“Got it,” Ruby nods, grabbing her sniper and firing five shots at the ball.
The four watch as their bullets do nothing to the ball. They do, however, get your attention. Your hulking form stomps its way back to the village.
“Oh no…”
“Move, now!” Weiss screams, summoning a large speed glyph.
The four run in different directions, barely evading the blast you spit at them. Ruby, however, tumbles and skids across the ground. A shadow slowly looms over the young girl. She slowly and shakily looks up at the giant Ape before her. Fear grips her – immobilizes her. Eyes shaking, lip quivering, she can’t do a thing as you raise your fist and prepare to slam it down on the young girl.
“RUBY! MOVE NOW!” Yang screams, running towards her sister.
Weiss points her sword towards the event, both putting a speed glyph under Yang and multiple halting glyphs in the way of your fist. This gives Yang the time and speed to get to Ruby and drag her out of the way of your fist. Seconds later Ruby’s prior position is crushed beneath your grand fist.
Your red eyes look over at the white-haired woman. Even she’s shaken by the threatening glare you give. You open your mouth and shoot a beam at Weiss. She tries to flee but she’s nowhere near fast enough. She barely avoids the brunt of the attack but it still shatters her Aura. She crashes into a collapsed building, splinters and sharp cement cutting into her skin and tearing her clothes. Her weapon is lost in the wreckage and her body shakes.
“I… ah, I…”
“Weiss!” Blake leaps to her side. “Are you okay?”
Gunfire erupts from the background as Ruby and Yang fire at you. Ruby speeds around as fast as she can, firing every so often. Yang does the same, if not as fluid.
“Yeah…” Weiss feigns a smile. “No…” Her head falls. “My arm… I can’t feel it.”
“Hold on, I’ll get you out of here,” Blake says as she wraps Weiss’ arm over her shoulder. “Come on… stay awake.”
The two stagger their way across the debris and towards the forest. Blake moves as quickly as she can to place Weiss in a safer position. Once reaching the edge of the forest Blake sets Weiss down and immediately runs towards the battle.
“Stay safe, Weiss!” She shouts.
Ruby fires her sniper towards the ground to recoil herself higher in the air then hurries away with her Semblance. She goes around behind you but doesn’t notice the tail coming right down on her. It cuts her off completely, shattering her Aura on impact and slamming her to the ground. The girls coughs up blood as she bounces off the ground. Once still, her eyes close and she falls unconscious.
“Ruby! NO!” Yang’s eyes flare red as she sprints towards you. “HYAAAA!” She jumps towards you, arm cocked back to attack.
“Yang!”
Blake’s shouts don’t change the outcome. You swiftly grab the blonde girl and begin crushing her in your left arm. She screams as her Aura barely prevents her bones from shattering. The Faunus jumps onto your left arm and runs along it, swinging with both her weapons. Once reaching your bicep, she jumps towards your faces and slashes along your eyes. You drop Yang and swipe at Blake, only missing thanks to her Semblance. Blake catches her partner midair and lands in front of you, quickly running through your legs to get away. She throws Yang to the left and slips her hands around Ruby’s waist.
Blake runs as fast as her feet will take her, but it’s not enough. You turn around and spot the black and red figure sprinting down the dirt road. You pull back your fist and slam it down on the two…
Blake keeps running, feeling the fist nearly crush her. She looks back momentarily to see Yang holding you back with a shine of yellow around her. Even with the boost she received from her Semblance, her Aura is far too low to actually fight you. But it makes no difference as you bring your fist back up and slam it down on her once more. She barely manages to hold it back but this destroys her Aura. You pick the defenseless girl up and throw it at Blake. She can’t get out of the way in time thus takes the hit. Yang’s head connects with Blake’s, knocking both girls out in an instant. The three bodies topple over one another and become motionless.
Weiss, who’s left the hiding place, sees her team falter. You beat your chest and roar, letting out more blast in random locations.
“No… (Y/N)! STOP IT!”
Your giant form turns around to face the small girl. You open your mouth and fire a blast at Weiss. With no Aura and limited mobility, Weiss just watches as the blast comes closer. Her clothes whip in the wind, hair waving back as her death inches closer.
And just like that… everything goes black.
Haha, this was fun… I wrote this in two days… I’m so ashamed of myself. Jesus Christ… but, hey, I’m happy about it. I love this story and what it will become so writing more and more of it will be awesome! Plus, people tend to like stories with more chapters (unless it’s a goddamn one-shot) so, hey, maybe this won’t be overshadowed by Crimson Shadow for much longer. Probably not, but still.
Anyway, not much to say this time around. I’ll see you next time!
Want to keep up with me? Know what chapter’s coming out next and the progress of them? Follow me on Twitter! Twitter . com (slash) Chinsangan
Questions? Comments? Concerns? Advice? Send me a message! See ya!
And finally thank you to the Beta Reader: TheNameIsntImportant
Chapter 7: The Rage of Sorrow, The Desparity of Confusion!
Chapter Text
Chapter 7: The Rage of Sorrow, The Disparity of Confusion!
A rush of pain washes over you as your senses finally return. You open your eyes and groan at the groggy feeling. “Ah… where am I..?” You look around the room – your room. “Huh… did I dream that?” You lift your upper body off the bed and scratch your head. “I was at the village… and…” You throw the covers off and get out of bed, stretching your muscles out after so much rest. “Maybe I should check there… just in case. Man, I don’t know what happened to me. Everything’s so hazy.”
You grab your pants and slip into them, making sure your tail pokes out of the custom hole you made. With said tail, you snatch your black t-shirt and toss it over you. It perfectly falls onto you, showing you’ve done that same skit before. You glance at wrist guards, belt, and orange top you also normally wear and shrug. This is one of those times you’ll go without. You finish up with your boots, pat yourself down, and run towards the window. In a flash, you fly across Beacon’s grounds and head to your destination.
“Yang and them were with me… maybe I should have checked there first,” you turn yourself around but still fly forward. “Well, whatever. No need to bother them if I’m wrong. But man, do I feel sore,” you roll your shoulder.
Going faster than your average flight, you reach the village in no time. You stop over it and are completely shocked at what’s there. Holes in the ground, smoke rising from the destroyed buildings and the patches of destruction in the forest.
“Everything’s… gone… what happened? Crystal? Lucent!” You scream, zooming down to their building.
Despite being in ruins, you throw bits of stone and wood away as you claw your way to the ground. Your method is rushed and shaky, mostly because your arms aren’t relaxed. Every muscle in your body is tense… you’re scared.
“I was right… something happened, it had to, the Shen, Tao, that turtle Faunus was here! RWBY too, an-“ You stop when your feel your hand grab hold of something foreign. You pull it out of the rubble and stare at Weiss’ rapier. “Her weapon… if she doesn’t have it then something happened to them! Something happened and I can't remember!” You drop your knees and slam your fist into the ground. You slowly let your fingers spread out as your frustration dissipates. “Okay… wait… I sense people,” you look to your right. “Five? Yeah, they’re close. Maybe they know!” You burst off your foot and start running across the debris.
You keep Weiss’ weapon to give back when you see her again. You enter the forest and run through some bushes, pass by some trees, and eventually reach a small clearing with a large stone. Five people – four women and one man – are carving something into the stone. You stop at the edge of the clearing, smiling at the sight of familiar faces. One of the women you know fairly well – Dianna. She’s a farmer who sells the best fruits and vegetables around. You and Lucent always bought from her and it was always worth it.
You run towards the group and slightly focus on what they’re doing to the stone. You stop dead in your tracks when you read the first few lines.
“Names… I recognize- wait, Lucent? Crystal? Hey, what’s going on?” You shout.
The five turn around and instantly go pale.
“You…”
Your confused and ignorant expression would be cute to most, but given the context, is insulting to them.
“What’s wrong? What happened to the vil-“
“YOU KILLED MY DAUGHTER!” Dianna screams. “YOU KILLED THEM ALL! GET OUT OF HERE YOU FAUNUS FILTH! GET THE FUCK OUT OF HERE!” She wails, throwing the knife she held at you.
You easily catch it but your expression doesn’t change.
“You’ve… never called me that. You never cared who was a Faunus or not. I-I didn’t kill anyone!”
“You killed everyone… I hope you burn in hell… I hope the Grimm rip you apart,” the man quivers. “Get out of here… you insult their lives with your presence.”
“We should have killed him when he was a baby.”
“Crystal and Lucent,” you barely whisper. “Crystal and Lucent… are they…”
“We’re all that’s left,” one woman responds. “Please… leave now.”
“LEAVE!”
You turn away from the people but can’t muster up the will to move. A tear slides down your cheek and drops to the ground.
“I… didn’t kill them… did I?” You bring your hand to your head. “I can’t… remember. Yang… Weiss,” you look down at the sword. “They’ll know. I need to see them now. They’ll know I didn’t do it!”
You blast off into the air like a shining white bullet. You blast through clouds, leaving a clear trail of where you’ve been. You descend to Beacon and head right for the dormitories. Without any thought, you fly in through RWBY’s window. You slide to a halt and look around the room. It’s eerily empty… as if nobody’s been here for some time.
“Not here… where are they? Damn…” You lightly toss Weiss’ weapon onto her bed then turn to run and jump out the window. You land outside the dorms and start walking.
“-all came, yeah. I heard RWBY was totally beaten,” a female voice whispers.
You look over at a group of girls gossiping on a bench. You sprint over to them, all of them being surprised by your sudden presence.
“What do you want?”
“Shut up, he’s the one who came back with RWBY.”
“You sure?”
“Mhm, except he wasn’t hurt. That’s what I heard, anyway.”
“RWBY was hurt?” You ask.
“You didn’t know? All of RWBY is in the infirmary! Tell us w- hey!”
You run off towards the medical wing, not even remembering you can fly. Your speed is more than enough to get you there. Many students feel your breeze as you pass but fail to register you. It’s a sudden gust that scares some while giving others a nice view. You turn the corner and spot the building ahead. You dash off your back foot and glide over the ground, dust bellowing behind you. You slide to a halt just before the door, using the momentum to open the door and run in.
There’s a desk with a middle aged woman working on her computer. She looks up at you the second your hands land on her desk.
“RWBY! Are they here?”
She looks down at her computer and gets to work. Her fingers dance along the keys, showing how much experience she has.
“Down the hall, right, up the stairs, second floor, straight, left, third door on the left.”
“Uh… could you repeat tha-“ She hands you a small note with the directions. “Oh, thanks.”
You start to run around the desk but she stops you with words.
“Are you (Y/N)?”
You stop and turn around. “Oh, yeah… why?”
“Hm… You better have a good excuse, boy. From what I heard, you’re being put on trial for this.”
“What?” You rustle your hair in a panic. “Trial? But I didn’t do anything!”
“Mm… I’ll let Ozpin know you’re here. Don’t be surprised if he shows up.”
You sigh. “Yeah… okay, thank you!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“-and having such a dangerous individual in Vale will cause panic. You do know what happens if there’s panic, Ozpin,” a fierce, older voice says over the speakers.
“I’m well aware, but I don’t believe the people will panic. We already spoke to the survivors and they acknowledged the danger of spreading panic,” Ozpin calmly responds, his eyes glaring over at all the teachers
“That’s not the point, Ozpin! You’ve seen the footage! He could destroy Vale!”
“It’s unwise to dismiss him. We have yet to speak with (Y/N) or team RWBY. With all due respect, they will provide more information than scared civilians.”
“If I may,” Glynda steps forward. “We have all taught (Y/N) and learned his behavior. While it is true that he’s practically obsessed with fighting… he’s never shown any signs of ill intent. Stupidity, perhaps, but never anything malicious. None of us believe he’s an intentional threat to Vale or Beacon.”
The rest of the teachers affirm her words with single words or quick sounds. The man on the other side of the call sighs.
“Ozpin… we can’t just brush this off like it’s nothing. Clearly, there is something different about the boy that we must figure out. Thus… we have contacted Atlas. Their top scientists are willing to study him.”
Ozpin taps his coffee cup as he thinks. “First I want to speak with him and team RWBY… after, I will accompany him to Atlas.”
“Very well, Ozpin.”
The headmaster lets out a quiet sigh of relief. “Thank you, Councilman, now,” he looks down at his scroll and the message displayed on it. “I have some business. It was a pleasure speaking with you,” he finishes, ending the call there. “You’re all at ease,” he looks to the teachers. “However, if you spot anything strange please let me know.”
The teachers shift out of the way for Ozpin to reach the elevator.
“You know something, don’t you?” Glynda speaks out.
“I know that a transformation like that would not happen naturally, which means someone forcefully triggered it,” Ozpin stops in the elevator and turns around, facing the teachers again. “At least, that’s my speculation,” he ends with a smile before the elevator doors close.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You slide to a halt in front of a door and burst through. The door’s handle slams into the wall, locking it in place. You take a few steps in and take in the four beds, four girls, all broken and recovering. Bruises, casts, medical equipment everywhere. You clench your fist and grind your teeth.
“Was it me..? I don’t remember hurting them… I don’t remember hurting anyone… wait, my senzu beans!” You happily exclaim, turning to the door again. “I can ask the- gah,” you smack into someone, falling onto your butt. “Hey… oh, Ozpin!” You get back up and lock eyes with the older man. “I… eh… man, I’ve never had so many weird emotions at once,” you say, rubbing the back of your neck. “But I can heal them! I have-“
“(Y/N)… you are suspected of murdering the majority of a village, a Huntsman, and nearly killing a group of students,” he starts, setting up a grim atmosphere right away. “I need you to tell me everything you remember. Everything.”
You cross your arms and sigh. “Fine… but can we at least walk to my room while we talk?”
“Of course…”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“And that’s it, I swear. This weird ball appeared in the sky and…” You grab the handle of your door and blankly stare ahead. “It all went black…”
You unlock the door and enter the room. Ozpin stays behind in the hallway, taking in everything you said.
“I see… it’s as I expected. Thank you, (Y/N). I promise, nothing bad will happen to you.”
You leave the room, closing the door behind you with a brown pouch in hand. “I… did I do it, Ozpin?”
Ozpin sees the hints of fear in your eyes. It’s clear what you said earlier was true. Anyone would be sad or confused in this situation, but the honesty he can feel from you moves him ever so slightly.
“I… don’t know, (Y/N). I don’t think so… none of us think so,” he affirms.
“Heh… I guess. I’ve never really lost anyone before… and I can’t even remember Crystal or Lucent dying. It’s… really weird. I can’t let RWBY die too,” you say with a sharp tone.
“They won’t. Come, let's deliver these to them.”
“Wait, do you know Senzu beans?”
“Hm, of course,” he replies with a smirk. “I’m well connected, you know.”
“I guess a headmaster would be.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You and Ozpin return to RWBY’s room. All the girls are the exact same as how you left them – laying on their beds, recovering from their wounds. You grab four beans from the pouch, handing two to Ozpin.
“Here, I’ll give them to Yang and Ruby.”
You walk to the left side of the room where the sisters reside. You start with Ruby, placing the bean on her lips.
“Ruby… eat this. It’s yummy, I promise.” Her mouth slightly opens, allowing for the bean to fall in.
She starts chewing, thus you move onto Yang.
“Hey, eat this. You’ll feel better, I promise,” you whisper, placing the bean at her lips.
Like Ruby, she allows it in and chews it.
“Yang!” Ruby shoots up from her bed, quickly changing to a confused state.
All her team members regain consciousness too, their wounds healing instantly, Auras refilling completely.
“Wait, where am I?” Ruby looks around the room, her senses taking in too much at once.
She sees her teammates, she realizes she’s in the medical wing, she ponders what happened at the village, and lastly, she sees you. Her eyes widen as she remembers the terrifying red eyes that shook her to the core.
The others experience the same fear as their eyes land on you. Your roar still echoes in their ears, you impact still shakes their body. All the feelings of fear, anger, hopelessness, and hatred project through their eyes, locking you in place from sheer intensity. They all recognize their healed bodies and… that they no longer have to be here.
“Guys… you’re kinda freaking me out,” you end with a weak snicker, looking around to all of them.
They all, in different fashions, get out of their beds and leave the room. Blake and Yang pass by you, making sure to avoid contact.
“G-Guys?” You softly call out, but they all leave you behind, not even addressing Ozpin.
You stare out the door long after they’ve left, confused. “Ozpin… did I say something wrong?”
Ozpin shakes his head, genuinely feeling bad for your situation. “No, (Y/N)… you didn’t. You’re dimissed. You may… do whatever you wish. But please don’t leave Beacon. That’s an order.”
“I… okay. Ozpin, I didn’t do it! Why are people so mad at me? Why wouldn’t they-“
“Take some time, (Y/N),” he sharply replies, taking his leave.
You cross your arms and turn towards the open window.
“I know I didn’t do anything… I know it,” you tighten the grip on your sleeves. “Why can’t I understand…”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Hours have passed since team RWBY recovered. Ozpin, after giving them some time to collect themselves and re-dress, requested each of them to give a detailed report on what exactly happened. In the dark room with merely a table and two chairs, Ozpin interviewed each girl one by one. Patterns arose from their stories, solidifying Ozpin’s pre-existing theories.
“I didn’t know what to do,” Ruby shakes her head. “One second we had a plan and the next… everyone disappeared.”
“I’d never seen a creature so powerful,” Weiss recollects. “Nobody could have stopped him… I don’t even know how we’re still alive… but I know it wasn’t thanks to him.”
“Professor, he’s not normal. No Faunus transforms like that. He had to have done it on purpose. I thought it might have been the strange ball in the sky but I felt nothing. I didn’t think he was like that… I don’t want to think it,” Blake shakes her head adamantly. “But there’s no other option. He… tried to kill us.”
“He’s so gentle… so innocent. He gave me a laugh at how clueless he could be. I never thought he could be so terrifying… I never want to relive that again,” Yang’s hands shake on the table. “I really think he could kill us all… destroy this whole place.”
“We couldn’t do a thing! I didn’t know how to react, what to tell Weiss and Blake!” Ruby continues. “I wanted to find Yang, and then Weiss was hurt, and… I was so scared…”
“I never thought I’d have to watch my teammates fall like that… I don’t think I’ll ever be able to forget it,” Weiss’ eyes fall to her intertwined fingers.
“I don’t know what happened to those other men who attacked that place… but they’re not nearly as dangerous as him. At first, I thought it was a good thing… but… well, not anymore.”
“I’m just glad Ruby is okay,” Yang nods her head. “We’re all alive… which is more than I can say for those poor people. I… I don’t know what to think, Professor. In the infirmary, he seemed so confused, but I can’t forget those eyes… that ferocious nature he had… and the people he killed.”
Ozpin shuts off the recording then sets his head on his hands. The reports have all been sent to the Council and the teachers of Beacon. You’re a high profile target now, known across all of Remnant… yet he knows you shouldn’t be. Ozpin stands up and grabs his cane as he walks by it. He has one more place to visit before the day is done… one person to thank.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
The trip is short… extremely short, but that’s only because Ozpin is a resourceful individual. He stands on a floating platform high above Remnant. There is very little on the surface – a few trees that are lined in specific areas along with a temple acting as a focal point. Ozpin smiles at the… somewhat familiar sight. It’s a calming place, at least, one unaffected by the horrors of the planet.
He starts walking, clicking his cane every step with a little more force than usual. His eyes lock on the temple, waiting for its inhabitants to reveal themselves. Of course, they do when Ozpin reaches the halfway point. A large being steps out of the temple starts approaching Ozpin. The most distinguishing feature of this person is their skin. He’s mostly green aside from pink and red markings on his revealed arms. His ears are long and sharp at the ends, mimicking his eyes which would strike true terror in anyone he faced. His head, for the most part, is covered by a white turban with a purple tone on the top. He also dons a large cape that falls around his ankles, though it also largely covers his shoulders and his neck. His other attire is a purple gi, bearing loose similarities to yours, with a blue belt. He finishes with red arm bands that barely cover his wrists and brown, pointed shoes that still show a silver of his leg.
“As welcoming as ever,” Ozpin says with a warm smile.
“Anyone who knows I’m here doesn’t need a warm welcome,” his deep voice replies. “What is it that you want, Ozpin?”
The two stop before each other, Ozpin having to look up at the incredibly tall man.
“I’m here to thank you. Without your intervention, my students would’ve been killed.”
“I didn’t do it to save your students. He was a threat to the planet in that state, as I told you long ago.”
“Well, I’d say he’s not so bad now. It’s his… well, primal instinct.”
“His Saiyan blood, you mean? The thing you’re hiding from everyone else.”
Ozpin smiles before turning away and walking towards the edge.
“Come, Piccolo, might as well have a better view while we talk.”
Piccolo begrudgingly follows Ozpin to the edge of the lookout.
“You know why I’ve kept that secret. The Grimm are still a threat to humanity… they don’t need to know there’s more to the universe. The panic it would cause… well, you know.”
“Of course I know. If you had let me kill him when he first arrived then we wouldn’t have this problem, to begin with.”
Ozpin turns his head to Piccolo, his eyes housing such intensity that makes even Piccolo sweat.
“He is not to be harmed, do you understand?”
“Y-Yeah, I got the message the first time.”
“Perfect,” he ends with a smile. “Now, did you discover who used the power ball? Was it another Saiyan?”
“I’m not sure,” Piccolo crosses his arms. “After seeing it I know I could replicate the technique, so assuming it’s another Saiyan is premature. They also covered their tracks well…”
“Do you think..?” He looks back to his large friend.
“No… if it was a plot from Salem, what would she gain from it? Unleashed a Great Ape in a remote village does nothing. I think someone was confirming whether or not a Saiyan was here… and they got their confirmation.”
“It wasn’t the other Saiyans… we would’ve detected their arrival… which means whoever the culprit is, they’ve been on Remnant for some time.”
“Seems like it. But there’s one thing I wanted to discuss.”
“Yes?”
“His tail…” These words make Ozpin look back to the skyline. “It’s a hindrance to him now. If someone’s able to trigger his Great Ape form at will, it would cause chaos. I didn’t remove it out of respect for you… however, I advise you remove it. It’s too much of a liability.”
“I understand that,” Ozpin nods. “I’ll ensure it’s removed in Atlas… permanently.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Coco and Velvet saunter towards the cafeteria for lunch. At least, if Velvet gets her way.
“Come on, there’s this cool new place in Vale we could go,” Coco harasses her Faunus friend.
“I don’t really want to go all the way to Vale, Coco. Can’t we just sit down in the cafeteria?”
“Oh, fine… But next time we go!” Coco wags her finger at Velvet.
“That’s fair…” Her eyes wander past her partner and spot a familiar face. “Hey… that’s (Y/N)!” She points past Coco.
The other girl follows her finger and spots a first year training in the sky.
“Oh, I’ve heard of him,” she leans on her hip, resting one hand on that side. “Really good at fighting, kinda dumb.”
“Coco!”
“It’s just what I’ve heard,” she shrugs, leaving her hands in the air. “I haven’t met him.”
“He’s nice. Hey, (Y/N)!” She jogs over, waving.
Curled into a ball, you spin down to the ground and open up, sliding across the grass on all fours. You immediately get to your feet, clapping your palms together to form a Kamehameha. Your eyes are fiercely locked on your enemy, the Turtle Faunus who’s fight you never finished. However, your image training is void when you hear your name called. You stand up straight, allowing the blast to dissipate.
“Oh, hey Velvet,” you respond with a smile. “How’s your day? And… you’re Coco, right?” You say with a little skepticism “I can’t remember if we’ve met or not. I’m not good at these things?” You end with a chuckle.
“Yeah, name’s Coco. I’ve heard a bunch about you from… well, everyone. You’re quite popular around Beacon.”
“I… don’t think popular is the right word,” you scratch your neck. “But thanks. Did you guys need anything? I mean, not to be rude, I was just wondering.”
“Do you want to join us for lunch?”
“Oh, it’s lunch time?” You scratch your head. “Yeah, sure, I’d never turn down some food. Plus I’m about done for today and I’m not allowed to leave, so… yeah!”
“You’re not allowed to leave?” Coco repeats as you three start walking together.
“Oh, yeah, it’s nothing. Just, uh, got something to do, you know?”
“Hm…” Coco places her hand on her chin and leans closer to you. “Fine, okay,” she backs off.
You dart your eyes between Coco and Velvet, a bit scared of the former.
“Don’t worry, Coco’s just playing.”
“Am I?”
“Are you?”
Your trio enters the busy cafeteria, getting a few glances from closer tables.
“Man, this place sucks,” Coco huffs. “Why are we here again?”
“Because I told Yatsuhashi and Fox we’d meet them here, you know, in the place they’re usually eating.”
“They eat here… they always said they’re training…” She raises her shaking fist. “I’ll kill’em.”
“That’s a little harsh, don’t you think? Isn’t that Yamswemunchi guy really huge? You’re… kinda small.”
Coco’s eyes light with fire, heating up the entire room. “Who’s… small?”
“You,” your innocent smile only stokes Coco’s flame.
“Hey, look, an empty table! We should go there,” Velvet interrupts, pushing both of your still bodies to the target.
You take your seats and relax.
“Because I brought you here I’ll grab food for all of us,” Velvet says, standing at the end of the table. “I’ll be back,” she waves.
“So, you train a lot, huh?” Coco starts up a conversation.
“Huh, yeah! I really like getting stronger. Fighting is just a lot of fun for me.”
“I’ve heard. You’re the top fighter for first years, right?”
“I have no idea,” you shrug. “I just kinda fight. I don’t pay attention to stuff like that.”
As you and Coco converse, a different topic is spoken of at a different table. A young man with mostly brown attire to match his hair and eyes, moping with his friends.
“Seriously? Everyone died?” His friend shakes his head in disbelief.
“I know… I… it wasn’t even the Grimm… it was some type of monster,” he rests his head on the table. “Here, take a look,” he grabs his scroll from his pocket and slides it on the table. “One of the survivors sent this to me… said it gave some closure or… revenge or something. I don’t think they were supposed to, but… it’s there.”
His three friends gather around the scroll and watch the video. It’s clear, showing a group of people huddled together, fearful for their lives. The video focuses on two people, one flying and one on the ground, hovering over a hole.
“Hey… that one on the bottom… isn’t that a kid who goes here?” Someone whispers.
“Looks like… what the..?”
The video shows your near disturbing transformation onto a giant monkey. You smack the other man around before blasting at the crowd. The scroll holder barely manages to move out of the way, but it’s shown that only a handful of people escape that blast. The video ends afterward, leaving the viewers shocked and confused.
“That’s… hey, bro, the one who changed… I’m pretty sure he goes to Beacon.”
“What?” His head raises.
“Yeah… he beat me up the other day,” the man looks around the room. “Maybe he’s here… wait, hey!” The scroll is taken from his hand as the sufferer walks away.
“So that little thing transforms, huh?” You closely examine Coco’s purse. “Whoa… that’s weird. My pole just extends.”
A light shade of pink washes on Coco’s cheeks. “Your… what?”
“Yeah, grows as long as I want it! It’s awesome! Do you wanna see it? I think it’s in my room.”
“Uh… okay, I’ll give you this – that’s the boldest offer I’ve ever heard.”
“It… is?” You tilt your head to the side. “I guess nobody else has what I have, so…”
“Okay, you are an interesting one,” she pats your shoulder. “I might actually take you up on that offer.”
“Oh, cool! Let's go, then,” you say as you hop off the seat.
You feel an intense feeling coming from somewhere in the room. You shift your gaze from Coco to the vast room. Almost immediately, you spot a man approaching you with a powerful purpose. Coco looks between you and the man, recognizing the same feeling you are.
“You… what’s your name?”
“Uh… (Y/N),” you say with a shrug. “What’s you-“
“Shut up.”
“Hey, that’s a little rude, don’t you think?”
He slams a scroll down on the table, making sure it’s oriented towards you and Coco, to an extent. You lean over and check out the scroll. Your eyes immediately widen in surprise at the scene of you staring up at the sky.
“Hey, it’s you… who were you… whoa!”
You both watch in shock and horror as you transform and slaughter the villagers.
“No way… (Y/N)… was that you?”
The video keeps repeating, showing you transform into a monster you’ve never seen before.
“I want you to say it… I want you to say it was you… I want you to tell me why you did it!” He shouts, grabbing your shirt. “WHY’D YOU KILL THEM? WHY? WHY GODDAMNIT!” His angry shouts morph into weeping as he starts throwing weak punches at your chest.
His outburst draws attention from the other students. Most are confused, few know exactly what’s wrong. RWBY is that group that knows what’s happening, considering the look on your face.
“It… wasn’t me… I didn’t do it.”
“IT’S RIGHT THERE! DON’T LIE TO ME, YOU MURDER! YOU MONSTER!” His punches become stronger, but nothing that bothers you. “WHY? WHY? WHY? WHY?”
“Hey, get off him!” Coco steps up and pulls the boy back. “He doesn’t know what you’re talking about,” Coco says in an attempt to calm him down.
Like RWBY, Coco can see the utter confusion and sorrow in your eyes. You keep watching over and over as you transform into a massive ape and kill all the people you used to know… including Crystal and Lucent.
“I didn’t… I… did?” Your black pupils shake as realization slowly sets in. “I… so RWBY…” You look over to RWBY and JNPR’s table, locking eyes with Yang’s purple orbs. “I did… that’s why… I thought I said something wrong, but…” You look down at your hands and the invisible blood they’re lathered in. “I…” You close your fists and recollect your thoughts. “I’m sorry. I did it… I don’t remember it, but I did it.”
The student stops struggling, instead limping on Coco’s arms. “You… don’t even remember? They were killed for no reason? FOR NO PURPOSE?” He screeches.
“I… don’t know what to say. Coco, sorry for the disruption. I’ll see you later,” you turn and start walking towards the door, all eyes pushing you further to the door.
“I’ve never seen him so sad,” Ruby comments.
“Were we hard on him?” Blake crosses her arms. “But he-“
“That wasn’t him,” Yang cuts in. “I know it…” Her mind flashes to your silly smiles, clueless gaze, and even your determination to save even animals. “I know it.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“Okay, we got a plan,” Ruby says as they walk down the hallway late at night.
“We’re just apologizing,” Weiss shakes her head. “Why make a big deal out this?”
“Because this whole thing is blowing out of proportion,” Yang sighs. “It's starting to go around that he killed innocent people, and they’ve put together that we were there. I don’t know how, but…”
“Guys… check it out,” Blake points down the hall.
The girls peer down and see Glynda leaving your room.
“Come on, lets see!” Ruby runs past her teammates. “Hey! Where’s (Y/N)?”
“Girls… what are you doing…” Glynda sighs as the other three catch up. “Nevermind, it’s clear why you’re here. I suppose you deserve an explanation. “(Y/N) was shipped to Atlas earlier today.”
“What?”
“The council decided the needed to research his… condition, for lack of a better term. Besides, things are getting heated here between the event earlier and your interviews. I-“
“Our interviews?”
“Hm? Well, yes. You confirmed that he did transform with murderous intent.”
“But he wouldn-“
“We know,” Glynda raises her hand. “None of us are pleased with this outcome, but that doesn’t change what happened. (Y/N) destroyed a village and murdered innocents while nearly killing you four. That’s not something that just goes away… I’m sorry,” she shakes her head. “We’ll keep you four posted, I know you’re all friends. Now, please, return to your room.”
The four slowly mop their way back to their room.
“He’s gone… cause of us?” Ruby whispers.
“We have to do something,” Yang claps her hands.
“We can’t do anything… we just have to wait and see,” Weiss crosses her arms. “It’s not like we can go to Atlas, anyway.”
“Damnit,” Yang clenches her fist. “I hope he’s okay.”
“Me too.”
“I agree.”
“Same.”
Funnily enough, this chapter was intended to be longer. My original draft had extra stuff here… but I’m making a small change. Basically switching the timeline of events to make everything flow a little better. That, unfortunately, meant that this chapter took a hit in length. That’s okay, though. I don’t like making chapters longer just for the sake of making them long. If it completed its goal then I’m happy! The upside is… next chapter is gonna be awesome. Some people might be a little confused on why some things might happen, but trust me. I’ll explain it more next chapter, but everything just works with my new plan.
Thank you, everyone, who’s continued to support this story! It’s always awesome to see support for new projects. Then again, it’s not as bad as trying a completely new fandom (which I may be doing soon, but that doesn’t mean this or Crimson Shadow will stop) but still! I’m very grateful for your support! Comments, reviews, likes, all that really makes this worthwhile! Seriously, I mean that.
Anyway, that’s my time. I’ll you all in the next chapter!
Want to keep up with me? Know what chapter’s coming out next and the progress of them? Follow me on Twitter! Twitter . com (slash) Chinsangan
Questions? Comments? Concerns? Advice? Send me a message! See ya!
And finally thank you to the Beta Reader: TheNameIsntImportant
Chapter 8: A Shocking Revelation! The Truth is in the Tail!
Chapter Text
Chapter 8: A Shocking Revelation! The Truth is in the Tail!
“I can fly faster than this, you know?” You say to Ozpin as you walk around the room.
“Speed isn’t what’s important. However, you seem a little happier now.”
You stop and turn to Ozpin, a smirk on your face. “I guess. As… much as it really sucks that all of this happened, at least I know it was me… and I know why people are angry. Before, I was just confused. Now, I know! But it’s hard for me to feel regret since I don’t remember doing it. It’s weird, right? I should feel bad about doing it… but I don’t think I feel that,” you look down at your hands, still stained with the blood of a village. “I only feel bad that my friends are dead. Is that bad, Ozpin?”
Ozpin taps on his cane as he comes up with a response. On the one hand, most people would be driven crazy knowing they did something so horrible but can’t remember. On the other hand… you’re not like everyone else. Your biology prevents you from feeling that way – eases you into apathy for tragedy. Of course, you don’t know that so it would be strange.
“No… not for you. Don’t worry, (Y/N), we’ll figure it out in the end.”
Ozpin looks behind him, staring at the clouds they’re passing by. Instead of a small Bullhead or oversized Airship, you’re escorted in a medium sized cruiser that’s mostly used for luxury travel for the rich. Being a headmaster, Ozpin can afford this easily, but it wasn’t him who requested it. To his surprise, the council decided to use this. He can only imagine it’s meant to keep you calm and relaxed before your confinement.
“I bet you’re watching right now, aren’t you…” Ozpin whispers, staring out the window.
You stretch in the middle of the room. “Man, I hope it’s not gonna be boring there. Do you think they have some tough guys in Atlas?”
“You realize you’re there for more serious matters, right? You spoke to the council yourself.”
“I know, but still,” You slam your fist into your hand. “I hope it doesn’t take too long. If we can make sure I don’t wreak havoc again then we’ll be fine, right? I’ll be happy to stop it!” You smile at Ozpin.
“Hm… I’m happy to hear that. Just remember, people in Atlas are a little more… critical than most.”
“Oh, okay! So be on my best behavior?”
“Exactly. You are representing Beacon, after all.”
“Hm,” you cross your arms, perplexed. “I don’t think I’m the best example. Well, for fighting I would be!”
“Of course,” he chuckles. “Get some rest, it’s the middle of the night.”
“Hm, okay. My room’s down the hall, right?”
“Indeed. Have a good night.”
You wave at Ozpin as you open the door. “Mhm, you too!”
Ozpin sighs once you leave. “I don’t know how they’re going to deal with him. Although… it’s not like this is the first time the doctors will be working on things related to him.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Ozpin enters your room where... your sheets are all over the room and while you’re spread eagle on the floor with no clothes on. He sighs and follows with a chuckle. Ozpin approaches you, setting his cane beside your head. He waits a few moments to see if you detect his presence and wake up… you don’t. Ozpin lifts his cane and slams it down three times.
“GAH!” You burst off the ground and subsequently fly face first into the ceiling.
You land beside Ozpin, bouncing right back to the same position you were in when Ozpin arrived.
“Oh… hi,” you greet with a happy tone.
“We’ll be arriving soon. I thought you might want some breakfast?” He offers, keeping his eyes strictly on your face.
“You… are a god among men,” you say as you flip onto your feet. “So, where is it?”
“We’ll discuss that once you bathe and dress.”
You look down at your not so private area then back to Ozpin, snickering. “Right, sorry. I’ll do that!” You say before running to your personal bathroom.
Ozpin saunters towards the bathroom door, taking a statue-like stance beside it as if he was your guard.
“Did you sleep well?” He says with a louder voice.
“Huh? Yeah, I would say so,” you respond before turning on the shower. “I can sleep anywhere but beds are always much more comfy and bouncy. I once slept on Nimbus, though I don’t think it likes me doing that.”
“It must be atypical for you to have your own dorm surrounded by others. I… was told you preferred to keep to yourself.”
“Yeah, I guess,” you cheerfully agree, soaping your wild black locks. “Maybe it was better that I did. Hopefully, we can find some way to stop this transformation thing or whatever happened to me,” you say in a more serious tone. “I don’t wanna put other people in danger just cause I’m around them.”
“A noble goal. I’ll wait outside for you to finish. We don’t have much time to eat, so do hurry.”
“Gotcha!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Of course, you finished showering and nearly ate everything the ship had in storage. Lucky for you Ozpin predicted this and had all that food stocked before departing. Now, you and Ozpin stand at the door as the airship descends upon Atlas. It’s very… cold. Not in a temperature sense – though that adds to it. The colours remind you of ice and snow, being white or an icy blue. The buildings, cars, and even citizens adopt this colour scheme to symbolize their association with, and pride for, their Kingdom. It’s definitely a change from the carefree Kingdom of Vale that you’re used to.
“I think I see why you wanted me to behave. I stick out like a sore thumb,” you cross your arms.
Ozpin chuckles to himself. “Indeed. Just remember, nobody here is against you. We all just want to figure out what caused this and how to prevent it. Be as cooperative as possible. And don’t worry, they won’t do anything too drastic while I’m around.”
“Got it,” you nod your head.
The ship approaches one of the larger Atlas buildings, slipping into one of the open docking bays. Through the small window on the door, you spot a group of people that seem to consist of the “higher-ups,” soldiers, and robots.
“It seems they’re taking their security seriously. I told him not to worry,” Ozpin shakes his head. “This doesn’t make you nervous, does it?” He looks over to you.
“No, it’s fine. It’s not like people with guns scare me.”
“Understandable. Just let me do the talking. Don’t speak unless you’re spoken to.”
“No problem. I’m the best at staying quiet,” you confidently say.
Ozpin looks over at you, brow raised and smirk prominent. “Whatever you say,” he returns his gaze forward.
The door opens and a ramp slides down for you two traverse on. You let Ozpin take the first step then follow his lead. In front of the grunts stand three men; the first seems to command a presence over the others. It makes sense, too. His face is very strong, his physique superior to the others, and his demeanor very serious and professional. You can already tell he’s not fond of you by the sharp look his blue eyes have. That’s all from a first glance, of course, but a lot can be taken from that. His hair is mostly black with white accents around the sides, but it’s all very clean and touched up. He also dresses in a similar manner to Ozpin, though not a carbon copy. Like most of Atlas, he wears mostly white with his overcoat, glove on the right hand, and suit pants. His gray undercoat hides the potentially blasphemous black sweater, not to mention the red necktie that makes the black almost unnoticeable.
The other two don white lab coats and, to nobody’s surprise, white suits under it. The one left is a short, stocky individual with a large, gray moustache and an almost bowl-cut hairstyle. He has a happier tone than the other two, but that might have something to do with the black cat sitting on his shoulder. That could make anyone happy.
The scientist on the right, however, seems less easy going. He’s clearly better built than the other scientist and taller too. They do share a similar moustache style but his hair is vastly different. The top of his head is entirely bald but it makes up for that by having long hair going down his back and stopping around his pelvis.
“General Ironwood,” Ozpin greets the first man. “It’s good to see you. Were we worth such an entourage?” He playfully asks.
“It’s for security purposes. Not my call, though I would have made it,” he responds. “And this must be the student,” he turns his eyes to you.
“Hey! I’m (Y/N)!” You cheerfully greet, placing your hand against your forehead. “Nice to meet you!”
Ozpin sighs, followed by a chuckle. He knew you’d do something like that.
“Mm…” Ironwood eyes you up before responding. “Pleasure to meet you. I assume you know why you’re here.”
“Yeah,” you nod. “I get it. Kinda hope this doesn’t take too long, though,” you place your hand on your opposite shoulder and roll it. “So I’ll be as cooperative as I can.”
“Wonderful. These two men beside me,” He gestures to his left. “Are Dr. Briefs,” then to his right. “And Dr. Gero. They’re handpicked by myself and Ozpin.”
“Wait, you had a say in it?” You look over at Ozpin.
“Of course,” he bluntly responds.
“It’s nice to meet you,” Dr. Briefs approaches you while Ironwood continues his conversation with Ozpin. “Don’t feel nervous about any of this. We really do want to help. What happened sounds mighty scary.”
“And interesting,” Dr. Gero adds, passing behind Ozpin. “We’ve already come up with a few tests to perform. It’s clear that the trigger was the strange ball that appeared in the air. We’re going to try and recreate it’s composition to-“
“Now, now, don’t overwhelm the boy,” Dr. Briefs interrupts. “We’ll be talking you through each procedure so you know what’s going on.”
“Okay, cool. But, uh… what happens if I end up transforming?”
“We have containment measures,” Ironwood responds. “No need to worry. Now, shall we proceed?”
The Atlas personnel turn on their heels and head for the far, automatic door that splits from the middle when they get close. You and Ozpin follow behind, keeping yourselves separate from the native people. Though, anyone who saw you could instantly tell you’re foreign. As you follow, some of the human soldiers slow down to cover your rear.
“Are they doing that for safety? I don’t think anyone would attack us here,” you whisper to Ozpin.
He huffs, not bothering to make eye contact. “They’re doing that to watch you.”
“Oh…” You look back at them. “Hm…”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Your entourage enters a large, white room that’s tinted in red thanks to the large light above the room. It’s amplified by the massive glass box that takes up the majority of the room. Inside, there’s a makeshift bed… and that’s it. The rest is empty space for whatever you deem entertaining. You and Ozpin tilt your head in opposite directions.
“Am I back in prison?” You innocently ask.
“Indeed… this is… quite constrictive.”
“Don’t worry, you won’t be locked up in here,” Dr. Briefs quickly corrects. “This is just for testing and resting.”
“As long as Ozpin is accompanying you, you have access to the building and the city,” Ironwood informs. “So, please, don’t see this as a containment unit.”
“Mm,” you cross your arms and keep your head tilted. “It’s hard not to. But, whatever, I’ll make do. Never had much in my house anyway,” you say as you saunter into the glass room. “So… should I stretch and get ready or something?”
“There’s no need. We just have to perform a few simple procedures to cross reference. Just take a seat on the bed, get comfortable, and we’ll be back with some equipment.”
The two doctors set off, taking a portion of the guards with them. You leave Ozpin’s side and enter the glass room. You swing your legs, making all your movements over exaggerated to pass the time.
“I could train in here,” you say to yourself. “Are you staying here?” You look back at Ozpin.
“No, I’ll be watching from another room. They do nothing without my consent.”
You shrug at his attempt at reassurance. “Okay, cool. See ya… wait, when’s lunch?”
“You just ate,” Ozpin chuckles. “Don’t worry, you’ll be well fed. I’ll see you soon, (Y/N).”
“Yep,” you wave.
Ozpin and Ironwood leave the room with almost all the remaining guards. One robot and one soldier remain to keep watch on you.
“Do you think this is a new breed of Faunus?” Ironwood theorizes to Ozpin.
“No, not at all,” Ozpin immediately disagrees. “We’ll have to see what your doctors and scientists come up with.” Ozpin turns his head to Ironwood who’s hand is at his cheek as he thinks. “Don’t stress yourself about this, James.”
“How can I not? We don’t know how his transformation was stopped, he destroyed four students’ Aura like it was nothing… who says that can’t happen to experienced Huntsmen? What if he could destroy the city? What if there are more like him tha-“
“James,” Ozpin stops and places his hand on Ironwood’s shoulder. “Let yourself relax. You have more practical things to worry about.”
“What’s more practical than defending my Kingdom?”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You kick your legs over and over as you aimlessly stare at your red glass ceiling. It’s been ten minutes since they came in with some equipment to take your blood, a sample of your skin and hair, heart rate, brainwaves, all things you really don’t get. You are sort of annoyed at the strange white headband they’ve put on you to constantly monitor some of the previously listed details, but you said you’d be cooperative so you can’t complain.
“It’s just so… uncomfortable,” you mumble, scratching around the band.
“Don’t move it,” Gero’s voice booms through a speaker.
“Right, right, right, sorry.”
“Alright, we’re going to try and replicate the situation and introduce you to different substances,” Briefs clearly explains.
“Okay, so what do I need to do?”
“You were fighting, correct?” Gero once again speaks. “Your heart rate was likely higher as well. So start throwing some punches or whatever you do.”
“I can do that,” you nod whilst hopping off the bed. “Alright, some training…” You look left and right, up and down, getting a feel for the space available to you.
The doctors, along with Ozpin and Ironwood, watch as you roam around the room.
“What is he doing?” Gero moans.
“He’s getting a feel for his surroundings, likely to assure he doesn’t break anything around him.”
“That room is made of some of our finest material. He won’t break it,” Ironwood confidently states.
“Is that so?” Ozpin says, amused at the thought.
In a flash, you disappear from their sight.
“What the?” Gero spews, his fingers dancing along the keyboard. “Did he escape? No, there’s still a heat signature in there.”
“He’s moving faster than we can see… and his heart rate has barely risen,” Ironwood says with awe. “What is this kid?”
“He’s a student of Beacon,” Ozpin proudly says, eyes shooting from place to place as he follows your movements. “With a little extra training.”
You spin through the air, blocking and redirecting various shadow punches and kicks. You burst back, landing on the ground, then fire a Kamehameha. It speeds across the room, then swoops around and rushes towards you. You stop fueling the beam and catch the brunt of it. You release another yellow wave to counter your blue one, ending in a massive explosion that shakes the entire building and shatters the glass containing you.
You turn to the window, chuckling and rubbing the back of your head.
“Sorry, I guess I went a little too far.”
The four stare at you, a mix of confusion, shock, and apathy.
“His heart rate is still relatively normal,” Briefs chuckles. “What a kid.”
“What a kid? That’s-“
“So… what do I do now?” You ask, letting your arm fall to your side.
Ironwood pinches his nose. “Clearly being indoors doesn’t suit these kinds of tests. Perhaps finding a suitable location outside would grant us more flexibility.”
“We’ll need time to set up,” Briefs responds, sliding his scroll out of his pocket. “Safety measures, setting up the equipment…”
“We’ll need at least a day, sir,” Gero finishes.
“Then you best start now,” Ironwood nods. Briefs leaves the room, swiping through his scroll to set up everything. Gero remains, shutting down the systems for your room. “Ozpin, I leave him in your care. But… we’ll have someone watching too.”
“Of course,” Ozpin pleasantly nods. “Good day, James. I’ll visit you later.”
Ozpin turns on his heel and saunters out of the room, his cane in rhythm with his steps. Once he’s out and the door closes behind him, Ironwood turns to Gero.
“You gathered his DNA, yes?”
“Of course, sir.”
“And the drone?”
Gero’s smile slowly grows. “Still on his clothes, sir.”
“Good, keep it there. I don’t trust this kid, and I want to make sure we’re prepared,” Ironwood sharpens his gaze, testing Gero’s will. “Like… using this towards your project.”
“I will make sure to gather all the data I can, sir,” he responds as professional as always, but inside he’s more excited than he’s ever been.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“Hehe, yeah, I didn’t mean to,” you chuckle. “I didn’t know how much that room could handle. I didn’t even use that much power anyway.”
Ozpin smiles at you before returning his eyes ahead of him. He’s taken you into the city to eat while the scientists prepare your next trial. Though you don’t notice since you’re focused on Ozpin, many of the citizens that you pass give you a dirty look. Maybe because you’re a “Faunus,” maybe because you’re different. Either one is possible, but you don’t seem to care so Ozpin will refrain from pointing it out.
“Not many people are accustomed to Ki. In truth, I’m the only Headmaster who has any knowledge about it. It’s… taboo, one could say.”
“Why? Everyone I’ve fought who could use it was really strong! People with Aura… I mean,” you rub the back of your head and look away. “Not gonna say anything buuuuuut,” you cheekily shrug. “It just seems Aura is a bit underwhelming in comparison.”
“That’s a very ignorant point of view, (Y/N),” Ozpin bluntly answers. “True, perhaps an Aura on its own is inferior, but imagine what would happen if someone combined the two?”
“I fought someone with both… well,” you cross your arms. “I guess that’s not fair…”
“Perhaps, when this is all over, you’ll think on that. You may create an opponent even you cannot defeat.”
“Oooh,” your eyes glow at the thought. “That’d be cool. Hey, that’s not fair! You’re giving me ideas that I can’t do right away!”
“Patience is a virtue, (Y/N). Get as old as I am and you might realize that.”
“You’re not that old,” you squint your eyes.
Ozpin chuckles. “I suppose that’s true, from a certain point of view.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“Listen carefully,” Dr. Gero starts, sitting behind protective glass with Dr. Briefs, Ozpin, and Ironwood. “We’re going to be exposing you to condensed rays of different Dust to see if that triggers anything.”
You look back and forth, checking out the large, silver projectors aimed directly at you. It really blends with the bland arena that you’ve been situated in. But being on the roof makes it unlikely for you to cause any collateral damage… or, if you transform, you crush everyone beneath you. Kinda makes you worried, honestly.
“Alright, so I need to warm up again?”
“No!” The two doctors respond.
“Oh… okay…”
You cross your arms and look around as the projectors light up. They release a red glow that shines brightly on you, heating everything that it shines on. You shrug at them, signaling that you don’t feel anything strange.
“Try looking directly at the light, please,” Briefs says through the microphone.
“Gotcha,” you nod before looking over at the dish. “Hm… hm…” You lean forward and squint. “Hmmmmmm, nope, nothing,” you shake your head.
“Very well, we’ll move onto the next one. Get comfortable,” Gero says as he shifts in his chair. “We have lots of tests ready.”
“Oh boy.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
One Week Later…
“I never even thought of it! Kamas that turn into a flamethrower!” The young girl coos, as her team reaches their regular table in the cafeteria. “Aaaah,” she lays on the seat, taking up most of the space. “I love it here… aaah, weapons,” her starry eyes are lost in an imaginary world of little people and more weapons.
“But you lost,” Weiss shakes her head, pushing her partner over so she can sit down. “I don’t get why you’re so happy.”
“If she sees any sort of new weapon she’ll get like this. She’ll be back with us soon,” Yang sits beside Pyrrha on the other side of the table.
“It was a more intense day, that’s for sure. Seems like everyone is getting more comfortable sparring with one another,” Pyrrha adds.
“Not me. I was going a hundred percent since day one!” Nora cheers.
“The roof can attest to that,” Ren adds, to which Nora proudly laughs at.
Everyone starts eating their individual meals, discussing random topics that come to mind.
“It really looks like your training is working, Jaune,” Pyrrha pats his shoulder. “You dealt with that Ursa handily the other day.”
“And saved Cardin’s butt,” Yang adds.
“I was just lucky,” Jaune shakes his head. “The Ursa was hurt by my sword but not his mace. It could have been the other way around.”
“That’s why we’re the best!” Nora cheers. “We have bullets, explosives, swords, and hammers,” she lists off on her fingers. “No way will a Grimm be immune to all of that.”
“It’s always good to have a backup plan,” Weiss agrees, setting her drink down. “It’s why Dust comes in handy.”
“And why you should know how to use more than one weapon,” Yang stares at Ruby.
“That doesn’t have to mean hand-to-hand!” She waves her arms.
“Indeed,” Ren nods. “Ruby doesn’t seem built for it anyway.”
“What’s that supposed to mean?” Ruby and Yang question.
“Uh…” The boy leans back, getting all the distance he can. “I…”
In the background, another table is having their own conversation. Though most are focused on their own table, Blake’s superior hearing and Yang’s selective hearing focuses in on it.
“You hear that (Y/N) kid is still gone?”
“Yeah, he went with Ozpin somewhere, right? Probably putting that freak down.”
Yang and Blake lock eyes, recognizing that the other hears the same thing.
“It’s been a week. At least it’s easier to get away with-“
“Hey, shut up.”
“Well, I heard he could destroy a city! Creepy kid. Can’t believe he was ever let in here.”
“Didn’t he almost kill team RWBY?”
“Yeah, that’s right! Someone spotted them being admitted to the infirmary the same day.”
“Thank god they’re alive. Would be four less cute girls.”
“One’s fifteen, man.”
“It’s only two years!”
“Still… creepy.”
Yang, now completely in her own world, stares at the table as her fingers dance across it. She’s been keeping it in the back of her head, but the fact that you’re still gone worries her – worries all of RWBY. You’re a good person, they’ve seen it, and knowing they may have condemned you to some sort of punishment tortures them. Yang closes her fist, eyes sharpening.
“What’re you thinking?” Blake inquires.
“I want to talk to him… or at least know what’s going on,” Yang gets out of her seat and starts walking. “I’m going to find Ms. Goodwitch.”
“Wait,” Blake calls out. “I’m coming too. I… owe him.”
“Who?” Ruby tilts her head.
“(Y/N),” Yang responds. “I’m going to find out where he is.”
“Oooh, count me in!” Ruby hops up. “Come on, Weiss.”
“Why am I coming?”
“Because… I’m your leader and I’m asking you to?” She responds with uncertainty.
Weiss raises her brow, clearly not having any of it.
“Because if we contact him you’ll look bad if you’re the only one not there,” Jaune halfheartedly answers.
“Jaune!” Weiss snaps.
“Aaaand that!” Ruby swings her arm. “Come on, bestie!” She grabs Weiss’ arm and hauls her away.
“Wait! My food! I wasn’t done!” She wails. “I demand you let me go at once you little…”
“Their comradery is superb,” Ren comments, watching the four girls leave.
“That’s one way to put it,” Jaune responds before focusing on his food.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Glynda sits at her desk, papers stacked high on two sides. One is sheets she’s gone through and the other is ones she has yet to do. She’s usually a busy woman, but trying to do her work and Ozpin’s has been fairly taxing on the teacher. If she’s not careful, she’ll start getting noticeable wrinkles. Stress is a key factor, and her ears pick up something that won’t help.
“I told you we should’ve gone here first, you dunce.”
“Well, why wouldn’t she have been in Ozpin’s office?”
“The answer is in your sentence!”
“Well, she’s, like, temporary Ozpin, so…”
“We should make ourselves known, if you two weren’t loud enough to accomplish that.”
“Just ignore them, Glynda, they’ll go away…” She whispers to herself.
“Yeah, she knows we’re here,” Blake confirms.
Glynda rubs her temples, knowing there’s no way to get out of this now. She steps out of her chair and approaches the door. Before the girls outside can even knock, Glynda has swung the door open, her posture straighter than it was when she was alone.
“Yes?”
“Ms. Goodwitch, I need to ask you something,” Yang starts before Ruby can babble or Weiss can scold. “I want to talk with (Y/N). He’s with Ozpin, right? So, I thought maybe you could help us… somehow. Please?”
Glynda’s eyes glide from one student to the next. All of them share concern for you, though some are a little more hidden than the others. Glynda lets her hands down and sighs. “Very well, I’ll see what I can do. Come in.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“I don’t think… this is working,” you say on your hands and knees through huffs and puffs. “Just releasing energy is tiring.”
Ozpin and the scientists remain on the other side of the glass… glass that was destroyed dozens of times over during the week.
“We’ve run everything we could’ve,” Dr. Briefs leans back in his chair and taps his arm. “Do you have anything, Gero?”
“Hm…”
Ozpin looks at his pocket when he feels his scroll vibrate.
“One moment, gentlemen,” he says, taking a few steps away and grabbing the scroll. “Everything alright, Glynda? Do you need anything?”
“Not me. I have a certain team here who’d like to know how (Y/N) is doing.”
“A certain team, huh?” Ozpin chuckles. He looks over his shoulder at you getting back up and pumped up. “Very well. (Y/N)!” He shouts.
“Yeah?”
“Come here a moment.”
You fly over the scientists and land beside Ozpin, eyes wide and curious. “Whatcha need?”
Ozpin clicks a button on his scroll then hands it to you. “Oh, it’s not for me.”
You raise your brow, keeping your eyes on him as you grab the scroll. You look down and see four familiar faces staring back at you.
“You’re okay!” Ruby cheers.
“I… am? I mean, I am, yeah, but you guys… I mean, I thought…” You scratch your head as you try to come up with the words.
“We were worried about you,” Yang speaks. “We thought something might have happened!”
“It’s good to see you alright,” Blake nods, her smile warming than usual.
“Yeah, I guess,” Weiss crosses her arms.
“But weren’t you all mad at me?”
They all shake their head.
“No way! You’re way too nice to be mad at,” Ruby says.
“Yeah, we wouldn’t be mad at something you didn’t do,” Yang nods. “You’re not whatever thing attacked us. You should see it,” she chuckles, leaning back on her hip. “Coco’s giving everyone crap who talks bad about you.”
“Wait, really?” You tilt your head. “Huh,” you scratch your chin. “I guess that makes sense. She was really nice.”
“So what’s happening?” Blake inquires. “It only makes sense you were taken away because of what happened.”
“Oh, yeah,” you nod. “I’m in Atlas with some smart guys. They’ve been doing a bunch of tests to see what triggers… whatever happened to me, and then we’ll find out how to stop it. I don’t want to hurt anyone like that ever again,” you adamantly say.
“Ozpin! Could we have a word with you?” Gero calls out.
“Of course. I’ll leave you to this,” Ozpin says before walking away.
“You shoulda seen it, though,” you continue. “The first day I blew up the room and this one guy looked so mad…”
Ozpin stops before the scientists, who’ve gotten out of their seats to speak with the Headmaster.
“We’ve been cross-referencing for anything and…” Dr. Briefs looks over at Gero then nods. “His data correlates with the… ‘incident’ that happened seventeen years ago. Your secret project.”
Ozpin humbly chuckles. “I hope neither of you has told anyone else.”
“Of course not,” Gero sternly confirms. “We would never ruin such a discovery. But… we must know if… if this is the boy who came in the pod.”
Ozpin’s fingers tap the tip of his cane as he decides how to answer this. Of course, he chooses the easiest one.
“Yes. That’s him.”
“Then all the data makes sense now,” Gero raises one hand to his chin while shifting his gaze to you. “This will only further my- our research.”
“We still don’t know what caused him to change, but it’s clear no Faunus will be replicating it. That’s a relief,” Briefs says before lighting another cigarette. “Well, not completely. This only confirms that more like him could be on this planet.”
“So, Ozpin, what do we do? The trigger could be something completely foreign to us,” Gero crosses his arms. “We have nothing left to go on.”
“There is that energy he uses – Ki. But…” Briefs trails off.
“It would have to be some specific kind since he used it hundreds of times. If he doesn’t know it then we wouldn’t.”
“So, if we go with the Ki hypothesis… that means there’s someone on Remnant that does,” Briefs looks at the other two with a fairly serious aura.
“And that’s dangerous for everyone,” Ozpin finally adds. “Thus, it appears we cannot do anything. I don’t know how the Council will react to this, but it’s the truth. I’ll tell them right away.”
Ozpin leaves the two stumped scientists and approaches you once more.
“Your time is up, (Y/N).”
“Aw… well, it was awesome talking to you all again! I’ll be back soon!” You give them a thumbs up and smile. “Bet on it!”
“Come back soon! We still haven’t had our brawl,” Yang confidently smiles.
“You know it’s the first thing we’ll do,” you nod back.
The five of you wave before disconnecting. You hand Ozpin his scroll, unable to contain the smile on your face.
“Seems like you needed that.”
“Yeah… I think I did. So, what’s next? Some more Dust? Beat up some bigger robots?”
Ozpin sighs. “Unfortunately, we don’t know what triggered your transformation. We can’t stall forever.” He turns away and starts walking. “Return to your quarters. I’ll let you know what they decide.”
Your shoulders sag as you adopt a perplexed expression. “Oh… okay, I guess.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“But… no, I understand. Yes…” Ozpin slowly paces back and forth as he listens ignorant men shout. “I’ll… have him ready for tomorrow. Yes.” Ozpin sets his scroll down and sighs. “That… makes things complicated.” He steps towards the large window and stares out into the night sky. His focus is absolute as he ponders ways to get you out of this situation… and that focus brings something to his mind. Ozpin smiles at the sky, feeling a signature that will set everything into place. “Piccolo,” Ozpin says aloud. “I need you to do something for me…”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Things aren’t going the way you thought. You’re in chains – hands and legs restrained – with soldiers escorting you and Ozpin to the trial room. Everything feels colder than before. It doesn’t bode well for you, but nevertheless, you’ll keep smiling.
“I’m sorry, (Y/N). I couldn’t convince them otherwise.”
“It’s fine,” you say with a happy tone. “I’ll convince them! I’m no bad guy.”
“Hm, of course,” he nods once. “Just remember, these are men and women with plenty of experience and little patience. You have to choose your words. I’m serious.”
“I got it, Ozpin, I promise. It’ll all work out.”
You finally reach the door and have it opened for you by the guards. Inside is a courtroom with dozens of high ranking men and women of Remnant. Most of them are in suits, all very posh and proper. You’d think they were all from Atlas, but there are people not wearing white so that’s a clear giveaway. At the end of the room, there are two tables, one is empty with one seat and the other has five people. Other than that, people are sitting along the sides of the room as if this was some sort of arena for people to fight in. It is, in a sense, but a fight with words and logic instead of fists. Unfortunately, that’s not your strong suit.
“I’m supposed to sit there?”
“Yes. I’ll be on the sidelines,” he places his hand on your shoulder. “Good luck.” He remains in place as you walk towards the table. “But I believe you’ll need more than luck today.“ The man looks towards the sky, reaching out to the same feeling as before. “Piccolo… are you ready?”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
The skies of Remnant host very little – a few birds, some airships, and the occasional Nevermore attempting to stalk and destroy. Today, though briefly, it’s home to something else. An object, moving faster than any airship, cuts through the air and crash lands in the Forest of Forever Fall. The collision decimates the trees and wildlife around it, making its presence known to anyone nearby. The red of the forest is distorted by the brown crater now making its home, but inside that is a white pod with a circular, red window.
Seconds after landing, a section of the pod that hosted the red window slowly opens, revealing a bright light from inside the pod. The being inside grabs hold of the edges as he makes his way out of his transportation. Once out, he stands on the door, stretching his neck after his journey.
A green object, sat on his ear that has a green screen extending to his right eye, begins lighting up.
“It seems Kail has failed. This planet is still riddled with humans.” The man hovers high into the air, passing the tree line. “There’s a high power level this way,” he turns. “That must be him.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“I know that I’m not a threat! I would never hurt anyone without cause,” you adamantly declare
“But that fact remains that you’re a threat to all of us. Your admittance of ignorance just means we’re in even more danger.”
“That’s- gah!” You turn around, knocking your chair over, and look towards the sky. A drop of sweat forms at your hairline and trails down your cheek. “What… is that?”
“What are you doing? Sit back down.”
“No, no,” you shake your head. “That’s… I’ve never felt something like that before. It’s…” You look down at your chain hands shaking. “It’s overwhelming…”
Murmurs arise from the sidelines as they question your reliance and sanity. They feel nothing, yet you’re visibly shaken.
“Beacon… it’s going to Beacon!” You shout, breaking free of your chains.
“What are you-“
You give them no time as you burst through the ceiling and fly away.
Ozpin watches and smiles.
“Let me know how it goes, will you?”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Three classes worth of students exit a docked airship with Professor Port and Dr. Oobleck leading them. Among that large group of students is team RWBY and JNPR.
“I’m sad dad wasn’t there,” Ruby says to Yang.
“Yeah, but you got to see all your friends. Plus, checking out the new students was super cool.”
“It was an experience seeing the upcoming boys and girls from Vale. It’s a refreshing change from Atlas,” Weiss adds.
“Too bad I got my butt kicked by some,” Jaune sighs.
“You were just going easy on them, silly,” Nora slaps Jaune’s shoulder. “Encourage the youngins!”
“You knocked two of them out,” Ren corrects.
“That was to put them back in place!” She retorts with zero remorse.
Beyond the chatter of the students and the teachers, Blake’s ears twitch at a sound growing ever louder.
“Guys… something’s coming…” She says with concern, stopping in place and looking towards the direction of the sound.
“What’re you talking about?” Yang slides beside Blake and looks the same direction. “I don’t see a thing.”
As if the world was out to jinx her, a being appears in a flash. He hovers over the docking area, looking around the school grounds.
“The power’s gone… what are you trying to pull, Kail?”
His sudden appearance garners the attention of all the students in the area, even the ones who were just passing by.
“Is that… (Y/N)?” Ruby squints.
The man descends upon the grounds of Beacon, firmly placing himself before the two teachers who are now on guard. RWBY and JNPR push their way through the crowd to get a better look at this guy.
“He… does look like (Y/N),” Yang confirms. It’s different, though. His hair… and those clothes… who is he?”
Like you, the man has pitch black hair and eyes. Though unlike you, his hair is wilder. It flares out in more directions, but the most notable are the three major strands on the right side of his face, along with his bangs. The left side of his head is smoother, but the back branches out left and right. Though sharing features, his gaze is far sharper and dastardly. What really sets him apart is his apparel. He wears a sort of armour with wide shoulder guards that go far past the actual shoulder, coloured brown. The chest and ribs share a black colour, but the abs share the same brown as the shoulders. All of this has a white accent around the edges. For the lower half, there are three skirt-like pads that cover his crotch and either hip, leaving his back exposed. These share the same brown. On top of that, he dons skin-tight black leggings that cover most of his legs, save for the black, brown, and white boots. The boots share a similar colour scheme to the wrist guards that only expose the fingers. To top it all off, he has a brown tail wrapped around his waist like a belt.
He examines everyone while his green device lights up. “Hmph, none of you will be a problem. Then I will offer you something, humans,” he says loud enough for everyone to hear. “If you tell me where Kail is then I’ll make sure you’re exterminated last.”
“Exterminated?” A word that many students repeat with confusion and fear.
“I’m sorry, but threatening our students doesn’t make us want to help you,” Port says as he and Oobleck put themselves between the mystery man and the students. “Unfortunately, we don’t know who this ‘Kail’ is.”
“I see,” he huffs. “Then I’ll just kill you now,” he says with a wide grin as he raises his hand.
A dark yellow glow starts emanating from his left hand, reminding everyone of you.
“Students! MOVE!” Both Oobleck and Port scream.
“HYAAAAA!” A voice from the side shouts.
Everyone, including the invader, looks over to see one of Beacon’s fourth years running towards the enemy with his blade ready. He leaps into the air and comes down on him… but it’s not enough. The man easily catches the blade with the same, glowing hand. With little effort, he unleashes a devastating blast that disintegrates the boy where he was.
“NO!” Port exclaims.
RWBY all get flashes of the village, of how you killed all of them in the exact same manner. But this time it’s just a man who’s smiling while doing it.
“Fool,” the man says. “I suppose… I’ll just destroy this entire place then.”
“That’s enough!” A voice shouts from the sky.
Everyone looks up to see you coming down from the sky. You land in front of the teachers, making sure his focus is on you.
“(Y/N)!” Yang shouts. “You’re back!”
“I left early,” you say without looking. “You all need to run. Now, who are you?”
The man sizes you up. “Well, well, you saved me the trouble of searching, Kail.”
“Kail?” You repeat. “I don’t know what you’re talking about, pal. My name’s (Y/N).”
“Is that so?” He looks down at your waving tail. “Considering you’re here… the habitants are alive… and that broken moon.” The man chuckles. “It’s not uncommon for children to suffer amnesia. Normally they would be executed for failing but that’s not the case for you,” he approaches you, stopping barely a foot away. “Tell me, did you hit your head as a child?”
“What? What does that have to do with you?”
“Answer the question,” he coldly says.
“You came here and tried to kill all my friends. I don’t see a reason for me to answer you,” a response that confuses some of the students. Many have done nothing but scold you and your actions, yet here you are ready to save them.
“Then I guess I’ll give you a reason. I was never one for mind games anyway,” he shrugs. The man approaches you, making sure to keep slow. “My name’s Kakarot. I’m a Saiyan from planet Vegeta.”
“Another planet?”
“A Saiyan? So… there are aliens?”
“No way, this can’t be real. This is all a dream.”
“I hope we all wake up, then.”
“But that’s not all,” he wags his finger. “I’ve come here for you, Kail,” he uses that same finger to point at you. “Come to bring you home… to reunite you with your race.”
“Tsk,” you step back, your powerful stance now crumbling. “My… race? I don’t know what you’re talking about!”
“Of course you don’t. I already deduced that,” Kakarot responds with a frown. “I said that it wasn’t uncommon amnesia to occur and it’s clear you suffer that.”
“Students,” Port whispers. “We have to go.”
“We can’t just run!”
“If we don’t, we’ll turn to dust like him!”
“But… what about (Y/N)?”
“What about him? You heard that Kaka-whatever! He’s an alien! A freak.”
“Shut it!” Yang’s fierce voice whispers. “He saved us. Show some respect. And you!” She takes a step out of the crowd.
“Yang,” you sharply whisper. “Stop.”
“Why would he be here if he was an alien?”
Kakarot chuckles as he crosses his arms. “That’s simple. We Saiyans are powerful warriors, unrivaled in the universe. We use our talents to find hospitable planets and...” He closes his eyes and chuckles. “Evict the previous tenants.”
“Evict… you kill them?”
“Of course. With the planet now free, we sell it to any who offer a nice price. This… Remnant was one of those planets. But seeing as your populace is so weak, we sent Kail, a baby. We do that with all pathetic planets.”
“I... was sent here to destroy?” Your eyes glaze over as they trail to the ground.
“Of course! Given a few years, and the moon – or what we thought was a suitable moon – you would have wiped out everyone efficiently and survived until we retrieved you.”
“This is so messed up.”
“We gotta get out of here.”
“Students, come on,” Oobleck waves, already behind one of the arches.
Kakarot spots the ones attempting to flee and ignores them. He’s more surprised that some, over a dozen, decide to stay. He’s found you, so others are meaningless.
“Then… why come now? I’m seventeen! A-And what does the moon have to do with it?” You shout.
“So many questions,” Kakarot shakes his head. “But I suppose I have to bring you up to speed. It might jog your memory. The moon… well, I didn’t expect it to be broken. No matter, the full moon is the source of our power, Kail. It triggers out transformation, thanks to the tails that you, me, and every other Saiyan are born with.”
“Transformation,” Yang whispers.
“His tail… it was freaking out when he saw that ball,” Blake reminds.
“It brings out our truest potential! The Great Ape!” Kakarot tightens his fist before him.
The students still listening freeze.
“An ape? That was in the video!”
“So it was the moon? But he said it was broken!”
“So he changed… cause he’s an alien,” Blake sighs. “This… it’s so much to take in…”
Yang, though behind you, keeps glaring over. She’s worried about how you’re taking this. It’s not just you this time, everyone is hearing your secret… a secret that could break someone, shake who they are to the very core and make them question everything. Such a thing is happening before people who despise you in the first place.
“Students,” Port still remains with those who have yet to flee. “We have to go, now. It’s not safe here. You all understand that. Leave this to the Huntsmen.”
JNPR, RWBY, and the others look to the professor. He’s not wrong, staying here means certain death for them… and yet…
“That means… I killed all those people… because of my tail? Because of my race?” You look down at your shaking hands. “The tail… even our hair and eyes,” you look up at him. “I… I’m a Saiyan…”
“Yes, you are,” Kakarot smiles at the fact he’s made some progress. “Now, come back with me, Kail. We need you. You’re one of the last Saiyans left in the universe, almost forgotten now… but with you, with our strength at six, we can rule over so much more… and surpass any who stand before us.”
“I…”
“I’ll even convince Vegeta to leave you out of this mission. Or perhaps having you kill the people of Remnant could dissociate you from them.”
Your eyes widen at those words while everyone else gasps.
“What? You thought we’d leave this place alone? True, it’s riddled with those filthy creatures, but with six Saiyans it’s of no concern. We’ll help you with that memory problem of yours, Kail, and return you to the cold blooded fighter you were born to be.” Kakarot approaches you, stopping and offering his hand. “Now… let's go.”
“(Y/N),” Yang shakily says. “Come on… don’t do this.”
“I…” You raise your hand to meet his. “I…” You look up at him, eyes sharp and purposeful. “I’m not Kail!” You open your palm and release a yellow blast that pushes Kakarot back a few feet, but does little else. “My name’s (Y/N) and this is my home! I won’t let you destroy it!”
Kakarot chuckles, looking down at his chest. “Oh, Kail…” He stands up straight and smiles. “You’re lucky then, aren’t you? I convinced Vegeta to let me come alone. If I hadn’t… he would have killed you. I’m sure you can tell I’m more powerful than you,” he says as he reads your power level – 484. “But now… now you’re testing my patience.”
Kakarot appears before you, slamming his knee into your stomach. Your black eyes almost fade to white at how intense the blow was. He backs up a bit then kicks your ribs, sending you barreling down the walkway.
“(Y/N)!” The students shout.
“I will show you… just what a Saiyan warrior is, you disgraceful, arrogant brat.”
It takes a few meters for you to recover, but you slam your hand into the stone and slow yourself down. You grab your chest and cough up some saliva.
I’ve never been hit so hard… this…
You look up at his confident smirk… and smile back. “This is getting me fired up!” You shout before bursting forward, destroying the concrete blocks that once hosted you.
You fly just above the ground, spinning around and attempting to kick his legs out from under him. He flips over you, forcing you to slam your hand into the ground once again so momentum can spin you around and allow you to kick his face. He blocks the kick then grabs your ankle and throws you into the massive archways. You flip through the air and land on the side of it, burst off immediately and destroying the architecture.
You throw your fist forward, colliding with Kakarot’s forearm. The shockwave blasts the concrete away, pushing back the students who have yet to run.
“Go already!” You scream, bouncing back then rushing Kakarot again. “You’ll get in the way!” You collide with Kakarot once more, fists clashing in a spectacle of power unprecedented. Everyone starts to get away now, even while they look back at you trying to fight. You’re on the defensive almost immediately, barely blocking his attacks. You redirect his left fist but his right leg is too fast to react to. It drives itself into your ribs, weakening your position for him to slam his fist right in your face.
You slide back, doing your best to keep your ground. You raise your hands to block incoming attacks… but nobody’s there.
“What the- gak!” You feel an almost overwhelming blow to your back.
Kakarot stands behind you with a cocky smile, his elbow lodged into your back. He knows the pain of that attack, he’s been hit by it before.
You wince and jump forward, getting some distance between you and him.
“Are you done with your warm-up?” He crosses his arms. “I can already see you sweating from that brief scuffle. How do you expect to beat me?”
You turn around, wiping some saliva from your mouth. Without a word, you charge forward once more.
“How amusing.”
You throw your fists at him, unable to land a single hit. Kakarot chuckles, lazily dodging your attacks you “push” him towards the school. You realize this quickly and attempt to change course. You can’t let him get close to the school. Too many people will be hurt. You throw one more punch before jumping off your back leg and fly into the air.
“What’s wrong, Kail?” He laughs, quickly following you.
The students run down the path, reaching the school’s main area. They’re a good distance away now so there’s little danger at the moment. Everyone is watching now, even some Huntsmen that were called by Oobleck and Port… yet none of them go in.
“Why aren’t you helping?” Yang shouts.
The Huntsmen look to each other and then Yang.
“Ms. Xiao Long,” Port speaks. “This battle… I believe this is beyond any of us.”
“GAAAAAAAAAAAAAH!” Your screams echo through Beacon, dampening everyone’s spirits.
“But he needs help! We can’t-“
“We’ll die,” Oobleck bluntly states. “We need to trust in (Y/N)… it’s all we can do.”
Yang tightens her shaking fist. “Come on…”
Shockwaves erupt in the sky, blowing back the flora nearby and whipping people’s clothes and hair. By the screams and grunts, everyone can tell you’re losing. You clash, receiving a knee to your stomach. You break off and clash again, taking a haymaker to your cheek. You separate and collide once more, failing to block his hand as he grabs your face with one hand and drives his other fist into your stomach. You cough up blood and saliva into his hand, but Kakarot is unfazed.
“Come on, Kail, show me you’re Saiyan spirit!” He shouts, throwing you to the ground and following up with a few small blasts.
They all collide with you, sending you spiraling to the ground in a hail of smoke.
“(Y/N)!” Yang screams, running towards you.
“Yang!” Her teammates shout, following the golden one.
“Weiss, stop her with a glyph!” Blake shouts.
“Right!” Weiss nods, sliding to a stop before throwing one hand forward.
A black glyph appears under Yang, stopping the girl in her tracks.
“What the?”
Kakarot spots the blonde girl stuck in place. He sneers. “You’re not part of this,” he raises his hand and shoots a purple blast at the girl.
Yang watches in horror, unable to say anything as her death approaches.
“WEISS!” Ruby screams. “LET HER-“
But it’s too late. The blast hits Yang, exploding in a spectacle of purple lightning and dust.
“YANG! NO!” Ruby screeches, tears immediately forming in her eyes as she falls to her knees. “No…”
Everyone gapes at the sight. Another student dead and they can’t do anything. At least, until the smoke clears. Yang’s bright hair becomes visible to all, coveted by you. You’re blocking her, shaking at the impact of the intense attack. The front portion of your clothes has fallen on Yang since the blast evaporated the back portion.
“I told you… to run,” you say in a dark tone.
“Ah… but-“
You raise your head, locking eyes with Yang. The look in your eye… it reminds her of that look you had some time ago with the poachers. You’re serious.
“Run. Away.” You stand up straight, exposing your upper body to everyone. “I’m going to beat him.”
You turn around and look up at Kakarot. His scouter lights up as it detects your power level.
“Five hundred and thirty..? Hm,” he smiles to himself. “Rising to the challenge like a true Saiyan. If I’m not careful he’ll catch up to me.”
“You’re hurt,” she reaches out.
“I’ll deal with it,” you respond before blasting off.
“Yang!” Ruby slides on her knees as she approaches and pulls the blonde into a hug. “I was so scared… I was so scared,” she cries into her clothes.
“It’s okay, Ruby. I’m here,” she hugs her back. “Come on, we have to stay back. He… he’ll do it. I have no doubt about that now.”
You charge up your fist as you approach him and throw it, colliding with his forearm. You sharpen your eyes and flare your white aura while putting more power into your fist. You manage to push his arm down towards his chest then flick your arm and slam the back of your hand in his face. You follow up by punching his face again with your other arm, then go for a third attack. He catches you by the wrist and headbutts you.
“Don’t get cocky, Kail!”
“I can say the same for you!” You shout as you open the hand that he’s gripping and release a ki wave to his face.
This loosens his grip on your hand, giving you the chance to break free and nail him with a series of five punches, a knee, and then a hammer fist down to the docks. Kakarot spirals down for a few seconds before recovering and surprising you with an uppercut to the jaw.
The men and women of Beacon watch, or at least do their best to. They can hear what’s happening, feel the shockwaves of your attacks, but they can’t physically see your battle.
“It’s… incredible… he could do that all this time?”
“It’s not human.”
“Idiot, he’s an alien!”
You spin around Kakarot’s punch and reach his back, kicking the base of his spine. Kakarot sneers, spinning around and throwing his own fist at you. You do the same, resulting in you both hitting each other at the same time. Though you momentarily hold the punch, his power still overwhelms you. You’re forced down diagonally towards the ground. You curl up into a ball until you hit the ground. The moment you feel your feet touch the stone you start backflipping. This also brings you closer to the bystanders who have yet to actually leave.
Kakarot laughs as he swoops in, flying over the ground and closer to you. Your feet dig in as you catch both his hands. The force behind him pushes you even further to the others. You grind your teeth and kick his feet out from under him. That combined with his momentum knocks you both over into a tumble. You roll across the ground a few times until you’re on the bottom. You blast him off you and follow up with a few more to force him higher. After recovering from the initial blast Kakarot knocks your following ones away. He watches as you flip back to your feet and rush him again.
“Five hundred and seventy. Still rising despite taking damage.”
You engage him once more, a flurry of punches and kicks being launched by both parties. Your eyes are constantly moving to recognize and counter whatever attacks he throws while looking for weak points to attack. Unfortunately, you still can’t land a hit. You’re at least scratching his face or nicking his leg, but no decisive blows during your scuffles. He’s still getting hits in though – a powerful punch to the jaw here, a shattering side kick there. But despite it all, you still throw your punches and fight through the pain.
He kicks you through the arches, the debris landing in the water and tearing the grass. You do the latter as you slide across the ground on your side. You push off but he immediately appears and drives both of his heels into your stomach. Before you’re sent away he grabs one of your arms and spins you round and round until he releases you towards the arches once more. You break through the outer once more and slam into the inner. You’re about to fall into the water below but Kakarot catches your face and rams it into the cement again. He flies across, leaving a clear trail where your head was. Pieces of the cement bounce against your face, the force of his hand crushing your skull. Kakarot laughs the whole time, enjoying the thrill of the fight. It’s been too long since he fought another Saiyan on somewhat equal terms, and even longer since he was the one winning.
He pulls you off, spins around, and throws you through the arch once more. As you soar over the middle path, Kakarot grabs your jaw and pulls you down to it once more, slamming you head first into the concrete floor. He follows up by grabbing your leg to pull you out and blasts you with a large, purple beam that would kill most of the spectators. You bounce along the ground, body smoking and nearly limp. You roll to a natural stop and lay there for a moment.
He’s… so strong. I didn’t know someone like this was around. A Saiyan…
You open your eyes and look at the sky, your ears not taking any of the noise in.
Can I beat… a Saiyan? Just thinking of it… and how strong he is really gets my heart racing. I’m in a lot of trouble, and yet…
You turn your head to view Kakarot, arms crossed and waiting for you.
It’s still… a lot of fun. But I can’t win like this… if I lose, my friends will die… everyone on Remnant will die. I can’t let my home be destroyed by people… who I brought here.
You roll over and push yourself onto your knees.
I have to hit him with everything at once. One surprise Super Kamehameha. It’s the only way.
You get on your feet and finally start to hear everything around you.
“Come on, (Y/N)!”
“You can do it!”
“Kick his alien butt!”
“Yeah!”
You turn around and see everyone cheering you on. RWBY, JNPR, CFVY, and even students who rejected you. They’re all cheering you on, hoping you’ll win, wishing you luck. You chuckle and clench your fist.
“Yeah… no way I’ll lose. Not with everyone at my back!”
I just gotta find an opening and a place to charge my Kamehameha… I got it!
You jump over the ponds and land on the untouched arch.
“Come on, Kakarot!” You bait as you run across the architecture.
“What game are you playing?” He mumbles as he keeps turning to follow your movements.
You leap over the obstacles and keep running until you hit the end. You jump once again and land at the other end of the path, closer to the docks. Kakarot unfolds his arms and starts flying towards you. You start jumping back a meter or so at a time, your eyes locked on the invader. You try to catch his fist but it goes right past your hand and slams into your face. He follows up with blows to your stomach, face, shoulder, leg, a massive flurry from the Saiyan warrior. He pushes you all the way past the docks and over the lake below Beacon. You duck under Kakarot’s hook and bounce your head into his chin. He sneers and hammerfists you down into the lake. You spiral all the way until you crash into the water.
Kakarot crosses his arms and looks down. He watches the water slowly come to a calm… yet you don’t surface. “Hmph, you can’t stay down there forever. Unless… that’s all you’ve got? I have to say, you’re more than I was expecting. Your power level has grown significantly in this one fight… you were nearly six hundred at the end. But you’ve decided to make an enemy of us. Just remember…” Kakarot lowers his right hand and gathers a surge of energy. “I offered you a place with us. This… is your own doing.”
The water’s calm breaks as a yellow ball propels out towards Kakarot. He leans back, but at that moment you appear before him, your fist ready to strike. With the energy still gathered, Kakarot throws his hand forward and blasts you… or rather, blasts the afterimage.
“What?”
He turns around to face the school, but a bright blue glow overwhelms his vision. You’re slightly below him, eyes gazing into his with conviction and power. Your hands are already moving from your hip to his chest. There’s no time for him to move.
“Over… a thousand?”
“HAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAA!”
The massive beam erupts from his chest, enveloping and pushing him far into the sky. The beam shakes the school grounds, dissipates nearby clouds, and expands far more than any Kamehameha the girls have ever seen before. After a few moments, you stop feeding the Kamehameha. You remain in the air for a few more moments, breathing heavily.
“Alright… I’m done.”
Unable to keep yourself conscious, you fall back towards the lake.
“He’s falling!” Yang shouts.
“Weiss, speed glyphs!” Ruby shouts, taking a position to run.
“Got it!”
A line of glyphs forms from Ruby to the edge of the docks. The young girl bursts forward in a flurry of rose petals. The young girl reaches the end of the docks and leaps forward, catching you just in time. She flips around and lands on another glyph, using that to jump back to the docks. She slides to a halt, holding you in her arms.
“Oh, you’re heavy,” she lays you down immediately, keeping her hand on your back to keep you straight.
“We’ll help,” a mysterious voice says.
Ruby looks up and sees three men descending from the sky. Your eyes slightly open to see the visitors.
“Tien… Krillin… and Yamcha,” you smirk. “You… missed the fun.”
“No, we saw it,” Krillin chuckles. “But we were told not to interfere. He was too strong for us anyway.”
“You were amazing. I can’t believe the power gap between us,” Tien tightens his fist. “I guess that means I’ll have to train even harder.”
“Yeah… maybe I won’t have to do it on my own next time,” you chuckle.
“(Y/N)!”
The five of you shift your gaze to the wave of people running towards your location. They all huddle around you, asking too many questions and saying so many different things that you can barely keep up with it all.
“So are you really an alien?”
“That was so intense! You were so fast and disappearing and reappearing and… gah, so cool!”
“Did you get beat up on purpose?”
“Are you gonna kill us now?”
“Shut up!”
“Sorry.”
Your close friends, the rest of RWBY, JNPR, and even Velvet and Coco, move in further than the others.
“You kicked butt out there, (Y/N),” Coco kneels down and pats you on the back.
“Are you okay? You’re bleeding… a lot,” Velvet points out.
“I’ll work on it, hehe,” you refrain from moving. “I’m just… really drained, honestly. I could go for some food.”
“You deserve a buffet after that,” Jaune remarks.
“Oh, uh…” Yang kneels down in front of you. “Thank you. You saved me.”
You shrug. “No big deal. Just… when I say run away you should probably listen to me.”
Of course, nothing can last. As everyone talks and cheers, another person joins in. They fall from the sky, crashing down on Beacon’s docks. Everyone moves back, behind you and the other Turtle School students. Tien, Yamcha, and Krillin stand their ground in front of you. They know you’re in no position to fight anymore.
Kakarot rises from the crater, his armour mostly destroyed or stained with blood. He stumbles about before stabilizing himself. Like you, he’s fatigued from the battle. That one attack did more than he anticipated, more than he ever thought you could inflict. But Kakarot is no fool. In this weakened state, and with all those people around you, there’s no way he’ll leave alive if he re-engages.
“Hey,” you shout. “You said there were others, right? Other Saiyans?”
“I did… what of it?”
“Are they strong?” You ask, lifting off Ruby and getting on your own two feet, albeit shakily.
“Stronger than me. They’d kill you.”
“Hehe… you know… I’d be happy to fight them… and fight you again.”
“What are you saying?” Blake quietly scolds.
Kakarot squints his eyes. You got the drop on him, something that won’t happen again. You have to know you’re weaker than him, and the others are so much stronger. Yet you’re staring at him with a smile asking them to come back to fight. Kakarot… ends up chuckling.
“If we come back… we’ll eradicate all life on this planet. You realize this?”
“No you won’t,” you shake your head. “Cause I’ll beat you all… and keep my planet safe.”
Kakarot doesn’t respond to this. He just stares at you for a few moments. He doesn’t quite understand why you’d say that, but there’s no point in being here anymore. Without another word, Kakarot turns away and flies towards his space pod. You watch him fly away, your smile persisting.
“Alright… now I’m done,” you fall back, arms and legs spread as you sleep.
From a distance, high atop Ozpin’s tower, Piccolo watches as your friends check if you’re okay. His arms are crossed, his expression is as serious as ever, and his cape flows with the wind.
“Hmph,” is all he mutters before disappearing.
Alright, so, this one didn’t take me as long as I thought it would. To be honest, I didn’t REALLY start writing until the tenth or so. I know, it’s bad. But, considering everything, I think it’s all good. This is definitely the longest chapter of Limitless, and it also builds into the Saiyan Saga! I actually like writing and sorta building my own Dragon Ball world. Some Dragon Ball smarties may have noticed I’m using that idea Toriyama brought up not long ago… or the logic of the TOP… whatever, it’s that Saiyans can get stronger mid-fight. Toriyama said it, Vegeta said it (multiple times but in Super, he also says they get stronger mid-fight as well as after near death experiences), and it was HEAVILY shown in the TOP. So, I’m just gonna use it early because it’s my story and I can do what I want.
OH! And I can already guess that someone left a comment already before reading this. Yes, your Saiyan name is Kail. Yes, I know Super introduced a Saiyan named Kale (spelled different, mind you) from Universe 6. I made up Kail long before Super brought Kale into the equation. I actually slammed my head against my desk multiple times when I saw the name. Like, please, why take my name? You didn’t even spell it in a unique way like I did. It’s literally just the food… whatever, I’m not changing it. Kail and Kale are different. Deal with it. I don’t even know if I’m going to include that character anyway. Hell, anything to do with other Universes is FAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAR away so I’m not worried.
Well, that’s all for me. See you next time! And if you read Crimson Shadow then I’ll see you even sooner!
Want to keep up with me? Know what chapter’s coming out next and the progress of them? Follow me on Twitter! Twitter . com (slash) Chinsangan
Questions? Comments? Concerns? Advice? Send me a message! See ya!
And finally, thank you to the Beta Reader: TheNameIsntImportant
Chapter 9: Strength of the Warrior Race! Rise to their Power!
Chapter Text
Chapter 9: Strength of the Warrior Race! Rise to their Power!
“It’s as I said,” Piccolo speaks with a harsh tone. “One Saiyan will bring more. I told you that when he first arrived. Now not one, but five are on their way? Killing him as a child would have prevented all of this.”
“Piccolo, you’re more than a match for the current Saiyans,” Ozpin calmly responds, taking a drink before speaking again. “I don’t see what the problem is.”
“You and I both know the potential of Saiyans. If they’re being used by S-“
“That is not our concern at the moment,” Ozpin quickly cuts in. “I have assured the safety of our Relic. Between you and I, there’s little that can get to it. When the Saiyans come… (Y/N) will fight them. You and I will not get involved – there’s no need.”
Piccolo turns away, looking out to the sky. “I am the Guardian of Remnant. It is my duty to keep the Relics, Dragon Balls, and people safe. I accepted your war because it affects more than just Remnant… but this? This is your own curiosity that’s putting the planet at risk. He barely defeated that Saiyan.”
“But you felt it, didn’t you? He got stronger… and it wasn’t a temporary boost.”
“That’s why bringing Saiyans here is dangerous. They become stronger… it will lead to destruction.”
Ozpin sighs. “Piccolo, I understand where you are coming from. But you must know we need strong allies. You and I are the only people on the planet who can truly stop what’s to come. Of course there’s… my other associate, but he won’t help much. If something were to happen and we were overwhelmed…” Ozpin moves beside Piccolo. “Saiyans have immense potential. We need to nurture him.”
The two remain silent for a time, thinking as their eyes wander. The wind rushes through their clothes, forcing Piccolo’s long white cape to blow behind Ozpin. The Guardian takes a deep breath, closing his eyes.
“He won’t survive the battle.”
“I know,” Ozpin quickly answers before taking a drink. “I know you won’t train him, and I can’t for… reasons,” he quickly gulps down some more liquid. “However, there’s someone who can.” Ozpin looks to the sky above. “What do you think? Five? Six months?”
“Mm… yes.”
“Then I have some strings to pull,” Ozpin turns away and starts walking.
“Ozpin…” Piccolo turns around. The Headmaster stops and waits for his ally to speak. “Do you really think one Saiyan can help?”
Ozpin chuckles. “In aiding him… I believe we’ll gain more than just ‘one Saiyan.’”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“You sure you’re okay?” Yang asks, arms crossed.
“I just can’t believe a bean did that,” Weiss comments. “Is it infused with some kind of Dust?” Weiss rubs her jaw.
You roll your shoulders and stretch your neck. “Nah, I’m okay,” you smile at the four girls. “I actually feel amazing! Better than ever, honestly!” You look down at your hands while you clench them. “It’s weird… like, I feel a LOT better. Like I trained for a few weeks or something.”
“Only you would think training feels good,” Weiss shakes her head.
You hop off your bed and start stretching your legs. “Well, that was fun. I almost didn’t win.”
“I don’t think it was very fun,” Ruby remarks. “Someone did die…”
The mood in the room instantly drops, save for your shining presence. You look back and forth between the downcast girls, unsure how to make them feel better. You move your lips to the right as you think, then smile when you come up with an idea.
“I didn’t die.” The four look at you, clearly showing your attempt didn’t work. You cross your arms and tilt your head. “Huh… I thought that would’ve been a positive… oh, we probably won’t have class for the rest of today!” The girls remain silent, still unamused with your comments. “Should I just… go?”
“You should probably stop talking,” Blake advises.
“Right,” you nod.
“I heard them saying there will be an assembly to talk about it. I imagine you’ll be needed there,” Weiss speaks. “Since, well…” She shuffles in place before coughing.
“Yeah…” Ruby nods.
“Is it… oh, right,” you shift your tail to your side and look at it. “Nothing to worry about,” you wave your arm. “I’m gonna go find Ozpin. You guys can stay in my room if you want to. Don’t know why you would, but…” You open your door while keeping your eyes on the girls. “I don’t know. Options are nice.”
You close the door behind you and stand still. “I could have just gone out the window…” You look around the hallway. “It’d be too awkward if I walked back in… so I guess I’m just gonna stroll out,” you say before happily sauntering down the hallway. “I haven’t done this in a while… where are the stairs?”
You turn a corner right as RWBY leaves your room.
“Why did he think we’d stay there?” Ruby thinks aloud.
“It’s not easy to understand him,” Weiss shrugs.
“Perhaps there’s a method to his madness.”
“I think he’s just dense,” Yang chuckles. “But it works for him.”
“Maybe for you,” Weiss replies.
“Come on, let's find JNPR and head to the assembly,” Ruby plans while she leads her team towards their friends’ dorm.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“Yes! Freedom!” You shout, bursting out of the dormitories after twenty minutes of wandering. “Why do they make buildings so complicated? My house was only two rooms! It was simple,” you ramble as you walk.
You stop and look towards the innards of Beacon, sensing a large mass of energy signatures. “Oh yeah, the assembly for the dead guy. He shouldn’t have tried to fight. That guy was way out of his league. Hm…” You cross your arms and stare at the ground. “Or… if I was a little faster I could have stopped it. Welp, no use beating myself up over it,” you throw your hands in the air. “Can’t let that bother me!”
RWBY and JNPR watch from a distance as you remain normal, get sad, then go back to being happy.
“And here I thought he was having a moment,” Weiss shakes her head.
“Not everyone is brooding and sad, you know,” Yang starts walking again. “Come on, we’re gonna be late. Hey, (Y/N)!” She waves. “Come on!”
You look over at the group and smile. “Oh, hey! I’m-“ You stop and look behind you, towards the entrance to Beacon’s grounds “I’m… gonna catch up in a minute. Go on without me!” You shout before running off.
You switch to gliding along the ground to make more distance, passing by statues, buildings, and going over ponds to reach the docks. You spot Krillin, Tien, and Yamcha just starting to fly away.
“Guys!” You shout, soaring into the air to reach them.
The three turn around and smile at your presence.
“Heya, (Y/N)! You look ripe as rain,” Yamcha greets.
You stop in front of them, smile as bright as ever. “Don’t get all buddy-buddy with me! You were gonna leave without saying goodbye!”
“Tensions are high here,” Tien replies. “After you fell unconscious, those girls said you had Senzu Beans, so we weren’t worried.”
“Yeah, and we were getting weird looks,” Krillin meekly says, rubbing his bald head.
You cross your legs mid-air and flip upside down, keeping your eyes in line with Tien and Yamcha. “What do you mean? I don’t sense anything weird.”
“That’s because you still need to learn,” Tien responds. “Tensions are high after that fight. Your Saiyan heritage, the death of a student, all this after that incident at your village.” You look away, exhaling through your nose. “Things aren’t very positive here.”
“And that brings the Grimm,” Yamcha adds. “It wouldn’t be safe for everyone in Vale.”
“I know,” you nod. “But I didn’t ask for it! They dragged me off to Atlas! I didn’t even know I was a Saiyan… actually, that made me think of something,” you flip yourself around and hover normally in the air. “Kakarot said it took a full moon to change into that ape thing… but I didn’t see a moon before that. I saw some ball of energy.”
Tien places his hand at his chin. “Which means someone wanted you to transform.”
“Whoa, so there are people here who knew about the Saiyans before?” Yamcha scratches his arm. “I’m getting some major goosebumps.”
“Hm…” You’re lost in thought while the others look between each other. “I guess I have some stuff to think about. I’ll stop by so we can all train together again. I have a feeling we’re all gonna have to get stronger!”
“I agree,” Tien nods.
“Well, we should head back to Master Roshi and tell him how things went. I hope everything works out with you,” Krillin pats your shoulder.
“Don’t worry, it will. Have a safe flight! I’ll see you soon!” You wave before they start to fly off. “Well,” you let your arms rest at your side. “Guess I gotta get to that assembly or whatever. I can find Ozpin there and chat with… oh no,” you slap your face. “Ozpin’s at Atlas! So who’s holding the assembly? Ms. Goodwitch, I guess,” you shrug.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
RWBY and JNPR enter the building where they all gathered on their first day. If only the reason was as positive as back then. The gossip they eight can hear clearly sets this gathering apart.
“…and one of us was killed by that alien.”
“A Sayjin? Saiyaman?”
“Saiyan. Turns out that Faunus kid is no Faunus at all.”
“Makes sense. He never seemed to be normal.”
“Does that mean he’ll attack us too?”
“Idiot, he fought off that other one.”
“It could be a ruse.”
“I was there. He didn’t know about that Alien stuff. I don’t think he’s against us.”
“But he didn’t kill the other one! Does that mean more will come?”
“It means he wants them to come back!”
“Then why would he fight?”
All these words pass through the two teams’ ears as they shuffle into the middle of the room.
“At least not everyone is against him,” Ren comments. “But it’s clear some questions need to be answered.”
“I think he’s among those who have questions,” Blake crosses her arms. “But it’s possible those who are doubtful of him will be the loudest.”
“He’s an honest person. I’m sure he’ll win everyone over,” Pyrrha firmly says.
“We’ll have his back too,” Jaune affirms. “We’re his friends, after all.”
“Yeah!” Ruby throws her hand in the air. “We should go up there and tell them all!”
“Be my guest,” Yang chuckles.
Ruby immediately falls in on herself. “Alone?! No way!”
“That’s what I thought.”
Ozpin, standing before the mic, clears his throat to get everyone’s attention. “Good afternoon,” he says with a calm, clear voice. “As you all know, an incident took place earlier today involving some of our students and a foreign invader.” This statement erupts some muttering from the crowd. “Yes, yes, we realize that this new information is overwhelming. Nobody could have predicted the existence of other life. But it’s important that we all remain focused and calm. Panic, fear, these things bring the Grimm. Our more experienced students know this well, but let this be a perfect lesson for our younger students.”
Late as ever, you push open the door during Ozpin’s speech. More and more people turn around to face you, hearing about your alien status and your unprecedented battle. You look to Ozpin right away, a confused expression taking over.
He must’ve taken a fast ship… or I’ve been out longer than I thought.
You close the door behind you and slowly enter the room, eyes drifting along the crowd who won’t stop staring. You rub the back of your head and chuckle, not sure what else to do in this situation.
“I would like you to join me on stage, (Y/N),” Ozpin requests.
“Yeah, sure,” you nod before hovering above the crowd and landing beside the Headmaster. “Sorry I was late, I was talking with…” You look back out to the crowd. “Eh, nevermind.”
“We will be having a memorial for the brave student who tried to help and was unfortunately killed. He will be remembered and have a place at Beacon’s memorial. I asked his team to stay behind after this so I can speak with them. Now,” he shifts his body slightly to you. “You were the focal point of this event. Do you have anything to say?”
Ozpin steps out of the way for you to take the stage. You slouch over and narrow your eyes at the Headmaster. You move in front of the mic and stare at the crowd.
“Well… uh, hehe… okay,” you take a deep breath. “I don’t know anything about Saiyans. Even Kakarot said I had amnesia or something… I’m sorry for bringing him to Beacon and putting everyone in danger… even though I wasn’t at Beacon when he came so… ah, whatever. I realize that I’ll have to deal with that and I’ll do my best to keep you all out of it. I’m, ah, really sorry for everything. I don’t know, I’m not too good at speeches,” you rub the top of your head, messing up your already messy hair. “I just hope you don’t think I’m here to hurt anyone or anything… unless we’re training! That part… uh… right, no, none of that,” you wave off that train of thought off.
There’s an awkward silence that takes over the room. Nobody says anything to you and instead just stare. You look around the room, contorting your face every few seconds to at least do something.
“Wow… I don’t know if this is going better or worse than I thought,” you whisper.
“So what happens if they come back?” Someone finally speaks.
“That guys said there were more that are stronger!”
“Maybe (Y/N) only fought cause he knew he could win!”
You scratch your head at that one. “You know I barely-“
“How do we know what happened? He could have threatened the witnesses.”
You blankly blink twice. “I… there were teachers there too… I told them to leave.”
More and more people start arguing, both against you and for you. All you can do is stand on stage and think of some way to calm them down. Ozpin remains silent, watching you.
“So… how will you handle this?” He says to himself.
“I don’t think we’re safe as long as he’s around!”
“Wasn’t he taken away to Atlas anyway? He came back because he knew!”
“Hey!” A voice shouts louder than the others. You watch as a fellow classmate, Cardin Winchester, hops on stage to get everyone’s attention. “I don’t know what you idiots are talking about! If this guy didn’t show up we’d all be dead!”
You, RWBY, and plenty of other students are completely taken back that Cardin is taking your side. He hasn’t been the nicest to the Faunus students or even some of the meeker humans, like Jaune.
“I don’t like you very much,” he turns to you.
“We don’t talk though.”
“But I believe in him. I was there – I saw him put his all into fighting that Kaka guy.”
“Yeah!” Ruby hops on the stage too. “He’s super-duper nice and…” Ruby stops mid-sentence when she realizes she’s in front of the entire student body. “And… uh…”
“He also stopped the White Fang in Vale,” Blake speaks up, though she doesn’t bother getting on stage. “That’s a pretty selfless act, if you ask me.”
“I blew up that time,” you chuckle. “Listen… I don’t know how I can convince people… but I’ll do my best to! I’ll prove to all of you that I’m on your side, no matter what. I’m a Faunus, I don’t care he said. So please,” you place your hands at your side and bow to everyone. “Give me a chance to prove myself.”
Ozpin smiles at the result and decides its time to intervene. “I believe that’s all that needs to be said,” he declares, returning to the mic. “(Y/N), I’d like you to be in my office… in an hour.”
You stand up straight and nod. “Of course.”
“The rest of you I ask to think on what’s been said here. I’m sure (Y/N) is eager to work for your trust. You’re dismissed. All classes are canceled for the rest of the day.”
Ruby quickly jumps off the stage and runs to her friends. Cardin slowly approaches the edge but you place your hand on his chest before he can hop down.
“Hey…” You remove your hand and smile. “I appreciate what you said.”
“Don’t think on it too hard, monkey… but you saved my life. It’s the least I could do.”
You snicker. “Next time I’ll let you save mine.”
And with that, Cardin leaves you and returns to his team. You look back to Ozpin who’s talking with the now three-man team.
An hour… okay. I might as well get something to eat… I wonder if I have to get back to Atlas. I’ll ask Ozpin about it.
You hop off the stage and walk through the crowd, getting a few stares here and there. You smile at everyone you can, hoping to gain a bit of rapport from such a small act.
“Hey guys,” you stop in between RWBY and JNPR. “You want to get some food? I’m super hungry.”
“Tell me about it!” Nora nods. “Let's go!” She points towards the door and starts marching out the door.
“Yeah!” You fly over some other people and land beside her, mimicking her movements.
“He’s pretty chipper already,” Ren comments.
“Yeah… doesn’t let things get him down,” Yang smirks, leaning on one hip as she watches you and Nora march.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Ozpin’s elevator dings before opening, granting you access to the headmaster’s quarters. Ozpin looks up from his desk and smiles at you whilst you enter.
“Greetings, (Y/N). I trust everything is going well?”
You shrug, still walking. “I suppose. I got a lot of weird looks while walking here, but I suppose a lot has happened in a short time. Probably doesn’t help that I’m still pretty chipper,” you end with a chuckle.
“Positivity is always an admirable trait to have. It can be hard to maintain such when it feels like the world around you is crumbling.”
You hop over the guest chair and sit in it. “I guess. I had a question for you.”
“And I likely have an answer.”
“Heh, right. Well, what happened with Atlas? I didn’t get you in trouble by flying off, did I?”
Ozpin shakes his head and chuckles. “No, no, of course not. In fact, you solved our little problem.”
“I did?” You tilt your head to the side.
“Indeed. From what the professors who were present have said, it seems like the key to your transformation is that tail of yours.”
“My tail?” You look to your right where your tail waves. “So… I have to get rid of my tail? Can I do that?”
“Of course,” Ozpin nods. “In fact, I can do it for you.”
“Oh… huh…” You cross your arms and think for a moment. “Life without my tail…” A quick flash of Lucent and Crystal appear in your mind. “No, I have to,” you nod, adopting a determined visage. “I don’t want to put anyone in danger. If you can cut off my tail and stop me from transforming then I’ll do it.”
“A valiant answer, (Y/N). I’ll relay that to… well, those who need to know. Consider you pardoned. I won’t let them interfere with you anymore.”
“Really?” You smile. “Awesome! Now I can train without worry.”
“Train? What about school work?”
“Oh,” you pause. “Well, of course that too! But if what Kakarot said was true, he’s gonna come back with even stronger Saiyans! I need to get a lot stronger if I want to beat them. Man…” You squirm in place, a large smile plastered on your face. “Thinking about it gets me all jittery.”
“You’re excited?”
“Mhm,” you quickly nod. “Thinking about such strong opponents… I don’t know what it is, but I feel a fire burning inside me that just rises whenever I think of a tough fight. Plus the training is fun too!”
“Mm…” Ozpin leans back in his chair and presses the tips of his fingers together. “Well… let’s take this one step at a time. Stand up,” he says while doing the same thing. “We’ll deal with your tail problem right now.”
“Right,” you get on your feet and step back. “Should I… do something?”
“No, no,” Ozpin shakes his head as he walks behind you. “It will only take a moment. I’m not quite sure how this will feel.”
“Oh?” You cross your arms and stare out the window. “So how will- oh!” You suddenly feel a pull, a quick pain, and a complete loss of balance. “Oh… whoa… this…” You wobble back and forth. “This doesn’t feel… oh boy…”
Ozpin steps in front of you, holding your limp tail. “I’ve got it. You won’t have to worry about it anymore.”
“Is that so?” You do your best to keep your balance. “What am I… oh this is weird,” you mutter before falling on your face, unconscious.
Ozpin chuckles at the sight. “I wasn’t sure what would happen if I removed a Saiyan’s tail… well,” he moves it behind his back and smiles. “Now I know. I’ll have Glynda fix your clothes. No need for those holes, after all.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Three Days Later…
“I’m still not used to it,” Yang shakes her head while lowering her fists. “It looks so weird.”
“I know, right?” You look at your butt, all lonely and tailless. “Thanks for fighting with me these past couple days, by the way,” you hop back and get back into your fighting stance. “I could barely walk around properly.”
Yang watches as you start throwing coordinated punches and kicks in all directions, pushing your speed and agility to their max to test the feeling.
“You know… I actually have a question.”
You stop mid kick, holding it in the air as you look at Yang. “Yeah?”
“That thing you do… the flying and the ‘Kamehameha!’” She mimics the movements. “That’s not your Semblance, right?”
You lower your leg and places your hands on your hips. “Nope. I learned all that from Master Roshi! It’s Ki control!”
“So anyone can learn it?”
You nod. “Pretty sure. That one guy had Aura and Ki so… yeah, I don’t think it’s limited! Any human…” You pause for a moment. “Well… I guess anyone can learn it. Man, I’m gonna have to refer to myself as a human from now on… that’s gonna be so weird,” you end with a lighthearted chuckle.
“Do you think…” Yang looks away and twirls her hair a bit. “You could… maybe teach me a bit?”
“About Ki control?” You tilt your head.
“Yeah. If anyone can learn it then can’t you teach me?”
“I guess,” you cross your arms. “I’ve never really taught anyone before… yeah, that actually sounds like fun!” You get more into the idea. “After class! We’ll meet at seven behind the school! It’ll be fun!”
“Yeah, sounds great!” Yang clenches her fist. “You better not go easy on me.”
“No way,” you shake your head. “You helped me get back into shape so I’ll help you learn some Ki control!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“How do I teach Ki control?” You say to yourself as you march back and forth on the grass. “I never even thought about it. I just sorta do it. What if there are complications between her Aura and Ki?” You spin on your heel and slam your other foot down, locking yourself in place. “Maybe I can-“
“Hey (Y/N)!” Yang greets from behind you.
“GAH!” You jump back and turn around. “Oh,” you see Yang walking with the rest of her team. “More people…”
“Yeah!” Ruby throws her hand in the air. “Yang told us you were gonna teach her about that glowy explody stuff and I wanted to learn too!”
“That’s such a childish way to explain it,” Weiss shakes her head. “But I was interested in learning as well.”
“As was I,” Blake adds.
“Huh…” You rub the back of your head. “Well, the more the merrier I guess. Alright,” you clap your hands. “Let's stop wasting darkness, then. Sit down with me. Come, come,” you plop down and pat the ground. Ruby, Yang, and Blake sit down while Weiss takes a few extra seconds thanks to her skirt. “So Ki is… well, we do all have it. You just have to find a way to access it. I don’t know how you’ll find the difference between Aura and Ki, but… whatever,” you shrug. “Let’s start with something simple.”
You place your hands in front of you and quickly form a glowing ball of yellow Ki. “This is what I want you four to do. It’s the first step in controlling your Ki. We’ll move onto attacks, flying, strength, speed, and durability. But all that is useless if you can’t even do this.” You let the Ki dissipate. “Now you four try.”
The four girls mimic your stance and start focusing everything on that action. You stand up and start walking behind the girls. You kneel down beside Ruby and place your hands on her shoulders. “Quiet your mind and relax. I can tell you’re thinking about it too much.”
“Okay!” Ruby mumbles, closing her eyes and taking a breath.
“It’s energy deep in yourself. You just have to bring it out. Relax and concentrate. Deep breaths.”
The girls shake, they breathe, and they do their best to summon this hidden power within them. You notice some of their Auras are flaring while they try to summon their Ki. You cross your arms and think. “Are you purposefully using your Aura?”
The four stop and look back at you, all shaking their head.
“Well, you are. I’m not sure if that will interrupt it… I know you’ll have to get used to merging them both, so I guess it’s good to start like this. Okay, make sure your Aura is active while doing this.”
“Right,” the four respond.
Each of them activates their Aura before concentrating once more. Each focus, each think on ways to draw out this unknown power that was hidden within them for so long. You keep watching each of the four girls as they struggle to form Ki in their hands. You sit down in front and try to think of a way to make this easier.
“Do we feel something? Is there a sign?” Weiss asks, looking up at you while continuing to try.
“Other than the glowing ball in your hands? Well…” You tap your chin. “Think of it as pulling something out of your chest and running it through your hands. You might have to dig deep since your pool of Ki is far less than mine.”
And so, the girls continue to try and try and try. Soon enough, teachers start doing their runs to make sure everyone is back in their dorms. Thankfully, you picked a slightly secluded spot. You won’t be kicked back to your dorms for at least another twenty minutes. That being said, you’ll spend the next twenty minutes just sitting there and watching the girls try. From your observations, Weiss has gotten the closest to forming a ball of Ki. The others are still slightly behind.
“This sucks!” Yang throws her hands in the air.
“That’s the third time you’ve said that,” you chuckle. “You just have to relax. Here, I got an idea.”
You jump over Yang and land behind her. You sit down and scooch in so your chest is touching her back and your legs slide next to hers.
“Whoa, what-“
You grab her hands and move them into position. “Listen, just take a few deep breaths. You’re gonna do it this time.”
“I… uh…”
“You’re gonna do it, right?”
“Right… yeah, right!”
Yang focuses on her hands once more, feeling your battle-hardened ones covet hers. “Deep breaths… focus… feel that power surge through your hands. Control it. Make it yours.”
Yang closes her eyes and lets the energy flow through her. She searches through her body, past her flesh, past her Aura, and touches something she’s never felt before. You can feel this spark in her and smile.
“That’s it,” you whisper. “You’ve almost got it.”
This surging feeling comes to the surface. Her hands feel tingly yet warm. She opens her lilac eyes and sees the glowing yellow ball between her hands.
“Whoa! Hey! HEY! I DID IT! HAHA!” She throws her hands in the air, accidentally throwing the ball. “Ah! Wait!”
“Don’t worry, it’s not that powerful,” you pat her shoulder before standing up. “Alright,” you jump in front of them. “Yang actually did it and Weiss is really close. Blake, Ruby, if you need help then ask those two. I want to see all of you be able to form that ball. Yang, I want you to practice and do it whenever. Maybe even with one hand.” You raise your hand and smile. “Class dismissed!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Kakarot’s space pod lands on a distant planet, secluded and barren. He exits the pod, mostly healed from the battle. Kakarot takes a few steps away from the pod as it closes, looking around the empty plane.
“Seven months… they’ll be here in seven months. Kail…” Kakarot tightens his fist before him. “I will destroy you next time we meet.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“And I wrestled that Beowolf down with my bare hands, forcing the beast into submission with my manly might! Aha!” Professor Port cheers.
“Yeah!” You follow up, totally into the story… the only one into the story.
Everyone else is either sleeping or surprised that someone is even bothering to pay attention to his monotonous stories. Then again, it’s you. Everyone knows you’re a fighting addict… and an alien. Both go hand in hand at this point. If anyone asked about (Y/N), they’d say those two things. Of course, anyone out of the loop would question the alien bit.
“Excuse me,” Ozpin knocks on the door to attract the teacher’s attention.
“Ah, Professor Ozpin. A pleasure to see you in my class.”
“A pleasure to be here, as always, Peter. If I may, could I borrow young (Y/N) for a spell?”
“Of course. Go on,” he gestures you towards the door.
You hop out of your seat and fly over the other students, showing the discretion is still far from your strongest trait. You land beside Ozpin and look up at the gray-haired man.
“What’s up?”
The Headmaster chuckles at that introduction. “Follow me. I have something important to discuss.”
Ozpin leads you out of the classroom and through the hallways of the building. Nothing is said during this time. The only sound is the tapping of his cane between each of his steps. The silence is almost deafening to you. It’s so strange to walk so far yet not say a word. Out of the building, past the grass, the statues, the ponds, and all the way to his tower. Still not a word as you enter the elevator with him.
“So, uh… what’s this about? Did I end up getting in trouble with Atlas after all?”
“Oh, no, nothing like that,” Ozpin snickers. “I actually am planning a field trip, just for you.”
“Just for me? That doesn’t sound too safe, Ozpin,” you smile widely. “Is it to another cell?”
“No,” he shakes his head. “It’s for… special training.”
“Training?” You hop in front of him, eyes lit up with excitement. “What sort of training? Lifting? Fighting? Do I have to learn some new weapons?”
The elevator dings before letting the door open from the middle. Standing just right of the center is a tall, green man wearing odd clothes.
“Whoa!” You run out of the elevator, sliding in front of Piccolo. “You’re green! That’s so cool! How did you do that? Are you a Faunus?”
Ozpin chuckles at the sight as he walks closer to the two of you. “This is Piccolo, a very good friend of mind and the Guardian of Remnant.”
You look at Ozpin then back to Piccolo, who’s clearly annoyed at your curiosity. “Guardian of Remnant? So you’re a Huntsman?”
“No,” Piccolo responds. “I guard Remnant against far more than mere Grimm.”
“More than Grimm?” You tilt your head to the side. “Like what?”
“That’s not important right now. You have to prepare for the Saiyans.”
You look over at Ozpin. “Saiyans? You know when they’re coming?”
“Piccolo and I, yes.”
You step back, looking between the two. “How would you know? He didn’t say… how…”
“As a Guardian, I look beyond the planet.”
“Wait, you’re not from Remnant?” You exclaim with surprise.
Piccolo shakes his head, utterly disappointed at the ineptitude of a Saiyan amnesiac. He knows Saiyans aren’t the brightest bunch, save for a few, but you’re on a whole other level.
“That’s not your concern. Your Headmaster has requested me to step back and let you deal with the Saiyan threat.”
“You could fight them? Does that mean you’re strong? Can we spar?” You get closer and closer with each question.
Piccolo places his hand on your chest and releases a minor shockwave that sends you flying into the wall next to the elevator.
“Ow, ow, ow,” you fall off the wall and rub your back.
“Saiyans are of no threat to me… that includes you.”
“From what we’ve gathered,” Ozpin grasps your attention once again. “You’re the weakest Saiyan alive. If you’re to fight them, you need to get very strong very fast.”
“And you have a way I can do that?”
Ozpin smirks before nodding. “Indeed. A… college of ours is a very good teacher. I believe you would benefit greatly from his teachings. Think of it as a school trip.”
You lean back and forth, stretching your legs. “That sounds like fun. I love learning from new people. Okay, I’m ready!” You hop in place, rolling your shoulders. “Where am I going? Back to Atlas? One of the other Kingdoms?”
“No,” Ozpin chuckles. “He…” The Headmaster glances over at Piccolo as he tries to find the world. “Has his own little world, you could say.”
You tilt your head and think. “Huh… so, like, a dojo? Or an island like Master Roshi!”
“Something like that,” he coyly smiles.
“This isn’t a game, (Y/N),” Piccolo steps forward. “You’ll be going far away for a long time to train hard. If you aren’t strong enough then these Saiyans will kill everyone.”
“But I thought you said you could beat them?”
“I… well…”
“Not often I see you tongue-tied,” Ozpin remarks.
Piccolo sneers, crossing his arms. “Do you want this fight or not?”
“I do!” You quickly answer. “Don’t think I’ll be lazy just cause you’re strong. If I do all this training and you’re stronger…” You smile at him differently – a friendly challenge. “Then I’ll just have to get even stronger.”
“Hmph, Saiyan battle-lust,” Piccolo shakes his head.
“So… do you agree with my plan? You said you wanted to see him beforehand,” Ozpin looks to his friend.
Piccolo looks between you and Ozpin. “I’ll watch over Remnant while you’re gone.”
Ozpin smiles, knowing that’s the closest thing to approval as you’ll get. “It won’t take too long,” Ozpin affirms, approaching you and placing a hand on your shoulder. “Are you ready?”
You pause for a second. “I do want to talk to RWBY before I go. I was trying to teach them Ki control, so…”
Ozpin eyes Piccolo, hiding a smirk from you. “Is that so..?”
“Yeah. They asked so I thought I’d help them! Could you imagine a bunch of people using Aura and Semblance? I wonder if they’d be stronger than me?”
“Doubtful,” Piccolo bluntly answers.
“Very well,” Ozpin starts walking to the elevator. “We’ll drop by Professor Port’s class once again. You’ll be gone for some time, so make sure it’s a proper farewell,” the Headmaster clicks the button and glances over at his ally. “Piccolo?”
“I’ll return to my tower, let him know you’re coming.”
“Perfect,” Ozpin smiles. “Come along, (Y/N). You have a big day today.”
“Oh, sure,” you start walking away then pause. “Oh!” You turn around and bow. “Nice to meet you, Piccolo.” You return to normal and run into the elevator.
“Hmph… Saiyans…” Piccolo sneers after the elevator door closes.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You jump back and forth, leaping above the building you’re standing in front of. Every time you leave the ground you flip around, kick, and punch - anything to loosen your body. Ozpin patiently waits outside the building, chuckling at your silly actions.
“So, you’ve been teaching them about Ki control?”
“Yeah!” You shout before jumping in the air again. “I want to make sure they keep up their training!” You land beside him and jump again. “Maybe send them to Master Roshi,” you land again. “Why didn’t we just take them out of class?”
“Because class is almost over. I would rather not interrupt my students’ learning.”
You stretch back and forth. “Fair enough. Oh, hey!” You spot a flood of students leaving the building.
Most of them give you a glance, wondering what you’re doing with Ozpin. Still, they pass by and leave you be. Soon enough, team RWBY exits the building.
“I was honestly about to fall asleep,” Ruby moans, hunched over.
“That class does tend to drag on,” Blake agrees.
“Is that..?”
“Heya!” You jump above the crowd and wave at them. “Over here!”
“Oh boy,” Weiss shakes her head.
The four girls approach you and are surprised at Ozpin’s presence.
“Professor Ozpin, you’re still with him?” Yang points out. “Is something wrong?”
“Not at all,” he shakes his head. “(Y/N) just wanted to speak with you.”
“Yeah,” you cut in. “I’m going on a school trip!” You say as enthusiastically as ever. “So I won’t be around to keep training you. I wanted you to keep practicing that and, when you’re good, maybe Ozpin can shuttle you to Master Roshi?” You lean forward and look into Ozpin’s eyes.
“You never mentioned this.”
“I know,” you snicker. “But I’m asking now. You’d learn more there than from me,” you return your attention to the girls, retracting to your normal stance. “I’ll be back soon, though, and I expect you four to be super strong!”
“You sure?” Yang smirks. “We might be stronger than you.”
You smile right back. “That’d make me even happier! Anyway, we gotta go, right?” You gaze at Ozpin.
“Indeed. Girls, we’ll talk about these trips another time. Have a good night.”
“Yeah, see ya!” You wave but don’t move. “Wait, how are we getting there?”
Ozpin chuckles. “Girls, please turn around.”
“Oh…” The four follow orders, all unsure why.
Ozpin places his free hand on your shoulder and taps the ground twice with his cane. A strange sensation fills you as you’re suddenly transported from Beacon to a very strange place. It’s a large room with few decorations, if any. Before you can look around and analyze it, someone’s booming voice catches your attention.
“So this is the Saiyan you spoke of, Ozpin?”
You look ahead of you… and then look up. There’s a giant desk hosting an even bigger man. He has red skin, black beard and longer black hair with fairly large horns coming out of his purple hat. Like the hat, his suit shares the purple tint, though his shirt and tie are different, being white and orange respectively.
“Whoa, you’re huge!” You point up at him.
The man squints his eyes at you. “What a rude way to introduce yourself.”
“He’s low on manners, King Yemma,” Ozpin bows. “I apologize. But… have you agreed to let him pass?”
“Normally I would reject it immediately… but considering you’re standing… I’ll allow it.”
“I thank you, King Yemma,” Ozpin graciously speaks.
“Oh, uh… thank you!” You bow. “So I get to train with the strong guy now?” You whisper.
“Yes,” he replies. “Come with me.”
You follow Ozpin out of the building.
“So who was that? He looked tough.”
“That’s King Yemma. If you’re lucky, you’ll never have to deal with him.”
“Why? I didn’t know anyone like that existed on Remnant. Even these other guys,” you look at two men in suits that’re smaller looking versions of Yemma.
Ozpin chuckles. “Well… we’re not on Remnant.”
“What?” You run a bit in front of him. “Not on Remnant? Where are we?”
“The Otherworld. Heaven.”
You stop in place, completely baffled. “He… what? There’s… what?”
Ozpin stops and turns around at you. “There’s more than just Remnant. You’re going to have to get used to it. Now come, you don’t have time to dally.”
“But… you know? How… what kind of Headmaster are you?”
“An informed one.” Ozpin approaches you and places his hand on your shoulder. “Snake Way is unnecessary. I’ll bring you there immediately.”
“Wha-“
Ozpin taps his cane twice once more and teleports you to another place – a planet this time. Your feet land on the grass… followed by your entire body. You crumble to the floor, body shivering.
“What… it’s so…” You try to push yourself up but it’s no use. “How… are you standing?”
Ozpin walks away. “I’ll leave you to that. I have an old friend to talk to.”
“H-Hey!” You shout, trying once more to get on your feet. “My body… just feels so… so heavy. What’s the gravity here? It’s like… my bones are trying to jump ship.”
Slowly but surely, you manage to get on one knee. Even then, it’s like the weight of the world is on that one knee. You huff, puff, and make a ton of strange sounds as you try to push off that knee and get to your feet.
Ozpin, on the other hand, is traversing the plain as if he’s lived with this weight all his life. He approaches a small, circular house with an open door.
“King Kai, are you there?” He shouts.
“King… Kai?” You huff, still stuck on one knee.
You watch as three people walk out of the building. The two that catch you off guard are a small monkey and a grasshopper. The one between the two is a fairly short and stubby character who, following tradition, has a different skin tone. His fairly chubby face is blue, along with his hands. He wears very small glasses that cover his eyes, a hat that has antennae, and a very long coat that’s all black with gold rims. Underneath is a redshirt which only shown through the sleeves and a bit on his neck. There’s a symbol on his chest, as well.
“Ah, S-“
“Ozpin,” he quickly corrects. “That’s all I need.”
“Right. It’s been a while. What brings you and your,” he leans on one leg, taking a gander at you struggling to stand. “Friend?”
“I’d like you to train him. He’s a Saiyan.”
“Oooh, a Saiyan? Well, you know he’ll have to tell a joke for me to…” Ozpin squints his eyes. “I... guess I can skip that part. But he’ll have to train twice as hard!” He points at Ozpin.
“I believe he’ll train even harder than that. He’s quite the worker, as you can see,” he shifts to face you.
“I’m… standing… stupid… planet!” You get on both feet, legs shaking just from holding yourself up. “You can’t stop me!” You take a long, dramatic step towards the two. “I’m… coming…” You take one extremely slow step at a time. “Just… you… wait…”
“You know, the gravity of this planet is ten times that of Remnant,” Ozpin shouts. “You better get used to it.”
“TEN TIMES?” You scream, stopping in place. “HOW’RE YOU STANDING?”
Ozpin shrugs. “I’m not sure. Must be a Headmaster’s secret,” he ends with a coy smile.
“That’s… not fair!” You mumble, taking another step.
“Alright, I’ll train him. But then you’ll owe ME a favour.”
“Very well,” Ozpin bows his head. “I’ll be back to pick him up in two hundred and twelve days.”
“That’s not much time,” King Kai rests his hands behind him. “But it’ll do. I’ll teach him everything I can. He’ll be stronger than me when you come back.”
“I hope so.”
Your huffing and puffing cut the two off. You finally reach them, smiling a bit. “I think… I’m getting used to this gravity.”
Ozpin lifts his cane and nudges you, forcing you onto your butt.
“Hey! That’s not fair!” You desperately get on your feet. “I… can get back on my feet easier! Gravity… has got nothing on me!”
“Is that so?” He chuckles. “Well, old friend,” he turns to King Kai. “I leave him to you. Good luck, (Y/N).”
And with that, Ozpin taps his cane twice and disappears. You look at King Kai and smile with a wide, goofy smile. “So, what’s on the agenda, Master?”
Yep, on King Kai’s world now! Some people may think the story is moving too fast. We’ve barely had any major development at the school. Don’t worry, we have things planned out. It isn’t going to be rushed or anything. Everything will come in time. Remember how it took twenty chapters for Ruby and Slater to get together? Well, imagine Kail and Yang! Nah, I won’t be that mean… maybe. We’ll see how it goes. As you guys know, I usually put story and events before romance. It’s just how I do things. I’m not too worried about when they get together, though I know you guys are. So… just trust me. It’ll happen soon enough… probably.
Anyway, that’s all for me. I’m having plenty of fun writing Dragon Ball. I have at least… I think 6 Volumes planned, two arcs being in each Volume. So, yeah, I got a ton in store for the future. I hope you all stick around to see it! That’s all from me! I’ll see you guys next time!
Want to keep up with me? Know what chapter’s coming out next and the progress of them? Follow me on Twitter! Twitter . com (slash) Chinsangan
Questions? Comments? Concerns? Advice? Send me a message! See ya!
And finally, thank you to the Beta Reader: TheNameIsntImportant
Chapter 10: Chapter 10: Intense Training? Prepare for your Greatest Battle!
Chapter Text
Chapter 10: Intense Training? Prepare for your Greatest Battle!
“He wasn’t kidding,” King Kai looks at the dozens of dishes laid out on his property. “A Saiyan’s appetite is insatiable.”
“Oh man,” you lay starfished on the grass. “That was some good stuff. Alright!” You roll on your stomach and shakily push yourself onto your feet. “I’m totally ready for training!”
“You barely seem ready to run? Do you even know what you’re… Saiyan?” The blue man curls over, covering his mouth as he laughs.
You blink twice, unsure what he’s trying to say or why he’s laughing so hard. “Um… yes. That is what I’m sayin- ooooh, a pun!” You cross your arms and smile. “Yang does those too.”
King Kai stands up straight, a completely serious tone to him. “Not as funny as I, right?”
“Um… yeah, definitely not. You’re the funniest.”
“Hehe, I knew it,” he rubs his finger under his nose. “Well, now that you know who’s the greatest comedian in the cosmos, I suppose we can start the training. Hey, Bubbles!” He shouts over his shoulder.
The small monkey hops out of the house and stands next to his friend.
“Alright, Bubbles, start running! (Y/N),” he looks over at you. “You have to catch him.”
“Catch the monkey?” You clarify. “That’s it?”
“He’s getting away,” your teacher points behind you.
“H-Hey!” You turn and start running as fast as you can, which is slower than your average walking speed. “Get back here, you!”
One heavy step after another, you chase after the nimble animal. While you’re doing your best to just get a grasp on movement, Bubbles is taunting you from a distance away.
“You won’t be doing that when I catch you!” You get closer and closer, deciding to jump at the monkey.
Bubbles slips away faster than you can land, resulting in you falling flat on your face. “Ow, ow,” you push yourself onto your butt and rub your face. “Oh, it’s on now!”
You get back on your feet and start running after Bubbles, chasing him around the planet over and over, failing in every attempt to capture him. King Kai smiles at the sight. Many people give up at this stage. He’ll see if you fall under that category.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
One Week Later…
“It’s so weird when he’s not here,” Ruby says before drinking half of her milk in one go.
“There’s an energy that’s lost, yes,” Blake nods. “Plus… Yang…”
“She’s been trying the hardest,” Weiss nods, patting her mouth with a cloth. “I think I’ll join her.”
“Really? We just got here!” Ruby points out.
“True, but I enjoy this training as much as she does,” Weiss says with a calm demeanor. “It puts us ahead in terms of combat,” Weiss starts to walk away. “I’ll see you two out there.”
Ruby pouts in place, setting her milk down. “I never thought those two would get along so well.”
“A common goal can bring anyone together,” Blake says her piece. “It’s a good team bonding exercise too, leader,” Blake slyly looks over at the young girl.
“Uh, yeah! Good thing I planned out a schedule of us doing that training!”
“What about talking with Ozpin about an outside help,” Blake takes a quick drink.
“Outside…” Ruby lays her head on the table and taps her hair. “Outside help… outside help…” Ruby rolls her head back and forth. “Outside help…” Blake sets her drink and looks down at her leader, holding in the amusement of Ruby being stuck. “Outside… help… Out… side… help…”
“Ozpin,” Blake whispers.
“OH! A completely original idea!” Ruby throws her hand in the air. “Ask Ozpin about training with that old guy!”
“That’s why you’re the leader,” Blake discreetly shakes her head as she opens her book.
“Thank you, Blake! I have a purpose now!”
Ruby spirals away, leaving the Faunus to herself.
“Quiet at last…” Blake sighs to herself. She then looks around the room where dozens of tables host students, all talking. “Scratch that.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Weiss easily finds Yang thanks to the type of training the blonde has been undergoing lately. All of the girls can form a ball of Ki relatively easy now, but their control over how strong it is and how much they use is still a little off. They’re nowhere near flying or shooting a Kamehameha, but they have the basics down. It’s also scaring the students when Yang starts to practice. As Weiss gets closer, the sounds of explosions become louder and louder. Yang repeatedly fires one to three of her own weapon, then tries to throw Ki blasts to knock them out of the sky. Because of the varied power, this either causes a small fireworks display or knocks anyone in a fifteen-foot radius over.
“Everything going smoothly?” Weiss asks as she steps beside Yang.
The blonde is panting after all this work, but she still conjures up a smile for her teammate. “Yeah, I’m getting faster at making them… I just didn’t know it could be so tiring. It’s really nothing like Aura,” she stands up straight and stretches her back. “You here to practice too?”
“Indeed. I’ve been trying to mix my Glyphs with this Ki. I’m not quite successful yet,” Weiss admits. “But that’s what practice is for.”
“Exactly,” Yang stretches her arms to the side. “He mentioned fueling out bodies with Ki, so I want to try more of that.”
“Seems to be a flexible substance,” Weiss says as she forms a few balls of Ki in her hands. “And clearly powerful.”
“So, let's keep training,” Yang says before sitting down. She takes a deep breath and feels the Ki flow through her body.
On the other hand, Weiss creates three Glyphs, all different types, and attempts to incorporate Ki into those Glyphs. The two girls center themselves, focusing more than they ever have before. They each have their own plans with Ki. Weiss wants to increase her potency with Glyphs while Yang desires to mimic most of what you do. She knows you use Ki to protect yourself like Aura, and that’s what she wants to do. If she can protect herself with Ki, she’ll be able to use all of her Aura for her Semblance.
Unknown to them, the two girls spend over twenty minutes focusing and practicing their Ki control. Though neither accomplishes their goal in this time, it gives another teammate enough time to get her plans in motion. Ruby, Blake, and Ozpin approach the girls. They’re so deep in meditation that they don’t hear the three approach.
“Whoa, I’ve never seen Yang so focused,” Ruby says, leaning right in front of her sister’s face. “Cooooool. Hey, Yang,” Ruby pokes the blonde’s face. “Yaaaaaang.”
“I’m focusing, Ruby,” she says in an oddly calm voice.
“But I have something super awesome that only I, your leader, could think of.”
“Wasn’t it (Y/N)’s idea?” Blake adds.
“Shshsphshsp, no,” Ruby runs up to Blake, waving her finger. “My idea.”
“Of course,” Ozpin bows his head. “But I’m the one who has to sign off on it.”
Yang and Weiss open their eyes and turn around while standing up. “Professor Ozpin? Wait, is this about-“
“Indeed, Ms. Xiao Long. Your leader asked me about the… we’ll call it a transfer student program with the Turtle School.”
“Oh, that creepy old man,” Yang shivers.
“Roshi can be a handful,” Ozpin chuckles. “But if you’re looking into the art of Ki, there’s no better place to go. I will sign off on this idea if you’re all willing to go.”
Team RWBY looks between one another. Ruby herself has a giant smile, proud that she set all this in motion. After a moment… all four look at the Headmaster with smiles.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“Ohohoho, I’ll happily take on lovely students like these!” Roshi cheers, already “examining” his pupils.
Yang twitches a bit as Roshi spends an uncomfortable amount of time near her breasts. “Move… away…” She says through her teeth.
“Please, teach them well, Roshi,” Ozpin bows. “They’re remarkable students that are willing to learn. I’m sure they’ll do the Turtle School proud. Ladies,” he stands and looks at the team. “I’ll be bringing some light school work over every week. Glynda would be furious if you got off with none.”
“Aww,” Ruby slouches. “I thought we escaped.”
“Take care, girls,” Ozpin says before walking towards the back of the house.
The girls watch as Ozpin goes out of sight… and that’s it. He’s gone. They don’t even have time to think about it before Roshi is groping Yang’s best assets. She immediately punches him into the water, face completely red. “Get away, you creepy old man!”
“This is going to be interesting,” Tien chuckles, he and the others watching from the side. “Well, I’m happy to see new, young students here. We’ll teach you the best we can when our Master gets…”
“Distracted,” Krillin answers, half-heartedly chuckling.
“He better not get distracted often,” Yang says while cracking her knuckles.
“Try not to kill our new teacher, Yang,” Weiss shakes her head.
“Hey! He’s the one-“
“Alright!” Roshi walks out of the water, hands behind his back. “You want to learn from the Turtle School? Well, let's see what you got,” he ends with a toothy grin.
“He got really serious,” Ruby whispers.
“I don’t like it,” Blake shakes her head.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
An all too familiar scene is forced upon the girls once more. Massive turtle shells are strapped to their backs as they stand in the water, forced to channel their power. Even Ruby and Weiss manage to keep on their feet this time around. The water around them splashes as they swirl their Ki around them.
“Hm… you already have a loose concept of Ki control. With your previous training… I can work with this… oh yes,” Roshi’s eyes glance to each of the girl’s chests… except for Weiss. “Yes… I can work with this,” he says before breaking out into laughter.
“So… what else you got?” Yang grins. “I’m ready for more!”
“Well,” Roshi, clears his throat before speaking again. “I believe you all need different types of training. Tien,” he looks over at the man. “I want you to help those two,” he gestures towards Ruby and Weiss. “With their martial arts. They’re severely lacking in that area.”
“Of course,” Tien bows his head. “This will be an excellent learning experience.”
“Krillin, I’m going to pair you with Yang. Ozpin told me what she was planning, and I want you to help.”
“Of course.”
“Ozpin knew?” Yang whispers to herself.
“And Yamcha, I’d like you to assist Blake. After out morning and afternoon routines, you’ll be training with these three to target exactly what you want. I will help with the foundation, they will build your house,” Roshi ends with a nod.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Two Weeks Later…
“I’m gonna get you now, you little monkey!” You shout, right on the heels of Bubbles.
The monkey frantically runs as you get closer and closer. You’ve been chasing him around for what feels like forever, but now you can feel yourself getting closer and closer to victory. Subconsciously, your body has become vastly stronger over a fairly short period of time. It’s completely adapted to the gravity which allows you to use all your mobility to catch Bubbles. You chase him around the planet once, twice, three times, going left and right, climbing up and jumping off the tree, leaping over King Kai’s house, sliding across his car, nothing gets in the way as you chase that monkey.
Wait, I have an idea!
You stop running and go around the other way to cut off the slippery mammal. You and Bubbles meet at the other side, allowing you to jump at him. Bubbles immediately turns around to run, but you’re there, arms out to catch him. You hold him in the air and smile.
“Haha! You fell for my afterimage!” You say with a wide smile. “Hey, King Kai! I got the monkey!” You waddle your way to his house. “I did it! HAHA!”
King Kai smirks at the sight. “Well, well, I guess this kid is more than I thought. You chose well, Ozpin. Alright! We’ll have some dinner and move onto the next test!”
“Sound great to me!” You nod, setting Bubbles down.
Thankfully, King Kai has already pre-cooked most of the food. He sets it down on the table outside and heads back in. “That should get you started. I know how you Saiyans eat.”
You grab the utensils and start digging in, finishing one of the bowls in seconds then instantly swapping to the next.
“Hey, King Kai…” You set your food down and adopt a troubled air to you. “The Saiyans… I’m really one of them, right?”
“Indeed,” he nods. “Why do you ask?”
“Well,” you set the food down and lay down on the grass, staring into nothingness. “I’ve had a lot of time while chasing Bubbles around… and I started thinking more about this whole Saiyan thing… and how much it really does bother me.” The Kai remains silent, hands behind his back as he gives you all his attention. You take a deep breath and continue. “I always thought I was just a weird kid that was left by his parents in the forest and somehow managed to survive. I met Lucent and Crystal… everyone there, they helped me integrate into society… for the most part,” you chuckle, thinking back on the time you stood naked in front of Yang.
“I sometimes forget it, though… but without them… everyone in that village, and the people I’ve met since I wouldn’t be the person I am today. Now,” you lift off the grass and stare across the plain you’ve run on for weeks. “It’s like… I mean, people never liked me because of my Faunus nature. I never understood it and never let it get me down. Yet… now my true nature, my Saiyan nature, got… my family killed,” King Kai has yet to see any emotion like this from a Saiyan. You’re not quite crying, but these thoughts are rooted deeply within you.“It even killed one of my fellow classmates and put my friends in danger… though I didn’t know the one who died so… you know,” you shrug, meekly chuckling for just a moment. “I don’t know… I just… I hate this Saiyan side of me,” you shift your hands in front of you and slowly clench your fists. “It’s causing so much trouble that others are paying for. Is that what it means to be a Saiyan? To cause trouble for others?” You look over your shoulder at the Kai.
“Well, the Saiyan’s definitely aren’t a welcome sight for most of the galaxy,” he begins, taking a few steps toward you. “They bring destruction and death, always looking for someone to challenge their immense strength.”
You snicker. “To an extent… that does sound like me.”
“But I wouldn’t fret. Ozpin has told me much about you and what you’ve done. You’re a unique Saiyan, so don’t let their… unfortunate past bog you down. That has nothing to do with you. In fact, use it to your advantage. Saiyans have an inborn ability for fighting. It’s more natural to them than any race. Use what good they’ve given you to right the wrongs.”
“Yeah… I guess,” you grab the bowl and continue eating. “Thanks, King Kai.”
“No problem. You’re lucky I’m such a… great Kai,” he covers his mouth, laughing at the joke. “Hehe, I said Kai and not guy, hehe…he…”
You smile. “Yeah, that was a good one. So… what’s next? Can we start after eating?”
“Of course,” King Kai says before summoning a mallet in his hand.
“What’s that for?”
“You’ll see.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Yang dashes along the water and collides fists with Krillin, causing the water to erupt from beneath them. Now, instead of her regular attire, she and the other members of RWBY don the turtle hermit gi to represent their temporary school. The blonde immediately throws a flurry of punches at Krillin that makes the martial artist sweat. He blocks, dodges, and parries all the fists Yang throws out.
“Remember,” Krillin weaves under Yang’s next attack, grabbing hold of her ankle and soaring higher into the air. “Use your feet. You can fly now, maximize that!” He shouts before throwing the girl away from him.
Yang stabilizes herself and takes a deep breath. Even with all this training, she’s still not used to fighting in the air. She has been using Ki as a protective shield instead of Aura, but she hasn’t gotten that completely down yet. However, she still refrains from using Aura to both get in the habit of not using it and increasing the girl’s natural durability.
“Right, right,” Yang nods. “Let's keep going!”
At the same time, Yamcha and Blake are facing similar training. Blake is doing her best to utilize Ki to increase her speed and power, attempting to attack from all angles with the help of her Semblance. Even Yamcha, with all his experience, is sweating at the onslaught from his student. Especially because she’s now using her weapons instead of just fists and foot. Still, Yamcha is able to hold is own and fight off the eager Faunus.
Meanwhile, Tien is standing at the edge of the sand, watching Weiss and Ruby do their own training. Ruby is using her Semblance, augmented by Ki, to speed around as fast as she can. Sometimes she swirls around the island, other times it’s a straight back and forth. Weiss, on the other hand, is focusing on the Glyphs she’s summoned around her. Each has its initial properties enhanced by Ki, while one is a pure combination of Aura and Ki.
Roshi saunters his way around the island, watching every girl’s training to make sure they’re on the right path. In truth, he’s impressed. Their progress has been far more than he predicted, but that means they’ll only be stronger for what’s to come. Still, if what Ozpin said was true, he can only hope your training is even greater.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Three Weeks Later…
“You damn cricket, get back here!” You shout, sluggishly swinging the hammer.
A blue ball circles around the swing and releases a shockwave that knocks you on your butt. You drop the hammer and rub your stomach. “Damnit, I’m so close! You better laugh while you can, grasshopper!” You shout, getting back on your feet and snagging the hammer. “I’ll ruin that little skull of yours!”
King Kai watches as you slam the hammer down on his land time and time again, knocking over trees and putting holes in his walls. This process has gone on for the last three weeks with no success on your end. All you have to do is hit Gregory, a small grasshopper that’s friends with King Kai, and your training can continue.
“Haha, you’re still nothing!” Gregory taunts with his high pitched voice. “Come on, now!”
You twirl the hammer and sprint forward. “Oh, you won’t see me coming you little pest!”
You slide across from Gregory and barely miss the swing. You push off your heel and follow in hot pursuit, not giving Gregory even a moment’s chance. He bounces through the air, trying his best to keep away from your heavy swings. Even with the constant failures, you keep swinging and running after the small creature. Over and over, you swing and swing. Over and over, he dodges… but your swings get closer each time.
“I’m gonna get you! I’m getting closer! You hear me, Gregory!”
“Ha, you’ll never get me!” Gregory cheers as he circles around the Kai’s house… and right into your hammer. You stand with a goofy smile, staring at the cricket that had fallen on the ground after running into your hammer.
“Hehe, I was just playing.”
“What? But, but, but… aaaah, you got me,” Gregory sighs.
King Kai smirks at the sight. Finally, someone who’s passed all his trials. Now… now the training really begins.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Four Months Later…
Team RWBY relaxes on the beach, staring out at the brilliant sun casting its light on the water. Their training is done for the day and they’re appreciating the rest while Krillin and Yamcha prepare dinner. As the four bicker, Master Roshi exits his house and spots the four girls. He slowly makes his way behind them, looking up at the setting sun.
“You four have improved immensely over these months,” he starts, getting all the girls to look behind them. “It’s quite impressive.”
“I know, right!” Ruby cheers. “Now I get to kick butt with my fists like, hya! Hwoyi!” She throws her hands in different directions.
“You’re the worst one here at martial arts,” Weiss quickly deflates Ruby’s raft of confidence.
“Yeah, well, I like my scythe,” she pouts. “At least I’m improving that! Oh, you’re going to be so blown away, Yang!” She sways side to side in excitement.
“So will you,” Yang slams her fists together. “I’ve been training nonstop and gotten way stronger. I bet I could kick (Y/N)’s butt by now.”
“We all have some new tricks up our sleeves,” Blake curls wraps her arms around her legs. “But we can only assume he’s training just as hard as us.”
“Yeah, I bet he can blow up even more stuff!” Ruby throws her fist in the air.
“Perhaps, perhaps,” Roshi nods his head. “Your year at Beacon is coming to a close, as is my training. You’ve all grown… yes,” he looks down at the developing girl’s greatest assets. “Such ripe students-“
“Shut it, old man!” Yang’s eyes turn red as she glares at him. “Just because you trained us doesn’t mean I won’t beat you into a pulp.”
“I wonder what the Saiyans will feel like,” Weiss wonders aloud. “Now that we can sense Ki… I can’t even imagine…”
“Doesn’t matter,” Yang shakes her head. “All of us plus (Y/N), there’s no way they’ll win.”
“I hope so,” Ruby nods. “That one wanted to kill us all… if they’re stronger…”
“They won’t be, Rubes,” Yang places a hand on the smaller girl’s shoulder, giving her a warm smile. “I promise.”
“Dinner is ready,” Krillin shouts from the window.
“Well, let's go, ladies. You’ll be returning to Beacon at the end of the week,” Roshi states as he turns to his house.
The four girls get up and follow their master, all a tad sad to leave the place they’ve trained at for so long.
Yang looks up at the sky and smirks. “We’ll be waiting.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Two Months Later…
You stretch your legs from side to side after your final tests. Catching Gregory and Bubbles was no sweat, and utilizing your new ultimate move was fairly easy. You’ve spent months here, adapting to the gravity and training under a man you’d never have met otherwise, but it’s time for you to go.
“Ozpin said he’ll be here soon, so you have a little more time to kill. Here, I want to give you one last gift,” King Kai says before aiming his antennae at you. Your clothes instantly become brand new, getting rid of all the scuff and tears from training. “A brand new outfit for you, with my symbol on your back, hehe,” he chuckles. “It’s made of some strong stuff, so don’t worry about ruining it. It’ll take a lot.”
“Thanks, King Kai… for everything,” you bow your head. “I would have never been able to get this strong if not for you. I’ll definitely come back and train in the future.”
“If you defeat the Saiyans, that is.”
“Oh, don’t worry,” you stand up straight and slam your fist into your palm. “I’ll beat them, no doubt about it. All thanks to you.”
Without you even sensing it, Ozpin appears behind you with a smile. “Greetings King Kai, (Y/N).”
You turn around and wave at the Headmaster. “Heya! We’re going back now, right?”
“Someone’s eager,” the gray-haired man chuckles. “But yes, we’re returning to Beacon now.”
“Sweet,” you run to Ozpin’s side and spin around to see your master. “See ya, King Kai! I’ll be back soon!”
“Hopefully without a halo!” He shouts back before you both disappear. The Kai places his hands behind his back and sighs. “You’re placing a lot of faith in that boy…”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“So you actually just flew away?” Yang laughs.
“Yeah,” Weiss giggles at the thought, looking down at the coffee she was given. “I asked Klein to make an excuse and then I went out the window. His face was priceless.”
The other three girls laugh at the thought. “I guess people aren’t used to seeing others fly around. Even dad was pretty freaked out,” Yang looks over her shoulder, towards the kitchen.
“That’s because you grabbed me by the shorts and took off!” He shouts back.
The four girls are gathered in the Xiao Long household. They’ve been gathering here every few days in case the Saiyans come. Not that they can’t all fly to that location, but they enjoy each other’s company well enough. But, lucky for them, they’re all together at the perfect time. All at once, a sharp energy signature spikes through their minds. It’s larger than any they’ve felt before, yet the feeling they get is familiar.
“Is that… (Y/N)?” Blake asks with her eyes closed.
“I think so… but it’s so big… I can’t believe that’s him,” Ruby says in awe.
“We gotta go check,” Yang opens her eyes and heads for the door. “We’re going out for a bit, dad! We’ll be back!”
“Okay, be safe!” He waves from the kitchen as the four girls sprint out the front door and soar into the air.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You and Ozpin appear in the middle of Beacon’s grounds.
“How do you do that?” You ask while taking a few steps away.
“We all have our techniques,” Ozpin says with a coy smile. “You seem to be enjoying the fresh air.”
“Yeah, a lot different. It’s definitely a lot lighter here,” you say, hoping in place. “But, uh…” You stop jumping and examine your surroundings. “I’m not… really sensing anyone. Where’s the school?”
“What do you mean? The year is over.”
“WHAT?” You shout, voice echoing across the planet. “I missed it!”
“Unfortunately, yes,” Ozpin nods. “All your friends are going to be second years.”
“Ahhh,” you fall onto your back, staring up at the sky. “Damn… I don’t even get flak for training to save the world.”
“Unfortunately not.”
“That’s not fair,” you huff, rolling into a sitting position. “Oh well, at least… hey,” you spin around, still sitting, and gaze into the sky. “I recognize those signatures… wow, those four got a lot stronger!”
“Indeed they did,” Ozpin stares up at the sky. “They’ve trained hard.”
“I can tell,” you bounce off your butt and onto your feet. “I guess they can sense too… no way they’d be coming here if not. Unless you told them?” You look over your shoulder.
“I did not,” he blandly replies.
“Cool, so they trained with Master Roshi like I said. That’s super cool. No wonder they got so strong.”
As you finish that sentence, the four girls come into view. They all land in front of you in their regular outfits. You open your arms wide with a smile that’s even wider.
“Hey! You four got a lot stronger!”
“Of course that’s the first thing he says,” Weiss shakes her head.
You run forward and grab all four of them at once, squeezing them tightly. “It’s so great to see you all again! It’s been way too long.”
“He’s… definitely… stronger…” Ruby wheezes.
“Oh, sorry,” you let the four girls go and step back. “Guess I just got excited,” you rub the back of your head. “So what’ve you been up to lately? And man,” you look down at your stomach. “I’m hungry.”
“No surprise there,” Ozpin comments. “You know… the Saiyans are on their way. It’d be best to eat before battle.”
“That’s a great idea!” You throw your hand into the air.
“My dad is making dinner,” Yang places her hands on her hips. “I’m sure he’d make some extra for you.”
“Really? Okay!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You’re all gathered around the dinner table, Tai being at the head while you’re opposite to him. You have at least a dozen bowls down by this point while the girls are eating at a regular pace.
“You… you weren’t kidding,” Tai half-heartedly chuckles. “Good thing… I made more.”
“We wouldn’t have gotten any,” Blake chuckles.
“I can share,” you say while still eating.
“No, no, you eat,” Yang waves her arm at you. “So, where did you go to train? It had to be somewhere strange, cause we could only sense you at Beacon.”
You slurp up some of the soup and think on the answer.
The Otherworld… where people go when they die…
“Uh, you know, some weird place,” you shrug. “I learned a lot of cool stuff there, though. Got super duper strong,” you proclaim before chowing down on some of the potatoes.
“Huh,” Weiss squints at you. “You’re not a great liar.”
“I didn’t lie!” You reply the second you scoff down the potatoes. “It’s just a special training place. Maybe I’ll take you four there. Oh,” you shift your attention to Tai. “So you’re a Huntsman, right?”
“Yes, I teach at Signal most of the time, though.”
“Huh,” you return to your food, ending the conversation extremely abruptly. “This is really good, though,” you say before tearing at some meat. “OH! You guys graduated!”
“Yep! Official second years… when the second year starts,” Ruby replies with pride.
“We did work while training on the island and then attended Beacon for the last few months,” Blake elaborates before drinking some water.
Her eyes sharpen when she sees Zwei peek his head out behind the wall. He was sent out of the room to comply with Blake’s… feelings for him.
“So not fair,” you put down your plate. “I have to redo the first year,” you say with a sigh. “Ah well, I don’t remember anything anyway.”
“Of course you don-“ Weiss stops speaking as a shock goes through her brain.
Everyone feels the same, terrifying feeling. The pressure of the Saiyans can be felt by everyone who’s potent at sensing Ki. You put down your food and stand up, blankly staring ahead. Tai is the only one who’s confused in the room, looking between the five people who’s demeanor just changed.
“What… is happening?” He asks… everyone.
“They’re landing near Beacon… I have to go,” you say before running to the door.
“Wait, we’re coming with you!” Yang shouts, getting out of her chair.
“We’ve trained for this!” Ruby adds.
“We’ll see,” you say before leaving the building and flying off.
“Come on, RWBY! We’ll be back, dad!” She says as they all leave.
“Saiyans?” Tai tilts his head to the side, utterly confused.
“Woof!” Zwei chimes in, hopping onto the table and lapping up whatever food he can.
“You know, Zwei, I missed it when the girls didn’t know how to fly.”
“Woof!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You land at Beacon, followed by team RWBY and your Turtle School friends.
“Tien, Yamcha, Krillin, Chiaotzu… you all came?”
“Yeah, we all felt it… are we really fighting these guys?” Krillin says with a fake smile.
You can see that they’re all nervous. The power of these Saiyans are incredible compared to your allies… they’re stronger than you thought they’d be, that’s for sure.
“I’ll do all the heavy lifting, don’t worry,” you reply with a confident smile. “
“I can tell… your power is astounding,” Tien says with genuine respect. “What kind of training did you do?”
“The… otherworldly kind,” you chuckle, rubbing the back of your head.
“So what’s the plan?” Yang asks, getting everyone’s attention. “Shouldn’t we go to them?”
“No need,” you shake your head. “They’re here for me. I doubt they’d bother toying with others. Set my power like this for a reason after all,” you reply with a wink and a smile.
“So… have they landed yet?” Ruby asks, her eyes closed as she’s sensing.
“Yeah…” you look towards the sun, eyes sharp and smirk wide “And they’re already here…”
In the sky, shadowed by the glare of the star, five figures gaze down upon you all with toothy grins. Different shapes, different sizes, but all incredibly powerful. The battle for Remnant… starts now.
Finally, we got this chapter out! It’s… a weird one, admittedly. It’s shorter than most of my chapters but I just didn’t have much to write about. Sure, I could have sent RWBY on some silly mission but that would just take up time and I don’t want to bother writing it. I put everything I needed to, I feel. Who knows, maybe you feel differently. Either way, I’m excited about the next chapter. I can finally do my wonderous fight scene I’ve been waiting so long to do… oh yeah, then there’s fluff and character stuff afterward. I’ll make sure to have that, don’t worry. I got it all planned out, yadda yadda. Anyway, I’ll see you next time… after I finish Bearer of the Curse. So November!
Will Kail be able to fend off the Saiyan invasion? Who are these five Saiyans? Find out next time!
Want to keep up with me? Know what chapter’s coming out next and the progress of them? Follow me on Twitter! Twitter . com (slash) Chinsangan
Questions? Comments? Concerns? Advice? Send me a message!
A special thank you to Patreon supporters: Manuel Garcia, James Tubbs, MazMan, MTX and Sassylemons
Extra special thanks to Ride The Lightning and Nicholas X Wright!
And finally, thank you to the Beta Reader: thenameisntimportant
Chapter 11: The Saiyans Arrive! An Unparalleled Battle Commences!
Chapter Text
Chapter 11: The Saiyans Arrive! An Unparalleled Battle Commences!
You step forward with a smile on your face. Finally, after all this waiting, all this training, you get to show these Saiyans what you’re made of. On top of that, you may learn more about your species’ communication. You were told they were fighters, so maybe that’s how they end up talking. Either way, your hands are jittering, your heart is pounding. You’re more excited than ever before.
The five figures in the air descend onto Beacon’s grounds, landing in front of all of you. In the middle, at the front, is the shortest one with the most menacing stare. His hair spikes up entirely with none of it swaying in any other directions. However, his hairline seems to have suffered, as his widow's peak is the greatest thing you’ve seen before. He’s wearing a blue jumpsuit with white gloves and boots, along with brown and white armour. He and the rest of them have a scouter on their left ear.
To his right is Kakarot, and to the left is someone who looks almost exactly like Kakarot. His hair is a tad messier and skin is a bit gray. His amour has no jumpsuit underneath but still mirrors the others, being a combination of dark blue with small hints of white. He’s about the same height as Kakarot too. Beside that Saiyan is a giant bald behemoth with a thin moustache. He only wears armour as well, having only his blue and brown armour to cover him. Last stands a Saiyan beside Kakarot. He’s the second tallest of the bunch which only makes his hair all the more unbelievable. It falls far down his back to his legs. He also has a widow's peak like the small one. His armour mirror’s the behemoth, though his brown is a shade darker.
And there are the five Saiyans, all with smiles on their faces as they stare at you.
“So, you didn’t run away,” the small one chuckles. “A foolish choice.”
“Come on, Vegeta, let's just blow up the planet and get it over with!” The behemoth pleads.
“There’s no fun in that, Nappa,” the Kakarot lookalike comments. “You know how excited Kakarot was to have his little rematch,” he ends with a condescending smirk.
“I’ll beat you half to death next, Turles,” Kakarot snaps back.
“Radtiz, control them,” Vegeta commands.
“Both of you, quiet!” The long-haired one speaks. “We’re here to fight… and I need to stretch my legs.”
“So these are the Saiyans…” Ruby shivers. “Their power is… unbelievable.”
“Don’t worry about it,” you look back and smile at the girls. “I’ll handle all of them.”
“You handle us?” Nappa takes a step forward. “Then why’d you bring all these small fries?” He clicks his scouter. “Look at them… they’re stronger than you were, Kakarot.”
“Hm… thirteen hundred at their highest…” Vegeta looks at you, waits a moment, then laughs. “Barely two thousand. How pathetic. Kakarot, you can deal with him. It seems we came to this planet for nothing.”
“Wait!” You hold your hand up. “We’re not fighting here. Let's go somewhere else.”
“Why would we-“
“Very well,” Vegeta cuts off Raditz. “You can choose your grave.”
“Thanks!” You give him a wide smile. “Now, you guys stay here. I’ll be back soon,” you say to all your friends behind you.
“But they’re so strong!” Tien argues.
“So am I.” You turn back to the Saiyans. “Follow me,” you say before lifting yourself into the air and taking off.
The five Saiyans follow suit, soaring away from Beacon and towards the ocean. You already thought of a place to take them. No matter what, people will be in danger. However, there are some uninhabited islands around Remnant that would be perfect for your battle. To the west of Vale is a large island that has nothing but wandering Grimm. As they’d be no problem for you and your five Saiyan enemies, you feel like that’d be the best place to battle.
They’re keeping pace with me no problem. I guess that means they’ve got plenty in reserve they haven’t shown yet. Good thing I’ve got some tricks up my sleeve. I’ll have to watch out for that small guy, Vegeta. If he was barking orders that has to mean he’s the strongest. I’ll have to pace myself against these guys.
You reach the shores of the island in no time, flying over the plethora of shipwrecks and bones scattered all over. You ignore it and fly past some of the trees and land in one of the clearings. Most of the trees have been knocked over and cleared out thanks to the Grimm, making your battlefield a bit diverse. A shoreline not far away, a small forest to the north, and your open field which you’re currently in.
From a distance, Cinder watches as you all approach the island. “Hm, he was right. They came here at exactly this time. For all his knowledge, one would think he could find…” Cinder sighs. “It’s irrelevant. I was told to watch… and that’s what I’ll do.”
You all land in the clearing, opposite of one another.
“Ugh, it smells,” Nappa waves his hand in front of his face.
“No worse than you,” Turles ends with a smirk.
“What was that?”
The Saiyan only responds with a snicker. “You disagree?”
“I’ll wipe that smirk off your face!”
You stretch your legs from side to side while donning a confused expression. Here you thought it was a battle between you and them, but they seem to be ready to brawl with each other. “So... are we fighting one at a time or all at once? Maybe a free-for-all?”
“How amusing,” Raditz cracks his knuckles as he walks forward. “I’ll fight first.”
“One at a time, gotcha,” you stand up straight then immediately get into your fighting stance. “Let’s go, Raditz!”
“Try to give us a good show,” Vegeta commands. He crosses his arms and looks over at a nearby tree. “Nappa, grab that. We’ll need seats.”
“Got it, Vegeta.”
Nappa marches over to one of the larger trees and gives it a quick chop. It topples over cleanly for the large man to grab. He returns to his allies and places the tree down. “Here we are.”
They all take a seat and observe you both. “Try not to get hurt,” Kakarot shouts.
“I’m not as weak as you-“
In a flash, you appear in front of Raditz, you body shifted to the right as you bury that fist into his stomach. Raditz’s eyes go white as he coughs up saliva. You spin around and slam your heel into his cheek, sending the Saiyan flying across the ground until he eventually slides to a halt. The man shakes without any attempt to stand. You assume a relaxed stance and look over at the remaining Saiyans.
“I’m not what I was before.”
“Raditz has a power level of twenty-five hundred,” Turles whispers. “I thought you said Kail was only two thousand.”
“It appears he can hide his true power,” Vegeta says with a soft layer of annoyance. “I suppose these scouters are useless,” he grabs the scouter and drops it at his feet. “Congratulations, Kail, you’ve gained a small victory.”
“Kail… I don’t think I can get used to that. Think you could just call me (Y/N)?”
“Ohh,” Raditz slowly gets on his feet, holding his stomach in pain. “Bastard… think you can… just brush me aside?”
“Remember this before talking about me again!” Kakarot laughs.
“Shut it… Kakarot…”
“Stand aside, Raditz,” you roll your neck. “You can’t beat me.”
“You…” Raditz grinds his teeth.
“Low-class scum, it doesn’t matter who’s stronger. You’re all weak!” Nappa laughs.
“Do you want to go next then, big guy?” You turn your head to Nappa and smile. “Cause you can’t beat me either.”
“What did you say?”
“Quiet, vermin,” Raditz spits out some saliva. “I’m not finished.”
“Oh, cool,” you shift your body to focus on him once more. “Let’s keep going.”
Raditz screams as he dashes towards you, pulling back his fist to prepare a punch. You smile the entire time he approaches. Sliding out of the way of his punch, you quickly take another step back to dodge his follow up attack.
“I don’t get it, Vegeta,” Kakarot whispers, watching Raditz fruitlessly attack. “He wasn’t even a thousand and now…”
“He’s a Saiyan too, however pathetic. If your pitiful power can climb so high then why not his?”
Kakarot shifts in place, unhappy with that response. It’s true, his power has exceeded even his brother’s at this point. But yours… it shouldn’t be like this. Did you know how to exploit your Saiyan genes like he did?
“Stand still!” Raditz yells, his voice barely making it’s way through the flurry of punches.
“I don’t think that’s how it works,” you wink before ducking under his punch, flipping up and over the man, then jumping back to evade his kick. You land in front of him and thrust your fist into his chest. The Saiyan glides across the ground before breaking through a tree.
“You’re not quite fast enough, I’m afraid. Plus your punches aren’t that precise. It’s like you’re just throwing out attacks,” you cross your arms.
“Look at that, even Kail sees how weak Raditz is,” Nappa laughs.
“I’ll kill you myself!” Raditz barks as he gets to his feet once more.
“I’d like to see you try, trash!”
“Should I sit on the sidelines now?” You cock your head to the side.
“The fight’s decided,” Vegeta declares. “Raditz… move.”
“I…” Raditz looks away and growls, frustration taking over.
“Let me go,” Kakarot stands up. “I want payback,” he walks forward and cracks his knuckles, smiling deviously at you.
“Alright, that’ll be fun,” you nod, sliding your foot back. “Come on, Kakarot! I wanna see how much stronger you got!”
Kakarot stands opposite to you and prepares for battle. “Raditz, stand back. Wouldn’t want my big brother to get hurt.”
“Tsk,” Raditz raises his hand and releases a basic blast at Kakarot. The younger Saiyan doesn’t realize it, thus it’s a direct shot in the back.
“Ah,” Kakarot stumbles forward, staring at the ground for a few moments while his face shakes. “Raditz… what the hell was that?” He stands up and turns around.
The other Saiyans laugh at him. “It’s not his fault you didn’t dodge it, Kakarot,” Vegeta says before he laughs some more.
“Huh…” You retract to a normal stance and tilt your head. “Weird. So are we fighting?”
“Yes,” Kakarot rubs his back. “As long as we have no other interruptions.”
“Sweet, lets go!”
You and Kakarot disappear and clash in the air, sending a small shockwave that shakes the trees and blows away the loose leaves. Your forearms shake under the pressure of your strength. You retain your smile beyond the small layer of strain. “Yeah, you’re definitely a lot stronger.”
“I could say the same! You’re still nothing!”
“We’ll see.”
You push off each other and clash over and over and over. All across the sky, moving at speeds that only the Saiyans can keep up with. You fly at Kakarot again and, instead of colliding fists, you tilt your head to dodge the fist and crush him with a knee to the stomach. He grinds his teeth and retaliates by pushing off your chest and throwing his fist at you. You dodge under it and punish him with two blows to the stomach, then flip forward and kick him towards the ground. Before he actually lands, you circle around and kick him towards the shipyard. Kakarot manages to stop himself right before crashing into one of the ships.
“Damnit, I thought I had a chance but… he’s just toying with me.”
You speed forward and throw a punch, which Kakarot blocks with his forearm. He returns the favour, but you cushion the blow with your palm. With all hands tied, Kakarot tries to kick you instead. You redirect his fist kick, then second, then third. You ascend into the air whilst doing this, moving away from all the wreckage and waste.
You suddenly sense a surge in Kakarot’s power. You release his hand and push off, getting away just before he releases a small explosion. He bursts through the dust, throwing a punch that you side step, and then you vanish as he kicks. Kakarot looks all around, unable to pinpoint you.
“What the-“ He soon feels a massive pressure from behind him. He turns around to meet an all too familiar blue glow.
“HA!” You throw your hands forward and release a wave at point blank. This pushes Kakarot all the way into the forest, swiftly followed by a large explosion. You fly back to the other Saiyans and land without saying a word.
“He’s okay,” you look over at the others. “I didn’t want to kill him just yet.”
Kakarot lifts off the ground, his armour cracked and pants torn. “Bastard… I’ll… end you…”
The man bursts forward, fist ready to connect until…
“Enough!” Vegeta shouts.
Kakarot stops midair, visibly confused. “What? Vegeta, why-“
“You’re not going to win, Kakarot.” Vegeta shifts his gaze to you. “Kail… how about a little challenge?”
“Sure, sounds fun!” You nod.
“All of you, go.”
“Hehehe,” Nappa cracks his knuckles as he stands up. “It’s been a while since we fought together. I’ll happily grind this fool to dust. Just try not to get in my way!” Nappa commands.
“Considering how big you are, I’d say that’s asking a bit much,” Turles snickers, as he casually pushes off the tree.
“Only a low-class warrior would struggle to fight alongside a fellow Saiyan.”
“I don’t even like the idea of fighting one opponent together,” Kakarot comment as he rests his feet on the ground. “It’s pathetic.”
“Would you prefer I kill you now?” Vegeta replies.
“I… no,” Kakarot shivers. “I’ll do it.”
Without waiting for his allies, Raditz dashes towards you, acting as the tip of the Saiyan spear. You spin around Raditz’s punch and shove your left elbow into his back, burying it in a small pool of hair. You throw that same hand forward to catch Kakarot’s incoming punch and flick your right arm out to counter Turles’ kick. Raditz digs his fingers into the grass and spins around to sweep your leg. You hop into the air and kick the lookalikes away, then spin around and throw your hand forward, releasing a powerful at Raditz that simultaneously pushes you away. You flip through the air and land a good distance away from the four, but closer to Nappa. The brute rushes at you with a booming shout. He throws punches and kicks which you duck, dodge, bob and weave through. No matter how fast the Saiyan moves or how much he plans his strikes. The frustration of missing only makes him sloppier and easier for you to dodge. You flip over him, duck under his swipe and… disappear.
Nappa suddenly feels a pair of boots land on his head, balancing perfectly. “You’re too slow, big guy.”
“Don’t get cocky, chump!” He claps his hands over his head, meaning you’re no longer there.
Vegeta watches as you appear a few feet away. He squints a bit as he thinks. To be above Nappa, a warrior with a power level over five thousand, is a feat that almost seems impossible. You’ve multiplied your power immensely in such a short time. Even Kakarot only increased his power to the two thousand range after your battle. Vegeta already knows that his fellow Saiyans will not defeat you.
He knows that they have to know. At least Turles and Kakarot have figured it out. They’re all attacking you at once and you’re almost effortlessly dodging, blocking, and parrying the attacks from all angles. Raditz and Nappa are too dense to figure out that they’re outclassed. They’ll just get angry and keep trying to fight while their abilities deteriorate.
You push back Nappa and Kakarot before flying back towards the shore. The four chase after you, all coming in from different angles. You glide across the sand, eyes darting from person to person. You break right through one of the ships and come out the other end. Nappa breaks through and throws a large, electrical Ki blast. You charge up your arm and slap it towards Raditz. You catch Nappa’s following punch and spin around to build up momentum and throw him down into the water. Raditz, who managed to dodge the blast, charges up a swirl of purple Ki in his hand and throws it at you. At the same time, Turles and Kakarot are waiting behind you, seeing what kind of move you’ll make.
You catch Raditz’s blast and throw it up in the air. Raditz swoops in and attempts to land another into his stomach. As he extends his fist your body seems to disappear.
“What?”
You appear behind him and slam your heel into the back of his head. You immediately swoop around in front of him and place your hands on his chest. Without a word, you release a short wave of Ki that blows the man across the shore and onto the plains. You turn around and block Kakarot’s kick and Turles’ punch, having to move back as the two Saiyans launch continuous strikes in unison. Even still, you manage to keep their attacks from landing. You push off from Turles’ punch and land on the water, using your Ki to prevent you from falling in.
However, Nappa bursts out from behind you and attempts to crush you with a hammerfist. Having already sensed your opponent’s movements, you easily slide across the water to dodge, only being hit by small droplets of water as a result of Nappa’s attack.
“You think you’re quick, you low-class trash!”
“You have yet to hit me, so yeah,” your voice layered in confidence.
“Just you wait! When I get my hands on you-“
“Keyword is when.”
Turles uses this moment to form a small, yellow donut of Ki in his hands. He throws them above his head then at you, releasing the attack. It expands as soon as it’s course is plotted. You turn around to brace yourself.
It’s fast!
You throw your hands out and layer your arms with extra Ki. You catch the attack, being pushed back just a little bit. You hold it back, shaking a bit at the minor strain.
“Nappa, Raditz!” Kakarot shouts, moving to your right.
“Don’t order me around, Kakarot!” Nappa replies, though still moving into position.
He opens his mouth and releases a massive yellow beam, similar to your Kamehameha. Raditz holds his arms out, surging them with purple balls before throwing them forward and sending two more waves at you. Kakarot slams his palms together before unleashing his most powerful attack, a dark red beam that’s barely able to maintain a standard form – acting more like a cone than a beam.
“Tsk,” you grind your teeth and release even more of your Ki.
You throw Turles’ blast upwards as you spin around to face Kakarot’s. You put your hands in front of you to form a Kamehameha then aim either hand at Nappa and Raditz’s attacks. You then lift your feet up and form a second Kamehameha between your heels and counter Kakarot’s. The six attacks all collide, shaking the earth for miles. The water below you scrambles away from the immense pressure of your struggle. You sneer for a moment before releasing the majority of your power. The attacks all cancel out, exploding and forming a cloud that shrouds your position.
“Did we get him?” Raditz asks.
“No,” Turles shakes his head.
The dust clears and you’re standing in the middle. “Phew,” you wipe some sweat off your brow. “You guys are seriously tough! I might actually have some trouble against you all.”
“Damnit! How?” Nappa crushes his fist. “You’re scum… I’m an elite warrior! The best of the best!” You and the others feel Nappa’s power rise. His yellow Ki electrifies around him. “I won’t stand it! You’re putty in my hands!”
Nappa rushes towards you with greater speed than before. You block his attack, still being pushed back by his enormous strength.
Looks like his speed has caught up with his strength.
Nappa proceeds to throw his punches in a far more coordinated manner than the others every did. You weave through the punches, noticing that some of them are actually grazing your cheek and brushing against your clothes. You duck under a punch them block a hook, push back a fist them vault over his leg, landing beside him. Nappa turns his hulking body and throws a fist that may have missed, but the pressure of it soars through the air for miles. He immediately turns around and throws another punch, blocked by both your forearms.
“Interesting,” Vegeta notes. “Nappa’s power has spiked to six thousand five hundred, yet Kail seems to be confident. He seemed to barely be above Kakarot when they fought, yet now he fought all four and even Nappa with this new power.” Vegeta rests his chin on his fingers. “Nappa! Hit him with everything at once!”
Nappa chuckles at that order as he wipes his mouth. “Alright… You’ll face the full might of a Saiyan Elite!”
“Alright,” you shift your body, placing your arms at your sides and readying yourself.
“I may have used this before… but this is everything!” Nappa opens his mouth and releases a blinding blast that puts everything else to shame. You raise your power to its max the second it’s about to hit you. For a split second there’s a red flash before the blast impacts and smoke surrounds it all.
“Hm...” Vegeta looks at the ground, going back into through.
The Saiyan brute chuckles as he stands up straight once more. “You shouldn’t have challenged an…”
“Jeez,” you rub your stomach. “That was actually really tough. I had to amp it up more than normal.
“Enough!” Vegeta shouts, hovering in the air with his arms crossed. All the Saiyans shift their focus to him. Oddly enough, he has his scouter on once more. “Kail… show me your power. Your full power.”
You raise your bow, thinking for a moment. “Oh, you saw that, didn’t you?” You smirk. “Alright, I won’t hold back anymore!”
You clench your fists and widen your stance. Your muscles expand as you let your voice loose, slowly growing louder like a snowball rolling down a mountain. It gets louder and louder as your power skyrockets. The water around you ripples, pushing farther and farther away because of the pressure you’re releasing.
“Seven thousand… eight thousand…” Turles remarks.
“There’s no way! The scouters must be broken!” Raditz attempt to rationalize.
Vegeta remains silent as the scouter counts to nine thousand… and finally you reach your peak, releasing all your power to hit ten thousand.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“I don’t like this waiting,” Yang shouts, pacing back and forth. “I can feel them fighting… we should be there!”
“We don’t know how strong-“ Everyone feels a sudden shock of power rising. “Is that… (Y/N)?” Tien closes his eyes to focus.
“Such power… yet purity. It has to be him,” Krillin says with excitement.
“That power… is it even possible?” Yang shakes her head.
“I think I’m shaking,” Ruby looks down at her hands as they shiver. “I… I don’t even know,” she ends with a nervous chuckle.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“It seems his training with King Kai has paid off,” Ozpin says, staring off from the Lookout.
Piccolo doesn’t respond, instead, he keeps his focus on the battle.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You roll your shoulder and stare up at Vegeta. “There you go… my full power.”
The other Saiyans are somewhat hesitant to attack again. The height of their power is six thousand, being Nappa. The others between four and two thousand. None of that compares to your ten thousand. This makes Vegeta think – thanks to Saiyan biology, if the others continue fighting then they will get stronger, but the gap is wide enough for you to finish them off quickly if you realize. It would be amusing to watch them all fall one by one, consumed by their pride to such a point that they’re blind to the fact that victory is impossible, but there’s nothing to be gained other than a few minutes of amusement. Still, ten thousand isn’t what the scouter showed before. It was above that…
“How pathetic… I have to dirty my hands because of your incompetence,” he huffs. “Kail, you will have the honour of fighting me, Vegeta, the Prince of all Saiyans!”
“Prince?” You cross your arms and tilt your head. “I didn’t know the Saiyans were like that. Then again, I still don’t know too much about Saiyans.”
“Vegeta, we can handle this waste of space!” Nappa refutes.
“No, Nappa, you cannot,” Vegeta quickly shakes his head. “If any of you interfere with this fight… then I’ll kill you myself.”
“Well, you’re clearly the strongest. Alright then, Vegeta! Let’s do this!”
You fly up into the air to match Vegeta. The other Saiyans move to one of the ships, sitting along the side.
“I can’t believe Vegeta is sullying himself with such filth,” Nappa crosses his arms as he sits.
“It’s been some time since we last saw Vegeta fight. If Kail’s power level is ten thousand then he might have some fun.”
“He won’t win,” Kakarot states. “Vegeta is far above ten thousand… what is-“
“We’ve never seen,” Turles calmly replies. “And we still won’t.”
Vegeta lands on the bridge of a wrecked freighter while you set your feet on the sand. Vegeta shifts into his own stance, smiling as he looks down on you. “You should feel honoured… to fight someone of my standing.”
“Maybe… depends on how tough you are,” you move to your own fighting stance. “I’ve trained really hard for this. I won’t go down just because you’re a prince.”
“Of course not. You’ll die because you’re nothing before my power.”
“We’ll see…”
There’s a moment of pure silence. It’s like time itself has stopped. You and Vegeta keep your eyes locked. The only sound is your own heartbeats. The spectators, be them the Saiyans, Cinder, or the ones from far away like Ozpin or RWBY, they all hold their breath until one of you moves. The pressure from his stare is enough to make you falter for just a moment. That one instant that your leg falters you blast off your foot and rush the Prince of Saiyans. His smile widens as you close in, inch by inch. You start with a spinning kick, which the Prince side steps with ease. You use your other leg to push off the ship and get a little bit of distance. After moving a foot, you dash forward and throw a few warmup punches at Vegeta. He flies back, redirecting and blocking every single punch you throw.
“I hope this isn’t all you have, Kail,” Vegeta snickers.
“Course not. This is just our warmup,” you answer, attempting to sweep his feet, which he just pulls his legs in and springs them toward you, flipping you through the air a few times. You stop yourself and burst forward, throwing a hook that phases through him. You blink in confusion, quickly realizing that he’s not using the afterimage technique. He’s just that fast. You take a deep breath and try to sense out where he was. The instant you do, you duck to avoid his kick then turn around and attempt to uppercut him. He catches your fist and pushes it down whilst also slamming his knee into your chin. He quickly follows up with two punches to your cheeks then hammerfists you down to the sand.
You curl up and flip around to land on your feet. Vegeta remains in the air and crosses his arms, smugly smiling. You roll your arm and smile back. “You really are something else, Vegeta. It’s a good thing I came prepared.”
“No amount of preparation will save you,” he laughs. “You’re low-class scum, sent to this planet because you were weak. I am royalty! An elite warrior of the Saiyan race!”
“Low class, huh?” You smirk. “Then why am I stronger than the others? Why am I stronger than you?”
Vegeta laughs. “You’re delusional, Kail. Your power is finite. It’s nowhere close to mine…”
You close your eyes and focus your Ki. There’s a sudden surge that all their scouters pick up.
“Twenty thousand?” Nappa shouts. “That’s impossible!”
“Kaioken!” Your body changes to a deep red, colouring your skin, clothes, and Ki with that dark colour.
You dash at Vegeta, moving twice as fast than before. This sudden burst catches the Prince off guard, allowing you to land a powerful hook that sends the Saiyan spiraling towards the forest.
“Kaioken?” Cinder gracefully shifts her hand to her chin. “So that’s what it looks like.”
You burst around to Vegeta’s back and spring your foot right into the back of his head, redirecting him even higher. Your body returns to normal for just a moment before flaring back up again. You fly right towards him and go for another kick, but this time he manages to recover and fly to the right. You stop midair and smirk at him, sure that this sudden development has to have messed with him.
Vegeta sneers, wiping off the scuff you’ve given him. “You test my patience, Kail.”
“(Y/N).”
“To land such a blow…” Vegeta clenches his fist. “You really want to die.”
“Not really.”
“Very well… I’ll show you the power of Vegeta, the Prince of all Saiyans!” He declares with a scream before tightening his body and powering up. Between his grunts and screams, you can hear a short laughter out of pride. The sky, one clear and bright, is clouded in the darkest clouds you’ve ever seen.
“Vegeta…” Turles speaks aloud. “You’ve never released this much power.”
Nappa snickers. “Of course he’s beyond it! Twenty thousand is child’s play for him!”
Remnant itself starts to shake under the pressure of Vegeta’s power. The people of all Kingdoms run through the streets, looking for somewhere to take cover. There are a select few who don’t panic.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“What kind of power,” Tien holds himself steady. “That’s… one of the Saiyans?”
Yang looks out towards where you flew. This power is beyond what you’ve shown, even with that temporary burst of power. She wants to fly in and do something… but you told them you’d handle it. There has to be something you can do against this.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“What’s going on, Gero?” General Ironwood stumbles into the lab, holding onto the wall for support.
“Our scanners are showing that one of those invaders are… well…”
“They’re causing it, somehow,” Dr. Briefs answers. “Likely with the power (Y/N) showed.”
“The entire planet is shaking, General,” Dr. Gero informs.
“That’s… not possible. Doctor, did you-“
“Yes, General,” Gero inwardly smiles. “I’ve collected a significant amount of data, and it seems there’s even more to obtain.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You barely manage to keep yourself in place against the unyielding wave of Vegeta’s power.
“i-Incredible… he’s even stronger than my Kaioken!”
“Twenty-two… twenty-three…”
“HYAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAA!” Vegeta throws his arms out and releases one final scream, gathering all his power and bringing it to the forefront.
The clouds gathered are forced away, the planet shakes one last time before finally calming. You hold your place, arms covering your face. “Vegeta…”
“Twenty-six thousand,” Raditz reads, his voice somewhat quivering. “We were… so far behind,” he clenches his fist. “Damnit!”
“Now, Kail, I’ll bury you!”
Your eyes widen as you barely follow Vegeta’s movements. He slams his forehead against yours then drives both knees into your stomach. The intensity of that blow forces saliva from your mouth. He puts his hands on your chest and releases a massive wave of yellow Ki into your chest. You flip back and fall to the forest below. Your body is steaming from the attack, clothes completely destroyed from the ribs up. You shake your head and curl into a ball, flipping a few times before flaring with red and rushing Vegeta. He catches your punch and returns the favour with a hook to the right. You quickly get your bearings and continue to fight, missing every attack while being unable to defend yourself.
“It’s over,” Kakarot comments. “He’s unable to fight back any more.”
“It’s not good to dismiss him just yet,” Turles responds.
“What? Are you on his side or something?” Raditz questions.
“Of course not,” Turles shakes his head. “But he’s a Saiyan. Look at him. His power is already steadily rising in response.”
The other three check their scouters and recognize that your power has increased by a few hundred.
“Tsk, it won’t be enough,” Nappa barks. “He’ll be crushed under Vegeta’s boot.”
“Mm…” Turles keeps his arms crossed.
“What are you thinking, Turles?” Kakarot whispers.
“He’s… smiling.”
You and Vegeta break off for a moment. You’re panting… but smiling. You throw off the rest of your torso clothing and stretch. “You’re something else, Vegeta. But that doesn’t mean you’ve got me beat.”
Vegeta laughs. “Is that so?”
“Never go beyond the times two power. Your body isn’t ready for it.”
Sorry, King Kai. I don’t really have a choice.
You take a deep breath and focus your Ki. Similar to Vegeta’s, though more controlled, a wave of pressure releases from your body. Even Vegeta can barely hold himself steady at this power. “Kaioken… times three!” Your body bulks up beyond what it used to be.
“What?“
You dash forward and bury your fist into Vegeta’s stomach, almost going right through. Vegeta’s body shakes at the impact, barely able to contain that pain. You pull your arm back and uppercut your opponent. Vegeta tries to kick you but you lift yourself up and over it, then push yourself off Vegeta’s leg to the right. The Prince gathers Ki in his hand and blasts it at you, but the second it’s about to hit, you disappear and immediately slam your heel into Vegeta’s cheek. He’s sent straight into the forest, leaving a massive trail of dirt through the forest.
Your body returns to normal, making you wince a bit. “Okay… I can handle three… I don’t think I need to go beyond that… ah,” you feel a sharp pain through your body. “Hehe… I can do this… I have to.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXxX
“That was (Y/N)?” Blake questions. “He just spiked up!”
“Way beyond that other guy!” Ruby cheers. “He can do it!”
“Hehe,” Yang sighs in relief. “You had me worried.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Vegeta slowly rises from the trees, his teeth clenching and anger rising. He grabs his scouter and crushes it in his hands. “You…” A flood of Ki surrounds him before his flies at you.
I have to use three or I won’t win! Kaioken!
You flare up again and meet Vegeta halfway. You both throw a punch, but you manage to tilt your head and feel his glove graze your cheek while your bare fist collides with his face. You follow through and send the Prince soaring farther into the island. You follow him, your Kaioken now dispersed. You come around the right side and trigger the technique again. Vegeta stops himself and throws a Ki blast at you to no avail. You circle around him faster than he can follow. You come around beside him and slam him with a right hook, then circle under him and crush his back with both feet, then, as he’s forced higher in the air, you fly past him and hammerfist Vegeta right back into the island below. You exhale and release the Kaioken. Vegeta crashes into the forest, causing a massive eruption from the pressure and power of his impact.
The spectating Saiyans all stand their ground, not being pushed back at all.
“How did he get so strong?” Nappa screams. “I wanna rip him in half!”
“It’s clearly that technique,” Kakarot points out. “Kaioken, yes?”
“Mhm,” Turles nods to confirm. “Whatever that is, it’s not good. Vegeta’s hit his limit.”
“Saiyans have no limits!” Raditz retorts.
“Perhaps not,” Turles replies. “But that goes for Kail as well.”
You speed towards the grounded Prince, knee first, and activate Kaioken just before you collide with Vegeta’s stomach. He releases a painful scream in response. You hop off his body, grabbing his arm and pulling him into a punch. You quickly follow up with a flurry of punches and kicks that the Prince can’t defend against. You duck under his first punch and grab his leg, spinning around four times before throwing him towards the trees, You pull back your fist and throw it forward, releasing a red wave of air that pushes Vegeta even farther.
You pause, taking a few deep breaths. “Man… he’s tough. I thought he’d be out cold by now…”
Vegeta rolls over on his side, holding his stomach to try and quell the pain. He slowly attempts to stand but ends up coughing… but saliva isn’t the only thing that comes out. “B-Blood? Noble blood… spilled on this pathetic rock… by this scum…” Vegeta clenches his fist. “I won’t allow this… I CAN’T ALLOW THIS! YOU THINK YOU’RE SO STRONG, DON’T YOU?”
“Has he lost it?” Raditz poses.
“Kakarot… the moon was broken, right?” Nappa asks.
“Yeah… wait, you don’t think-“
“We could all crush him,” Nappa chuckles before taking off. “Vegeta!” He shouts, approaching your battle. “Use it! We’ll destroy him and then this planet.”
Vegeta sneers. “Using that transformation for just him… it’s shameful… but it’ll teach him a lesson. You’ll wish you kept your tail, Kail!” He screams as he opens his palm and creates a small ball.
“What’s that?” You tilt your head.
“Saiyans transform at the sight of the full moon thanks to the Blutz Waves given off. But it seems this rock’s moon has been broken. It can’t give off the necessary waves.”
“Blutz Waves? Full moons?”
“Once this mixes with the oxygen, it’ll give off those Blutz Waves and allow us Saiyans to transform! The Great Ape multiplies our power by ten times!”
“The Great Ape? Wait!”
From a distance, Cinder chuckles. “Well, well, I know exactly what that is.”
Vegeta throws it into the air then closes his fist. “Burst open and mix!”
Raditz, Turles, Nappa, and Kakarot land beside Vegeta. The Saiyans stare up at the ball, chuckling. Your mind floods with memories from videos and speech. “A ball… that changed me… no!” You look back to the Saiyans and see they’re already transforming.
All of their chests are heaving, their eyes have turned red, their bodies are growing. Just like you once did, they all grow and change, their armour stretching to compensate. Each one grows hair and becomes taller than most buildings. Ape-like features take over each of them as they grow. Finally, each of them let out an ear-piercing growl that almost knocks you off your feet. The five look down at you. You can see their smiling even with their new features.
“It appears you’ve reached the end,” Vegeta’s deeper voice taunts.
You slide your foot back and raise your hands. You sharpen your eyes and clench your fists. “Damnit…” Your eyes switch back and forth between the apes. “What… do I do?
So, I decided to break up this fight into two parts. It makes each chapter a bit shorter but it keeps with the spirit of Dragon Ball. I hope you guys don’t mind! I also hope you guys are enjoying it so far! I’m trying to make it different from the original Dragon Ball without making it forced. I know some people may be disappointed that there was no Kamehameha vs. Galick Gun but… I don’t know, doing that seems far too similar to the original. But, remember, there’s more to go! Can you really beat five great apes? Guess we’ll see next time! I hope you all enjoyed!
Also, I have a Discord now! I don’t think I announced in it Limitless so I’ll just put this here. It’ll be in the ending notes from this point on anyway. If you want to join, check my profile! If that doesn’t work, try Twitter! I know that link works. Some of the websites just don’t allow links in bios so… meh, what can you do? Hope to see you there!
Want to keep up with me? Know what chapter’s coming out next and the progress of them? Follow me on Twitter! Twitter . com (slash) Chinsangan
Questions? Comments? Concerns? Advice? Send me a message!
I also have a Patreon, if you want to check that out! Pat reon . com (slash) Chinsangan
My Discord is now open! If you want to join, either check my bio for a link, find it on my Twitter, or message me directly!
A special thank you to Patreon supporters: Manuel Garcia, James Tubbs, MazMan, MTX and Sassylemons
Extra special thanks to Ride The Lightning and Nicholas X Wright!
And finally, thank you to the Beta Reader: thenameisntimportant
Chapter 12: Volume 1 Finale - A Horrendous Transformation! Break Through Your Limits!
Chapter Text
Volume 1 Finale - Chapter 12: A Horrendous Transformation! Break Through Your Limits!
The five giant apes slowly start to approach, their footsteps seemingly shaking the entire island. You start hoping back to keep your distance. Of course, this makes little difference to them. They all scatter, flying up and around in all directions.
They’re so fast!
You jump and fly away from Raditz’s stomp then barely manage to twirl over Kakarot’s fist. You land on his arm and flare up with the Kaioken. You slam your fist between his eyes then fly back and over the other apes. Vegeta bursts into the air and swats you down without any time to dodge. You flail right back to the ground only to be kicked by Nappa. You fall to the ground, sliding a few feet before stopping. Slowly getting to your feet, you sense all five of them approaching.
“Damnit… Kaioken times three!” You get up and push back off the ground, using all your speed to get more distance.
Even if I tried to use a Spirit Bomb, it would only hit one of them. Even with my Kaioken…
You bob and weave through the attacks and blasts by the Saiyans, retreating farther into the island. The thumping of their footsteps still haunt you as they get closer and closer, like death itself is at your heel. You turn around and fire a quick Kamehameha at the closest ape. Raditz brushes it off like nothing, walking through the smoke caused.
“Come on!” You moan, continuing to run. “I have to think of something fast!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“That… power…” Krillin shivers. “All of them… their power is incredible.”
“Unimaginable,” Tien reaffirms.
“G-Guys… what do we do?” Yamcha nervously chuckles. “We can’t do anything…”
“Neither can he,” Yang clenches her fist, causing it to shake.
“Sis…” Ruby sighs.
“They’re just like (Y/N) was, aren’t they?” Weiss looks to the others.
Everyone stays silent, knowing what’s bound to happen. If nothing changes, you’re going to die.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“Hm… this is unfortunate,” Ozpin notes. “I don’t believe (Y/N) knows how to deal with them.”
Piccolo remains silent, unmoved by the Saiyans’ drastic increase in power. He doesn’t have an emotional tie to you, so your death means little to him.
“He needs to cut off their tail… or…”
“Or?” Piccolo raises his brow.
Ozpin chuckles. “We give the others a role.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
The forest’s edge fast approaches, leading to darkened clouds and black mountains. Even the Grimm who reside in the area has retreated at the sight of the hulking Saiyans.
“What’s wrong, Kail? Lost your nerve?” Vegeta laughs.
“You smile when five giant apes are chasing you!” You shout back.
If I heard them right, their power was five thousand or less when it comes to the others. If my power was ten thousand, and that ape thing boosted them by ten times.
Kakarot starts running ahead of the other Saiyans, catching up to you in no time. He jumps forward and attempts to crush your body. Activating Kaioken, you barely manage to dash to the side but you’re immediately punted by Nappa.
“Little runt! Die!” He opens his mouth and releases a purple beam.
Don’t fail me now!
“Kaioken times five!” You scream, resulting in an immense amount of pressure being released from your body. You quickly fire a Kamehameha to counter Nappa’s attack.
The two blasts collide and cancel each other out, however, the real harm was done to your body. Your muscles are burning hot thanks to the temporary rise in power. You place your hand on your arm and wince. “Damnit… I guess that was a bit much.”
“Kail!”
“Gah!” You turn around to see Turles’ furry face passing by. He, like Nappa, opens his mouth and releases a blast at point blank.
You’re enveloped by the blast and carried away as if it was a rough torrent. You’re unable to escape until you inevitably crash against the ground and erupt into a large, purple dome. Once it dissipates, you’re left lying in the crater. You shakily start to move, body visibly damage by such an attack.
“Ack… I…” You lift yourself up with one arm and breath. “I don’t even know what to- AH!”
Vegeta’s massive shadow casts over you, his foot positioned right over your body. Without thought, you trigger the Kaioken and aim a weak beam at the ground to push you away from Vegeta’s wrath. Unfortunately, Vegeta manages to swat you out of the sky like a bug, bringing you back to square one. You crash against the ground and slide for a few seconds. Your body burns from both the aftermath of the Kaioken and the damage taken by these overwhelming attacks. You slowly but surely get to your feet, panting heavily while barely standing. Your gaze can barely come off the ground. Your eyes are so heavy.
Nappa runs past all the other Saiyans, shaking the island with each heavy step. As soon as he’s close enough he kicks you into the air, nearly shattering your entire body. You cough up blood, the small drops falling back to the ground. Raditz flies into the air, moving behind you and slapping you back towards the ground. You scream as you spin through the air. Kakarot laughs as you quickly approach him. He pulls his hand back and punches you as soon as you’re close enough. You flip around and are quickly snatched up by Turles. His grip is tight without being painful.
Your eyes are barely open, muscles are heavy, mind is hazy. “It’s a shame we have to kill such a powerful Saiyan.”
“Don’t be remorseful now,” Vegeta speaks. “But… why don’t we give him a Saiyan’s death?”
Vegeta approaches Turles and holds his hand out. The two apes exchange you, only for Vegeta to throw you towards the shores.
Vegeta laughs at a distance while the other Saiyans gather around him. “You know what, Kail? I think I’ll be a nice guy,” he stops moving and ascends into the air. “You won’t suffer… We’ll just destroy you and this planet together!”
Your attention locks onto that, granting you the strength to look up at the now five apes in the air. Vegeta cups his left hand with his right, surrounding himself in a bright purple light. Nappa opens his mouth and gathers a large amount of energy. Kakarot and Raditz shift one hand in front of the other, and Turles places his giant palms together. All of them charge an unparalleled amount of energy within their hands and mouth, shaking the entire planet with the threat of it breaking in half. You raise shakily push yourself off the ground and hover into the air to reach the Saiyan’s height.
“It doesn’t matter where you move! We’ll destroy this planet a dozen times over!” Raditz laughs.
“If that hits…” You slowly look behind you, knowing Vale is in the far distance. “I can’t let that blast hit the planet! I’ll stop you with every ounce of power I have left!” You shout with a newly sparked fire. Your power shoots up with a three times Kaioken. You slowly bring your arms in front of you and slam your palms together. “Ka… me…” You move your hands to your side, gathering a massive store of blue energy. “Ha… me…”
“You choose to die fighting like a Saiyan! For low-class trash, I, the Prince of all Saiyans, will grant you a Saiyan’s end! Super Galick Gun!” Vegeta shouts, throwing his hands forward to release a purple beam.
The other Saiyans follow his lead, releasing their beams to catch up and merge with Vegeta’s. They all swirl together in a grand, beautiful and deadly stream of Ki. You grind your teeth and throw your hands forward. “HAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAA!”
You release the blue wave to collide with theirs. The two forces crashing together set fire to the forest below. Bits of leaves, bark, and even rocks soar into the air and whip around your beam clash. The planet itself can barely handle such intensity. You’re immediately pushed back on impact, barely even slowing the opposing beam down. You try your best to keep steady but to no avail.
“It’s… so much… I can… I have to…”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
The screams of Vale can be heard even by the small crowd at Beacon. No matter how strong those people are, not even they can keep standing under this planetary pressure. They’re all on their knees, grasping at the cement to keep them steady.
“My head… it hurts,” Ruby moans, one hand resting on her scalp. “It’s so much… I can’t…”
“Weiss, make… a glyph…”
“There’s so much… I can’t focus,” the heiress shouts back to her Faunus teammate.
“Tien… I’m scared,” Chiaotzu admits, staying close to his friend.
“There has to be something… we can do,” Tien grinds his teeth. “Sitting here… useless…”
“Not for long,” Ozpin speaks a second after appearing, standing perfectly still as if the planet wasn’t shaking. “The Saiyans have transformed into Great Apes. I believe you four are familiar with it.”
Memories flood back to team RWBY – the deafening growl, the earth-shaking steps, the paralyzing fear they all felt when staring into your blood red eyes.
“They all changed… like he did?” Yang clarifies.
“Indeed, but there’s a way to stop it. (Y/N) is going to need your help, otherwise…”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
The dazzling flashes of your beams outmatch anything on this planet. You’re pushed back farther and farther, the Saiyans' beam closing in on you every second. You’re trying your best to hold your own but their strength is too much.
“Damnit… DAMNIT!” You tighten your arms and try to put every ounce of your multiplied power into it. “COME ON! KAIOKEN TIMES FIVE!” Your red aura flares to a greater extent, slowing down the beam by a minuscule amount. The pain your body is feeling surpasses anything than before. It’s a miracle you’re even able to stay standing.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
King Kai watches from his planet, a drop of sweat sliding down his cheek.
“The kid’s in trouble?” Gregory asks.
“He’s pushing his body past his limit and it’s still not enough,” the Kai shakes his head. “I believe… it’s over… why..? Why isn’t Piccolo and Ozpin intervening?”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“Try all you like, Kail, your end has come!” Vegeta laughs.
Their attack gets ever close, only being a few feet away. Their colours overwhelm the blue of your Kamehameha, threatening to swallow you whole and return you to King Kai. You close your eyes, trying not to see what’s about to come.
Then, your eyes closed, images flash before you. Team RWBY and their cheerful smiles. The girls all focusing to create a Ki ball. Then your friends from the Turtle School – all training together with Krillin, Tien, Yamcha, and Chiaotzu. Your sparring, resting, laughing, all enjoying their time with Master Roshi. Yet also… the people from before. Lucent, placing down a massive plate of food with a hardy smile. Crystal, sticking with you every day. Her warm smile… you swear you can feel her soft hands rest on your shoulder. Even the others, the ones you killed and the few you spared, they were always there for you… and now…
“So many people… I can’t… I owe them… Crystal, Lucent, I’m so sorry for everything… but I won’t let everyone else die because of my blood!” You sharpen your eyes and look toward your incoming death. “The transformation increases their power by ten times… Body, please… for one measly second… just hold up for one second!”
Their beams overwhelm you, reaching a mere inch from your palms. Suddenly, your Ki flares up beyond anything that’s been seen on this planet. “KAIOKEN TIMES THIRTEEN!” Your beam widens and fills with a massive swirl of power. However, that power comes at a cost. You can feel your muscles tearing themselves apart, stiffening and reading to explode. You grind your teeth and steel your heart.
Just for one second… one second to save them all!
Your blast pushes back against the Saiyan’s combined attack.
“What?” They all question in near unison.
“HAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAA!” You scream in both determination to win and overwhelming pain. Despite everything, your will to win keeps your body from falling apart then and there. With your teeth on the verge of cracking and your power swirling out of control, you concentrate just enough to put every ounce into your Kamehameha. Your beam swiftly speeds towards them, not even slowed down by their attacks.
“I-Impossible! This isn’t possible!” Vegeta screams, yet it’s no use. They’re all swept away by your Kamehameha. It blows by them and soars into the air, finding its place in space.
After that one second of victory, you release the Kaioken and are stricken by the side effects. Your body tenses up, every muscle spasming and bleeding. You fall from the sky, crashing against the earth only to scream in pain upon impact. You throw up blood only for your neck to contract and cut off oxygen. Your entire body is shaking in response to rapid movements and torn organs. Despite the pain, your body shifts each way. Your chest will lift off the ground only to slam back down and harm you even more. Your skin and eyes start to turn red, your fingers twist every way.
I… did it… I…
Your vision starts to fade along with the pain.
“(Y/N)!” Yang screams as she, RWBY, and the Turtle School land beside you. “Oh my god, you-“
“He needs a Senzu bean,” Krillin remarks, quickly grabbing one from his belt and placing it in your mouth. “Come on, buddy. Chew. You have to!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
King Kai exhales, never feeling so relieved. “I thought the kid was a goner. Using thirteen times, oh, I’ll give him a Kaio-lecture!” He stops and starts laughing. “That’s a good one!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Barely conscious, you somehow manage to follow commands and swallow the bean through your convulsions. Seconds later, your body returns to normal. You open your eyes as per usual and see all your friends. “Guys… you…”
“(Y/N)!” Ruby and Blake hug you first, something you and the others weren’t expecting of Blake.
“Hey, come on now…”
“We felt it and you… I couldn’t bear the thought of not helping,” Blake confesses. “You went out of your way with the White Fang and I…”
“It’s fine,” you pat her shoulder. “I think… I might have been dead if you hadn’t shown up. So thank you… all of you,” you end with a cock of your head and a bright smile. Blake exhales, looking away. She’s never been so relieved and embarrassed at the same time. “But,” your face drastically shifts to a serious one. “We’re not done. You better escape while you have the time. Those guys aren’t down yet.”
“No, we can help!” Yang kneels in front of you. “We know how to get them out of that transformation. If we cut off their tails then they’ll go back to normal!”
“Really?” You place your hand on your chin and think. “They can’t sense Ki without those scouters, and those broke when they transformed. Okay,” you stand up and smile. “I’ll distract them. You guys…” You look to your eight friends, all eager to help you. “You cut off their tails. Do it all at once or they might figure out what we’re doing.”
“Are you sure you’ll be okay?” Yamcha asks.
“Yeah,” you nod. “In fact… I feel better than ever,” you clench your fist before you. “Go on, stay low to the ground. I’ll fly up high and keep their attention.”
With the plan in motion, you soar into the air while the others scatter. By this time, the Saiyans have recovered from your attack and are far from pleased.
“You little runt,” Nappa’s voice echoes through the land. “I’ll turn you to putty in my hands.”
“Hey, you still haven’t got me!” You shout from the sky, waving. “I said I wasn’t going to lose, didn’t I. No matter what transformation you take, I swear I’ll beat you!”
Cinder chuckles at your little speech. She can feel your power has increased after recovering. It’s nowhere near the power of the apes, but…
“I believe I’ve seen all that’s necessary. It was a close call, I must say. I almost… well,” she turns away and starts walking. “I’m eager to combat you in the future, Saiyan (Y/N).”
RWBY and the Turtle School split into four groups – Weiss and Ruby, Blake and Yang, Krillin and Yamcha, and finally Tien and Chiaotzu. They each keep low to the ground and make their way to one of the apes. Thankfully, they’re unable to sense their presence without the aid of their scouters. That’s what’ll secure victory. Each slip around, getting into position as the Saiyans focus on you.
“It doesn’t matter how much you struggle, Kail,” Kakarot shouts. “You may have gotten lucky, but that won’t last!”
“You sure?” you cross your arms and raise your brow. “It seems you’re just relying on brute force. Well…”
Ruby slides her foot back and takes a deep breath. She focuses her Ki into her scythe, giving it a faint glow. Below her, a glyph forms to heighten her speed. A few more appear to guide the young girl towards Kakarot’s tail. With Ruby’s speed, she intends to take both Kakarot and Vegeta. Blake’s cloth is wrapped around a faraway tree, filled with tension from how strained it’s become. Yang is holding Blake, ready to throw her at Raditz. Yamcha keeps at Krillin’s side as he hones a Ki-based disc in his hand. Tien does the same, though smaller and less potent. They’re focused on Turles and Nappa, respectively.
“Why don’t we get it started then!” You shout.
Taking that as a sign, each of your allies enact their plan. Tien and Krillin throw the discs, cutting off Turles and Nappa’s tail at the same time. Meanwhile, Yang throws Blake as hard as she can, flinging the Faunus towards Raditz. Before the ape even knows what’s happening, Blake’s cleaver makes a clean cut. Ruby bursts forward in a flurry of rose petals, moving faster than any of your other allies. Her extends her scythe and spins around, cutting through the tail like butter. She flips around and lands on another glyph before immediately speeding towards Vegeta.
Whoa, she’s super fast now! Combining her Aura and Ki has done wonders for her. She might be faster than most of the Saiyans.
Vegeta quickly gathers what’s occurred. All the other Saiyans slowly shrink and lose the ape-like features gained. However, Vegeta is far superior to the others. Being the last one, he’s able to spot the speeding rose and slap her out of the air.
“Ruby!” Yang shouts.
You speed towards Ruby, circling around and catching her before she reaches the black mountains.
“Are you okay?” You say, holding her back and legs.
“Ehh… yeah… that really hurt,” she moans, her aura flaring a bit to signify its low amount. “But he’s still big…”
“And the strongest,” you add. “Ruby, you’re definitely the fastest one here… well other than me. You have to cut off his tail, but…” You look towards the battlefield where the Saiyans have just returned to normal. “I can’t fight them all at once. We’re all going to fight.”
“But Weiss!”
“I know,” you nod. “We’ll have to figure something out. I’ll handle Vegeta,” you fly towards the group. “You have to help Weiss. None of you will win on your own.”
You swoop around to Weiss and drop off Ruby. “Good luck,” you say before flying off once more.
“Everyone,” you telepathically speak. “I need you to listen. You have to fight those Saiyans in pairs. Whenever you’re free, attack Vegeta. I can’t cut off his tail on my own, but I can distract him. You’ve all been training, right? You’re all really strong now. Show the Saiyans what people from Remnant can do!”
You stop in front of the hulking behemoth in armour. “Vegeta, we’re still fighting.”
“You… it doesn’t matter how many there are, I’ll crush you all!” He roars.
“Alright then, Vegeta,” you shift your hands to the side and flare up with a four times Kaioken. “Come on!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Tien and Chiaotzu stand ready as Nappa returns to his regular size. The brute tightens his fist, growling at the two men before him. “Little runts… I’ll kill you!”
“His power is far less than it was when they arrived,” Tien whispers to his friend. “We can do this, Chiaotzu.”
“Got it!”
Tien dashes forward, taking the lead for their assault. Nappa wounds up his fist and punches, clashing with Tien’s forearm. The two immediately start going back and forth with their blows, neither having the edge of the other.
“No way! You’re nothing to a Saiyan!”
Tien ducks under Nappa’s punch and slams his fist into the man’s stomach. “Maybe so, but in your state there’s no way you’ll beat us!”
Chiaotzu points at Nappa’s back and fires a thin beam. It collides with his back, knocking the Saiyan off balance. Tien uses this opportunity to place his hands against Nappa’s chest and summon a blue ball.
“Kamehameha!”
The beam explodes on contact, knocking both Nappa and Tien back.
“Tien!”
“I’m okay,” he replies as he pushes off one hand and lands. “Chiaotzu, come on! We can’t give him any room to breathe!”
“Right!”
The two friends fly at the brute, both slamming their fists in his face before the dust settles. Nappa holds himself in place and backhands the smaller fighter away.
“Runts! You won’t beat a Saiyan!”
“And you won’t beat us!” Tien shouts back, flaring his Ki up with determination before attacking once more.
Nappa catches his fist and slams his elbow into the side of Tien’s skull. He quickly pulls the man back and lifts him a foot in the air before throwing a haymaker into the human’s stomach. Tien’s eyes widen in shock at the impact before he’s sent spinning through the air. Nappa laughs as he chases after his prey.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“Scum,” Turles wipes some blood off his mouth. “Just because I’m weakened doesn’t mean I can’t kill you.”
“We can do this, Krillin,” Yamcha affirms. “We can’t let (Y/N) down.”
“Right,” Krillin nods. “Let's go!”
The two glide forward then split off in two directions, attacking from Turles’ left and right. The Saiyan burst into the air, forcing the two to follow him. Krillin and Yamcha scream as the approach, immediately throwing a flurry of attacks at the Saiyan upon contact. The three fly over some explosions, crashing trees, and even fly over your battle with Vegeta. Turles can feel their attacks inching closer and closer. He’s slowing down, getting sloppy. Even if it didn’t put them down, your Kamehameha severely damaged all of them. Turles can clearly see that this is a losing battle in the long run.
Turles pushes off the two and fly back towards the ocean, trying to get some distance. Yamcha follows Turles closely while Krillin tries to circle around. Turles sneers at the sight, open his palms and firing a barrage of purple blasts at the two. They swerve through them both, though it lets them crash against the water and beach resulting in massive explosions. The two humans manage to dodge all of them and approach Turles once more. They both place their hands at their side, a maneuver Turles is now familiar with.
“Kamehameha!” They both scream, firing blue beams at the Saiyan.
Turles raises both hands and catches the two beams, struggling to hold them in place.
“Tch, as pathetic as it is, fighting us in our weakened state is smart. I believe we underestimated this planet.”
Turles throws his hands up to redirect the beams upward then fly towards Krillin. This catches the bald warrior off guard, allowing Turles to drive his knee into Krillin’s stomach before wrapping his hands together and slamming him down into the water.
“Krillin!” Yamcha watches as his friend is swallowed by the water. “You’ll pay for that!”
“Try me,” Turles retorts before flying towards Yamcha.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Blake slips through Raditz’s attacks, only managing to stay away thanks to her Semblance.
“Pathetic!” Raditz shouts, dashing from one shadow to another. “What kind of warrior are you?”
“A planner,” Blake replies before leaving a shadow that’s almost immediately dispersed by Yang’s punch.
She pushes Raditz back but not off his feet. The Saiyan brushes his chin and sneers. “I’ll crush you both.”
Blake walks to Yang’s side and puts her weapons away. “Yang…”
“I know,” the blonde cracks her knuckles. “We didn’t train for nothing. We’re going to beat you down!”
Yang runs forward, refraining from using any Ki to fly. Blake stays back, knowing what Yang’s done with her training and how she’ll fight. Raditz bursts forward and elbows Yang, nearly knocking the girl off her feet. With this moment of weakness, Raditz starts an unrelenting barrage while laughing.
“Die, die, die!” He wails, beating the young girl to a pulp.
He disappears behind her and places both hands on her back, releasing a purple beam that pushes her a dozen feet away before exploding.
“That was your plan?” He laughs. “What made you think you could defeat a Saiyan?” Raditz turns his attention to Blake. “Now it’s your turn.”
Blake smiles, getting low to the ground with her arms separated. “No… it’s yours.”
From the dust and debris, a massive wave of energy shoots up, blowing it all away. Yang stands in the middle, her eyes red and aura larger than any of her teammates. She furrows her brow and leaps forward, catching Raditz off guard with her massive increase in speed. She slams her fist in the side of the Saiyan’s face, sending him flying at incredible speeds. Blake closes her eyes and focuses her Ki for the coming attack. She slides underneath Raditz as he soars, driving her fist into his stomach and then using her Semblance to propel herself over him and kick him right back to the temporary clone. As soon as Raditz lands on it, the clone explodes.
Blake glides beside Yang once more before they both enter a fighting stance again. Yang manages to keep her Semblance active, mixing it with her Ki to break the limits of her abilities.
Raditz pushes himself onto his feet, some of his armour broken off from Blake’s Ki-fueled clone. He grinds his teeth in frustration at the humans before him. Without thinking, he rushes forward.
“DIE!”
The two dash forward, clashing with the Saiyan before throwing their own punches and kicks, using their Ki and Semblances to combat the Saiyan threat. Raditz is purely on the defensive now, unable to break through their assault to start his own attacks. Any time he attempts to attack, Yang purposefully takes the blow to fuel her own power. The three traverse through the forest, all fighting for their lives.
Raditz notices Yang’s tendency to take the hit and uses that to his advantage. He feigns an attack at Blake only to immediately shove a Ki blast in Yang’s gut. The blonde is blown away, distracting Blake long enough for Raditz to grab the girl’s face and slams her into the ground. He drags her along for just a moment before throwing her at the incoming woman. Yang catches Blake only for them both to be hit by another purple Ki blast. That entire section of the forest explodes in a fiery manner. Yang and Blake manage to keep themselves up with a combination of Ki and Aura.
“He’s… so strong.”
“We can do this!” Yang affirms, rushing ahead of her partner.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Ruby watches as you fly towards the giant ape, turning red before dashing at him.
“He’s buying us time, Ruby. We’ll help him,” Weiss places a hand on her leader’s shoulder.
“I know. Right now, we’re going to show this guy what we can do,” she says with a surge of confidence.
“Yeah,” Weiss smiles.
“I remember you were all shaking in your boots when I first arrived,” Kakarot speaks. “Yet now, you’re standing fast against me. I can respect you, humans, but that doesn’t mean I won’t vaporize you where you stand.”
Ruby spins her scythe around, layering the blade with Ki once more. “Weiss, back me up.”
“Always.”
Ruby shifts her scythe behind her and glides forward, sped up by quickly formed glyphs from the heiress.
Kakarot readies himself, blocking the scythe with his forearm. Despite holding it back, his skin is still cut, he still bleeds.
“Tsk, a weapon?” Kakarot grabs the handle of the scythe and throws the girl away.
Ruby flips and lands on a glyph, busting back at the Saiyan and cutting his chest. Kakarot’s eyes widen at the sudden attack. Ruby slides across the ground, her eyes locked on Kakarot the entire time.
“I’m more than a weapon!” Ruby shouts. “Weiss, petal tornado!”
“Right!”
A few dozen glyphs surround Kakarot. Ruby bursts into petals and spins through the glyphs, soaring around Kakarot over and over. With her speed and Weiss’ glyph, she creates a faux tornado around the Saiyan. Kakarot keeps looking around, unable to lock onto the girl.
“Is this it?” He shouts before attempting to fly out. As soon as he reaches the edge, Ruby’s scythe slashes him and knocks him back down. Kakarot stands back up and sneers.
Before he can say anything, a yellow ball of Ki flies out of the tornado and hits his back. Kakarot turns around only for another one to hit. And another, and another, and another. Within seconds, hundreds of blasts are hurled at the trapped Saiyan. Kakarot falls to one knee, trying his best to knock them all away but he’s simply being overwhelmed. The blasts themselves aren’t very strong, but the fact there are so many is what’s starting to damage him. Kakarot grinds his teeth.
“I won’t… be beaten like this!” He shouts while increasing his Ki. “HAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAA!”
Both Weiss and Ruby sense the surge of Ki. “Now’s our chance!”
“I got it!”
Ruby swirls through the air and lands on a glyph before leaping off, scythe ready to slash.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You fly around the giant ape, barely dodging his intense attacks. It’s clear that even Vegeta is fatigued a bit from the battle. Besides that, you feel far stronger than you did when it all started. Thanks to that, you’re able to keep pace with Vegeta, though it’s impossible to do any real damage to him. The one technique you have would take too long to form.
You hurl over Vegeta’s hand and dash at his face. You slam your fist between his eyes and then jump off the snout to get some distance. Vegeta holds his face for a second before growling. He can’t believe this is happening. With all the fighting you and the other Saiyans have been doing, you’ve all been rising in power. But there’s no way you could have grown this much without recovering from near death. He never saw you at that point, yet now you’re stronger and healthier. It’s frustrating and humiliating for the Saiyan Prince. Despite taking on the overwhelming power of the Great Ape, you still overpowered five Saiyans and are still fighting.
Vegeta stares you down, rage boiling up inside him. He’s so distracted that he doesn’t notice the red blur speed towards his tail and slash it off.
“What?” Vegeta turns around right as his massive tail hits the ground.
Ruby slides across the grass and looks up at you. “Kick his butt, (Y/N)!” Ruby screams. Seconds later, a large explosion erupts from where Ruby once was. “Weiss!” She forms back into a red blur and speeds away.
“No… no!” Vegeta yells as he slowly returns to normal.
You descend to the ground and stand opposite to Vegeta, watching him return to normal. He looks down at his ripped gloves, tightening them into a fist. “I…”
“Vegeta,” you shout, getting the Prince’s attention. “It’s over. Leave this planet… and I’ll fight you again another day.”
“You will not talk down to me!” He shouts before flying towards you.
You duck under his first punch, sidestep his second, then block his third. Your increase in power and Vegeta’s massive fatigue has lessened the gap between you two immensely. At this point, you don’t even need the Kaioken. Both you and Vegeta realize this as you go back and forth, blocking and dodging each others' attacks.
Amazing! He’s so strong even after all this.
You duck under his punch and land a devastating blow to his stomach. Vegeta sneers and hammer fists your back. You’re pushed down to your knees, but you quickly push to the right and avoid a small blast from the Prince. You spin around and land on your right leg, pushing off it and flaring up with the Kaioken. With this speed, you easily blitz Vegeta and claim Vegeta’s cheek with your fist. The Prince slides across the ground, unable to recover. You land a few feet away and return to normal, eager to continue the fight.
Vegeta rubs his cheek as he huffs and puffs. Turles, Kakarot, Nappa, and Raditz all land beside Vegeta, some hurt more than others. Your friends all land beside you. They’re all hurt to varying extents. Chiaotzu and Tien are fairly okay, Krillin and Yamcha are bloody but standing, Blake is hanging off Yang’s shoulder, unable to keep standing on her own, while Ruby and Weiss both have to use their weapons as leverage. Everyone’s clothes are tattered and most are bleeding, though team RWBY is injured more so than the others. Still, it’s clear they’ll fight if they need to. Vegeta looks at his allies, all panting from the fighting. Sure, they’re all able to continue battling, but from your immense leap in power and them in their weakened state, it’s unlikely they’ll survive a five versus nine battle.
“Vegeta, we can-“
“No, we can’t,” Turles cuts Nappa off. “Vegeta, it’s time to go.”
“Saiyans don’t retreat!” Raditz shouts.
“Would you prefer death?” Turles retorts. “It’s over.”
Raditz and Nappa both grind their teeth at this potential loss. Vegeta gets to his feet, frustration becoming easily felt by anyone.
“Vegeta,” Kakarot repeats.
The Saiyans know that Vegeta is far from happy at the thought of retreat, but he’s no fool. This fight… is over. Vegeta hesitantly grabs a controller out of his armour and clicks a few buttons.
“We’re… leaving…”
“Vegeta!”
“Shut it, Nappa,” the Prince barks. “Because we’re going to be back,” he looks to you. “And we’ll kill you and destroy this pathetic rock!”
“If you can,” you reply with a smirk.
The other Saiyans call their own pods. Shame is written across all their faces. Only Kakarot is able to keep his eyes locked with yours.
“You’re going to let them leave? Why?” Krillin sharply whispers.
“Because… despite it all,” you say at a tone that the Saiyans can here. “I want to fight them again… and win on my own.”
“What? That’s your excuse?” Yang questions. “They were gonna kill us all! Blow up the planet!”
“Yeah… I know,” you snicker. “But… it’s what I want… and let's be honest,” you look to Yang, locking eyes with her, Blake, Tien, and Chiaotzu. “You can’t change my mind with words or fists.”
The others remain silent, all waiting for their pods to arrive. It takes less than ten seconds for the five Saiyan pods to land near their owners. Without a word, they enter their pods, defeated.
“Kail,” Vegeta shouts. You keep your eyes locked with his while the pod closes. “You will regret this decision.”
All the pods close and slowly lift themselves off the ground.
“Heh… maybe,” you smile.
The five pods fly off in order, allowing everyone to breath easy. All of RWBY fall on their butts and exhale while the Turtle School’s stances relax.
“They were strong… so strong,” Yang shakes her head. “We trained so hard, and yet…”
“They weren’t at full power either,” Tien remarks. “If it wasn’t for your battle before…” He tightens his fist. “I need to get stronger.”
“How did you manage to fight them off?” Krillin asks.
“I wouldn’t have if not for you guys… I was as good as dead,” you chuckle, rubbing the back of your head.
“That’s not something to laugh at!” Yang punches your leg.
“Ow, hey!” You falter momentarily. “I don’t deserve that! I do deserve-“
“Food,” everyone answers at once.
“Yeah… wait, how did you know? I haven’t been around!”
“It’s all you ever want,” Yamcha chuckles.
“Because it’s good!”
“I believe you deserve all the food you desire,” Ozpin says as he approaches you from behind.
“Oh, hey Ozpin!” You wave. “Thanks for sending me to… the place,” you say with air quotes. “I wouldn’t have won without it.”
“You were very lucky… however, you all performed extremely well. I’d venture to say that this entire planet is indebted to you. However, I’ll handle the burden. Let's tend to your wounds and have a welcoming party for our friend here,” Ozpin smiles at you.
“So… we’re getting dinner, right?”
“Yes, we’re getting dinner,” Ozpin replies, inciting laughter from almost everyone.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Ironwood stands behind Gero, staring at the transmission their drones are collecting.
“We have everyone’s DNA, save Beacon’s Headmaster, and the battle data from everything as you requested. The drones are coming back now.”
“Saiyans,” Ironwood scratches his chin. “They said they’ll return… Saiyans…” Ironwood places his hand behind his back and walks away. “Good work, Doctor. Your project is now active… but I expect you to keep it discreet.”
“Of course, General,” Gero says with a devious smile. “I’ll take do all that must be done.”
“Everything that has to be done,” Ironwood nods. “Everything… to defend this planet,” he fiddles with his tie. “To stop… the Saiyans.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
After giving everyone, save yourself, a senzu bean, you all gather in Beacon’s cafeteria. Most of the tables are formed into one giant one with you at the head. There’s a small mountain of bowls and plates stacked in the middle. Everyone is just watching as you engulf plate after plate after bowl after cup after plate of food. The others haven’t even gotten through one plate or bowl. You slurp down a bowl of soup and toss it in the middle.
“Man, all this is so good! I haven’t had a meal like this in forever!” You shout. “Compliments to the chef, truly.”
“I’ll make sure to do that,” Ozpin nods.
“It’s good to be back,” Ruby cheers. “I can’t wait for next year to start!”
“Oh yeah, we’re second years now!” You add.
“Well,” Ozpin coughs. “Not exactly.” The five of you stare at the headmaster, eyes wide. “There’s nothing for you to fear, team RWBY. You’ve earned your second year right. Unfortunately… you, (Y/N),” he focuses on you. “You never completed any of the content necessary for passing. Normally, a student would be reprimanded for this but you have a very good reason for not attending. You still need to learn, however, so… you’ll be returning to Beacon as a first year.”
“Awww man, I’m not gonna be with them anymore?” You look over at the girls.
“W-Well, we can help you!” Yang adds.
“Yeah, Weiss is really smart,” Ruby nods.
“I’m glad someone’s giving me the recognition I deserve,” Weiss confidently smiles.
“So, I’m back to square one, huh? Alright,” you slam your fist into your palm. “First year here I come!”
“Again,” Blake adds.
“Again,” you nod.
This was so much fun to write. Thank you all so much for supporting Limitless to this point. I know in comparison to my other big stories, twelve chapters isn’t much. But still, it’s a starting point for greater and grander things. With Volume 1 complete, we approach Volume 2! Each Volume has two sagas, this one having the Remnant and Saiyan Saga. We have a plan to kinda incorporate a RWBY-centric saga and a DB-centric saga. Well, I intended to blend it all together as best I can. We’ll just have to see what the future holds! I hope you all enjoyed the first Volume of Limitless! Is there anything you specifically want to see? Any RWBY moments? Dragon Ball moments? Leave them in the review/comments section and maybe I’ll just add it in. Of course, I have a huge layout for the future of the story but it’s still nice to see what people would want to see. And hey, if you have some mini-arc idea that I like then I’ll credit the idea and put it into action! It’s just a small way to get you guys involved, somewhat like the OC contest in Crimson Shadow.
Anyway, this is where I go. I hope you all enjoyed and I will see you next time!
Want to keep up with me? Know what chapter’s coming out next and the progress of them? Follow me on Twitter! Twitter . com (slash) Chinsangan
Questions? Comments? Concerns? Advice? Send me a message!
I also have a Patreon, if you want to check that out! Pat reon . com (slash) Chinsangan
My Discord is now open! If you want to join, either check my bio for a link, find it on my Twitter, or message me directly!
A special thank you to Patreon supporters: Manuel Garcia, James Tubbs, MazMan, MTX and Sassylemons
Extra special thanks to Ride The Lightning and Nicholas X Wright!
And finally, thank you to the Beta Reader: thenameisntimportant
Chapter 13: Volume 2: Beacon Saga - A Self Given Mission! The Outbreak of a New Grimm!
Chapter Text
Volume 2: Beacon Saga – Chapter 13: A Self-Given Mission! The Outbreak of New Grimm!
The skies around the Xiao-Long household shake from fear at the battle going on. Each clash sends shivers through Tai’s house and even the man himself. He tries to take a drink with his dog, each of them freezing every time everything.
“So glad my girls are-“ His house shakes one more. “Having fun…”
You duck under Yang’s two punches before flipping forward and slamming your knee into the back of her head. The blonde soars down to the ground, crashing like a meteorite. You return to proper orientation and immediately catch Blake and Weiss’ fists. You pull their hands opposite to slam the two together then hop up a bit and kick them both towards Yang. The blonde just starts to get back up when her two teammates crash into her, shaking the island of Patch even more.
“And that leaves-“ You duck under a glowing scythe slash, the user, after missing, uses her Semblance and Ki to burst back towards you and barely miss your legs. The speed and dexterity of Ruby’s movements pressure even you. Though you may be dodging and weaving, flipping and twirling, Ruby’s scythe gets closer and closer with every swing.
“You’re really… fast… Ruby…” You barely manage to say as you avoid her attacks.
Ruby doesn’t respond. She remains focused on landing a scratch on you.
“Hey! We’re allowed to use weapons?” Blake shouts as she and the rest of the team flies close.
You lean back, watching Ruby’s glowing scythe pass by your neck, then grab the handle to stop the battle. Ruby grunts at your halting of the action. The fact that you were so easily able to stop the battle infuriates her.
“Nah, you can use whatever you want,” you release Ruby’s weapon and place your hands on your hips. “I can tell you all have a good grasp of martial arts. I’d rather you focus on what you want. I know Yang is like me,” you slam your fists together and smile. “A good old fashion beat down, but you three use weapons. Focus on that. Make yourself the best you can be!” You end with a smile.
“Well, uh… okay,” Blake clears her throat and looks to Weiss. “Shall we… get our weapons?”
“I would prefer that, yes,” Weiss nods.
The two descend, leaving you and the sisters alone. “Well then,” you fly back to put some distance between you all. “Shall we continue without them?”
“Yeah, I’m gonna take you down!” Ruby swings her scythe around and glares at you.
“I don’t doubt it. You two are basically strength,” you focus Yang. “And speed,” you shift to Ruby. “So I’ll have to keep on my toes around you both or I might actually get hurt,” you shift into your fighting stance.
“I don’t know,” Yang raises her hands and widens her legs. “You haven’t shown us your power since the Saiyans. How much stronger have you gotten?”
“Ah, you know,” you shrug and chuckle. “Nothing crazy.”
In truth, you’re surprised how much stronger you’ve gotten. From what you remember, you’re likely relative to Vegeta’s before he went all out. Your training hasn’t been anything crazy, either, so it clearly has to do with your Saiyan biology. Either way, you’re stronger than ever with a greater desire to push those limits. If they Saiyans return, you have to find a way to beat them on your own. You need more strength to fight back against anyone who may stand up to fight you. The stronger the better.
“How are we suppose to know how strong we are if we can’t see your full strength?” Yang crosses her arms and frowns.
You look between the sisters, noting the conviction being shared. You huff then chuckle. “I mean… alright, if you want.”
You let your arms hang and take a deep breath. Your body is relaxed, it’s calm. Despite the battle you were having, you’re still at full power. This training session hasn’t pushed anything except the girl’s Aura. You exhale… then breathe in once more. Upon your final exhale, a massive wave of pressure releases from your body. Yang and Ruby flip over themselves, struggling to remain stationary in the air.
“Whoa…” Yang holds her hands before her as her hair whips back.
“That’s not fair!” Ruby desperately holds onto Crescent Rose.
“HYAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAA!” Your voice echoes across the ocean and into Vale. Despite your control, release all your Ki has an inevitable side effect towards the planet. Vegeta shook the planet when he powered up, and you’re quite confident you could do the exact same if you wished. But that would cause more trouble than you like, thus you’ll keep is as contained as you can. Patch, however, is still affected by the sudden surge of energy which none of its inhabitants are pleased about.
“It’s still… rising,” Yang shouts, a mixture of struggling and admiration laces in her voice.
“I can’t wait… to test it,” Ruby snickers, her bravado completely false as she knows you would dominate her and all of her team if you wished.
“HAAAAAAAAA!” You spread your legs and pull your elbows to your side. Your eyes are wide, your muscles are bulging. For fun, you’ll show them a little extra. “KAIOOOOOOOOOOOOKEEEEEEEEEEEEEN!” Your aura swirls with red, giving the entire area that same tint.
“WHAAAAAAAAAAAAAAA!” Ruby flips back again, swept away in the current of your Ki.
Yang barely manages to keep her center of gravity while she’s forced back. She raises her power to combat yours, forming a small bubble around her. “Come on, then! Just like that!” Yang shouts.
You stop screaming but keep releasing your Ki. You could increase the intensity of the Kaioken if you wished, but that’d be far too much. Even going to this extent is more than dangerous. But, Yang asked you to come at her. You burst forward, invisible to the naked eye, and slam your fist into the girl’s cheek. Yang has no time to react as she’s shot right into the ocean, causing a massive wave to erupt from her impact zone. You cut off your Ki and return it to a base level before flying towards the water.
“Crap, Yang!” You shout right before you enter break through the water barrier.
You sturdily hold your breath as you feel out Yang’s energy.
She’s moving… actually, her energy is pretty high considering-
You barely manage to react before Yang returns the favour and slams her fist into your cheek. Her eyes are burning red, hair flaring with golden sparkles. You fly straight out of the water, twirling through the air until you can recover.
“Ow, ow, ow, ow,” you rub your cheek. “Sheesh, she wasn’t kidding. That punch was serious. If I hadn’t raised my Ki there I would’ve been out cold. Heh…” You smile and look down at the girl who’s huffing and puffing. “You’re something else, Yang.”
You descend and reach her location, getting the blonde’s attention. “You alright?”
“Yeah,” she nods. “I just… never felt that much with my Semblance… I just felt like… I don’t know,” she crosses her arms, almost in a fearful manner as if she’s trying to cover herself or lock something in. “Sorry.”
“Hey, I’m the one who punched you first,” you pat her shoulder. “Don’t worry about it. It was one hell of a punch. Come on, we should find the others. I’m sure I’ll get yelled at for my little stunt.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“Are you sure you don’t want to stay for dinner?” Ruby asks once more.
“No, I should really get home. Klein can only cover for me for so long,” Weiss slips her boots on. “Thank you for the offer, though, the three of you,” she looks to Yang, Ruby, and Tai.
“You’re always welcome,” Tai smiles. “The same goes for you, Blake.”
“I’m grateful, but I should also return home. I haven’t seen my parents in some time… and with these powers I can visit without taking up too much time. I just hope…” Blake’s voice quiets as she thinks on her family. “I just hope dinner will still be warm,” she half-heartedly jokes.
The two girls give a final wave before they soar into the air and go their separate ways. Ruby closes the door and looks back at her dad. “Thanks for letting them stay so long.”
“And thank you for letting (Y/N) stay,” Yang adds.
“He keeps saying he’s a burden,” Ruby giggles.
“A burden on my pantry,” Tai sighs. “But at least he’s pulling his weight. I sent him out to get some firewood.”
“I thought he was just in his room! Dad!” Yang whines.
“It’ll distract him so I can get food ready. I’ll have to cook for ten,” Tai sighs, making his way to the kitchen. “Come on, Zwei.”
The dog happily barks as he runs down the stairs and steps in his father’s shadow. Ruby and Yang look at one another, figuring out what to do next.
“I’m gonna look for (Y/N),” Yang plans. “You?”
“I think I’ll relax in my room, make sure Blake and Weiss message me when they get home.”
“Okay,” Yang slides into her boots and opens the door. “I’ll be back before sundown.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You clean your hands off and stare at your handiwork. Three large trees tied together with vines you’ve found around the island. Patch doesn’t quite have the resources the mainland has, but you’ve been living off the land for so long that collecting firewood is almost second nature to you.
You grab one of the massive logs and lift the entire collection up and onto your shoulder. You shift a little bit, making sure you’re the most comfortable. It’s not heavy, by any means, but you’d rather not dirty your Gi too much. You start your journey through the forest with these three trees making everything slightly more difficult. You could fly over everything but there’s no need to rush. Taking in the cool breeze, the sounds of birds chirping or squirrels communicating, everything is just wholesome to you. Even the crackling leaves under your boot or that soft puff when you step in mud. It’s all comforting beyond your ability to explain.
“Hm?” You look ahead. “Is Yang coming this way? I know Blake and Weiss left, but… hm… welp,” you shrug, shifting the large logs. “Whatever.”
Judging by the speed of her Ki signature, it’s clear to you that Yang is merely walking instead of running or flying. Comparing your pace and hers, it’ll take a small time before you two meet. It’s not like the island is massive anyway. Slipping through the bushes, passing by the trees, it’s a humble journey that’s soon interrupted by the screams of a woman. Your eyes sharpen as you look towards the source. You drop the trees and dash along the ground. You slide to a halt a few feet away from the scene. A woman kneels over her a younger man, bleeding from a massive gash on his chest. Across from them is a large Beowolf with a large maw and bloodied claw. You pause for a moment when you realize this Grimm looks different. It’s faint, but the normally red aspects of the Beowolf are green. Even some parts of its coat have a green tint. You don’t have time to dwell on it as people are in danger! You fly toward the Beowolf, spin around and slam your shin into its snout. The force behind your attack rips through the monster’s hide and cuts its life short. You land behind it, feeling the beast disintegrate.
“Well, lucky it wasn’t immune to that. Why was he green?” You think on this for less than a second before remembering the injured man. “Now then,” you shift to the two civilians. “Onto the people. I remember a couple things from my classes.” You jog to their side and kneel down. “That’s a big wound… I…” You look down to your sash where a small bag of senzu beans reside. You don’t have too many left, but Korin should have a new batch ready soon.
“Please, you have to help him!” She frantically screams. “My son… I can’t lose-“
“Yep,” you pull out the pouch and grab a bean. “Here, eat this,” you push the bean against the injured man’s mouth. “Come on…” You poke it again. “Open your mouth,” you squint.
“Why are you feeding him that? He needs medical attention!” Her frustration grows even higher.
“He’ll be fine if he just eats,” poke. “The.” Poke. “Bean!”
The injured man shivers, barely managing to open his mouth.
“See, that wasn’t hard,” you smile and push it inside his mouth. “Now chew… please chew.”
“You’re the worst Huntsman I’ve ever seen!”
“What?” You throw a hand in the air. “But I killed the thingy and healed the injured.”
“He’s not healed at all!” She shouts to the high heavens. “He’s bleeding and dying and I don’t want…” Her eyes drift down to his wound… or lack thereof. “What the…”
“Magic bean,” you stuff the pouch away. “Works every time.”
“Oh my god… oh my god, thank you!” Her demeanor switches from frantic and scared to relieved and happy. She pulls you into a tight squeeze that expresses all the emotions she has right now.
You slowly place your hands on her back and pat it. “It’s, uh… no problem,” you reply with a feeling of confusion.
“Hey!” Yang’s voice echoes through the trees. “Is everything… Mrs. Coello? Are you okay!” She rapidly approaches you all.
“Yang! Oh Yang, I am now! My son’s going to be okay! My boy,” she looks down at her son, likely as old as you are. Finally giving him a detailed look, he appears to have some light armour on him along with a belt that can lock in a weapon, though said weapon is nowhere in sight.
You step back, standing next to Yang as the woman cries tears of joy.
“She’s another resident of Patch. Her son, Branco he never passed the Beacon test,” Yang whispers. “He was always reckless, got himself hurt. He didn’t have a fighting instinct. Pretty agile, though.”
“Hm,” you cross your arms and tilt your head. “Well… he’ll be okay. I gave him senzu bean so there’s no worries.”
“Do you want us to escort you home?”
“Yang… I…” She looks down at her son. “I’d appreciate it, thank you.”
“I’ll carry your son,” you offer while moving around to his side. With ease, you pick him up and set him around your shoulders. Yang stays at the elder’s side, giving her emotional support. While Yang and Mrs. Coello talk about the island and Yang’s experiences at Beacon. The strange earthquake earlier is also brought up. Yang does a great job at playing that off. You’re left to your own thoughts during this short road trip. Those thoughts swim around your mind the entire time, even when you arrive at the Coello household and leave the sleeping boy with his parents.
“You’re… oddly silent,” Yang remarks as you both follow the path away.
“Just thinking about Huntsman, I guess,” you look to the sky. “I don’t think that woman was happy with my methods.”
Yang nudges you. “You saved her life and her son’s. I don’t think there’s more you can do. You’re a caring guy. I learned that long ago.”
“You did?” You look over to the blonde.
“Yeah,” she nods. “When you took care of that injured animal… I realized then that your heart was in the right place. Your methods are strange and you’re definitely a unique kind of person, but you want to help people and that’s what matters.”
“I never really thought of it like that. I just kinda did stuff… I think that’s why I wanna go back to school. I need to know more about the personality of Huntsmen.”
“Don’t change because of that,” Yang’s quick disappointment is evident. “Huntsmen… they’re all unique. Look at my uncle,” she snickers. “Or… my mom…”
“Your uncle and mom? Actually, where is your mom? Is she on a mission?”
Yang’s arms shake a little bit at the thought. “My mom left me and dad a long time ago…”
“Oh… I’m sorry,” you start to place your hand on her shoulder then stops. You look at your hand, unsure what to really do at this point. You default to putting it back to your side. “So, what about Ruby? Does she have a different mom?”
“Yes. Summer passed some time ago, however. It’s just been my dad for a long time,” Yang’s voice shows clear signs of discomfort.
“Have you seen your mom since?”
“Tsk,” Yang rolls her eyes. “I tried… I’ve never found her, despite all my searching. Maybe it’ll be different now that I have these powers.”
“You looked before?”
“Yeah… a lot. Got in a lot of trouble, too,” she half-heartedly chuckles. “She’s not easy to find… or maybe she just doesn’t want me to find her. Dad doesn’t talk about her too much either. I just need to find her… I just have to,” Yang tightens her fist. “And I will.”
“Hm…” You place your arms behind your head and think on Yang’s words. “Searching, huh… What does she look like?”
“Oh,” Yang grabs her scroll and clicks a few buttons before moving it towards you.
You see a woman with raven black hair that flows down her red shirt. Because of the image quality, you’re unsure whether she has a skirt or long pants with a frilly belt. Besides that, it appears she has a mask.
“A mask? Are you su-“
“It’s her,” Yang quickly affirms. “I know it… come on, dinner shoulder be soon.”
Yang’s pace picks up, her steps becoming heavier with the weight of anger. You can’t help but feel bad about it.
Maybe I can help… Friends help each other, right, Crystal?
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Cinder falls to the ground, panting while sweat slides down all part of her body. She tries to get back on her feet but fails to muster the strength.
“You’re still failing this training,” a distorted voice speaks.
Cinder looks up, eyes gleaming through a few strands of hair. A darkened figure with red eyes stands before her, the slight twitch of the hologram showing every few seconds.
“I’m… doing better.”
“Better, but not satisfactory. What was I to expect from one such as you,” he says with contempt. “I’m closing in on another one. I don’t care if you’re her little pet, I will erase your taint from this world if you fail to reach the bar I’ve set for you.”
Cinder grinds her teeth. “I’ll be ready… I’m strong… I’m going to be stronger.”
The figure’s eyes squint before their transmission ends. Cinder slams her fist against the ground in frustration. “He holds me to a standard that hasn’t even been reached yet… will he really reach such a height? No,” she shakes her head. “I’ll kill him before then. I’ll become stronger!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
An Atlas transport soars through the blizzard, scanning each of the glaciers around it.
“We’re picking up something,” the pilot shouts. “Is… is this it?”
Gero, sitting near the middle of the ship, has his eyes locked on his scroll that’s transmitting the data. Signs of technology are showing up beneath the ice.
“There you are… it’s been some time, Wheelo. Land near this glacier,” he marks the location on his scroll.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Tai’s face continues to droop as plate upon bowl upon plate piles atop his kitchen table, accompanied by your constant slurping and munching. Yang and Ruby don’t mind it at this point. They’re gulping down the last bit of their drinks or scrounging up the last pieces of meat. You inhale the last bowl of soup and exhale. “That… was pretty nice.”
“Just nice, huh…” Tai scratches his head as he examines the mountain of dishes that are somehow keeping shape. “Thanks…”
“No, thank you! I love eating with people!”
“It’s definitely not for the conversation,” Yang chuckles.
“I don’t know, sis, he was quite the speaker,” Ruby jokingly rebuttals.
“Oh, thanks!” You say with a toothy grin. “I gotta work off the food now. Maybe do some sparring.”
“We just sparred!” Yang light heartedly shouts.
“Yeah, but it’s so much fun! Plus it works off that extra skin. That’s a thing girls worry about, right?” Tai immediately starts waving his hands for you to stop but you fail to notice. “Other girls I knew talked about that. Little handles or something, I don’t know. I never really thought of weight but apparently, it’s a pretty big thing. Did you guys know?” You tilt your head and switch between Ruby and Yang.
The two have a dark cloud over them while listening to you ignorantly speak about a woman’s weight.
“Oh no,” Tai shakes his head. “So, who wants ice-cream?” He tries to lighten the mood.
“Oh, I’m down!” You cheer.
“Girls?”
“I’m alright,” they both reply with a downcast demeanor.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You relax in a small bedroom that was provided by Tai. It’s fairly small with only a few decorations and objects – two paintings, the window, the bed with a bedside table, and a small closet. You didn’t put anything there since you can just fly out to Beacon or your home and grab another Gi.
Despite the great time you’ve had here, talking with your two friends and their father, learning more about being a Huntsman in the field, and the fantastic food, there’s something that’s keeping your spirits down.
“Yang seemed really down about her mom… I don’t know, I can relate to that, I think,” you stare up at the ceiling. “I never had parents… but my friends… Lucent… he was like a father to me and now he’s gone. I’d give anything to bring them all back. Yang can find that lost person. Her mother is still around, she can reconcile and talk with her. I can’t. I… lost those people” you clench your fist tightly. “And I can’t even remember it… but a Huntsman helps others so they don’t lose anything, right?” Your optimism starts to shine once more. “I can’t do anything for them, but I can do something for Yang!”
You flip off the bed and crack your knuckles. “Looks like I got something more to do before school starts. Help Yang out by finding her mom, alright,” you approach the window and lift it up. “I sorta remember what she looks like. Shouldn’t be too bad. Her energy signature should be something like Yang’s, I’d think,” you hop out the window and immediately burst into the air with a strong white aura surrounding you and leaving a trail behind you.
“If Yang was looking around, that means she’s probably checked Vale. So maybe some places outside of Vale or other Kingdoms… oh, more Kingdoms… then again, there’s only four so I’ve been to half of them. That’s not so bad, I guess… ah,” you shake your head and pat your cheeks. “Gotta focus. This is my own detective course. Self-taught! That probably isn’t the best idea… oh well,” you spin around and fly faster. “Let's find Yang’s mom! Wait… crap, I don’t know her name! I don’t even have a picture…” You sigh. “Well, greater challenge, I guess!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Yang and Ruby sit on their beds, both in pajamas and ready for bed.
“I don’t know, I’m just super excited for next year! No, two years! We missed the Vytal Festival last time!”
“We would’ve totally kicked butt,” Yang confidently remarks.
“We still kicked butt!” Ruby throws her hands in the air and falls back on her bed. “Those Saiyayamans didn’t stand a chance against us!”
“The Saiyans?” Yang laughs. “We…” Yang rests on the bed and looks up. “We barely made it through that. They would’ve beat us… they would’ve beat (Y/N).”
“But we won,” Ruby rolls onto her butt again. “What’s there to worry about?”
“Nothing, I guess,” Yang smiles. “Hopefully things will be normal again… we didn’t really do much school stuff last year.”
“Yeah, it wasn’t what I thought. We were on that island a lot.”
Yang shivers at the thought of the old man’s fingers coming closer to her chest. “Not all of it was great,” she crosses her arms to cover her larger assets. “But now we’re head and shoulders above others. Remember when we showed off to CVFY?” She ends with a slight chuckle.
“Yeah,” Ruby nods, a wide smile forming. “We were so cool.”
“So you don’t mind not having ‘normal knees,’” the elder teases.
“I… that’s not fair!” Ruby pouts. “I’ll show you a normal knee!” She deviously smirks before grabbing her pillow and throwing it.
Yang catches the pillow and grins. “Big mistake, little sis.”
“Wait, wait, wait, wait! It was a joke!” Ruby ducks under the pillow and dives behind her bed. “We can’t ruin our room again!”
Yang grabs her own pillow and winds up, but a sudden sensation stops both girls.
“Is that-“
“He’s leaving?” Ruby turns around. “Wonder why?”
Yang sets the pillow down and exhales. “Why do I feel like he’s gonna get into trouble?”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Three Days Later…
Dr. Gero watches from a safe, flexible bunker brought by the Atlas military. There’s a massive wall of explosive against the glacier wall, all calculated properly as to not damage anything inside or fracture the ground beneath them.
“Sir,” a soldier enters the bunker. “Everything is ready.”
“As expected. Bring the soldiers to a safe location. We’re detonating in one minute.”
“Yes, sir,” the soldier salutes him before jogging out.
The doctor inwardly counts one minute as he dances his fingers along the desk. It’s been a long time since he’s spoken with Dr. Wheelo – the one who hid away after a terrible experiment destroyed his body. His experiments were generally shunned, but they also align with Gero’s new project. He thought of finding Dr. Merlot, but his experiments began focusing on the Grimm which has no use for Gero. After his inner timer finishes, Gero clicks the button to detonate all the explosions. The ground shakes from the shockwaves released from both the explosives and the large pillars of ice that fall and shatter. All the soldiers keep in the safe zone, yet the wind pressure still pushes against them. When the smoke clears, the ice has been fairly cleared and exposes a large metal door. Gero smiles, his moustache curving along with his lips.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
The doctor saunters through the large lab, escorted by a dozen Atlas personnel. They’ve gone room by room, viewing different layouts of rooms. The colour is dark, the air is cold, and the soldiers are on edge. They know they can’t say anything to oppose this plan else the doctor will chew them out. Everything has been quiet through every room. To Gero’s surprise, no defense systems have intervened with them. There’s only one way for Gero to interpret this.
“Dr. Wheelo,” Gero finally speaks. “Are you here? Perhaps Dr. Kochin is present?”
Suddenly, the wall to their right lights up with a series of lights that appear to be dark blue. Along the wall is a jar with a massive brain floating inside a containment unit.
Gero smirks. “Dr?”
“Gero…” His deep voice speaks. “What do you want?”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You take a seat on a patio chair and await your order. Mistral has been an interesting experience so far. You decided to go east because it seemed more lively and full than the west. You stopped off at a few towns on the way, asking about the woman in question That’s when you realized how awful you were at preparing. You don’t know her name and you don’t even have a picture. Still, you’re pressing forward to see if you can find anything of value. She did sound like a unique woman that people would notice. Besides the searching, you have dealt with a few Grimm here and there. It’s weird how you’re seeing more green tinted Grimm out in this area. You thought all Grimm were the same, but now you’re wondering if they differ per region. You weren’t there for the entire course, after all, so it’s highly possible you just missed out on that. The green Grimm does seem bigger and a tad more vicious. You also notice they’re a little tougher than your average Grimm. You have a general idea on how much power to put into punches when dealing with Grimm, and the green ones take a tad more force than before.
All this tactical and critical thinking are all throw off the patio when a large plate of food is placed before you. Even if it’s midday, the plate is lush with cooked vegetables and three types of meats. It’s a good thing the plate is large.
“Compliments of the owner,” the waiter bows his head before walking away.
“Thanks!” You wave. “Does this make me corrupt? Accepting free food from someone I’ve saved? Ah well,” you shrug then stretching your arms. “I’m hungry.”
You dig into the food, only using the fork to transfer the food to your mouth. You keep your ears open for the conversations around you. You happen to hear something from below in the market.
“Get out of here, you filthy animal!” A stall owner screams, extending his bo staff while what appears to be a bear Faunus scurries away. You swallow your food and tilt your head. “I remember when stuff like that happened… I guess it’s common.”
On the other hand, one of the conversations on the patio catches your attention since it’s related to you.
“You remember that massive earthquake we had a bit ago?” A man’s voice speaks.
“Of course! Mother just recovered from her fall.”
“Yes, well, my coworker’s brother lives in Vacuo and he mentioned the same sort of earthquake.”
“Across that distance? Is that possible?” Her voice is seeped in worry.
“I’m not sure. From what I’ve heard, it wasn’t natural,” he exhales. “Whatever that means.”
“A Grimm?”
“I hope not,” he quickly answers. “Perhaps man-made. Maybe Atlas is trying new war machines.”
“Of course, those power-hungry imbeciles,” she sneers.
“What sort of machine could shake the planet? I hope they be rid of it. We don’t need something so dangerous.”
You slurp down the cup of water and set it down with a sigh. “I should’ve known that people would still be talking about Vegeta’s display. I suppose I didn’t do any better in Vale,” you chuckle to yourself. “Forgot that people would be freaked out. I remember…” Your voice drifts off as you think on your past friends. “Eh… I should get back to the search. Maybe someone here can recognize her. Oh!” You tap the table. “If she’s a Huntress then maybe the people at- wait, school isn’t in yet. I wonder if the teachers are there at all… hm…” You cross your arms and tap the loose fabric that covers part of your arm. “If I was a Huntress then I’d be out in the field, right? I guess checking the school to see any records would make sense. Other Huntsmen would at least have an idea, right? Yeah, sounds logical to me. That’s my next destination!”
You wipe your mouth and set up your plates for easy pickup. With all that done, you turn to the patio and jump off, waiting a moment before curving up and flying towards the large school. Of course, people perusing the streets and other customers see you suddenly fly to which their reactions range from awe to fear. You fly over the people of Mistral until you land inside the grounds of Haven. It’s much tighter than Beacon, meaning there isn’t much space between each of the buildings and the overall space is far smaller. There’s a tower similar to Beacon’s, though far smaller. You land in a somewhat familiar courtyard that branches off into four paths, each path having a lamppost or two for the night.
“Huh, you’d think there’d still be someone keeping an eye out. Well, people don’t usually fly in,” you rub the back of your head and smile. “But that just makes everything more annoying. I actually have to find someone… haha, I’m kidding,” you shake your head, keeping the smile constant. “A couple people are in that building,” you look to the bigger building.
You hover over the ground and land before the door.
“Do I knock..? Whatever,” you shrug before pushing the door open and stepping in.
The immediate motif is one of red, white, brown, and gold. The walls only hold pictures on one side of the hallway, leaving its dreary white on display. The ceiling is a deep brown that, with certain lighting, looks red. The carpets and accents of most take a red and gold approach to liven everything up. You even notice the Haven symbol on the ground, separating two rugs.
“Little nicer than Beacon, I have to say. Do I just flock to the simplistic design?” You look down at your Gi – the black undershirt and pants, the golden yellow Gi with brown accents and belt, the also brown wrist guards. “Um… I mean, my boots are blue with those little red ties,” you stick your foot forward and wiggle it. “Yeah, I have class. Weiss doesn’t know what she’s talking about. I’m really classy. I don’t need a suit,” you ramble onto yourself as you pass by a waiting area with chairs to the left and a desk to the right. “Ah… then again, I don’t like suits. I remember when they put one on,” you snicker. “My tail ruined the back…” A deep exhale escapes your body. “That tail… caused all sorts of trouble…”You quickly pat your cheeks and violently shake your head. “Not the time, (Y/N), not the time.”
You approach the door and stop once more. “I should knock this time,” you conclude before closing your fist and lightly tapping on the wood.
You hear some rustling from behind the door and suddenly a few of the energy signatures move… but not to the door. One seems to go above and behind you, keeping in the ceiling, while the other goes below you. The last one remains in the room, unmoving.
“Come in!” An unfamiliar voice beckons.
You open the door and are immediately met a sort of flaming rock. Instinctively, you smack the projectile out of the air and frown. “Is that the way you test all newcomers? I don’t think students have reaction times like that.”
“You’re correct,” a man with long, tan hair and a full beard replies. He’s sitting behind a desk, his arm extended after the shot. His colour scheme is very tight, a brown coat with matching mantle, white dress shirt, necktie, brown slacks, and simple dress shoes. He lowers his hand, the one with a wrist-mounted shield with various colours around it like a clock’s numbers. “A student wouldn’t have reaction times like that.”
You quickly let your arms hang and take another step, keeping note of the energy signatures that keep close behind you.
“Yeah, I guess I brought that one on myself. You’re a Huntsman, right? I mean, I’d hope so if you’re here… in the chair and waiting for me. Otherwise, that would mean you’re an intruder… well, I guess I’m an intruder so I have no… what was it called… moral high ground? I’m using that right, right? I just recently heard that term. Tried to use it,” you end with a lighthearted chuckle.
The man at the desk appears to lower his guard ever slightly. Your friendly tone and choice of words don’t show any nefariousness in your agenda, but you still have broken into a Huntsman Academy unannounced. That’s a crime on its own.
“It would be correct, indeed,” the elder bows his head slightly. “My name is Leonardo Lionheart. I’m the Headmaster of this fine Academy. Who are you?”
“Headmaster? Man, I’m lucky! My name’s (Y/N)!” You salute. “I’m a student at Beacon Academy!”
“Beacon? Are you a messenger of Ozpin?”
“Oh, no, I just came here to ask a question!” You clarify, keeping a friendly smile to try and win over the Headmaster.
“That’s quite the journey for a simple question. Why would you not simply ask Ozpin?” He raises his brow.
“Uh… I don’t know,” you shrug. “I was in the area. Thought that a Huntsman would know the person I’m looking for.”
Leo intertwines his hands on his desk, fully relaxing and fully attentive. “And who, exactly, is that?”
“Uh… hehe,” you rub the back of your head. “She… has black hair! And black pants, I think, might be a skirt. She has a red and black shirt, dress, thing… I think it was long sleeved… oh, and she had a mask! And a sword! I think it was a katana but it was sheathed so I really don’t know. Kinda looked like a katana hilt but people do some weird things with weapons.”
Leonardo takes in your description and thinks on it. He can immediately think of one woman that loosely fits that description, but he doesn’t know her exact location… but that doesn’t mean he knows nothing.
“I… believe I know the woman you’re looking for. She’s on this continent, I’m sure.”
“So you can call her up? She’s a Huntress, right?”
Leonardo chuckles. “No, no she is not. She’s a bandit, a raider.”
“Oh,” you face perplexes. “I wasn’t expecting that… do you know where she is?”
“No,” he shakes his head. “But I believe I can give you a lead. We caught wind of a possible raid happening to a town on the outskirts of Mistral territory. They requested Huntsmen, just to be safe. If that was her target…”
“Then I can find her there! Cool! Alright, I’ll handle this town, no problem! Where is it?”
“Hold on, now,” the man stands up. “You’re a student. I can’t possibly send you on a Huntsman’s mission.”
“Yeah you can,” you blankly reply. “Trust me, I may not have the schooling but I’m more than strong enough on the field,” you confidently state, ending with you catching your fist.
“Is that so?”
“Yeah,” you nod. “Probably better than those two guys there,” you point to the ceiling directly above you,” and there,” you point behind you.
Leo’s expression changes to one of surprise. “H-How did you know?”
“I could sense them. I sensed them before I even entered the room. One of my many talents… well, learned skills would be more accurate,” you end with a smile.
The two unseen beings suddenly move to the Headmaster’s side and phase out of the ground and two his side. They’re twins, both in clothes and features. Both middle age, bald, blue eyes, skin-tight black suit, everything. You assume they also have the same Semblance.
“So, where’s the village?”
Leonardo looks to his two associates, unsure how to respond. “Hm…”
“What’s the worst that could happen? Okay, well, the worst wouldn’t happen cause I’m not going to die. Trust me. I’m a lot stronger than I look.”
“Well,” the Headmaster scratches his cheek. “I suppose there’s no harm in it…”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“Alright,” you look left and right. “So, if this was the right path then…” You stop in the air and look down at a fairly decorated and visually appealing village. The colours, the lush flora, it’s like someone picked up a section of Mistral and brought it somewhere else. “This place is gonna be raided? Huh… Doesn’t have much defense for a Kingdom protected village… hey,” you spot someone on the edge of the village, pacing. “Maybe that’s a Huntress!”
You soar down and land a few feet away, not gaining the attention of the raven-haired woman. You casually approach her with your hand raised. “Hey! You look pretty dangerous!”
The woman turns around, her red eyes catching a glimpse of you. You tilt your head when you see her features – some wild yet controlled black hair thanks to a red bandana, a red and black shirt that droops down her chest, that space being taken up by necklaces. She wears matching colour gauntlets that only expose her fingers. Her legs are covered two-fold, first by the long, thigh high black boots and a very short black skirt that connects to the shirt. Attached to her belt is a long, grey and black sheath that houses her weapon.
“That’s an inappropriate greeting,” she responds.
“Ah, sorry,” you stop shortly before her and sheepishly smile. “I just assumed you were the Huntress Lionheart talked about.”
“Lionheart?” She raises her brow, finding a source of some information.
“Yeah, I thought that he’d send one of those two guys but I guess you’re here anyway. You know, the possible raid from the woman I’m looking for. Kinda looks like you but I don’t think the clothes are right,” you tilt your head. “And you’re a Huntress, not a bandit.”
“Of course,” she quickly replies, taking the role you’ve given her. “So, you’re looking for..?”
“Hehe,” you rub the back of your head. “I never got her name… she’s my friend’s mom. Thought I’d find her for a little surprise.”
The Huntress looks to the side for a moment. “You traveled here for that?”
“It wasn’t that big of a deal,” you shrug. “Oh! I’m (Y/N),” you hold your hand out. “You are?”
She slowly grabs your hand and shakes it. “Raven Branwen. Huntress.”
“Oh, Huntsman-in-Training! I mean, I missed my first year cause I was training but… I’m trying. I may be a year behind now but it was worth it.”
“Well, (Y/N),” she notes what you said but doesn’t reply to it. “I don’t believe your target is coming here. You should look elsewhere.”
“Oh, really?” You pout. “Darn it… guess I’ll have to keep looking. Are you going to keep investigating? Sounds like you’re on this case.”
Raven looks away and huffs. “Of… course I am… I can’t let these vulnerable people be in danger.”
You smile and nod. “Okay, I’ll stick with you, then! We should be able to find her together.”
Raven turns away and rubs her forehead. “I’d rather work on my own, if you don’t mind.”
You jump over her, flipping around to face her when you land. “I understand, but I insist I help,” you say with a far more serious tone than before. “I need to find this woman for Yang. Trust me, I’ll be a big help, promise,” you end with a lighthearted smile.
“Tsk,” Raven looks away. “I… fine, you can stick around for a bit.”
“Yeah, thanks!” You clench your fist in front of you. “We’ll find her, Raven! Nobody can escape my eyes!” You look at the sky. “For my senses are…” You stop then look back to Raven, or, where Raven was. “Jeez, you didn’t have to prove me wrong immediately,” you end with a sigh. “Well, better get after her. She’s moving pretty fast,” you note before slightly hovering above the ground and flying towards her energy signal,
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
A bird soars through the thin forest leading away from the village. While it rides the wind, going faster and faster, it’s somehow cut off by a familiar body. The bird bounces off your stomach and falls to the ground.
“A bird?” You scratch your head then widen your eyes as the bird morphs back into Raven. “Whoa, you can become a bird! That’s cool!” You descend to the ground and offer your hand. “But you should’ve mentioned leaving, or were you really just poking fun at my sentence?”
Raven get to her feet without your help and squints. “Well, you would be worthless if you couldn’t keep up.”
“Oh, a test! Clever!” You rest your hands on your hips. “You could be a teacher! So, where are we going? Do you have an idea of…” You trail off as your mind catches something interesting. “Is there… another village around here?” You say, not sounding like you’re all there.
Raven keeps a poker face, knowing what’s nearby. “I don’t know. Why?”
“I think people are in trouble… signatures are disappearing! We have to go!” You shout before bursting forward.
Raven notes you’re going a certain direction… “Energy signatures? I have to follow him,” she quickly shifts back into a bird and follows your trail.
You fly a few miles to reach the encampment, hidden in a denser section of trees. You already see glowing green between the treeline. You soar up a little bit then crash down in the middle of eight green Beowolves. As they bounce into the air, you open your palms and quickly fire an individual beam at each, spinning round and round as you fire each shot. The ash of the Beowolves fall around you whilst you exhale. Raven returns to her body and lands beside you. She immediately unsheathes her red bladed sword and starts running towards the camp ahead.
You quickly follow the Huntress through the trees and onto a path that goes directly into a makeshift camp. You can barely tell what it was intended to be because of its current state. The fur and leather drapes that acted as walls are either torn down completely or have massive gashes in them. The large tents acting as buildings have toppled with bodies lifelessly impaled or thrown onto them. Within the fractured confines of this camp, a hoard of green, crystalized Beowolves rip the residents to shreds. Men and women scream as their limbs are torn off or their somehow still alive as their torso is chewed by the Grimm.
Raven’s reaction to seeing this is one you weren’t expecting. You haven’t seen a Huntsman become mad at anything… yet here she is. With a speed that’s more than impressive, Raven blitzes a Beowolf that’s throwing around a young woman with short hair and tattoos. She slashes into the Beowolf’s side, but instead of cutting through the beast as Raven intended, it only cut through a few centimeters. You refrain from following Raven since plenty of others are being attacked by the Grimm. Not wanting to take too much time, you jump into the middle of the camp and repeat your previous action, though with a bit more flair. Instead of simply spinning around and blasting, you flip and spin in place, firing blast from your hands and feet. The flash of blue and yellow flash in the sky, despite the rays of the sun competing for space. Even with their strange green upgrade, the Beowolves are helpless against your dance of Ki. It’d be both beautiful and awe-inspiring by those who could see it. Unfortunately, Raven is the only person who could truly understand and appreciate the spectacle, even while dealing with the injured woman.
Raven looks back down at the gritty, battle-hardened, bleeding woman in her arms.
“Vernal…”
“I-“ She coughs out nearly a bucket of blood. Raven closes her eyes and tilts her head away, finding it hard to watch. She looks around at the others through the black and green ash. They’re all lifeless bodies thrown about, coupled by the fact that you have a melancholy look to you reinforces the idea of them all being dead. You can only sense Raven and the nearly dead woman.
You spot a few Grimm that were outside the cloth walls start to run. You let them go for now and slowly approach the two humans, trying to judge what a senzu bean would do for her. At the point she’s at, she’ll be dead in moments. You close your eyes and bow your head in respect. Raven furrows her brow at your action, but cannot blame you for it. She meets eyes with Vernal once more and exhales.
“Rest now, Vernal…” She lightly drags her hand down the woman’s face and closes her eyelids. She rests the body down and stands up, clenching her bloodstained fists. “Those Grimm…”
“I’ve seen them before,” you cross your arms. “One was on a small island a few days ago. Seems like there’s more and more around,” your fingers lift to the chin. “They’re bigger and tougher than regular Grimm.”
“I killed one.”
“I killed plenty too, so you should know that it takes more to hurt these things.”
Raven’s eyes drift away as she thinks back on the Grimm. From all her experience, she knows how much force to put into a swing. That Beowolf’s durability was far higher than any Beowolf’s she’s fought, even Alphas.
“The way you killed them… I thought you could fly. What was that… attack?”
“Oh, my Ki?” You lift your hand in front of you, opening and closing your fist. “Nothing really. It’s not super important. I think that we should find the source of these Grimm. If they started attacking cities it could be a real problem.
Raven looks around the camp once more. “It’s not a problem that these people were killed?” She barks, showing more emotions than she normally does. The look in her eyes, the shivering iris, it reminds you of… you.
“You knew these people? But aren’t they… I mean, I haven’t really seen many but this place seems like a bandit camp. You’re…” You look up and down the woman again. “Are you corrupt?
Raven is almost disappointed in your conclusion. “No, but this woman… she was a close friend.”
“Oh, that makes sense… she looks younger than you, though… but, hey, nothing wrong with that. One of my friends is an old man!” Your expression suddenly flares up with excitement. “Wait, can I be part of your mission?”
“Mission?” She repeats.
“You’re gonna try and stop these new Grimm, right? I can put my search for Yang’s mom on hold for this! Some of those Grimm ran off in that direction,” you flick your head appropriately. “So we have a lead.”
Raven somehow manages to snicker during this time. Your reasoning may be wrong… but at least your guess is right. These Grimm have to pay for what they’ve done… all of them.
“Alright, (Y/N)… we’ll work together for now.”
And here’s the start of Volume 2! I’m pretty excited if I do say so myself. Despite being so excited, I don’t have much to say in this author’s note. I appreciate you reading, as always, and hope you enjoyed! It’s been fun blending the DB-verse and RWBY. I always wonder if the changes and blending I’ve made actually annoys some people. Like Raven, Wheelo, and the Mutated Grimm all being introduced despite the odd timing. Trust me, I have a plan. I just… need… time.
Anyway, I’ll chat with you all later! If you have any complaints then talk to Name. He’s definitely the one to blame. Just harass him… even if there’s nothing wrong you should mess with him anyway.
Want to keep up with me? Know what chapter’s coming out next and the progress of them? Follow me on Twitter! Twitter . com (slash) Chinsangan
Questions? Comments? Concerns? Advice? Send me a message!
I also have a Patreon, if you want to check that out! Pat reon . com (slash) Chinsangan
My Discord is now open! If you want to join, either check my bio for a link, find it on my Twitter, or message me directly!
A special thank you to Patreon supporters: Manuel Garcia, James Tubbs, MazMan, MTX, Sassylemons, and Big Genatools
Extra special thanks to Ride The Lightning and Nicholas X Wright!
And finally, thank you to the Beta Reader: thenameisntimportant
Chapter 14: Merlot's Masterplan Accomplished? Self-Surpassing Power Unleashed!
Chapter Text
Chapter 14: Merlot's Masterplan Accomplished? Self-Surpassing Power Unleashed!
You and Raven sprint after the green Grimm that flee the scene. You have no idea if they'll lead you to anything serious, but it's the only clue you have. These Grimm are clearly different, so perhaps they'll lead you back to their nest or breeding ground. In truth, you could just fly or run faster and catch up but that would leave Raven behind. Besides, she's clearly furious at the Grimm. You have to admire her love of life, that she wants to avenge all humanity, even if they're bandits. She's a standout Huntress, no doubt.
"I believe they're slowing down," Raven calmly remarks.
"Wonder why," you reply. "We're still in the middle of the forest."
"We'll observe, just to be safe. Then we'll execute them."
"Jeez," you pout. "What a way to say it."
Raven leaps into a tree and uses them for cover and traversal.
"Hey!" You complain, quickly hopping into a different tree and mimicking her. "Man, this is a lot weirder without my tail," you jump from branch to branch, really wishing you could swing yourself with an invisible limb. You and Raven stop in the same tree, spotting a ruin ahead with large and small clear boxes that… hold Grimm. The green Grimm circle around them, either wanting to attack or taunting their captured siblings. The Grimm captured range from some Creeps and Beowolves to King Taijitu.
"You ever seen something like this?"
Raven remains silent, taking in all the information she can. There's more Grimm here than she assumed. Green Beowolves, Ursai, Creeps, Boarbatusks, and even a significantly large King Taijitu. All the Grimm outside the cages share a green tint replacing the red, and some even have green crystals protruding out of them. You shiver at the sight as you readjust on the branch.
"What do you think?"
"The boxes," Raven notes. "I know that symbol. I believe we have our lead."
"Oh, cool. So can we smack these Grimm now?"
Raven grabs her weapon and begins to unsheathe it. "Yes…"
"Sweet!" You instantly disappear, giving Raven pause.
"What the?"
You appear beside one of the Beowolves and drive your foot right through its head. It disappears into dust as you land beside it. You stretch your neck and crack your knuckles. "Okay, Grimm killing. Haven't done this in a bit… I mean, I did it earlier but, ah whatever."
The King Taijitu slithers towards you, knocking other Grimm out of the way. It stops before you, both heads slithering around you.
"You're pretty big," you lift your hand and release a small yellow blast that collides with its base and pushes it far into the air, giving you and Raven a small show as it gets smaller and smaller. "And now you're not. Hey," you turn to the trees. "You're helping, right?"
Raven burst out from the trees and cuts through an Ursa, killing it as quickly as you and the Beowolf. "We'll kill them all."
"Got it," you look back to the Grimm and smile.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
"Well now," an aged man remarks as he watches the video feed. "So this is who Dr. Gero mentioned," he rubs his beard with a wide grin. Even as his creations are cut down, beat down, or blasted into oblivion, his smile grows each second. "You are the key to making my Grimm unstoppable. But first…" The man inputs commands into his console. "I should relay this information to Gero. I'm sure he'd be interested."
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Dr. Gero is alone, the only source of light being from his dozen monitors all playing different clips of your battle with the Saiyans. The beam struggle, the one-on-one, the group battle, everything that could be analyzed is being analyzed. Not only is he doing it for his own sake, but it's also part of his deal with Dr. Wheelo. His expertise in robotics and bio-engineering is imperative for Gero's android project. If they work together, Atlas could be the founder of the most powerful and effective defenders of Remnant.
One of the monitors changes its display, immediately grasping Gero's attention. A picture of an old man with bushy white eyebrows, a large moustache, and beard along with a full head of silver hair. Gero's almost annoyed at the man's left eye, glowing completely red. He clicks the monitor and continues his work. "What would you like, Merlot?"
"Is this your friend?" Merlot's confident voice asks as he transmits his camera feed.
Gero observes you and Raven swiftly dealing with a hoard of Merlot's Mutated Grimm. "That is the Saiyan, yes."
"The Saiyan, hm… you spoke of acquiring data on him, no?"
"I did not believe you would have a run in with him," Gero leans back in his chair and ponders this recent development. "What do you want, Merlot?"
"Nothing at all, at least for the moment. But working together brings wonders, does it not? Remember the times with Wheelo and Briefs?"
"Of course. In fact… I'm sending something to you, Merlot. Set it up where ever you like, but have the Saiyan be in the room."
Gero can almost hear Merlot's skin shift into a smirk. "Of course, old chum. Anything for a friend."
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Raven obliterates the final Grimm with a flurry of nearly invisible strikes. Well, not invisible to you but just generally very fast. The Grimm disappears into dust, leaving only the Grimm inside the cages. You cross your arms and tilt your head.
"So, you know what this symbol is?"
Raven slowly sheathes her blade and approaches the box, not even acknowledging the Grimm inside, clawing at the box to try and tear out your necks. She drags her fingers down the box and squints.
"Merlot… he used to be Vale's resident scientist."
"Oh, so there's nothing to worry about!"
"No, idiot," Raven scolds. "He was driven out for unethical practices."
"Oh," you chuckle. "Okay, so something to worry about. He was in Vale… think he'd still be in that area?"
"I'm not sure," Raven slowly shakes her head. "He was last situated in Mt. Glenn… his building should still be intact. That's our best lead."
"That's a continent over," you remark. "Alright, lets deal with these Grimm and head over," you raise your hand and release a beam at the cage in front of you, destroying the Grimm inside. You repeat this process with every box, amazing Raven once more.
"Is that your Semblance?" She inquires.
You keep your hand out as you blink a few times. "Uh… nah, not really. I don't have a Semblance," you end with a contagious smile. "Anyway, give me your hand. I'll fly us over."
"Fly?"
"Yeah," you nod. "How do you think I get around?"
Raven can't help but be skeptical at your abilities. Even seeing you in battle – your strength, speed, glowing attacks, and now flight, it's all so much for one person.
"Anyway, how would you want to do it? Ride me?"
"Excuse me?" She crosses her arms.
"What? I go flat and you sit on my back. I could carry you or something. It's all up to you," your feet levitate off the ground as you lift off. You offer your hand to her with a wide smile. "No time to waste, right? Let's find Merlot and figure out what's going on!"
"You're a strange man."
You pout. "That's not nice. Be careful what you say, I might drop you," your smirk becomes more devious.
Raven steps back, even more suspicious of you. With a roll of your eyes, you swoop around her and lift her up by her armpits.
"Hey!" She screams as you ascend into the air. "Whoa, whoa, hold on! Flying isn't-"
"Calm down," you toss her up and fly under so she lands on your back. "We'll be… oh, wait! Nimbus!" You shout.
"Nimbus?"
Your fluffy yellow friend soars to your side and hovers. "Hey, buddy! I got a passenger for you!" You bump your body and bounce Raven onto the Nimbus.
At least, that's what you hoped. Raven falls right through the cloud and back towards the earth below.
"Oh, snap!" You burst down and grab Raven's hand.
"Are you trying to kill me?" She screams.
"No, I guess I just thought you had a pure heart. Ah well," you shrug. "Looks like I'm carrying you."
"Fine! Whatever! Better than falling!"
You snicker before looking up at your friend. "Sorry, Nimbus, I don't need you right now. Maybe later!"
The cloud acknowledges you and flies away. You hold Raven tight and return her to your back. "Alright, let's go!"
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Raven reluctantly holds on tight the entire flight, even as you approach the dreary city of Mt. Glenn. You can see various species of Grimm skulking around the abandoned city.
"Wow, this place sucks," you bluntly observe. "What happened here?"
"An expansion of Vale… the Grimm clearly didn't like that."
"That's… short and sweet," you cheerfully respond. "Okay, which one is Merlot's building?" You look to the taller ones.
"That one! You recognize the symbol?" She points at a building close to the center.
"Right, I'll bring us to the front," you speak as you fly yourself and Raven into the city. "Maybe I'll come back here later and clear out some of these Grimm."
"There's no point," Raven shakes her head at your pathetic optimism. "People have tried… the Grimm always come back."
"Weird, huh?" You chuckle, lowering yourself to the building's front. "Guess it won't matter until we stop them at the source," you land, allowing Raven to let go of you.
She takes a few steps away and brushes off her clothes. "Many have tried. All have died."
"Creepy," you shiver. "Well, let's go into this abandoned building."
"You're absolutely tone deaf," the woman shakes her head. "Let me lead."
"Alright, I got your back," you let her go in front of you then squint your eyes to spot any threat.
As you enter the building you can only imagine what it was like in its prime. The massive room has mold and dust all over, chairs have been ripped to shreds, desks are split, columns are cracked. Anything that was beautiful is now aging and rusted.
"Think the elevator works?"
"Who cares? You can fly."
"Just making conversation," you cross your arms and saunter around. "So where are we trying to go? Top floor? That's usually where the big boss boy is, right?"
"Big boss…" Raven sighs. "We're looking for research stations," Raven drags her fingers along the desk then kneels to the drawers. "Look for a directory. We need to know what floor is what."
"Okay, that sounds easy."
You fly into the air and reach the slightly elevated floor with more desk, sitting space, doorways, and elevators. You rest your hands behind your head and explore the immediate area.
"No directories… guess they'd have no power… or got smashed. Wonder if one was… hey," you stop between the two elevators where there are two small corners of a poster. "This could've been a directory. Hm…" You lean back and forth, looking around the area. "Hey, you think people made their way into this building before?" You shout.
"Maybe, why?" Raven stands up and approaches another desk.
"Well… if people died here then you'd think there'd be some bodies and stuff. Do the Grimm collect bones?"
Raven pauses her train of thought. "That's… true." She stands up once more an looks around. "Scavengers wouldn't bother with bones… Grimm wouldn't touch them… this place has been cleaned…" Raven takes a deep breath and ponders this. "Is Merlot still in the building?"
"I don't think so," you shake your head and approach the far door. "I can't sense anyone other than us."
"You can sense people?"
"I can sense a lot of things," you knock on the door only for it to fall right off its hinges and fill the entire room with a loud crash. "Hm… Even my hut was sturdier… Did you find anything?"
"No," Raven shakes her head, visible to you as she ascends the short flight of stairs. "That means we do this the hard way."
"Floor by floor?" You ask, to which she nods. "Alright, I'll start with the top and work my way down. What exactly should I be looking for?"
"Research notes, computers, maybe even Grimm samples. Anything that will give us a clue as to where Merlot is and what these Grimm are."
You cross your arms and frown. "Man, this is gonna take a while," you hop into the air and glide towards the entrance. "Alright, I'll head up. Give me a signal if you find anything," you place your hand on the front door.
"Very well," Raven responds while entering the stairwell. "You do the same."
"Got it!"
You push open the door and immediately fly straight up. Reaching the top of the building takes no more than a second, finding a section of shattered glass takes a mere moment. You fly into the top floor where a large desk in quite good condition sits. The chair and even some décor still complete the setup. Bookcases along the sides, pictures of different individuals, everything that would be in a CEO's office. You start scanning the area, examining all the pictures along the walls. They're of an older man with a full head of white hair along with a fairly clean beard and moustache combo.
"Wonder if that's Merlot," you cross your arms and click your tongue. "Do people usually have pictures of themselves? I get family photos or something but… wait," you stop beside the desk as you recognize a person in the small photo. You grab it and examine further, confirming your suspicion. "Is that… Dr. Gero and Dr. Briefs?" The picture is of four scientists, all sharing a typical scientist coat that seems to come with a bright white smile. Each looks happy at… something. Unfortunately, some of the photo appears to be burned so their project, if there was one, can't be identified. "I wonder if those two know anything about him… maybe he's in Atlas. I should grab this, just in case."
You flip the frame over and completely pull it off, allowing you to snatch the picture without issue. You fold it a few times then stash it in your sash.
"Oh yeah, forgot I had a senzu bean," you happily remark, patting your sash. "Okay, I should check the desk and bookshelves for anything before I continue on. Man," you puff your cheeks and cross your arms. "Investigating sure is tough."
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Raven reaches the fifth floor, ignoring pointless PR rooms and yet another floor of waiting rooms. She's more than capable of gathering what will be on a floor by examining the first few rooms. Raven stops in front of the door and sighs. Her emotions are all over the place right now. Merlot's monsters attacking and killing the clan she was the leader of, people who looked up to her, and now she's stuck with you… someone who's bringing back memories of her daughter. It's not like Raven can cut and run. Not only do you both have the common interest of taking down Merlot, but your showings of abilities clearly surpass hers in nearly every regard. There's no way she could get away from you.
"I have no choice but to cross that bridge when I reach it," she finally says aloud. "He hasn't figured it out yet… so I can still leave after we finish this bastard," Raven pushes open the door and starts looking around. "Wish I could fly…"
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
"Man, I'm no detective," you open a door around the middle of the building. "Or maybe there's just nothing to find… well, I didn't know that computer password, but, well, maybe Raven will know. Where is Raven?" You stop and look back down the dirty white corridor to the door you came from. "I thought she'd be faster than me…" You close your eyes for a moment. "No, she's still here… really far down. Is she in a basement?" You ponder. "I should check up on her. Basements always hold nefarious things, according to Blake and Ruby's books. Now that I think of it," you open your palm and fire a small, yellow blast that makes a human-sized hole all the way down. "Blake's stories always have weird things in the basements."
Your hair and Gi flow as gravity pulls you faster and faster towards the ground floor. Little flashes of each floor are barely recognized by your brain, all of them blending together due to their similar colour schemes. You finally reach the main floor which gives you a momentary sense of calming before landing.
"Farther down? What how'd she get there?"
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Raven stops in the middle of her next room, becoming suspicious at how clean this one is compared to the others. The room is a spotless white with an observation room on the at the other end. On either side of her are tubes that would've held subjects.
"Merlot has been here recently… what have you been doing, you sick bastard."
"That's quite rude, Miss," Merlot's voice coyly. "Is that how you address an old friend?"
Raven quickly slams her hand on her sheathe and readies for battle.
"So you are here. Tell me, were those monsters your doing?"
"My beautiful creations? Of course, though ‘monsters' is such a negative way to address them."
"It's the only real way to address them," she retorts, continuing to turn in case something attacks.
"Oh, Raven, you should not be so negative. Why not meet them?"
"I'd rather not."
"Well… you can either meet them… or…" The two exists lockdown with five layers of doors faster than Raven can react. Moments later, a faint sound of gas catches the woman's ear. "You can run out of oxygen." One of the tubes open for Raven, presenting her the choice. "What do you say?"
Raven sneers at her options. She immediately jumps between the two doors, delivering powerful slashes at them to no avail. She slides across the ground and tries cutting through the ceiling and floor. Both lead to nothing.
"There are only two options, dear. Choose wisely."
Raven grinds her teeth as she examines the room. She might be able to find a way out of the room if there wasn't a risk of her suffocating. Raven relaxes her body and tightens her fist. "Damn…"
The woman slowly enters the tube and turns around for the transportation. The tube closes and almost instantly drops her down a massive shaft. She tightens her muscles and waits as she molds to Merlot's plan. Within ten seconds she's dropped into a large, open room with varied levels of terrain. It's clearly a testing zone for different types of Grimm, considering the few trees, bushes, sand patches, and even a corner of snow. Raven flips forward and nails the landing, keeping herself safe. She stands up straight and examines the new situation that she's chosen.
"Fantastic… How do I get out of here?"
"You don't, my dear," Merlot's voice echoes through the large room. "You wished to see my lovely children? Hm? Well… let me introduce you to one of my most precious darlings."
The mechanisms in the wall click before slowly opening up, stealing Raven's attention. The recognizable crackles of a Deathstalker fill her ears and signal her brain.
"What a nui…" Raven takes a few steps as a green glow quickly bursts out of the darkness. It's bigger than any Deathstalker Raven has seen in the past. Like the others, any red the Grimm once had is now green, along with its stinger which is glowing brightest of all. It also has a few extra shining green crystals along the back of its hide.
"Have fun."
Raven hops back and spins her sword around. "A bigger, stronger Grimm. It can die like any other!"
The Deathstalker slams its pincer down on Raven's position, the woman barely rolling out of the way.
"It's fast!"
Raven bounces back and forth, zig-zagging away from the massive stinger. She leaps higher up, reaching the high ground and forcing the Deathstalker to momentarily yield. It whips its stinger back and throws it forward, releasing a wave of green liquid that casts shadows. Raven quickly doubles to the side, avoiding the green substance that melts through the terrain.
"Acidic?" Raven rolls on her shoulder and grinds to a halt. "Can't let that hit me." She dashes forward and slashes at its pincer, quickly hopping over it and cutting away at its hide. On the fifth slice, her blade cracks under the pressure, unable to stay strong against such a strong exterior. Her black blade shatters into bits, leaving the Huntress momentarily shocked. With her feet landing beside its opposite pincer, she quickly jumps back to inspect the damage.
"Nothing?" Raven lands and returns the hilt to her sheath only to pull out a different coloured one. "I'll use something even stronger!"
The Deathstalker wriggles forward, swinging both its pincers and stcinger. Raven weaves away from five attacks with a certain strained grace that only she could pull off. It's clear that the Grimm has nearly all aspects enhanced, including its speed. That means Raven will just have to be faster. As her boot skids across the dirt, she sheathes her blade. There's a second of pause, of concentration, before she bursts forward, knocking small bits of dust and rock out from under her. She dashes past the Deathstalker while attempting to cut through its body. She slides to a halt on the other side then jumps, flipping around so she has a view of her opponent while also getting some distance.
Upon landing, she notices her yellow blade has cracked and the sound of the creature’s many legs start to move.
"This thing…" She grinds her teeth. "There has to be a weak point. The eyes can normally be hurt but…" Raven sheathes her blade and brings out a fresh blade. "This won't be quite so easy."
Raven flips to avoid the stinger's attack then jumps forward to land on the hide. Instead of needlessly attacking, she pinpoints any vulnerable points the Grimm may have. With only seconds to accomplish her goal, Raven quickly leaps off the beast and into the air. It spots her and uses the only ranged attack it has. With a flick of the stinger, it throws a wave of acidic liquid at the woman. With no other options, she slashes at the substance to try and split it. Her sword melts on contact, leaving her wide open for the goo. Raven hastily brings out a new blade and uses it to springboard away. The Deathstalker keeps its focus on the woman, approaching her potential landing point. Its stinger starts moving again, this time throwing out glowing green spikes instead of acid. Raven holds her blade in front of her to block a few attacks, but the overwhelming amount of spikes takes a toll on her Aura. She's forced to the ground with the rest of the spikes, taking a moment to catch her breath.
"It's using its stinger for attacks… if I can destroy that then I'll have the advantage."
Raven stays on the ground with her blade in hand. The Grimm slowly comes upon her, knocking over some of the trees making up the environment. The stinger lifts up before coming down as fast as possible. Raven, hearing that, quickly pushes off the ground and twirls in the air. The stinger plunges into the ground, releasing a shockwave pushes her back a few feet, but Raven's agile enough to land and attack instantly with her strongest blade. The Deathstalker attempts to pull its stinger out of the ground, but its too far down. Raven's given enough time to cut the base of the stinger. With her strongest sword and the weakest point, Raven manages to cut the limb off in one slice. She spins around and slides along the ground, watching the Deathstalker wail in pain.
As Raven begins to plan a second attack a small part of the ceiling is pushed out of the way by a body. You fly out and hover in the air, spotting Raven and the green Deathstalker.
"Oh, there you are," you wave before soaring down and landing beside her. "You okay?"
"I'm fine," she nods. "Just dealing with this thing," she then tilts her head towards it.
"Oh… he's big. Was that his stinger? Shiny," you crack your neck. "Alright, let's finish this thing." You slide your legs to the side and slam your palms together, fingers spread. "Let's take you down!"
"It's hide is tough!" Raven readies herself.
"Then I'll break it and you cut it in half."
You release a flurry coordinated small blasts that batter on the Grimm's hide. The Deathstalker squirms in place upon all the damage it's receiving from your attacks. Raven watches as the armour cracks, as its soft black skin is unraveled. You pull your hands to your sides and glide forward.
"I go down, you go up!" You shout back at your ally.
Raven isn't sure what that entails, but she keeps vigilant to fulfill your plan.
You fly right in front of the Grimm, meeting its beady eyes. You slam your fist right under its eyes and send the beast spinning upwards. You fly around it, hovering near the ceiling, and release even more small blasts at it. Raven realizes you're now above the beast while you're breaking its armour even further. You set your hands aside one last time and plummet down.
"Raven!"
The woman leaps under the beast then grabs her blade. She bends her legs and springs herself up with all the power she can muster while you're simultaneously ready to punch it. Your two attacks connect at the same time, Raven's cutting through the beast while your fist breaks the two halves apart. The massive green Grimm dissipates into dust as soon as it's torn in two. You and Raven land next to each other, triumphant.
"That was cool," you roll your shoulders. "I coulda taken him, though." Raven stares you down with a clearly unamused face. You step back and sigh. "Alright, fine. So, I didn't really find anything. Well, I did, but it was whatever."
"Other than this," Raven gestures around her. "I also spoke with Merlot."
"So you got some answers," you say with wide, bright eyes.
Raven crosses her arms and huffs. "No. You said you found something?"
You pull out the photo from your sash and hand it to her. "Found this. I know a few of those people, so…"
"That's Merlot," Raven points him out. "And the rest of them…"
"That's Gero and Briefs," you point. "We could ask them about Merlot."
Raven adjusts her sheath and takes three steps away. She'd rather not go to Atlas, all things considered. There's no way Merlot is actually there so there's no reason for her to go. Raven turns around with a new plan in mind.
"You go to Atlas and ask around. I'll stay here and see if there's anything else I can find," Raven ends with a smile while flicking the picture back at you.
"Sounds like a plan," you catch the evidence. "I can be there and back really quick. Take care, alright!" You begin lifting into the air and wave. "Don't want my partner to get hurt! Oh! Here," you fish around your sash and pull out a small green bean then toss it at her. Raven catches and examines the object. "It's a senzu bean. It'll get you back to tip-top shape! So if you're in trouble then eat it! Alright, I'm going now!" You turn around and fly right out of the room, causing another hole in the ceiling.
Raven looks around for another exit. "Alright, Merlot, what's down here."
"Come and find out," his devious voice echoes.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You soar under the clouds, passing by a few transport and military ships. It's always fun to see people in shock when they see you twirling and spinning – just having a good time while flying. This little adventure has been fun, save for the people who were killed.
"This must be what it's like to be a Huntsman! You just find a whole mess of situations and try to solve them all! I wish I had known it would be this fun!" You twirl around once more with a wide smile on your face. "I hope the doctors aren't busy. I'd hate to cut in on their time."
With the wind whipping your body, you quickly approach Atlas territory. Not only does the sun grow darker, but the increase in their ships makes it all too clear that you're there. You just hope they don't see you as a threat. You're just a simple alien boy trying to ask one of their scientists about another scientist who's mutating Grimm. A simple thing, really. You finally come into view of the city that held you captive for a time. At least you know exactly where to go.
You hear a soft sound in the distance that's definitely out of the ordinary. You look down at a small structure with smoke flowing out. "WHOA!" You spin around to avoid a hail of bullets. "That's mean!" You spot and shake your fist. "I'm just- GAH!" You fly left then curve up to avoid the now two guns firing at you. "I guess I should've seen this coming."
You loop around and make a b-line for your target building. There's no way the bullets can catch up with you when you actually try to move. In seconds, you fly over the city and reach the building with no issues. You land in one of their docking bays and slide to a halt, dirtying the once pristine floor.
"Cool, I made it. Now… which floor were the doctors on?" You raise your hand to your chin while you saunter forward.
Of course, nothing is ever that simple. The light goes off while red ones flicker in accordance the alarm going off. "Oh, that sucks," the doors open up for a flood of soldiers both human and robotic. They all surround you with their guns trained on your body, ready to shoot. You twist your mouth to the side in a weak response to the situation.
"Put your hands up!" A soldier shouts.
"No."
There's a moment of confusion from the soldiers. "W-What?"
"No," you shake your head. "I just wanna talk with Dr. Gero and Briefs… if they're free. I can wait, though."
The soldiers look amongst each other, surprised at how apathetic you are in this situation. Murmurs and uncertainty spread through the soldiers as you casually stand before them. "So… can I seem them?"
"No," a commanding voice responds. The soldiers separate to allow James Ironwood to approach without intrusion. "You should have made an appointment."
"I can do that?" You shake your head and chuckle. "I didn't know that. Could I do it now?"
The General sighs, looking down at the floor as he shakes his head. "You… you broke into Atlas territory."
"Did I?" You shrug and leave your hands out. "I just landed in a spot and went about my business."
"He's not wrong, boss."
Ironwood pinches the bridge of his nose and sighs. "Why do you need to see them?"
"I'm looking for Dr. Merlot and I think those two might know something."
"Merlot…" Ironwood adjusts his collar. "I see. Haven't heard that name in some time. Why do you want him?"
"I think he's been making some weird, tough green Grimm."
"Green Grimm?" Ironwood scratches his neck. "We have gotten reports of them. Problematic… very well, better you than a platoon. Weapons down," all his soldiers immediately follow the order and stand down. "Come, I'll bring you to Dr. Briefs."
"Is Gero there too?"
"Unfortunately not. He's doing field research for… an important project," the General quickly dismisses. "However, realizing Dr. Merlot is behind these new Grimm is disturbing. I also hope our doctor has the answers."
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Dr. Briefs steps out of a large circular construct. He lights his cigarette and admires in his creation. The entire room is filled with electronics and part dedicated to this endeavor.
"Nearly done…"
Behind him, the door opens for you and Ironwood. "Doctor! I see you're working on your pet project," Ironwood remarks while you both enter.
You take in the large object in the room. It's a few stories tall with small, retractable legs and a ramp. It's completely white with only three windows to peer out or in from.
"You need more windows."
"Perhaps," Briefs nods. "Do you need anything?" He pets his cat's head for a moment.
"You know Dr. Merlot?" You ask, stepping ahead of the General and handing Briefs the picture.
"My, my, I haven't seen this photo in years," Dr. Briefs rubs his chin in content. "How we've gone our separate ways… why do you ask?"
"Well, I'm looking for Merlot," you cross your arms while still keeping a chipper attitude. "I was wondering if you knew where he was?"
Dr. Briefs wipes his forehead as he exhales. "I'm afraid I can't be of assistance. I haven't seen him in a long time. If only Dr. Gero was around, I believe he keeps tabs on our old friends," the old man hands your picture back.
"Do you know where he went?"
"Unfortunately not, I'm sorry."
"That's okay," you pat his shoulder and smile. "I'll find Merlot some other way. Thanks for your help, doc!" You start running towards the door and waving.
"Wait!" Ironwood shouts.
You stop on one foot and blink at him, waiting for his reason. Ironwood exhales. "Nothing. Just go. Stop Merlot."
You smirk and nod. "Not a problem, sir!"
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You return to the Mt. Glenn, going right back through the hole you created upon leaving. You release a small blast to make traversal easier. You land in the massive room and look around.
"Raven!" You call out. "Raven!" You take a few steps, looking around the room. "Where is she? I can't sense her… Raven? Raven!"
The camera in the corner focuses on you. The growing smirk of the man watching almost forms along the lens.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
One Week Later…
Yang and Ruby burst through the door, seeing their Beacon dorm room once more. The waves of memories flood through the two girls as they run in and jump into their beds.
"We have to set them back up!" Ruby cartoonishly leaps to her feet with her hands on her hips.
"Indeed, leader!" Yang nods.
In a large puff of smoke, the two reconstruct the bunk beds they used last year. When the smoke clears, Ruby and Yang triumphantly stand before their beautifully amateurish creations. "They're perfect," the sisters say in sync.
"Think we should add something to show we're second years?" Ruby looks up at her sister.
"Hm…" Yang taps her jaw. "We should ask Blake and Weiss. I'm actually surprised they're not here," Yang approaches and hopes back into her bed.
"Yeah… Blake feels like she's on his way but Weiss is still in Atlas… I think," Ruby says with her eyes closed. "Ooooh, it's still so cool that we can find our teammates! We'll never get separated again!" Ruby cheerfully cries.
"Yeah, but it's kinda weird. You felt (Y/N) flying around Remnant the past week."
"Maybe he's just exploring," Ruby shrugs. "He beats those nasty Saiyatens-"
"Saiyans?" Yang chuckles.
"I don't think you have to worry!" Ruby seamlessly continues on with her point. "Besides, we can feel if he's in trouble."
Yang slowly starts to nod. "Yeah, you're right. Come on, let's go see if JNPR's here."
"They are here. I feel them," Ruby rubs her hands together.
"Oh boy…"
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You hover in spot over the expansive ocean with arms crossed and your mind stumped. You can't sense Raven. There's no indication of where she went. Given the situation, you don't think she just left you behind. You're worried that Merlot has done something to her while you were gone.
"It's my fault…" You shake your head. "I was distracted… damnit… I have to find her. I wouldn't forgive myself if something happened. Where do I go…" You spin around as a measly way of thinking. "I could find Dr. Gero… I could try… no, I can't pinpoint her energy… which means it's somehow being suppressed. Aaaaahh…" You shake your hair while assuming a new stance, crossing your legs like you're sitting. "There has to be something! Think, (Y/N), think! If Raven was at Mt. Glenn… her energy was already difficult to pinpoint, so Merlot must've known… how did he know I could find her that way?" You unintentionally spin upside-down while verbally thinking. "The Mutated Grimm have been showing up around Mistral, so Merlot must be around that area. Unless that's the point and he's actually in Vacuo or something," you spin and flip to a normal stance. "Damnit!" You shout to the skies. "I just need something! Something to follow!"
And someone answered your prayer. Moments later, your scroll lights up with the picture of Dr. Briefs. You grab the scroll and pick up the call.
"Heya, doctor!"
"Ah, (Y/N)! Have you found our friend Merlot?"
"No, sadly," your failure affects your tone.
"Well, I asked Gero and he gave me a testing ground where Merlot performed his more… questionable experiments. I'm sending the location to you now." Your scroll dings with a pinpointed location on a map of Remnant. "I hope this helps. I do hope Merlot isn't responsible. He was a good scientist, once upon a time."
"I'll see what I can do. I'll try to bring him back in one piece. Thanks a lot, Dr. Briefs!"
"Not a problem, I'd say I still owe you and Ozpin."
"Me and Ozpin? For what?"
"Oh," he chuckles across the line. "Nothing, nothing. Go on, now, don't keep him waiting."
"Right. Thanks again!" You hang up the call and place your scroll back in your sash. "Alright, I have an idea where this place is. I just hope Raven's okay!" You curl up before boosting towards the island at maximum speed, thus you reach the island in no time. You stop before it, observing the massive island. There are boats littered around the shoreline, makeshift buildings along the sand, and, farther in, what looks like a refinery.
"I don't think that's natural," you slowly fly towards it. "Looks like Merlot is here after all. Or some other guy, who knows." You reach a point above the refinery, spotting a strange green goo that's being harvested. "What is that stuff… it's glowing… and it stinks, I can smell it from here," you waft your nose. "But it's green… those Grimm had green stuff. I wonder if this stuff's changing the Grimm," you descend to the refinery and land on one of the metal walkways. "Looks like it's all being funneled into pipes… so all I gotta do is follow the pipes!" You jump onto the closest pipe and start walking along it, easily balancing despite the smooth, curved space. "Follow the pipes, find Raven, find Merlot. Follow the pipes, find Raven, find Merlot," you repeat this to yourself over and over to keep yourself somewhat entertained as you march along the pipeline. Unfortunately, you stop when the pipe goes directly down and into the goo.
"I wonder if that's dangerous? Probably shouldn't test it. Hm… I can sense two people on the island… underground. Well, Raven ended up below the building last time. They're in two separate places…" You look to the left and then ahead. "I think… that one's Raven!" You return to the left. "I'm coming!" You jump forward and start flying.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Raven's held in a small cell, chained against the wall with her weapons and pouches stripped from her. She's been here for a week and it shows. Her hair, her skin, everything is dry and dirty. She's like an animal being held in a cage as bait for bigger prey. But, unknown to Raven, that prey is here. To her surprise, the chains holding her wrists and ankles unlock. She falls forward, not even able to stop herself from slamming against the ground. She's weak, she's barely been nourished. The door of her cell opens, baiting her to leave. The woman shakily lifts her head to see freedom ahead of her.
"What… what's…" Raven stops wasting her strength on talking and instead attempt to stand. Her arms and legs barely have the strength to lift off the ground and get her to a somewhat stable stance. She quickly falters, shuffling against the wall and using that as a crutch. She has to find her equipment and get out of her as fast as possible.
The cameras watch as she shuffles out of the room. Merlot has purposefully opened and closed certain doors to lead her towards the final act. He knows that you can "sense" people. He just needs Raven in the right position.
Raven uses the wall to walk down the corridor leading further down. It was the only available pathway for her to reach. She can't help but feel like a rat in a maze being lead around by Merlot, but she really had no choice. She refuses to stay in that cell any longer. The downward slope finally ends and leads to a small white room that leads to a larger one. Raven slowly reaches the room, using the door frame to push herself in. There's not much in this room, but it's everything she needs. A monitor with Merlot's symbol stamped on it, a bench for resting on, and Raven's lost equipment resting in an open cabinet. Raven's not stupid. She knows Merlot is planning all this… but she has to follow along. It takes Raven a short amount of time to reattach her weapons and pouches. As she ties the last one on, she remembers what's inside it. Raven moves as quick as she can to open the pouch and grab a small, green bean. Due to her weakness, she drops it on the ground and watches it bounce against the bench. Raven falls to her knees and grabs the small bean as if her life depends on it.
Before she can eat it, you crash through the ceiling of a nearby corridor and start running. Raven hears this and looks to the bigger room, soon seeing you enter it.
"Raven! You're okay!" You start running towards her.
The doors around are instantly shut with a new, clear door that would likely trick someone who didn't see it happen. You slide to a halt and look around for any incoming Grimm or bullets. Instead, the room starts glowing a very dim red.
"I'm so happy to finally have you in my home. Have you enjoyed the accommodations?" Merlot's voice echoes.
"A voice to the name. Could you let my friend go and we can settle things?" You ask… though something feels odd.
"It's an honour for such a powerful individual to want me. Unfortunately, I only want one thing from you."
"Sorry," you raise both your hands, one towards the ceiling and one towards Raven's door. "But I need to get her to safety."
You release a small Ki blast from each hand… which dissipates midair.
"Huh?" You try again only for the same result to occur.
Raven watches with confusion as you slowly drop to one knee, your breathing speeding up.
"Your energy is quite an interesting resource. It's the path to the greatest Grimm."
Your body is rapidly drained of Ki, which you know means your lifeforce is also fading away. You push off the ground and run towards Raven's door, slamming your fist into the glass with no effect. Your eyes shiver as you realize you're absolutely powerless to stop this. You don't even have the energy to use Kaioken or a substantial strike. You stumble and fall back, breathing as deep as you can to keep alive.
The monitors around the room and the one in Raven's room light up to show a massive Mutated Leviathan shackled and chained with tubes lodged inside it. The great beast, standing on two muscular legs that have building sized green spikes along the calves and even more running alongside the spikes it already has. Its gills and red markings on its skull glow a brilliant green. The Ki Merlot drains from you is pumped into the Leviathan, making it shake and howl from the sudden surge. You, Merlot, and Raven watch as the beast grows even bigger and stronger. The amount of power you're feeling from the beast almost matches what yours is at full power.
"It's beautiful! Something that's unparalleled! Go, my child! Prove your superiority!"
The chains holding the beast release and allow the Grimm to break open the massive metal door in front of it which lets in a wave of water, disrupting the camera feed.
"You'll both die here now. Thank you for your assistance," Merlot's voice cuts out.
Raven realizes that your eyes are closed and your breathing is slowing down. The red lights flicker off and the doors open. Raven stops for a moment, thinking about what do to. That Grimm now has all your power on top of being one of the most terrifying ones she knows of. Your power and mutation… what can any Huntsman do? She looks down at the bean in her hand, remembering exactly what you told her. Raven turns away from you and holds the bean close to her mouth. The thought of you dying in this place, the thought of that Grimm terrorizing everything, the thought of Merlot winning… the thought of Yang having to fight it. She tightens her fist as her arm lowers. She groans while twitching her head, quickly turning around and pushing off the door frame to approach you. She falls onto her knees but presses on, crawling with every ounce of strength she has. Her hand lands on your chest to pull herself closer.
"You… need this."
She places the bean in your mouth and forces you to chew. With that done, she falls on her side, mirroring your current stance. Her breathing slows as her eyes close. You, on the other hand, quickly regain your strength and open your eyes. You sit up and rub your head.
"Ah… what the hell happened…" You look around, eyes immediately drawn to Raven. "Raven!" You scramble to your knees and lift the woman's back off the ground. "Raven… you gave me a senzu bean," you chuckle. "Thank you… now," you reach into your sash and grab your pouch of senzu beans… your empty pouch of senzu beans. "Aw, crap! I used them all during the week. Hold on, Raven, I'll get you somewhere safe!" You slip your arm under he knees and fly up to the ceiling.
As your senses come back you freeze up upon feeling the Mutated Leviathan's power. "It's… just like mine. Tsk," you look to one of the blank monitor's with a frustrated gaze. "I have to stop it. It's heading for Mistral! But…" You look down at Raven, pausing for a moment. "I'll save you both! Nobody's dying on my watch!" Your Ki flairs as you fly through the ground and burst out from one of the canyons. As soon as you're a decent altitude, you set your sights on Mistral and go as fast as you can. Your body soon flares up in red which doubles your already incredible speed. With the Kaioken active, you reach the city under siege. The massive Leviathan towers over it all, standing at the edge of the water bed with its spikes large and its roar deafening. You stop over the city and spot Huntsman trying to evacuate the citizens. Without pause, you fly towards the Huntsman Academy and into Leonardo Lionheart's office, breaking down a section of his room.
"By the gods!" He falters back. "You? Is that?"
You set Raven down and grab her sword before turning back to the new door you made. "Take care of her while I take care of that."
Your voice has a deathly serious tone to it. It fits the situation considering almost one hundred people have already been killed.
Without waiting for his response you fly out of the room and straight towards the mutated monstrosity. You grab the blade tightly as you fly by its arm, slashing at it once before springing backward and, upon meeting its arm, you attempt to impale it. The blade's unable to pierce its skin, meaning the Grimm has an immunity to this. You jump off and fly a few feet back, lodging the blade in your sash. The Grimm shifts its attention to you, opening its mouth to build a small collection of energy, it's once green gills adopts a yellow tint right before it fires an attack with that colour scheme. You quickly fly up and around, making sure it doesn't aim for the city.
That power rivals a Kamehameha. If that hits the city… I have to destroy it. I wonder if a Ki-based attack will still hurt it?
You spin around, trailing along the beam as it attempts to hit you. Soon, after you get far enough away, it grows bored and returns its attention to the city. With shocking speed, it swings its arms and decimates an entire section of Mistral, killing all civilians and Huntsman there.
"NO!" You stop flying away and go directly towards the city. "It's speed and strength are even affected! Damnit!"
The beast brings its hand back and opens its mouth. You fly between it and the city, slamming your palms together and moving them to your hip.
"You WON'T destroy Mistral!"
The beast charges the same attack and unleashes upon you and the city. You activate the Kaioken right before you throw your hands forward to fire the Kamehameha. The two attacks clash, resulting in a massive shockwave that knocks everyone not indoors on their backs. With your Kaioken, you manage to overpower the beast and completely envelop it in a blinding blue beam that leaves everyone watching awe, even if it knocked them over.
You keep firing for the longest five seconds of anyone's lives, leaving a massive cloud of smoke where the beast once stood. Your Kaioken wears off, leaving you breathing heavily for a moment.
"It's… wait-" One of its webbed hands reveals itself from the smoke and slams you right down into the peer, bouncing you off the stone and plunging you into the water below. You stare blankly at the water ceiling as you sink deeper and deeper.
It can't be stabbed… beaten… blasted… drowned… what else am I supposed to do?
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Merlot's laugh echoes throughout the room and hallway. "Yes, yes! My beautiful Grimm can't be stopped! Huntsman, alien, nothing! They're perfect beings with no weakness! If I harness even more energy then I can make the ultimate army of genetic superiority! Ahahahahahaha!"
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
From his tower, Ozpin looks out of his large window with a drink in his hand. He takes a sip, ever curious as to the result of this encounter.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Gunships fly around the Leviathan, all trying to bring down the beast. Dust attacks and bullets rain from the streets while some Huntsmen try to draw the Grimm's attention towards the destroyed section as to not cause damage to the others. Any short-range fighters keep moving the citizens to safe zones. The sound of gunfire and screams are all that fills Mistral's once happy city. Inside, the fighters are panicking. You were the only one who managed to make the thing flinch and now you're at the bottom of the ocean. And now… it's all over. The Leviathan finishes playing when it rests its arms to the side and opens its gaping maw. The same collection of energy is made yet again. The Huntsman lower their weapons as the shine illuminates over them. It's a warm embrace before the cold of death.
The Leviathan's attack is charged just in time for you to burst out from below it and slam your fist into its fish-like chin. The force sends the beast out of the water and into the air, his blast completely missing the city and flying off into the sky. You quickly follow up your attack by flying around in a short semicircle and burying your fist between the massive ribcage. The Leviathan howls as its sent flying fair distance away. You hover in the air, water dripping off your soaked clothes and weighed down hair.
"I know how to beat you," your body vibrates before you dash forward to the recovering Leviathan. The moment it gets up you slam your fist into its cheek then duck around, going underwater and knocking it off balance. "I can't slash you, punch you, blast you… you can't drown, I can't drop you from high in the sky," you duck and dodge its slashes as you push it farther and farther away from the city. "But there's one thing that no Grimm has experienced!" You dive underwater again, swimming behind the Grimm to its long tail. You grab it near the end and haul the beast out of the water with you.
People in Mistral watch as you drag the beast into the air by the tail, it firing off smaller blasts in a meager attempt to save itself.
"Incredible… he's carrying it."
"Who is this guy?"
"So I'll throw you high, higher than any Grimm has gone before!" You stop flying and throw the Grimm up, though not far enough to leave the planet. "Kaioken!" Your body is surrounded by a red aura before leaving the same colour trail in your wake. You rapidly beat at its chest, throwing it by the tail, uppercutting its chin. Anything to keep the beast bouncing higher and higher. It attempts to blast and slash you, but your enhanced speed is far too much for this powered up predator. "Nothing can survive the vacuum of space! Not even some green Grimm with my power!" You continue speaking while beating it higher.
You notice the thinning air, signaling you're close. Not to mention that you can see the roundness of your planet at this height. The once massive islands seem so small at this height, though the Grimm is the only one who can see this at the moment. You back up for just a moment then instantly appear in front of it with a devastating kick that could shatter any of the continents into bits. The Leviathan twirls around, screaming while it's sent beyond the planet's atmosphere. You slam your palms together and set them at your side. "I don't want to see you again! You're going even further! Into the darkness of space!" You release your Kamehameha wave, watching it swirl through the empty space until it crashes against the Leviathan. The beast is carried by the blast into deep space, past the moon, away from the sun.
You keep the blast going for a solid twenty seconds before finally releasing it. You take a deep breath, despite the extremely limited air… then curl up. “Ow, ow, ow,” your muscles burn you from the inside. "Heh… guess I did overuse the Kaioken, ow!" You stop your flight ability and let yourself fall. “Looks like I still haven’t quite perfected the technique… but I guess that’s just my next step,” you end with a pained smile, trying to ignore the spreading agony. “I’ll lay off it for a while… at least I get this view,” you look around at the beautiful planet you’re swiftly approaching. The clouds covering small bits of land and ocean just paint a wonderful picture that you’ve never seen before. “I should come here again…”
With Mistral quickly approaching, you flip forward and slow down upon approach. You softly land on the docks and exhale. "Well… guess the city is safe," you look at the smoke billowing above with cries everywhere. "Saving places never feels good," you cross your arms, only to wince and rest them at your side. “Still hurts… I should find Raven."
You hop into the air and casually head back to the school. You pass by a large crowd of Huntsmen and civilians alike. They see you and cheer, all shouting different thanks and praise. You’d speak with them or make a friendly motion, but your body just isn’t in the mood. Instead you smile and nod at them before continuing on your path. You enter the hole only to find Raven, barely awake, bound up and being held by the two Huntsmen you saw last time you were here with Leo standing proud at the door.
"Whoa, whoa, whoa," you take a few steps forward. "What're you doing?"
"This woman is a known raider," Leo speaks. "You've brought her in and saved this city. I thank you."
"Thank me by giving her back," you frown.
"What?"
You approach the two Huntsmen, flicking in both directions to knock the men into the far wall. You tear off the bindings on her wrists and ankles before picking her up.
"This is against-"
"You can try to stop me," you stare the lion down. "But let's be real… you can't. Consider this payment for saving Mistral."
You turn and fly back out the window, leaving the Headmaster contemplating what to do.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Raven's consciousness slowly comes back to her, starting with a clear mind and hazy vision. She sees you kneeling over her with a welcoming smile.
"Raven… you okay?"
Raven slowly lifts herself up and rubs her head. "I feel… perfect…"
"I gave you a senzu bean," you stand up and offer your hand. "I had to grab another one from my special stash. It was my second last one… I ate the last," you say with a wide smile. "I'll have to bother Korin for more." Raven takes your hand and gets back on her feet. Before she can speak, you pull out her sword and hand it to her. "I borrowed this, sorry."
Raven takes it and returns the blade to its home. "I understand… where…" Raven takes in the unfamiliar surroundings.
"Hehe," you rub the back of your head. "Merlot never left the island and I got his Ki signature locked in. He's not getting away."
"Is that so… then why did it take so long to find me," Raven places her hands on her hips and looks down on you.
"That's not my fault! Your signature was so small that I didn't recognize you! Plus, such a small signature is hard to find among the thousands on Remnant."
Raven turns away and starts walking. "Let's just find Merlot."
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
"How did he recover!" Merlot shouts at the monitor with Gero on the screen. "It was perfect! Why didn't you tell me?" He slams his fists on the desk.
"I don't know… but clearly, you underestimated him."
"I wasn't given the proper data! Clearly, you're in the wrong here!"
Gero chuckles. "Blaming me for your failures? You haven't changed, Merlot. I have you everything you asked for and still, you failed. At least you gave us more combat data."
All of a sudden the ceiling is broken for you and Raven to land. Gero instantly cuts the feed, keeping his involvement in this ordeal a secret. Merlot falls on his butt and starts scampering away. Raven casually slams her foot down on his leg to prevent him from moving. Merlot screams in pain before speaking. "Please! Please, don't kill me! I didn't kill you!"
"You meant to," Raven shifts her foot around to put more pressure and pain on Merlot, inciting more screams.
"You also killed a lot of people," you add, moving around to his front and squatting to meet his gaze.
"I didn't do it!"
"I… I mean, you're not wrong," you shrug. "But it was your Grimm, so it's your fault," you poke his nose. "Which means we're taking you in!"
"I'd rather kill him," Raven unsheathes her blade.
"No! Please! I'll be good! I'll go to jail! I'll-"
Raven buries her blade into his back, piercing the old man's heart.
"Hey, Raven!" You stand. "What was that?"
"He deserved it," she says before spitting on his corpse.
You sigh and cross your arms. "I guess. I feel kinda dirty about it."
"Don't. You didn't do it," Raven flicks her wrist to whip the blood off her blade before returning it to the sheath.
"Thank you for assisting me in all this," Raven shifts her gaze to you. "I don't believe I could have done it on my own." The woman walks past you. "I'll find my way out."
"Wait," you speak without turning around. "I came out here to find my friend's mom…" Raven stops in place at those words. She closes her eyes and exhales.
"You knew?"
"Of course I did. You two look alike," you turn around. "Please… it would mean a lot to her."
Raven remains silent for nearly thirty seconds. You can hear both your hearts beating, yours in anticipation and hers in nervousness. It's something she was hoping would be avoided… but there's no way she can get away from you at this point.
"Why do you care so much?"
"I don't know," you chuckle a second after. "I just… I lost my entire village, everyone, I cared about… I can't see them again, but you can. If anything happened to Yang or you… I don't think either of you would forget it. It would haunt you… like it haunts me."
There's another moment of silence as she contemplates your offer. "Fine," she turns around. "Take me to her."
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Yang and Ruby watch the news report off their scrolls, both sitting on the ground as they look up at the projected screen. Footage of the massive Leviathan attacking Mistral, your messy battle with it that's hard to follow due to the camera work. As they watch, their door gets knocked.
"I'll get it," Ruby hops off the ground and leaps to the door. As soon as she grabs the handle she recognizes the energy beyond the door. "(Y/N)!" She shouts while opening the door.
You're smiling on the other side, happy at the warm welcome. "Hey, you two!"
"(Y/N)?" Yang gets up and runs to the door. "Where have you been! How did you find that… what happened?"
You nervously chuckle. "Well… I was busy. Actually, I have someone who wants to meet you," as soon as you step to the side Raven enters their field of view.
Yang's jaw drops upon seeing her estranged mother.
"Hello, Yang."
Ruby looks between the two, quickly noticing the resemblance. She doesn't say a word at her revelation. She knows how desperate Yang is to find her mother, and here she is now, at Beacon, brought by you.
"Mom..?" Yang can't believe her eyes.
"I… was told you wanted to talk…" Raven takes a step forward to enter the room, making Yang move back.
You grab Ruby's hand and pull her out of the room. "We'll give you two some privacy," you close the door behind the young girl.
"How did you… what? WHAT?" Ruby frantically waves her arms.
"Let's go for some lunch and I'll tell you all about it. It's been a really fun week."
I thought about using a Hydra again and joking about how easy it would be for Kail to take one down where Slater almost died and needed all of Beacon to kill it… but I didn't want to repeat myself that much. This was a lot of fun… honestly, writing this version of Grimm Eclipse was a lot of fun. Taking liberties, shortening a bit, changing characters motivations and such, I know it's different from the norm but that's kinda the point. There's no way I could've retold GE as well as I did in Crimson Shadow so instead, I combined it with Raven and made something unique. I really enjoyed writing it all and I hope you liked reading it!
More Limitless will come soon. Got a short story centered around Blake coming out that I'll be working on alongside more Crimson Shadow. Plenty of fun stuff coming. Hope you enjoyed and have a great day!
Want to keep up with me? Know what chapter's coming out next and the progress of them? Follow me on Twitter! Twitter . com (slash) Chinsangan
Questions? Comments? Concerns? Advice? Send me a message!
I also have a Patreon, if you want to check that out! Pat reon . com (slash) Chinsangan
Chapter 15: Get the Team Together! Year Two Commences!
Chapter Text
Chapter 15: Get the Team Together! Year Two Commences!
The sun shines brightly over Vale but the same can’t be said for the mood. Almost everyone watched as the Mutated, Ki-fueled Leviathan devastated Mistral. If it wasn’t for you, the entire Kingdom may have been destroyed. Though that is some relief, the Grimm are rowdier on the continent thanks to the fear seeping into the people of Vale. But the Huntsmen are alert and you’re still around, if a little tired after overuse of the Kaioken. Definitely not to the extent of the times thirteen you pulled off, but that was only for a second. You know King Kai told you to only use the Kaioken for a heartbeat at a time, but that wasn’t an option. The pain wouldn’t be so bad if a certain hooded girl wasn’t beating on your exhausted muscles.
“I can’t believe you did all that without us!” She wails.
“Come on, I’m sore,” you push her hands away so your wonderous walk through Beacon doesn’t hurt. “Besides, you guys can sense me. You could’ve followed at any time.”
Ruby pouts. “That’s not fair.”
“That’s totally fair,” you counter. “If I felt you guys traveling around the planet for a week, I’d get curious.”
“We’re clearly more respectful than you,” Ruby crosses her arms and lifts her nose to the air.
“I guess so,” you set your hands on your sash. “I wonder how it’s going back there,” you look over your shoulder in the direction of the dorms, though it’s not in sight. “Hope it’s good.”
“Hey,” Ruby steps in front of you and makes intense eye contact. “Why’d you go out of your way to find Yang’s mom?”
You look into the sky as you think about her question. “Well… she told me she wanted to find her mom. I was told that you should help your friends with their goals… that’s what Crystal…” You trail off for a moment, shifting your gaze from the sky to a far away building. “Well, it’s how I was taught to make friends. Was never really good at it,” you walk past Ruby. “Maybe that’s cause I only knew a few people.”
“Not anymore!” Ruby hops beside you and matches your pace. “Now there’s all these people you know,” she spins around, gesturing to the dozens of students that’re returning to Beacon, all with boxes or carts of their items. “But… hey, (Y/N).”
“Yeah?” You look down at her.
“You did a really nice thing. You should be proud. You’re a good friend.”
You feel a sense of warmth and accomplishment from the young leader’s words.
“Thanks…” You both stop, being the only students not moving. “So, when do classes start up?”
“Tomorrow. I’m so excited to be in my second year! Now I can be a good role model for the first years.”
“Like me?”
“Like… oh, yeah,” Ruby chuckles. “You’re still in year one. I wonder if you have to do the relic test again,” she thinks aloud.
“That’d be fun.”
“Not as fun as… what did you do again? Beat a Nevermore into the ocean?”
“I did do that, yeah,” you laugh at the memory. “That was fun…”
“And now you’ve thrown a Leviathan into space… I don’t think anyone can beat that.”
“Funny how tough Grimm are… if they become immune to my Ki blasts they can resist any amount… I should test that.”
“What do you mean?”
“Like,” you start walking again, making your way through the loose crowd. “If I put a ton of pressure into my blast, would they still be immune?”
“Didn’t you do that already?”
“Yeah,” you shrug. “But I didn’t put my all into it. I wonder if the Grimm can even survive blasts that would destroy the planet.”
“Destroy the-“ Ruby stops, grabbing your arm to prevent you from going anywhere, and pulls you down to her height. “You’re saying that you can destroy Remnant?”
“Um… yeah, I think so,” you honestly answer as if it’s not unheard of. “I’ve never tested it, but… yeah, I’d bet my lunch on it.”
“How… how is that even possible? You can just do that now?”
“Yeah, pretty sure,” you repeat. “Kinda cool how strong I’ve gotten lately,” you hop back from Ruby and stretch your legs. “I don’t think I coulda done it when I got here. Vegeta and those others really forced me to get a lot stronger.”
“Is… is that why you let them go?” She raises her brow.
“Yeah, kinda,” you stand straight and cross your arms. “Vegeta was stronger than me, no doubt. I had to use Kaioken to even stand a chance. If I can reach his power without it… heck, maybe he’ll be even stronger next time!” Your excitement oozes.
Ruby shakes her head and walks past you. “You’re such a weirdo.”
“Yeah, maybe,” you laugh. “But I’ve seen you literally drool over weapon parts-“
“That’s different!” Ruby uses her Semblance to rush right into your face. “The intricacies and design of each weapon and part makes for such vast potential! We could spend hours making different weapons with each individual piece! It’s unique!”
People walking around you are concerned at Ruby’s demeanor. Mostly the first years, not knowing what you or Ruby are like. However, her outburst does attract the attention of those you met last year. Thus, you’re greeted by somewhat familiar faces. “Hi!” “Hey!” All the regular greetings followed by questions of where you were for the year.
“Was it too hard for you?” Someone jokes.
“You look a lot happier! What’d you do?”
“Forget that! Did you see him fighting that Leviathan!”
“Oh, yeah,” you scratch your chin. “That was fun.”
“Fun? It was amazing!”
“You gotta teach me how to fly one time!”
Ruby takes a step back to watch the crowd surround you. She remembers when people wanted to throw you out after the Saiyan debacle, yet now they’re excited to see you back. You barely did anything, yet they’re being friendly. It’s… wholesome for her… and nice that she isn’t being crowded. She would turn as red as her hood and probably run away. You’re a little more confident… or maybe baffled. You don’t look like you want to leave but aren’t really engaged. You’re just along for the ride of questions. Already, the year is starting out better for you… more or less. Getting your Ki drained and having it used to nearly destroy a Kingdom isn’t the best way to start, but since classes haven’t started you can technically ignore that.
Ruby turns her attention to the crowd, wondering where Blake and Weiss are. She wouldn’t be surprised if Blake managed to slip by her, but Weiss tends to make an entrance. Hopefully, neither of them interrupts Yang and Raven. That would be an awkward mess that nobody wants to deal with.
“Can you teach me how to do that blue beam?”
“No! Teach me!”
“I wanna fly!”
You rub the back of your head and chuckle. “Uh, yeah, I can do that.”
“Can you do it right now?”
“Uh…”
“Leave the poor boy alone,” CFVY approaches with Coco’s voice being the one who speaks.
They cut through the crowd, making their way beside you.
“Hello, (Y/N),” Velvet nervously waves.
“Heya, Velvet!” You happily wave back. “Hey everyone. Good to see you again!”
“Still a first year,” Coco shakes her head before stepping in front of you. “You should be lucky we’re even speaking with ya,” she lightly pushes her fist against your chest.
“Guess I am,” you smile, not grasping her joke.
Coco giggles as she pulls her hand back. “You’re damn right. You’re not planning on leaving again, right? Velvet was sad you weren’t around.”
“Coco!” Velvet sharply whispers
“Nope,” you shake your head. “I’m here for the long run,” you nod with determination.
The crowd becomes loud once again, some people talking to their peers while you speak with CFVY. Ozpin, standing on the sidelines to assure all the students arrive safely, overhears some of the conversation you were having. One thing was somewhat interesting to him… and may help both the students of Beacon and you as a person.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You hop back a few feet, forcing Ruby to chase you across the grass. Rose petals trail behind her as she throws punch after punch, all being blocked or pushed away by you. Your calm demeanor is slowly eroding her confidence in this little training session. Despite it all, she can’t hate herself for it. She knows you’re so much stronger than she is right now. The fact she’s even able to keep pace with you is an accomplishment for her. You catch her hand and throw her over your shoulder and onto the ground. You land at her head, staring down at the panting girl.
“You’re getting better. I remember when you could barely throw a proper punch,” you say with a light tone as you offer your hand.
“Yeah,” Ruby grabs your hand and uses it to stand up and spin around. “Let's keep going! I want to learn more!”
You smile at her enthusiasm and nod. “I’m always ready to spar.”
You and Ruby take a step back and assume your fighting stances. Before you charge in, you both feel a familiar signature approaching. You pause until Yang lands, a conflicted aura surrounding her.
“Yang!” Ruby’s seriousness disappears in an instant. “Are you okay?”
Yang takes a deep breath before staring you down. “(Y/N)… I didn’t think you’d take my story to heart.”
You return to a regular stance, setting your hands on your hips. “I just thought it’d be nice to help! It’s what friends do!”
Yang squints, unsure how to respond. “I don’t… understand. You…” Her words stop when your hand rests on her shoulder. She looks up in shock, surprised that you snuck up on her so quickly.
“Don’t worry about it!” Your smile reaches into her body, wrapping her soul in a warm embrace. She’s almost lost in your eyes, in your smile. With everything she just went through… all the emotions and words… yet you still manage to shine almost as bright as her. “Did you have a good talk with your mom?”
Ruby worries about such a direct question. Yang’s mom has always been such a touchy subject. The fact she just met with her and her theoretical wound is so open… she’s worried what might happen. But, of course, you’re blunt as always with a distinct lack of reading the room. Not that Ruby is the best, but she’s somewhat of an expert in this specific field.
“It… wasn’t what I thought,” Yang crosses her arms, showing her unease with this topic, almost wanting to ball up and hide herself away for the day. “But… it…”
“You wanna spar a bit?” You suddenly offer.
“What? I…” Yang pauses for a moment. “Yeah… yeah, I’d prefer that.”
“Cool,” you bring your arm back and jump away. “I’ll get Yang warmed up, then you can join in, Ruby. I can handle two girls at once. Or guys… doesn’t matter.”
Despite it all, Yang laughs. “You sure have a way with words.”
“He does?” Ruby raises her brow.
You stretch your legs a few times. “Come on, Yang, don’t hold back for a second!” You slide into your fighting stance.
You both disappear and reappear in the air, a shockwave indicating your first clash. Your fists push against each other, shaking under the pressure. You smile at each other, Yang’s eyes going red as her aura flairs.
Ruby approaches a nearby tree and sits against it. “Oh, here we go…”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
The Next Day…
With your body showered and your teeth brushed, you stare at the Beacon uniform that was provided to you for the year. You’re dreading putting this thing back on… you’ve been so comfy without it. Thankfully, someone knocks on your door. You can procrastinate this decision for just a bit longer.
You approach the door and open it… without any clothes on. RWBY, save Weiss, and JNPR is at the door. They start at your eyes, but all of them are drawn downwards upon noticing your lack of clothes. Yang instinctively cups Ruby’s eyes, much to the girl’s dismay.
“Hey! Yang!”
Yang isn’t really moved by the sight. She’s seen your naked body before so it’s pretty normal. In fact, the only girl who becomes flustered is Pyrrha, who becomes as red as her hair and does her best to look away. Ren and Jaune do their best to keep their eyes on yours, but their peripherals are betraying them. Nora and Blake, however, have little shame. They stare for a bit, taking it all in, maybe enjoying, and keep silent about it. Why ruin a good thing?
“You- uh,” Jaune looks away, face going red. “Why are you..?”
Some students leave their rooms or pass by, noticing your exposed form.
“Looking good, kid!” Coco whistles.
“Oh, hey Coco!” You wave back. “Why are you guys…” You follow Blake’s eyes to your organic power pole. “Oh, right! Sorry, I thought I had my boxers.” You leave the door open as you grab a pair of boxers from the bed and slip into them. “What’s up?” You look back at the door.
“We wanted to walk with you to class!” Nora answers. “But I’m fine with staying here.”
“Nora…” Ren speaks.
“Whaaaat?”
“Oh, sure! Ruby did say our classes were close.”
“Can I see now?” The young girl whines.
Yang retracts her hands and sets them on her hips. “Get dressed, hot rod,” she snickers. “We’ll wait.”
“Man…” You look down at the suit. “The Saiyans were easier than this.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You and your group of friends make your way through the main building’s halls. Other students loiter or scurry to their classes, making the school setting quite engaging.
“So, where’s Weiss?” You ask.
“I don’t know,” Yang shrugs. “She hasn’t shown up yet.”
“I sent her a message, but she didn’t reply,” Ruby adds.
You close your eyes for just a moment to reach out for her Ki. “She’s… still in Atlas. Huh…”
“Yeah, I felt that too,” Ruby nods.
“You have to teach us how to do that,” Jaune slides to your side. “It could help our teamwork.”
You stop at your class, seeing Ozpin standing at the door. “Oh, Ozpin!” You wave to him. “This is my class, so I’ll see you guys later.”
“Have fun!” Pyrrha smiles and waves.
The others give you gestures too as you split off from them. You stop beside the door, a few people entering before you manage to speak.
“What’re you doing here, professor?”
“Just wandering,” he coyly answers. “Do you like your suit?”
“Actually, yeah,” you nod before looking down at your clothes. “It doesn’t feel as tight.”
“I had yours made a big baggier.”
“Really? Wow, thanks, professor!” You close your eyes and smile widely. “I just thought I got smaller.”
“Not a problem,” Ozpin bows his head. “Now, I do have something I wish to discuss with you. Could you see me at the end of the day?”
“In your tower?”
“Indeed.”
“Okay, no problem,” you give him a thumbs up.
“Perfect. I won’t keep you from class any longer. Enjoy your day, (Y/N),” he takes a sip from his mug as he starts to walk away.
“Thanks! You too!” You wave for a moment. “Alright, gonna do this. Shouldn’t be too hard.”
You run into class, finding a seat near the front. You’re surrounded by new students that you’ve never seen before. You know it’s going to be like that for the rest of the day. But that just means you might make new friends. At the front of the class, Dr. Oobleck prepares himself for the lecture.
“Before I begin, write down everything you know about Remnant’s history!” He speeds around, placing pieces of paper around.
You face drops as this sense of déjà vu encompasses you. “Not again…”
Oobleck returns in front of you in a flash, his eyes peering through the glasses.
“Yes… again…”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
RBY, JNPR, and a majority of Beacon’s students gather in the cafeteria. The now experienced teams enjoy watching the new students fumble around and try to find their place.
“Remember when we were like that?” Yang remarks, her head resting in one hand.
“But now we’re second years! Man, classes are soooooooooo much better!” Ruby hollers for the whole building to hear.
“It’s odd how Weiss isn’t here yet. It’s not like her to miss school,” Jaune adjusts in his seat.
“We see who’s on your mind,” Yang teases.
“I-I’m just worried about my friend! Why do…”
Ruby’s cheeriness diminishes as she thinks on her partner. She’s still in Atlas, from what she can tell. The young girl can’t help but feel like something has happened. Her train of thoughts is interrupted when she spots you come through the door. Your face is completely drained, a hint of blue across your forehead. Your once pitch black eyes are a light gray as you stumble into the room. Lifeless, you shamble your way to your friends and slam your face on the table.
“I forgot how boring all this is…” You moan. “Why do I need to know about the start of civilization?”
Your friends look between them, unsure whether they should actually answer or not. On the one hand, it’s good for a Huntsman or Huntress to be knowledgeable in the history of Remnant… but in your case…
“Have you had your first sparring class? You like those!” Ren attempts to raise your spirits.
“Not yet,” you wheeze. “But everyone looks so boring… they aren’t like those three,” you wave your hand towards the girls of RWBY. “Man… I think I’m spoiled now. I just wanna fight Vegeta again.”
“But they tried to blow us up!” Ruby wails.
“But they were so much fun!” You whine.
“You think this is a Saiyan thing?” Blake whispers to Yang.
“I don’t know,” she shrugs. “I’ve never seen him like this before. It kinda reminds me of when you read those books.”
Blake’s cheeks heat up at Yang’s comment. “I’m not the only one! I can hear you above me!”
Yang turns her head away, preventing her face from being read. “I don’t know what you’re talking about.”
“Do you want to spar really quick?” Ruby offers.
“Really?” Your mood skyrockets. The red leader cheerily nods. “Okay, cool!”
“Don’t bang her up too badly!” Yang shouts as you and Ruby head towards the door. “I’m still sore from yesterday.”
“Don’t worry, Ruby knows what she’s doing?” You gesture an “okay.”
“Wow, he messes around with both sisters!” A table gossips.
“What a lucky guy! I always see them panting afterward.”
Yang cracks her knuckles upon hearing the words. “Looks like we’re having a brawl.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You and Ruby land on a large field that’s meant for similar activities.
“Thanks for volunteering, Ruby. I’m so restless lately,” you start stretching. “I have no idea why.”
“Actually, I did want to talk with you about something?” She approaches you.
“Oh? What’s up?”
“I’m…” Ruby twirls her fingers. “I’m worried about Weiss. She hasn’t answered any of my messages and it’s not like her to be late.”
“Makes sense to me. Did you want to go see what’s up?”
“I… I thought I was gonna have to butter you up.”
“For what? If there’s a problem, let's find the source! We’ll just find Weiss and figure out why she’s late!”
Ruby’s smile quickly grows. “Thanks, (Y/N). I knew you’d help me out.”
“Alright, let’s head out right now!”
“Can we ride the cloud?” Ruby’s speech is hurried, giddiness littered throughout.
“Oh, sure,” you just stop yourself before taking off. “Nimbus!” You cup your mouth to extend your voice.
Your fluffy yellow friend swoops down to your level. “Good to see you,” you hop on him. “We’re heading to Atlas.”
Ruby slowly gets on after you, sitting cross-legged behind you.
“You can hold on, if you want,” you say over your shoulder. “Alright, let's go!”
The yellow cloud soars into the air with you both on it, going high in the air and as fast as possible.
“I never would’ve thought flying would be possible without ships,” Ruby looks over the cloud.
“Yeah, it was so crazy when I first started flying. Must be weirder for you guys, though. Ki, flying-“
“Aliens.”
“Aliens,” you nod.
“Aliens that turn into giant apes,” she furthers.
“Yes, you’re right,” you chuckle. “I wish… you know, sometimes I wish I knew that before. Maybe then…” Your eyes drift down.
“You still think of your village.”
“Yeah…” You remain silent for a moment then shake your head. “But there’s nothing that I can do now. I can make sure it never happens again, though!”
“Is that why you want us to be stronger too? To help you out?” She says with some excited purpose.
“What? No, not really. It’s not as fun to fight as a group. It was really convenient that you all got so strong over the year. I don’t have to bug my friends at Roshi’s so much.”
Ruby’s face drops. “I gave you too much credit…”
“What?” You look back and smile wide. “You guys want to be stronger, right? I don’t see a downside. You want to protect the world from Grimm, right?”
“Mhm,” Ruby nods.
“Well, I don’t think there’s a Grimm around that you couldn’t beat… unless its specially made or something,”
Ruby pouts, realizing your point. “Yeah…”
“So don’t worry about the Saiyans,” you wave. “I’ll handle them if they come back. It’s not like anything else is coming after us. Plus, if I can’t do it, I feel like Piccolo and Ozpin might handle it.”
“Professor Ozpin?” Ruby tilts her head.
“Well, it’s more of a hunch,” you chuckle, keeping your care free smile on. “I think Piccolo’s even stronger than me, but I haven’t fought him yet. Ozpin… I guess you can call it a hunch,” you shrug and stare up. “But I think he’s holding back a lot of power. I could be wrong, though. I’ve never seen him fight.”
“You can tell if someone’s holding back by seeing a fight?”
“Yeah,” you nod. “It might take a minute or two, but it’s easy to tell when someone’s pulling their punches or trying to match your speed. You’ll know it when you see it, I think… might take a bit to become second nature.”
“Speaking of nature,” Ruby’s body takes in the cool breeze of the north. “I think we’re almost there.”
“Yeah, nearly,” you look ahead. “Should we land at the front or… maybe through her window!”
“I think we should approach this as respectfully as possible. If we make ourselves look bad then they won’t take us seriously,” Ruby notes.
“Okay, front door. The window is a last resort.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Dr. Gero slaves away on his computers, jumping between multiple consoles to keep up. His massive system is connected to over twenty pods lined up along the wall, taking place of all his other projects he was working on prior to this. Thanks to his collaboration with Wheelo and some testing data with Merlot, his little project has come further than he’s ever thought possible. Thanks to Merlot, he has confirmed that his technology can drain Ki from an individual – mainly a Saiyan. All he needs to do is make it more compact for future use and they’ll be an invaluable asset. In truth, despite all the work the doctor has to do, he’s loving every minute of it. This is his dream project and thanks to the Saiyans he can now pursue it with full backing from Atlas.
As Gero’s fingers move at unparalleled speeds, his door opens for the calm General Ironwood.
“How’s your work coming, Gero?” He asks as the click of his heels fill the room.
“Marvelous. The first rendition of my glorious androids are ready,” Gero’s normally bland speech is instead one filled with a hidden vigor Ironwood has never heard. “It’s basic, using the data from the Saiyan’s invasion and implementing it with an experimental Ki generator I designed when we had (Y/N) here.”
“They’ll be able to perform the same feats as the invaders?” Ironwood raises his brow.
“I believe so,” Gero continues to type away, not even giving Ironwood a courtesy glance. “Though physically superior, it seems most of (Y/N)’s strength comes from his application of Ki. My creations are meant to do the same. With more data, testing, and practice I should create androids that never falter, never tire, and never lose.”
Ironwood smiles at those words. Yet again, Atlas has begun developing technology that will protect the world. Not only will they drive out extraterrestrial invaders, but these androids should fight off any Grimm as well. Remnant will be secure once again, all thanks to Atlas’ military might. Something that none of the other Kingdoms seem to care about or appreciate - they will once order is brought.
The General’s thoughts are interrupted by a flashing red light above the top corner computer. Gero looks up and smiles. “It appears (Y/N) is approaching Atlas. With your permission,” he turns to the General. “I’d like to test my first generation.”
Ironwood raises his hand to his chin, thinking on the proposition. “We’ll obtain some Academy clothes for them… let's make it seem natural. We don’t need him realizing what we’re doing.”
“Of course, General,” Gero bows his head. “Allow me to adjust the versions a bit. Currently models one through three look… very similar.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You and Ruby hop off the Nimbus and land before the massive estate of the Schnee family. The lower temperatures make the girl shiver a bit, but you’re left unfazed.
“Why didn’t we land inside the estate? Now we have to ring the… gate bell?” You examine the gate.
“I said we have to be professional.”
“I think we’re the wrong people for that,” you admit.
“That’s not the point!” Ruby waves her arms. “We have to pretend to be!”
“Good thing I’m in my uniform, then,” you look down at the outfit. “Never thought I’d say that.”
Ruby approaches the gate and presses a button to the side of the gate. You both stand silent, waiting for a response. None comes. You wait for more than a minute before sharing a concerned glance.
“Maybe nobody’s home?” You shrug.
“I can’t believe they’re ignoring us!” Ruby stomps her foot.
You approach the button and step back, squinting at the fancy speaker. “Hm…”
“What business do you have a the Schnee manor?” A voice speaks.
“We’re, uh… looking for Weiss.”
“An audience with Ms. Schnee?” His interest is obviously peaked. “I’ll open the gate. Please meet me at the front door.”
“Hey, cool!” Ruby elbows you. “Gah! I mean, thank you, sir!” The line is cut and you wheeze. “Didn’t have to put so much into it, sheesh,” you rub your ribs.
“We gotta take this seriously!”
“Sorry, sorry,” the gate slowly opens for you and Ruby. “Maybe you should talk.”
“I will,” Ruby nods. “I’m her team leader, after all.”
Ruby starts walking while you just fly over to the front of the door. She scratches her head. “Huh… yeah, that would be faster.”
The girl follows your example and reaches the door in seconds.
“Know what else would be faster? Just flying through Weiss’ window.”
“(Y/N)! That’s kidnapping!”
“Even if she comes voluntarily?” You scratch your head.
“We don’t know why she isn’t at Beacon. We can’t make things worse!”
“Alright, I’m sorry,” you pout. “Just think this isn’t the best way.”
You both wait a moment at the massive white door, surrounded by bleached flowers and colourless designs.
“Atlas really likes the colour white.”
“Especially this house…” Ruby keeps her eyes moving along the outskirts. “It’s weird…”
“I don’t like it as much… your house is nicer to look at.”
“Oh, thank you,” she smiles wide. “It’s smaller.”
“But colourful,” you counter. “I wonder who the guy was.”
“Maybe a butler. She mentioned one before.”
“A butler,” you scratch your head. “Weird. Why does someone need a butler? What does a butler even do? They don’t make food… that’s a cook…” You squint and contemplate this revelation. “Cooks cook… butlers… do they do something with your butt?”
Ruby tilts her head slightly, blinking lifelessly. “Are… are you being serious?”
“Uh… No?”
Soon, the door creaks as it’s opened by someone inside. You and Ruby are greeted by a somewhat chunky man with balding brown hair and full moustache. His outfit is elegant, a white dress shirt and blue tie underneath a detailed black vest with silver buttons and faint blue outlines. He has a pocket watch slipped into his left vest pocket attached to the second right button. His pants are completely black as well, similar to his shoes. His brown eyes look you both over, giving a somewhat intimidating yet warm feeling. Two conflicting emotions, certainly, but they’re both there.
“Heya!” You smile and wave.
Ruby huffs. “So much for me talking.”
“Oh, right,” you step back and place your hand over your mouth, giving Ruby the go ahead.
“I’m Ruby Rose, leader of team RWBY from Beacon Academy,” the man smiles for just a moment at the introduction. He’s heard of you both before. “Classes have started, our teams have gathered, but RWBY is missing Weiss. I wish to know why she hasn’t come back to Beacon, and I’d like to ask her myself,” she puffs her chest out and stands her ground despite being in an unfamiliar environment.
“I see… well, Ms. Schnee is relaxing in her room. I…” The man looks behind him, assuring nobody is watching. “I’ll take you to her right now,” he gestures you inside. “Come, come, don’t dally.”
You both pass the butler and enter the house. It’s a massive entry hall with pictures of a man all around. Of course, it’s mostly white or light blue colours. Reminds you of Weiss, though you don’t think that’s a compliment.
“This way,” he walks past you towards the stairs. “My name is Klein,” he introduces. “It’s a pleasure to meet you both.”
“You know me?”
“Of course. Weiss has spoken plenty about the black haired alien monkey boy.”
You scratch the back of your head. “Huh… why the colour specifics?”
“We met a blonde Faunus with a tail too,” Ruby informs you.
“Ooooh, cool. If only he had black hair. That’s a Saiyan standard.”
“Wait, Weiss told you that he’s an alien?”
“I was the only one she told,” Klein keeps his eyes out as you walk through hallways. “I don’t believe that information should be shared carelessly.”
“Yeah,” you think back to when you found out and the reactions of the other students. “Doesn’t go well…”
“She doesn’t believe her siblings need to know of that or… well,” Klein clears his throat. “We’re almost there.”
“I wonder if Weiss just doesn’t wanna go back to the small room,” Ruby whispers.
“Maybe you should be a butler for her.”
“Dress up and everything!” Ruby quietly cheers.
“Wouldn’t you need a maid outfit, though?”
Ruby nods. “Yeah, a maid outfit! Maybe I can get the team to dress up.”
“That’d be funny,” you chuckle. “I’d love to see that.”
Klein stops before a door and turns to face you both. “She’s here. I’ll remain at the door, just in case. I’m sure she’ll be delighted to see you. Go on.”
You and Ruby nod before approaching the door. Ruby is the one to open and the first to lay her eyes on Weiss.
“Klein is that- Ruby?”
“WEEEEEEEEIIIIIIIIIIIIIIISSSSS!” Ruby speeds towards her teammate, toppling her over with Ruby’s embrace.
“Hey! Get off me! Ruby!” Weiss struggles but her leader’s grip is too tight.
“I missed you!”
You enter the room and close the door behind you, smiling at the sight of team bonding.
“What are you doing here? Ah,” she spots you approach. “(Y/N)? I shouldn’t be surprised it’s you two.”
“That’s not important, Weiss!” The leader releases her comrade, allowing them both to stand properly. “Why haven’t you shown up to school? You’re late! You don’t even have your bags packed!”
Weiss’ eyes glance down, a shameful tone washing over her. “I… can’t.”
“What? Why not?” Ruby crosses her arms and squints.
Weiss exhales. “My father… he thought I wasn’t getting anywhere at Beacon.”
“What do you mean? You’re super strong!” Ruby flexes her own muscles. “Well, I guess we don’t look like it…”
“That’s not…” Weiss shakes her head, frustration setting in. “He…”
“Get out of the way, Klein,” a voice commands.
The three of you look to the door where a tall, white-suited man enters. His white hair and moustache, his blue eyes, even his colour scheme. Ruby immediately recognizes him as Weiss’ father. You, on the other hand… don’t.
“Heh, I like your moustache,” you break the silence.
“(Y/N)!” The two girls whisper.
“What?”
“You… what are you two doing interrupting MY daughter.”
“You’re related?” You look back and forth between Weiss and her dad. “Huh… I’m really not good with family…”
“Father, I-“
“Are you trying to run away, Weiss?” He steps forward, focusing on his offspring. “Beacon is no place for you. Here, in Atlas, under my watch, is where you’ll prosper.”
“I don’t think so,” you cross your arms. “Weiss is stronger than…” You close your eyes for but a moment. “Yeah, everyone here.”
Weiss looks away from her father when you say that.
“What a joke! She couldn’t hold a candle to her sister.”
“Wait, really?” Ruby glances at Weiss. “That…”
“I… couldn’t beat her,” Weiss whispers.
“I think you’re underestimating your daughter. I’ve fought with her. She’s really strong,” you nonchalantly stand your ground against Jacques, something not many people do.
“(Y/N), please, I-“
“Weiss, what do you have to worry about? You can just fly away.”
“Fly?” Jacques chuckles. “She can’t fly.”
“Ooooh, I get it,” you look back at Weiss. “You-“
“Afternoon, everyone,” Ironwood enters the room.
“General Ironwood?” Jacques turns his head. “I don’t recall you confirming your visit today,” some passive-aggression present in his voice.
“Well, I caught wind of this little operation.”
“How?” Ruby whispers to herself.
“And I thought there was a way to settle it,” he smiles with confidence.
Ruby and Weiss remain skeptical. Weiss gathered what you two planned but how did Ironwood? How does he have a way to settle it? To them, it feels like there’s more to Ironwood’s interference. To you, he’s a way to get Weiss back to Beacon.
“Sweet! We’ll do anything to bring Weiss back to Beacon!”
“She’s not returning,” Jacques declares.
“Now, now, Jacques, hear me out. We have three of our strongest from the Academy here. If these three can win then I believe Weiss has more to learn at Beacon.”
“Why should I agree to this? I saw her defeat your officer!”
“Jacques… if you’re so confident then what’s the harm in it?” Ironwood smiles. “And I believe you owe me one.”
Jacques sneers at his words. “Very well…”
“Excellent,” Ironwood looks to you three. “We’ll meet you on the roof. Weiss should know which one.”
Weiss shifts uncomfortably, remembering the fight with her sister and the countless training sessions she’s had in that place. This time… she has friends.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“So your sister has a kid? Who’s she married to?” You call back to the boy you passed on your way here.
“That was my brother,” Weiss rolls her eyes and fastens her belt.
“Damnit,” you clench your fist. “Next time I’ll get it right.”
“So you lost against your sister?” Ruby remarks, waiting for the General, Jacques, and their opponents to arrive.
“I… he knew what he was doing,” Weiss snarls. “I couldn’t beat Winter. It would disgrace her, ruin her reputation in the military and force her to come back to him. Either way, he wanted to sink his claws in one of us.”
“So you took the fall for your sister?” Ruby concludes.
“Mm,” Weiss nods. “And now you two are here.”
“Of course! We’d never leave you behind!” Ruby closes her eyes and smiles.
“And we get to see the strong guys from Atlas!” You rub your hands together. “Everyone is happy!”
“Well, I won’t hold back on them,” Weiss rolls her shoulder. “This shouldn’t take long. I don’t want to be here any longer.”
“Weiss,” Ruby’s eyes drift downwards.
The white warrior spoke of her troubled home to her teammates during their first year. Ruby just never got to experience what Weiss was like in this environment. It’s still strange to her. Ruby’s family is so tightly knit, at least when it comes to her father, sister, and uncle. Even now, Raven and Yang’s relationship is being somewhat patched up. Yet Weiss… the only stable relationship she seems to have is with her sister. It’s almost sad for the red leader.
“Wonder why Ironwood asked me to participate,” you cross your arms and wander around. “He knows how strong I am and I’ve only gotten better. If this was about Weiss… why include me. You make sense,” you flick your chin towards Ruby. “But me… it’s weird.”
“He’s thinking…” Ruby whispers.
“Should we record this? It doesn’t happen a lot.”
“Fantastic, you’re here,” Ironwood, Jacques, and three students approach you – one woman and two men. It may just be you, but they all share the same facial structure… in fact, they practically look the same. White-blue eyes, nose, ears, pale skin everything. The only difference is the hair. The girl has hair in similar length to Weiss but blonde, one man is bald, the other has spiky black hair. Other than their eerily similar appearance, there’s something about them that throws you off. The lifeless eyes, the soulless walk…
“Jeez, don’t look so dreary,” Ruby remarks.
“I’ve never seen those people before… they’re the top?” Weiss scratches her cheek. “Something’s fishy.”
“I wonder what weapons they use… maybe they don’t use weapons!” Your excitement is easily detected by all parties.
“These students are eager to go up against those from another Kingdom,” Ironwood speaks for the three.
“Coulda fooled me,” Ruby rolls her eyes.
“So if we win, Weiss comes with us?” You look to Jacques.
The elder looks away. “As… was the bargain…” Clearly displeased with the arrangement.
“Cool,” you roll your shoulder. “Alright, let's do this!”
You, Ruby, and Weiss ready yourselves – the girls getting into position with their weapons while you just raise your fists. Your opponents remain stationary, not assuming a stance or grabbing a weapon.
The General checks his scroll, assuring that Gero’s monitor bugs are in place. With an okay from the doctor, Ironwood looks to the combatants. “Ready… begin!”
Ruby and Weiss take the offense, attacking either man and splitting off in two separate directions. Ruby swings her scythe at lightning speeds in an attempt to tag her opponent. To her surprise, the man is more than capable of keeping up with her speed, even when she’s amplified with Ki. He catches Ruby’s scythe and throws her over into the far wall, cracking the structure.
“Ow,” Ruby rubs the back of her head. “How did he..?”
The same revelation comes to Weiss as she attempts to stab her opponent. He weaves through all the attempts and finally manages to catch Weiss’ blade, throwing her to the side and pursuing her in a weakened state. Weiss summons a glyph below her and springs herself into the air. Her opponent quickly follows faster than Weiss anticipated, allowing him to slam his fist into the girl’s cheek and send her right back to the ground. Weiss uses glyphs to slow down, landing on the ground like a feather. She rubs her cheek while locking onto her opponent.
“I didn’t even…”
At the same time, the woman flashes in front of you and throws a punch. You catch it, but the pressure fires past you. Your hand shakes as she presses forward, her face remaining blank and emotionless.
How… I’m not sensing any Ki from her. I’m not sensing anything! How is she this fast and strong yet… practically invisible?
You grab her forearm with your free hand, then spin around and around at a speed that almost creates a mini tornado. You release the woman towards the open air, sending her whipping through the sky at breakneck speeds. You stop and watch as she barely struggles to recover and… hovers mid-air.
“You can fly?” You tilt your head to the side. “Huh… guess that gives me more room to fight!” You burst off the ground and meet her halfway, the shockwave from your colliding fists echoing across Atlas. You duck under a fist, block a sidekick, miss a spinning back hit yet catch her off guard by continuing to spin and follow with a kick. The woman is knocked back by your attack but quickly flies under and around you to gain speed for a punishing punch. You manage to block the blow, yet something hits you after the attack.
The form of her punches…
You push the fist to the side and snap your own at her face, landing a direct blow. She immediately retaliates with a roundhouse kick, which you flip over and release a small Ki blast right at her stomach, with a large explosion and rush of smoke to accompany it. She doesn’t even flinch, instead charging up a hammerfist to send you flying back down to the building. You recover midway, curling up into a ball and spinning until you land.
She’s… like Vegeta? I can’t sense it, but everything else…
Your opponent speeds out of the disappearing cloud, her punch ready to strike. You hop back to dodge it, her fist leaving a hole in the floor. You quickly jump forward, using her head as a stepping stool while you fly back into the air.
Ruby skids across the ground, stopping just where you were. Her opponent is right on her heels, those dead eyes never looking away. Ruby sneers as she swings her scythe around and slams it into the ground, stabilizing it for her to fire. The man weaves through the bullets like nothing until he reaches Ruby. He hops up, stepping on her scythe and flicking it down, flipping Ruby up and towards him.
“Ah!” Ruby panics for a moment as she’s thrown off balance. She mixes her Ki and Semblance together to dart out of the way of his punch. She stops behind him and bursts forward tilting her body back and slamming both feet into his back. With momentum behind her, she grabs her scythe and unleashes a storm of slices upon the opposing student. His uniform is slowly shredded, something noticed by the young girl.
“Your Aura!” Ruby stops attacking and puts her weapon away while running to the man. “Are you okay? I-I didn’t know it was-“
The back of his fist slams into Ruby’s face, sending the hooded girl a few feet back. “Hey, I just wanted to…” Ruby squints, noticing that his clothes may be tattered but his body hasn’t taken any damage. “But they were direct hits and he has no Aura…” Ruby squints. “Those hits… and I can’t… man, this is weird.”
Weiss tumbles across the ground in the proximity of Ruby. The leader comes to her aid, stopping and getting the girl to her feet.
“Are you okay?”
“Yeah,” Weiss winces. “This is just… I’m used to following people’s Ki signature instead of my eyes, just like (Y/N) said, but…”
“Yeah… I can’t sense this guy either… and I don’t think they’re using Aura.”
Weiss shakes her head. “I’ve landed a few blows… no Aura but no damage. I… don’t understand.”
Ironwood chuckles at the confusion. He remembers what Gero told him before, that these creations have no signature or Aura. They’re completely fueled by Ki instead. Gero purposefully made the two men weaker than Ruby and Weiss, which makes Ironwood believe that they’re not going at full power. It’s in their best interests that Weiss remains with RWBY and Beacon. The progress the girls' can make around you will show the potential of humans. If they defeat a strong opponent from Atlas, it will boost their morale. It’s all to progress humans’ power. However, the woman fighting you is purely made for results – how well can one of their androids do against you? How far do they have to go?
Weiss and Ruby look to the sky where various shockwaves erupt. The people of Atlas and even Jacques is astonished by the fight. The head of the Schnee didn’t plan on this becoming so public – something that Ironwood will hear about later.
The duo returns their focus to the enemies coming from either side.
“Together?” Weiss looks over her shoulder.
Ruby smiles and nods. “Yeah!”
You and the woman clash fists, knees, elbows, any part of the body that can be used for offense is used… at least by you, forehead to fist wasn’t part of the plan but it still worked. You both hover in the air, eying the other up.
“Seriously, where was this girl during the Saiyans? She would’ve kicked all our butts. Until they went ape, anyway,” you become perplexed. “It’s so random. They were surprised at my power before yet now they have this amazingly strong girl. She’s even stronger than RWBY and they were trained by Master Roshi… something’s off here,” you cross your arms and squint. “Came out of nowhere… can’t sense their energy… this is quite the conun… canon… cannondrums? Was that it? Yeah,” you smile with confidence. “This is quite the cannondrum!” You throw a few false punches to loosen yourself up a little more. “Alright, if you’re that strong then this’ll be a lot of fun. Warm up’s over, let’s get going!” You lower your body and raise one hand up and the other down.
In an instant, you meet each other in the sky. Your fists shake the world around you, two colossal powers meeting again and again. You push your fist to the right, knocking her off balance for a double knee to the stomach. You quickly grab both her shoulders and flip over her only to throw the woman towards the city. She stops herself quickly and burst back towards you. She leans back and brings her leg in for a rushing kick. You dash to the side, leaning your body to just pass by the speeding blow. She quickly spins around and charges a yellow ball above her.
“Wait, you can do that too?”
Without a word, she throws the blast towards you… which is also towards the city of Atlas.
That’s no casual blast!
“Times two!” You shout, resulting in your body momentarily flaring in a dark red aura.
You move your right arm across your body and flick it back as the blast reaches you, knocking it far into the sky and preventing any damage. Your body returns to normal and you exhale. “That was… you know, isn’t times two and regular Kaioken the same-“ The woman takes the opportunity to land a powerful haymaker right into your cheek, flinging you back a good distance. You stop in the air and rub the impact area. “Alright, guess I deserved that.”
With shocking speed, you fly back towards her, stopping just above her while you spin around and throw a kick. She manages to block the attack with her forearm and throws a counter punch. You hook your foot into her forearm and spin yourself around to the other side and successfully land a second front kick. You immediately pursue, flying above her while intertwining your hands together and slamming her down with a hammerfist. She plummets towards the Schnee estate, towards the other battle below.
Weiss and Ruby stand back to back as they remain under constant assault. The speed of the four warriors is a surprise to both Ironwood and Jacques. The father, especially, is astonished at Weiss’ speed. She displayed nowhere near this level of dexterity when battling Winter.
Weiss ducks under and punch and spins around, Ruby taking her place and slashing at their attacker. Weiss, in turn, creates a series of glyphs to slow down the man coming at them from her front. He’s unable to stop her, thus giving a prime opportunity to dash forward, glyphs and Ki amping her speed to land a devastating thrust. She quickly leaps back in a far arc, landing behind the man who Ruby is currently clashed with. She freezes him in place with a glyph for the two girls to act on. Ruby leaps back a moment, layering her scythe with Ki before speeding around with Weiss, both slashing or poking the immovable opponent in an unrelenting barrage. Weiss spots her previous opponent coming back to battle.
“Ruby!”
“Right!” The young leader jumps over the stationary man and lands on a glyph just above and behind Weiss. She shifts her scythe to a glaive-like form, still layered in Ki, and spirals forward with her Semblance. She almost instantly collides with her opponent, digging into his stomach with the punishing attack. With the secret android completely overwhelmed, Ruby speeds around him and slashes the man right beside his ally. Weiss increase the size of the glyph to keep both trapped. With Weiss and Ruby on either side of their enemies, they lower their weapon arms and aim a Ki blast.
“Not too much, Weiss!”
“I know!”
The two release two speeding balls of Ki that reach their mark, exploding in a massive cloud. Weiss and Ruby lower their hands and watch to see the result. They're sure they’ve done enough damage, but they can’t sense either person so they can’t be sure. You unintentionally help them by stopping your fall right above the cloud. The momentum flushes the smoke away, revealing the “unconscious” students. In truth, Gero, still watching the fight, remotely deactivated the androids to end the fight. He has the data and results from those androids. He now wants to focus on your battle with the stronger android… though it seems the fight won’t last much longer.
You burst back towards the girl, a wide smile on your face. The android raises her hand and fires a medium sized blast at you, which you seem to disappear and reappear past it. Weiss and Ruby realize it’s still coming towards them and hurriedly fire more blasts to cancel it out. You spin around, extending your leg to throw a kick. The woman holds her hand up to block it but, like before, you seem to disappear right before impact and reappear with your head shooting towards her chin. It connects, a loud sound resulting from the impact. You quickly flow from a headbutt, sliding your head to the side and follow with an uppercut, pulling it back and rising to a knee, and finally ending with backflip kick. You hover for a moment, looking over your shoulder at her right side up body. You spin around to mirror her and fire a weak Kamehameha away from her, using the momentum to blast yourself towards her stunned self. You pull back your elbow and slam it into her chest when close enough. You quickly pull back your other arm and thrust it just above your elbow to send the girl flying.
Hm… she was keeping up at about 80% but now that I’m going a little higher she can’t react. Interesting, that’s just about Vegeta’s range when I fought him. Guess I’ll go a little easier to keep the fight…
You look down to Ruby and Weiss who's, in turn, staring up at you.
No… I’m doing this for Ruby, for the entire team. I have to win this for them.
“You should just give up now,” you cross your arms and eye down the recovered opponent. “I get how strong you are. It’d be fun to spar again, but I have no intention of losing and you, sorry, have no chance in winning this.”
“Does it matter?” Ironwood looks over at the elder Schnee. “Your daughter seems to have proved herself quite handily.”
“That…” Jacques clears his throat and gathers his thoughts. “That merely shows the incompetence of your school, General,” he ends with a venomous tone.
“Perhaps,” Ironwood takes the insult better than Jacques expected. “But a loss here and there can lead to a far more substantial victory.”
Not a moment later, Ironwood’s scroll receives a message.
“General!” Winter Schnee’s voice comes through. “The public is panicking! Two… flying people are shaking Atlas? Are they at my father’s estate?”
“I see… keep the populace settled for now. It’ll be over soon.”
“That didn’t-“ Ironwood disconnects the call and focuses on the battle.
The woman shows no sign of a response. No facial movement or gesture whatsoever. You let your fists fall to the side and furrow your brow. “Alright… let's finish this!”
I’m not letting Ruby down!
You rush in at full speed, completely passing through the android. She’s unable to react when you, from behind, slam each of your knees into her head one at a time, then finish with a hammerfist down. The woman, disoriented, uses two blasts to redirect herself back at you. She shifts her entire body so attacking with any of her limbs will be easy. To your surprise, she hasn’t gotten fatigued during the fight at all. Even if you’re not going all out, she’s strong enough to make your heart race. Then again, it’s hard to get any read on her without being able to sense her Ki. You assume it’s part of her Semblance, or perhaps she’s mastered a way to completely hide her signature even while using it. If so, she knows more about Ki manipulation than you do. Sure, suppressing it to small levels is easy, but keeping it low while firing using that much Ki is unheard of.
It doesn’t matter now, though. You effortlessly block and parry her following three punches and two kicks, grabbing her leg and tossing her higher into the air. Eyes locked on you, she fires a barrage of blasts with, once again, no care for the people below. You rush forward, knocking all blasts back at her or completely to the side so they’ll explode in the air. It’s something to behold for the spectators – a wave of the blasts being swatted away as if it couldn’t destroy entire portions of the city. You spin around, using all four limbs to smack away the blast while you get closer and closer. To be flashy, and to end it quickly, you suddenly erupt in a red flare.
“Doubling…” You stop spinning and simply burst forward, the blast exploding on contact but not damaging you. You break out of the smoke, fist pulled back and eyes fierce. “Will end it.”
Before you swing the hook, the woman suddenly closes her eyes and starts to fall. Your combat demeanor completely changes the second it happens – eyes becoming wide and innocent, the deadly red tint washing away.
“Gah! Hey!” You quickly descend and catch the girl. “Hey… are you okay?” No response. “Hm… maybe she was more tired than I thought. Or maybe I’m pretty scary and she fainted,” you look up and chuckle. “I hope she’s okay.”
You reach the ground and set the woman down gently. “Sorry, General. I have no idea what happened.”
“It’s quite alright,” military man seeming less worried than you thought he’d be. “Against such a strong opponent like yourself, she must’ve used all she had.”
“I thought that too,” you nod. “But it surprised me. She was good at hiding it.”
Weiss and Ruby move to your side, Weiss being in the middle of you two. “So… we won,” the Schnee says aloud, meant for her father yet her body never focus on him. “I’m… going back to Beacon.”
“They did win,” Ironwood notes.
“Indeed… but only because of that alien!” He points at you.
“Me?” You also point at yourself. “But I only fought one girl.”
“Don’t take me for a fool, alien,” he sneers. “I don’t know your corrupted ways.”
“Alien… I mean, you got me there,” you rub the back of your head and chuckle.
“What did you do? Defeat their foes for them? Threaten their lives to lose?”
“Jacques…” Ironwood shakes his head.
“I have no reason to trust this… thing!”
You place your hands on your hips and smile. “Fair enough, but the general trusts me, so isn’t that enough?”
Jacques squints at you, almost as if he’s looking for some physical manifestation of your manipulation. On the other hand, Weiss is somewhat baffled by your apathy towards her father’s insult. But, in reality, she shouldn’t. From what little time she’s spent with you… that’s just how you are. Even when people turned against you at Beacon you just stuck to your guns and others flocked to you. You always stay true to yourself… while Weiss…
“I don’t think so,” Jacques shakes his head. “I don’t know why I wasted my time with this. You’re going to hear about this, James,” he points to the general. “And as for you,” he shifts to you. “I don’t know what you’re planning… but I’ll make sure that you never step foot in-“
“Leave him alone!” Weiss stamps her foot. You, Ironwood, Jacques, and Ruby all turn their focus to the Heiress. “You don’t even know him! He saved your life! Everyone’s lives! He almost died doing it!”
“I suggest you silence-“
“No!” Weiss shakes her head. “No! I won’t sit by like this while you speak badly about him! I’m only as strong as I am because of him!”
Didn’t Roshi and them train her? I shouldn’t say anything.
“He’s done so much for Beacon, for all of Remnant! He stopped a violent faction of the White Fang, something I thought you’d be grateful for! But you’re not grateful for anything that doesn’t stroke your ego or makes you money!”
“How dare you…” Jacques marches up to his daughter. “All I’ve given you… and you turn against me like this…”
“I’m not turning against you! I’m standing up for someone who doesn’t deserve your beratement!”
“B… bear ate mint?”
“Later,” Ruby pats your arm and whispers.
“I’m going back to Beacon! It’s the best place I can learn and grow! You…” Weiss clenches her fists, her whole body shaking with adrenaline and fear. “I don’t care what you want. I’m doing this for me.”
Jacques stares down his daughter, quickly realizing that she won’t back down as she has before. He takes a deep breath before speaking. “You ignorant child. If you leave, there will be consequences.”
“You don’t scare me,” Weiss scowls. “Come on, we’re going,” the girl turns around and flies towards her room.
“I- Weiss!” Ruby quickly flies after her.
“They can fly?” Jacques exclaims.
“Yeah,” you cross your arms and nod. “They can do a lot. They’re really strong. Just shows that she could’ve left whenever she wanted.” You look back to Jacques, still pleasant. “Well, have a good day Mr. Schnee!” You wave while lifting off. “I’ll make sure your daughter comes back super strong!” Your voice echoes.
Jacques remains silent, stirring in a quiet rage. Ironwood, feeling the anger in his acquaintance, silently gathers his “students,” carrying one over his shoulder and the others in his arms, and makes his way out.
“I wouldn’t pursue them, Jacques,” Ironwood advises while walking away. “If you want to preserve your company, let Weiss travel her own path.”
“Her own path,” Jacques takes a deep breath to collect himself. “The only path she has is a useless Huntress lying dead in a forest.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You stand in Ozpin’s elevator, feeling the movement of the machine as it brings you higher. You wanted to stay and chat with your friends, but you promised to meet with Ozpin. Besides, giving RWBY their team time is likely for the best. Within the past few days, you’ve helped two members with potential problems, plus Blake near the beginning of the first year. The only one who hasn’t needed help was Ruby.
It must come with the leader thing.
Soon, the elevator dings before its doors open for you. Ozpin, his eyes now on you, puts on a welcoming smile.
“Good evening, (Y/N).”
“Heya, Ozpin! How ar-“
“I heard you didn’t attend afternoon classes,” he notes.
Your demeanor immediately falters. “I… well, you see-“
“I also heard of flashing lights, explosions, and earthquakes in Atlas.”
“Hehe,” you nervously laugh. “I don’t know who that could’ve been.”
“I see,” Ozpin snickers. “Very well, if it wasn’t you… please,” he gestures to his chairs. “Have a seat. As I said before, I have something to discuss with you.”
“Oh, cool,” you hop into a seat and lean forward. “What’s up?”
“I’ll keep it brief… are you aware of the extra-curricular activities here at Beacon?”
“No,” you bluntly answer, shaking your head.
“I suspected as much. Think of them as… extra activities that hone specific skills.”
“Okay, I’m following,” you nod.
“I want you to run a program.”
“Run a… what, like teach a class?”
“Precisely,” Ozpin smirks. “You caught on quicker than I thought. I’ve seen your peers eagerness to learn your style – mostly the application of Ki. I can’t rightly send all my students to Master Roshi but you… I think it’d be a learning opportunity for both you and your fellow classmates,” he takes a sip of coffee. “What do you say to that?”
“I don’t know,” you lean back and scratch your head. “I’m not much of a teacher.”
“You’ll learn alongside them. I believe you’re more charismatic than you know. I think if you’re the one teaching, others will listen.”
“I don’t think I’m that liked around here, Ozpin,” you scratch your neck.
“I believe you underestimate yourself,” he replies with a clear tone. “It’s your choice, but I’m willing to let you use one of our classrooms if you wish. I’d think on this. You’ve seen how much stronger team RWBY became after Master Roshi’s training. I’m sure you can pass on much to them and the others.” Ozpin stands up and walks around the desk. “You’re a born warrior, after all.”
“Because I’m a Saiyan?” You keep your body focused on him.
“Perhaps…” Ozpin sets his cane down, both hands on it, and stares down at you. “But think on what I’ve said. If you don’t want to, I understand. I simply believe it’s the best course of action for both you and Beacon.”
You look at the ground a moment, processing everything that’s been said. “Alright,” you look back at Ozpin. “I’ll think about it. Thank you for the opportunity.”
“I await your response. Have a good night, (Y/N).”
You stand up and head for the elevator. “You too, Ozpin!”
I don’t know why this- okay, yes I did. I had exams… but after exams were over I don’t know why it took me so long to write this. Ah well, it’s done and out! I hope you enjoyed it. Little more of a character/filler thing but there’s gonna be a couple chapters like that. Maybe I’ll even do an adaptation of the driving episode… heh, that’s something to write in the notes. Anyway, I don’t have much to say this time around. I’m off from college so I’ll be writing more. Expect more consistent updates from me, even if it isn’t this. I have Crimson Shadow and Dismal Demon running so those are two things to occupy your time… unless you’ve already read them and you’re just waiting for anything to update. Well, Dismal Demon will be next.
Anyway, see you guys next time!
Want to keep up with me? Know what chapter’s coming out next and the progress of them? Follow me on Twitter! Twitter . com (slash) Chinsangan
Questions? Comments? Concerns? Advice? Send me a message!
I also have a Pa tr eon, if you want to check that out! Pat reon . com (slash) Chinsangan
My Discord is now open! If you want to join, either check my bio for a link, find it on my Twitter, or message me directly!
A special thank you to Patreon supporters: Manuel Garcia, James Tubbs, MazMan, MTX, Sassylemons, and Big Genatools
Extra special thanks to Ride The Lightning and Nicholas X Wright!
And finally, thank you to the Beta Reader: thenameisntimportant
Chapter 16: An Unconventional Class? Professor Saiyan!
Chapter Text
Chapter 16: An Unconventional Class! Professor Saiyan?
You spin around in the air while the sun beams on Beacon Academy. The students are making their way to their first class while you’re completely zoning out. You could barely sleep when thinking about Ozpin’s offer.
“My own class, huh…” You whisper for the eighteenth time within the past few hours. “I wonder,” you spin around some more. “I guess I should get to class though,” you look back to your room. “I should probably get changed. I think my class starts now.”
“Hey!” You hear Ruby’s voice shout from the ground. “What are you doing?”
You look down at the young girl, jumping and waving to get your attention. Weiss is with her, but the other members of her team are absent.
“I was just about to change!”
“You’re still a first year! Your class started half an hour ago!”
“GAH!” You take the information and dash right towards your room.
“Really, what a fool,” Weiss shakes her head.
“I think it’s funny,” Ruby smiles. “He’s very honest about it all.”
“His idiocy?”
“Weiss!” Ruby frowns at her teammate. It’s like she completely forgot that you helped bring her back to Beacon. “Fine, last one to class has to cook for the week!” She speedily says before using her Semblance to run away.
“Hey! Ruby!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You push the door open with such force that the swing around and slam against the wall. This obviously gains the attention of everyone in the room, including Professor Oobleck. He immediately notices your lazily put together uniform. Shirt not tucked in, collar messy, one sleeve up and somehow missing a sock.
“Absent one day, late the next. Not a good start,” he shakes his head. “Not at all. Do you think the greatest men and women of our time WERE LATE TO CLASS?”
“Uh…” You scratch your head. “Maybe? Who’s an important person?”
The class laughs at your question while Oobleck merely sighs. “Please take your seat, (Y/N).”
“You got it!” You smile with enthusiasm before jumping over your peers to the closest open seat.
“Why jump?”
“Who is that guy?”
“Alright! Now, after that interruption, we will continue our lesson! History is important, students! It’s best not to ignore this critical class.”
Didn’t he talk about this last- oh yeah, I’m doing this over again.
You look around the room to see if there are any friendly faces. Of course, none of your friends are present. They’re all flourishing as second years. That means you’ll need to make some more friends which shouldn’t be too bad. But you’ll also have to pay attention to the history of Remnant again… which you really don’t care about. Like before, the worst part about Beacon is the actual school side. Even now, as you do your best to focus on the rambling professor your mind just wanders into more interesting thoughts.
Most of that revolving around the Saiyans. When will you fight them again? How strong will they be next time? How much stronger do you have to be? How can you train? How can you prepare your friends? You’re well aware that RWBY and your fellow Turtle Schoolers were far below all of the Saiyans. The only reason RWBY handled themselves was because you managed to weaken them. So not only do you have to worry about yourself, but your friends. If you get stronger and all the Saiyans are about your power level, you’re going to lose. But, even still, that thought gets your heart pumping in the best way. Such a challenge being presented is what you’re starting to crave. You got a taste of it with the Saiyans and now you want more.
A page is suddenly slammed onto your desk, same as everyone else.
“Quick review! Write down what you heard!” Oobleck shouts as he speeds around the room. “Regular testing leads to strong minds! Strong Huntsmen!”
You stare blankly at the page. “Uh…”
“Were you not paying attention?” The boy beside you whispers.
“I was thinking of stuff,” you look to him and chuckle.
He’s a fairly built individual with spikey blonde hair and a tattoo of miscellaneous marks running from his cheek down his neck. There are two boys and one girl beside him, all interested in what their fellow student is saying.
“Then write that down. Better than a blank page.”
“I guess,” you grab the pencil and follow his advice. You write down everything you thought about the Saiyans, about your own power, and about your allies.
The student beside you watches you go off but is unable to really read it thanks to your handwriting. He looks to his friends with a smile.
“Looks like we have someone to play with.”
You keep writing until Oobleck steals everyone’s papers once again.
“Thank you, students. Mm,” he starts flipping through them, reading at speeds you didn’t think possible. “Yes, I can see some students who were paying attention,” he looks to one crowd. “And some who haven’t,” surprisingly it wasn’t you he stares at. He takes a few moments to go through the rest of the papers but stops about halfway. He squints, reading it slower before looking at you.
“This wasn’t a journal entry assignment,” Oobleck squints. “But it’s interesting. You have made your place in history, however obscure, so you’ll be marked for it.”
“Place in history?”
“What is he talking about?”
“Hey, (Y/N), right?” The one beside you pipes up again.
“Yeah,” you eagerly smile back.
“What does he mean?”
“Well, last year I-“
“Enough of that!” Oobleck cuts you off. “We’re here to learn about distant history, not recent. Maybe another time, (Y/N)?”
“Oh, of course!” You bow your head. “No need to worry about me, teach!”
The student beside you squints, unsure what to make of this.
“Hey, Topaz,” one boy beside him speaks. “What’s up? You look all weird, man.”
“No, just…” He looks back at you. “Hm… last year…” He elbows you. “Hey, I noticed you weren’t addressing the teacher properly.”
“Huh?” You raise a brow. “What do you mean?”
Topaz holds in a chuckle. “Well, people don’t like to do it cause it makes everyone else seem worse, but it’s extremely respectful to refer to people as ‘shithead.’”
“Really? I’ve never heard that term before.”
The people behind you start to chuckle, disbelieving what their peer is doing and that you’re accepting it.
“Yeah. If you want to make a good impression I’d do that.”
“Oooh, okay!” You smile. “I wasn’t here very much last year so I must’ve missed it. Thanks, uh… what was your name?”
“Topaz, leader of team TREE.”
“Thanks, shithead!”
The same group laughs even harder after that while Topaz merely sighs. “I… thanks,” he huffs and looks away. “That wasn’t meant for me.”
“Great plan, Topaz,” his friend laughs.
“Shut up, Ruber!”
Ruber, a student with magenta-like short hair, reddish-blue eyes, and a skin tone that’s nearly as pale as Weiss. Like everyone else, he’s in his school uniform which is a bit too big for him due to his extremely slim physique. The other members of Topaz’s team, a brother and sister duo Eminence and Ecru, a girl with purple-tinted hair and eyes along with a boy with sandy hair and matching eyes.
“What are you two looking at?”
“Nothing… shithead,” Ecru snickers.
“What did you say??” Topaz slams his desk.
“Why would you get mad at a compliment?” You tilt your head.
“Calm down, students!” Oobleck demands. “I am teaching, unless you wish to teach. Do you, sir?” He suddenly appears before Topaz.
“N-No,” Topaz crosses his arms and looks away.
“Then please remain quiet.”
And so, Topaz and his team remain mostly silent, only bickering amongst each other every so often. Surprisingly, the class ends rather quickly. Likely because you weren’t paying much attention. You started doing some mental training that really enveloped your attention. You pack up nothing since you brought nothing and head for the door. Other students are speaking with one another, laughing or annoyed at each other. You jump to the door and wave at the professor.
“See you next time, shithead!” You proudly shout before heading out the door.
The entire class remains silent, slowly looking over to Oobleck as he’s absolutely perplexed by what he was called. His face makes the students start laughing, especially Topaz.
“So… he is an idiot?”
“Don’t tease the kid,” Eminence scolds. “If he was here last year that means he failed. Let him try.”
“He did not fail,” Oobleck corrects, standing behind Topaz. “He simply didn’t attend,” and with that, the professor speeds out of the room.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“WOOHOO!” You cheer in the middle of the arena. “This is my favourite class.”
“Please sit down, (Y/N),” Glynda peers at you.
“Oh, right!” You jump to the stands with the rest of your class.
“You’re a fighter?”
“Ah, I more go with martial artist but, yeah, I do like fighting a lot.”
The other classmates are all armoured up and ready to train. You’re well aware that most of these people won’t give you as much of a thrill as team RWBY, but you’re hoping to be surprised. You can’t get the thought of someone in Atlas being nearly as strong as the Saiyans out of your head. If someone like that showed up, maybe there’s another person here who’s just as strong. So, while you want to really fight you’re very interested in what the others can do. For the first time in a long time, you’ll sit back and watch without complaint.
“Why don’t we go first, then? Spar with me or one of my teammates?”
“Why are you including us in this?” His team says in unison.
“You won’t be fighting him,” Glynda speaks up.
“What?” The student complains. “Why?
“There’s no need,” she dismisses him. “He is not a proper opponent for your level.”
“Heh,” he crosses his arms and smiles. “I did do well on the test.”
“That was not a compliment for you, Topaz,” Glynda quickly shoots down.
“What was that!” He stands up and slams his fist against the railing. “He can’t even spell complete!”
“You don’t know- oh yeah,” you rub the back of your head. “I don’t really know how to spell words that well. Good thing you guys were there last class!” You smile at him. “You had my back,” you end with a thumbs up.
“It wasn’t made…” Topaz sighs.
“Can’t break that spirit. It’s commendable,” Eminence snickers.
“Everyone’s ready, right?” You look around the room. “I can’t wait to watch!”
“A surprise to hear that,” Glynda says with her eyes closed. “Very well, do we have any volunteers before I choose?”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“Lunchtime, lunchtime,” you repeat to yourself as you happily strut towards the cafeteria.
“Hey, (Y/N)!” Coco waves, leading her team towards you. “Looking good. Second-year?”
“Hey everyone!” You wave, to which most respond in kind. “Thanks. Oh, you mean my outfit?” At this point, your uniform is mostly torn. You’re lucky Goodwitch didn’t see it. “Yeah, these things aren’t comfy,” you end with a laugh.
“You could ask for a different size,” Velvet brings up.
“Oh, yeah, I guess. But I never had the chance. I restarted this year. Still at the beginning,” you say with no hints of regret.
“Really?” Coco leans on her hip. “Well, if you need tips then feel free to ask. Velvet has actually started tutouring the new guys.
“Really?” You look to the Faunus and smile. “I’d love to get some help from you! That’s the only part I suck at.”
“The… educational part?”
“Yeah, hahaha,” you say with a toothy grin.
“Well, are you doing anything tonight?” Coco initiates. “We were going to do a little team training but I think we can spare Velvet.”
“Is that wise, Coco?” Yatsuhashi finally speaks up.
“Yeah, it’s no worries,” she waves him off. “We gotta help out, right? And we know this guy needs to graduate. We know how strong he is.”
“I am pretty strong,” you cross your arms and nod.
From a distance, team TREE passes by. Their leader has his eyes glued to you.
“Why do you care so much, Topaz?” Ruber asks. “Never seen you like this.”
“I just don’t get it,” Topaz shakes his head. “He’s an absolute buffoon and yet he’s casually laughing with team CFVY.”
“He’s charismatic,” Eminence says, not bothering to look in your direction. “People like him.”
“I’m charismatic!” Topaz retorts.
The woman snickers. “Alright there, leader, don’t get so defensive.”
“Hey, (Y/N)!” Ruby shouts, waving in front of her team and JNPR.
“Even more… wait, that’s Pyrrha Nikos!” Topaz points.
“And team RWBY. He has infamous friends,” Ruber points out.
Topaz squints at your group, all talking and laughing. “I don’t get him… he knows these people, he’s apparently too skilled for us… and he’s an idiot. Why is he even here?”
“Cause he’s strong,” Eminence shrugs, now in front of Topaz with the rest of his team. “Grimm are powerful. The stronger the Huntsman, the better.”
“Don’t worry about him, leader,” Ecru finally talks. “Just be the best you can be!”
“How inspirational, little brother,” Eminence smirks. “You sure you’re the leader?”
“Shut up,” Topaz remarks.
“Oh, hey!” You notice the group and wave. “Those are my new friends!”
“We’ve been spotted,” Ruber speaks.
“Seems so,” Ecru nods.
“Evasive maneuvers, captain?” Eminence asks.
“You’re all making fun of me,” Topaz’s face drops.
Team TREE hurries away while the leader is constantly pestered by their teammates. You smile and wave until they enter the cafeteria.
“Man, they’re true shitheads. You guys are too,” you smile at the three teams.
They all look at you with utter confusion. Coco can’t help but laugh a bit, assuming you don’t even know what that means, Ruby and Velvet seem a bit offended by the word, while Yang is already cracking her knuckles.
“What did you say?” Her hair flairs up while her eyes change.
“I… shitheads!” You repeat. “It’s a word of respect! I learned it today,” you confidently nod. “I said it to Ms. Goodwitch and Professor Oobleck before I left… I bet they were real proud of me for using such a high-class word,” you close your eyes and not twice.
“(Y/N),” Weiss shakes her head. “As someone who comes from the upper class-“
“We know,” Blake whispers.
“Hey!” Weiss frowns. “Look, that’s-“
Your stomach rumbles louder than Weiss’ voice. You place a hand on your stomach and laugh.
“Well, looks like I need food!” You start running towards the building of nourishment. “I’ll try to learn more words this year!” You shout.
The three teams look between each other.
“You gonna tell him?” Coco looks to RWBY.
“Yeah,” Yang rubs the bridge of her nose. “I’ll do it. Where did he even learn that word?”
“Maybe he heard it in the halls and interpreted it wrong,” Blake offers.
“It would be best to ask,” Pyrrha nods. “And soon. If he already spoke with teachers about this then I fear what’s to come.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You chow down at your own table, plates upon plates of food piling atop of the desk. It’s a focal point in the room that nobody can ignore. Even if they could, the sound of your eating rivals a pack of growling Beowolves. It doesn’t help that you thanked the food providers with “shithead.”
The two teams immediately spot the giant mountain of plates you’ve formed.
“He’s eaten that much already?” Jaune hunches over in shock.
“It’s quite an impressive feat,” Ren gives credit. “Considering how much energy he outputs during… everything.”
“I wanna eat with him!” Nora shouts before running towards you.
“Wait, Nora!” Ren attempts to catch her shoulder but misses.
The girl speeds past all the tables before jumping onto your table and then onto the seat.
“Holy moly! All this food!”
“You want some?” You manage to say with a full mouth.
“You bet!” Nora grabs a bowl and joins you in your feast.
“She’s encouraging him,” Yang shakes her head. “How do they even have that much food?”
“Maybe it’s for him?” Ruby shrugs.
“Would they do that?” Yang looks over at her sister.
“I would think saving the world deserves limitless food,” Weiss adds.
“WE DID TOO!” Ruby violently waves her arms in the air. “Where’s our food?”
Team TREE watches from their table, completely astounded at your food intake.
“He’s not human,” Topaz remarks.
“I believe that’s clear,” the siblings say in accidental unison. “Jinx!” They point at one another. “Jinx again!” They throw their other hand forward.
Topaz lays himself down on the table, looking towards the mountain. He moans in frustration.
You set your last bowl down and let out a mighty belch.
“Ooooh, that was good.”
“Good afternoon, (Y/N).”
“GAH!” You jump forward and turn around, crashing into the bowl mountain. They all fall atop and around you, breaking and cracking upon hitting the ground.
Ozpin remains calm as he watches many of his school’s bowls shatter along the ground or on your head. The entire room sits in silence, watching as the bowls fall. Soon enough, there’s complete silence. Ozpin’s brow remains high as he looks at you, a bowl perfectly sat on your wild hair.
“Hehe… hehe,” you close your eyes, smile wide, and start laughing. “Sorry about that,” you grab the bowl off your head and set it beside you.
“Well… the bowls can be fixed. Ms. Goodwitch is on her way now,” Ozpin shuffles his collar. “So no need to fret there. Though, I believe you wouldn’t have anyway,” he says under his breath.
“So, what do ya need?”
“He’s so casual with the Headmaster.”
“Is he going to get in trouble?”
“He should. Look at that mess!”
“What do you think, Topaz,” the female team member asks.
“Why ask me?” He rolls his head around to face the speaker.
“You seem to have a sudden interest in him.”
“Psh,” Topaz rolls his head again to watch your interaction. “Shut up…”
“Well, I’ve had quite a few reports of some… inappropriate behaviour from you.”
“Really?” You tilt your head, the minor motion being enough to make another bowl crash. “Oops, but, really?” You focus once more. “I thought I was being super nice today!”
“Unfortunately not. Many teachers have said you were using vulgar language.”
“What… does that mean?” You nervously laugh. “I’m sorry. I guess school is a good idea. I never heard these words back home or at Master Roshi’s.”
“Understandable,” Ozpin bows his head. “I assumed you meant no harm. As did the others. Please, let's discuss this more in my office,” he gestures towards the door. “The rest of you may proceed as you were. Ms. Goodwitch will clean up shortly.”
“What was a bad word?” You hop off the table and scratch your head. “All I’ve been saying that’s different is shithead, but that’s a nice word.”
Topaz hides his face in his arms, half screaming in frustration.
“Coming back to bite you, huh?”
“Shut… up!”
“Well, (Y/N),” Ozpin clears his throat. “That’s the word.”
“What?” You exclaim. “I was told it was a word for those you respect!”
The cafeteria laughs at your ignorance.
“I don’t get it,” Weiss shakes her head. “He’s not stupid… but he doesn’t know that… said word is bad?”
“If you don’t know, you don’t know,” Blake shrugs. “Clearly he hasn’t been told what’s a bad word and what’s not.”
“Dad used to eat a cookie in front of me when I said something bad,” Ruby crossed her arms at the memory.
“Oh yeah,” Yang chuckles. “I remember that. It wasn’t that often.”
“It still hurt, Yang!” Ruby shouts, holding her heart. “The pain… I can feel it to this day.”
Yang pushes her sister over, causing Ruby to dramatically fall to the ground.
“The pain… the pain,” she barely whispers.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“Really? There’s that many?” You scratch your chin while floating in Ozpin’s office. “So many words… I had no idea…”
“Indeed. Clearly, you misunderstood some of the words yourself.”
“Yeah,” you say, completely upside down at this point. “I didn’t know damn and hell was bad. I thought they were just expressions. I’ve even heard bastard before, but…” You spin around and let yourself drop to the floor. “I’m sorry. Really sorry. I had no idea. I feel really bad now.”
“It’s quite alright,” Ozpin raises his hand and smiles. “You were unaware. As long as you now know they aren’t words to use lightly.”
“Okay, I won’t,” you say with a certain face. “I promise. I’m going to go apologize to all the professors right now!” You say before running towards the elevator.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You and Velvet sit on the upper level of the library. Three stacks of papers are around you with seven individual ones in front of you.
“This… this is the basic stuff?” You moan briefly before slamming your head onto the desk.
“I-It’s only been two hours,” Velvet speaks with a weak voice. “I’m sure you can do it. How about we recap. What do you remember?”
You slam your head on the desk two more times, attracting the attention of a few students around you. This causes Velvet to curl in on herself a bit.
“Hey, you’re being loud.”
“Sorry,” you lift your head and sigh. “I just can’t focus. This is so boring. How have you done this for three years?”
“W-Well, I’m with my team all the time so that’s nice. I also enjoy learning, but for someone like you, who doesn’t, I can see how difficult it can be.”
You get off the chair and start floating above the table, resting your hands behind your head. “Teammates, huh? That makes it better?”
“I found it does. I think all teams work together to keep each other focused.”
You start spinning around, just gathering the attention of even more onlookers. “And you help teach others too?”
“I do, yes,” Velvet nods. “I find it satisfying when I can help other people learn.”
“How do you do it?” You drop beside her and lean in close. “How do you teach?”
“Clearly not effectively,” Velvet gauges at the progress, or lack thereof, that you’ve made.
“So you have to enjoy what you’re doing, want to help others do it…”
“And be good at teaching,” Velvet adds. “It’s not simple. You have to find ways to get others engaged, make sure they’re learning, not force your style upon them-“
Velvet continues to list all of the methods she’s learned over the past two years of tutoring but it all goes in one ear and out the other.
“Master Roshi does enjoy helping us train. He also enjoys young women too… I wonder if he ever did anything with them?”
“(Y/N)?” Velvet waves her hand in front of you.
“Velvet, you genius,” you grab her hand and stare into her eyes. “I know exactly what to do now!”
Velvet shivers for a moment, unsure of what you mean or what you’re going to do. “Are… you going to study now?”
“Nope,” you shake your head and start running towards the edge. “I’m doing it Velvet!” You jump off the edge and glide towards the exit. “I’M DOING IT!”
Velvet looks off the railing and watches you leave the building. She sighs before gazing back at the work that hasn’t been done.
“I don’t think he’s learned anything…”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Ozpin finishes up the last of his paperwork for the day. After setting all in a neat pile to be delivered tomorrow, he suddenly hears a knock on his window. Taking in a short breath, he already knows who it is. He spins around on his chair and spots you, waving and smiling with your scroll in a free hand. Ozpin’s scroll starts to ring which is immediately answers.
“How may I help you, (Y/N)?”
“I’m taking you up on your offer! I’m going to start that club class thing,” you nod with each word.
“Lovely to hear. How about you come in and we discuss-“
“Actually, I’m going to hang out at the Kame House for a bit. Observe Master Roshi and see how I do things.”
“Will… you be attending class?”
“Nope, this is my time to learn!”
“That’s class time, (Y/N).”
“I’m in class, kind of. Thank you for the idea, Ozpin! It’ll be great!”
“(Y/N)-“
You end the call and fly off into the dark sky. Ozpin slowly sets his scroll down and sighs. “I suppose I shouldn’t be surprised. I’ll have to let his professors know.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
In no time at all, you reach the Kame House in the middle of the ocean. You land on the soft sand only to be greeted by Turtle.
“Hey buddy,” you say while you pass by. “Good to see you again.”
You push open the door and find the Turtle Hermit sitting in front of his TV.
“Oh, (Y/N)! Good to see you. Bring any of your, eh, hehe, lady friends?” He says with a growing smile.
“Oh, no, I’m here on my own.”
His smile immediately diminishes. “I see. So… what are you here for?”
“I’m going to be starting my own tutoring thing at school. Teaching martial arts and ki control.”
“Is that so?” Roshi responds with a bit of intrigue.
“Yeah, but I don’t know much about teaching. I was hoping to watch you teach the guys to get some more pointers.”
“Doesn’t matter how strong you get, there’s always something to learn from ol’ Roshi.”
“Of course,” you step further into the room and sit across the table from him. “You’re my Master. I could never not learn from you.”
“Well,” Roshi rubs his hands together. “This isn’t normal. So, I’m going to need some time with one of your female friends.”
“Oh, sure,” you nod. “After I’m ready I’m sure I can bring you back or something.”
“Hehe… HAHAHA!” Roshi locks eyes with you, his glasses shining across the way. “Get ready.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
One Week Later…
You land back in the courtyard of Beacon, a whole new repertoire in your pocket.
“Hello there,” Ozpin says.
“Gah!” You spin around and hop back, recognizing Ozpin now in front of you. “Oh, hey! I… didn’t sense you,” you speak with perplexion. “Ah well, good to see you.”
“You as well,” Ozpin bows his head. “You’re far behind on your schooling.”
“I can catch up,” you wave off. “But I’m super ready for this teaching thing.”
“Indeed, indeed,” Ozpin gestures towards the school. “Come, let's go. We can talk as we walk.”
“Oh, sure!” You wait for him to pass you before matching his speed.
“I’m unsure why you had to leave for this, but if you’re going to be teaching I would prefer it be as thorough as possible.”
“I learned a lot! I think I’m ready! So, how do I start it all? Do I just sorta say it, or?”
“We’ve prepared one announcement and a classroom for you to use. The rest is up to you.”
“Awesome,” you nod. “So Friday?”
“Indeed, Port’s classroom will be open and ready for you every Friday.”
“Cool, cool, cool!” You repeat. “This is going to be so much fun. I’m gonna be the best teacher ever!”
“I’m sure you will,” Ozpin replies with a chuckle. “Now, classes aren’t all over. You should be getting to it.”
“Oh… oh…” Your face droops. “Right. I’ll, uh, get there right away!” You say before bursting off the ground and gliding towards the deeper parts of the academy.”
Ozpin can’t help but be amused at your antics. “Perhaps our students will be strong enough if he aids them. But…” Ozpin looks to the sky. “Mm… no, this will be perfect. He’ll grow in time.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Dr. Gero takes a seat as he gazes upon his twenty pods, only about half of them occupied. He smiles at the success and variety of his projects so far. Prototypes for infinite energy, absorption, multi-celled, so many ideas he’s had for this new wave of defenders for Atlas. Perhaps, if all goes well and the bugs are ironed out, he’ll use this project on himself. Perhaps even his soldier son.
The clicking of heels alerts Gero to the presence of his fellow scientist.
“How’s the work going?” A woman stops beside him, leaning on the chair, and handing Gero a steaming cup.
“Well, so far. Wheelo is providing lots of helpful data… but he wants his reward,” Gero look up at the woman – fairly tall with heels to augment it, curvaceous, bushy auburn hair and brown eyes shielded with glasses. She has a lab coat on, like Gero, with a short blue and red dress, the colour separates in squares, and black tights. She has hoop earrings and a gold ring on her ring finger.
“The Saiyan?” She assumes.
“Yes… and I don’t see that as a bad thing. If Wheelo took that body we’d be able to perform test far easier.”
“But,” the woman smirks, goading more out of the man.
“But it’s going to be difficult to do that… under the radar.”
“So contact him privately,” she moves in front of him. “Maybe find something to lure him there.”
“But Ozpin-“
“If you take his body, Ozpin can be fooled. Plus,” the woman turns away and starts walking along the pods. “If you keep out of it entirely, it can’t be traced back to you.”
Gero nods. “You’re right. I’ll keep in contact with Wheelo and formulate something.”
“You do that. I’ll continue the work on your cyborgs. But, perhaps tinkering with our ten, for now, is best. You never know what could come now that we know otherworldly beings exist,” she looks over her shoulder at Gero. “And what kind of creations we can muster.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“Haha, did you hear it!” You land behind RWBY at the cafeteria table.
“GAH!” The four girls shriek.
“What?” You take a seat beside Blake, who was at the end.
JNPR laughs at the reaction.
“What?” You look to them.
“They didn’t see you,” Ren speaks.
“But they could sense me.”
“WE DIDN’T!” The four shout.
“Gah, okay!” You stabilize yourself, nearly falling over from the force of their combined voices. “But I have something awesome to tell you!”
“Okay, what is it?” Ruby shivers.
“Okay!” You hop off the seat and stand at the head of the table. “I’m sure you heard during announcements!”
“We have those?” The red and yellow sisters look at each other.
“Oh, I remember,” Pyrrha speaks. “You’re starting an after school activity!”
“Yep!” You nod happily. “I get to teach the school about Ki and stuff! I even went back to Master Roshi and remembered how to get taught!”
“Oh, that’s where you were,” Jaune pipes up.
“That sounds awesome!” Yang cheers. “I’d be down to show off what we got and learn even more! You guys should come!” She looks at JNPR.
“It was Friday, correct?” Pyrrha looks for affirmation from you.
“Yep,” you nod.
“We can’t,” Jaune sighs. “We have a mission. Won’t be back until Sunday.”
“Awww,” you slouch. “That’s okay! I’ll give you guys private lessons! Or maybe I won’t be able to! There’s gonna be so many people there!”
“You think they would come?” Weiss inquires.
“Why not? People have seen me fight! I guess they’ve seen you four. To be that strong is why everyone is here, right?”
“And the education,” Weiss retorts.
“That’s not true, look at me,” you proudly point at yourself. “I don’t do any school work.”
“That’s not something you should be proud of,” Blake shakes her head while the other students mirror her movements.
“Blegh, whatever,” you wave them off. “But you four should come! It’ll be super awesome! We could make posters or something! Examples! STUFF!” You throw your hands in the air, hopping a little.
“Well, with that enthusiasm how can we say no?” Ruby nods. “We’ll do some arts and crafts!”
“YEAH!” You say with the same cheery attitude. “Maybe we can do a little example too! Yang, Blake, you two could fight and talk about how you got that strong!”
Blake hunches over and sighs. “I suppose. I haven’t been keeping sharp lately.”
“REALLY?” You slam your hands down and get in her face, causing the Faunus to retract. “I haven’t been a good teacher at all,” you push back and cross your arms. “Nope, that’s it,” you shake your head. “I’m going to train all of you. That’ll be the demonstration. I have to make sure you’re all sparkly! No rust here!”
“I’m almost scared of his enthusiasm,” Jaune whispers.
“It’s certainly a power of its own,” Weiss nods.
“YEAH!” Nora sumo slams beside you. “NO RUST!”
“YEAH!” You high five her. “Nora, I’m gonna make you tough.”
“YEAH!”
“YEAH!”
“RIGHT NOW,” Nora pats her chest. “COME ON, BIG BANANA! LET’S DO IT!”
“YEAH!” You and Nora rush outside, immediately going back to the arena to train.
RWBY, JPR, and other surrounding students are lets confused by the interaction.
“They’re on a whole different level,” Ren calmly speaks.
“Definitely.” Everyone else nods.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Three Days Until First Class…
You and Ruby lay on the largest table in the library, construction paper of all colours, glue, paint, and markers are scattered about.
“What do you think about this one?” Ruby sits up and reveals a bright red and blue poster with little stick people flying in the air and shooting yellow blasts. The header reads, “(Y/N) Ultra Awesome Ki Control! You’ll Blow Your Enemies Away!”
“That looks awesome!” You excitedly nod. “Here’s mine!”
You reveal a rather crudely done poster with little colour coordination or neatness. It’s just terribly cut out letters spelling out, “Come learn how to become super strong!”
“That’s… something!” Ruby nods. “It’ll definitely work.”
“Sweet,” you set the poster to the side. “Now we gotta make a bunch more!”
“Right!” Ruby flops back down and gets back to her arts and crafts.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Two Days Until First Class…
You and Blake fly from pole to pole, building to building, taping and gluing all the posters you and Ruby made the previous day. Every time someone slows down to read your posters you rush up to them.
“Hey! Friday! You should come and get strong!”
“R-Right,” they say before walking even faster.
“Yeah, got another one.”
Blake shakes her head as she tapes up her designated poster.
“Are you the teacher?” A male walks by.
“No,” she bluntly replies. “But I’ll be there.”
“Heh, sounds good,” he ends with a wink before walking away.
Blake rolls her shoulders and shutters. “Great.”
“You brought someone in?” You zoom over to her.
“You… could say that.”
“I knew you’d be the model for this!” You pat her shoulder before flying back to your dwindling pile of posters.
“I’m honestly surprised he knows what a model is,” Blake whispers before returning to her work. “But his excitement is quite contagious. I wonder how it’s influencing them?” She eyes the dozens of students walking by with mixed looks.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
One Day Until First Class…
Ruby stands on two milk cartons with a megaphone, gathering in anyone who’s passing by. You, Yang, Blake, and Weiss stand on the large patch of grass that you’ve decided to use as a base for the demonstration. Coco and Velvet, who offered to help, are handing out smaller flyers Weiss took upon herself to make.
“Come one, come all! We have a great demonstration of how you’ll end up after attending (Y/N)’s afterschool program!” She points to you, to which you wave in response. “Maybe you have some doubt,” Ruby looks back to the crowd. “Maybe you think he just looks too innocent and adorable and clueless to teach anything.”
You tilt your head and raise a brow. “Did she just-“
“Not now,” Yang places a finger over your mouth.
Team TREE enters the massive crowd to see the demonstration.
“So we’re finally gonna see what they’ve been preaching all week,” Topaz comments.
“I can’t wait. If they have RWBY and CVFY then he has to have some merit,” Eminence replies.
“We’ll see,” Topaz shakes his head. “Maybe he’s really just a shithead.”
“That’s pretty polite of you, leader,” the woman smirks.
“Oh zip it,” he hisses.
“Okay!” Ruby hops of the cartons. “Are we ready?”
“For sure,” you start stretching your legs. “These four have been taught similarly to how I’ll teach any of you,” you say loud and clear. “So just keep that in mind. You four, just come at me. I need to gauge how much power I’m gonna use. We gotta make sure it’s a good demonstration, right?”
“Of course,” Yang nods. “Alright,” the four get into a fighting stance and flare up their power, inciting a powerful wave of air around them.
It whips your hair and clothes around, making you smile. “Yeah, this’ll be fun,” you nod before getting into your own signature stance. “Come on, let’s show them what we got!”
The four members of Team RWBY all leap forward, flying across the ground, and start throwing their attacks. Ruby and Weiss are on the sides, keeping in the air while Blake and Yang are more in front of you and on the ground. Their barrage forces you to start moving back while you dodge and block their attacks. You look over to the crowd to ensure they’re following. You know there’s a point that you’ll become too fast for them to see, so briefly observing their behaviour will help. But, showing that you can move that fast may also attract them.
With that train of thought, you disappear from the audience’s view and relocate for RWBY. They all look up and behind them, chasing you down into the air to continue fighting.
“They’re flying? They can do that?”
“Yes!” You duck under a punch and then catch Yang’s. “That’s something I’ll be- gah!” Blake hammerfists you back down to the ground.
You curl into a ball, spinning, and then land pleasantly. “I can teach you to fly- WHOA!” You strafe to the side, avoiding Yang’s groundbreaking punch. The dirt flies up on impact, causing a small smokescreen for everyone else. The three other girls soar around you, attempting to put some extra doubt in your mind while Yang pursues you.
“This is great,” you block both of Yang’s fist. “I think they like it!”
“Yeah,” she ducks under one of your kicks. “We gotta end it big!”
“That’s the best thing you’ve ever said!” You say before blitzing Yang with a kick, knocking her a few feet back on her butt.
You disappear from the public’s perspective and attack the three others. They too reach speeds that are impossible to follow. They all look around, only able to see Yang rubbing her head.
“W-Was he always this fast?” Topaz remarks.
“It’s amazing, right?” Another student responds to him. “Did you see him save Mistral?”
“Save… Mistral?” He repeats.
“I can’t wait to learn from him!”
Shockwaves erupt from the sky which catches the students off-guard. All over the sky, the collisions of fist and foot cause such destructive waves. After one, Weiss is sent flying down beside Yang. The same soon happens to Blake and Ruby. You hover in the air, visible again, and cross your arms.
“Thank you so much for attending this brief demonstration,” you speak to the crowd while RBWY recovers. “There’s still one more thing I want to show you! Hey girls!” The four, now on their feet, look to you. “Ki! Just fire some at me!”
“That sounds easy,” Weiss raises her hand to fire some smaller yellow ones.
Yang and Ruby follow suit, the three firing a massive barrage of small yellow blasts.
“WHOA! What is that?” The crowd becomes awestruck.
You smirk before beginning to knock them away, aiming towards the dock so they’ll all go the water.
Blake remains hesitant, looking down at her hands. “Hey, (Y/N)!” She shouts. “Should we show them something else?”
You knock the last blast away and cross your arms. “What do you mean? Kaioken? That’s a bit much.”
“We don’t even know the Kaioken,” Yang brings up.
“We can’t even do his Kamehameha yet,” Weiss adds.
Blake exhales through her nose. You can tell there’s something on her mind. “Blake, do whatever it is.”
The other members of RWBY give Blake some space. The girl slides her leg back and extends the opposite arm. A blue glow, starting from the hand, overtakes her body to show a collection of special Ki. She takes in a deep breath before lowering her body and entering a horse stance. She extends her arms to either side and slowly moves them clockwise, one moving above and the other going below. “Ka… Me…” Once they’re vertically aligned, she slowly connects her palms. She lowers her hands to her hip, causing an electric blue glow to surround her hands.
It’s just like Master Roshi.
You can’t help but smile at the sight. Even the other members of RWBY are surprised. None of them could do the Kamehameha when they left the Kame House.
“Ha… Me…”
“What’s in her hand?”
“It’s surrounding them! Is she going to explode or something?”
“Mine used to be like that too! Well,” you move your hands to your side. “Let’s put on a big finale, huh?” Unlike Blake’s electric surrounding, a shining blue ball forms between your hands. “Alright, Blake, let's see how you do!”
Blake throws her hands forward. “HAAAAAAAAAAAA!” A similar blue ball explodes in her hands, holding for a moment before blasting forward like a beam.
“HAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAA!” You mirror her movements, unleashing a far larger beam towards hers.
The powerful beams knock over everyone around, even the other members of RWBY. The blue colour overwhelms the air, shading everything like your beams. You can tell how much power Blake has when your beam pushes against hers.
Blake… you’ve been practicing a lot. This Kamehameha is pretty strong. You really surprised me.
Blake is sweating, her arms shaking at the pressure of your Kamehameha. She’s well aware that you’re allowing her to even match up to your blast. But this is also a great test to see how much more she needs to train.
You notice that your blast is tearing apart the ground below, knocking over the trees, breaking apart the columns and buildings around. You stop your Kamehameha and stand strong as Blake’s beam collides with your body. Smoke billows as bits of energy dissipate. Blake lowers her hands, staring up at the smoke.
“Oh my god! He got hit!”
“Is he okay?”
“Did she just kill him?”
The four girls turn the crowd, not a hint of worry on their faces.
“I guess that’s another thing you’ll learn,” Weiss pipes up. “Sensing.”
“Sensing?” A few people whisper.
“Being able to tell where people are,” you speak as the smoke starts to clear. “And how much Ki they have. It’s useful when fighting, looking for people,” you descend to the ground in front of RWBY. “Bunch of stuff,” you end with a nod. “So, make sure to drop by my class on Friday!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
The broken moon shines brightly over the darkness of Remnant. Most have retreated to their rooms for some downtime, sleep, or work. You, however, have different plans. You’re in the middle of a forest, standing in front of a giant stone with names carved into it. This is a slightly better experience than last time. Though, even that’s debatable. Before, you were confused, sore, so much information was being thrown at you that you didn’t have time to process. You were outcast and yelled at when you were here before, but now…
You drag your fingers down the stone, feeling the etchings of Crystal and Lucent’s names on the tips. You haven’t approached this place since you transformed the first time. You can’t even imagine how they felt when they saw that… and the moment of thought they had when you completely disintegrated them. Your Ki flares up unintentionally, sending wind spiraling everywhere. It doesn’t, however, affect the tears falling down your face.
“I’m… so sorry… all of you. If I could ever…”
You take a step back, eyes drifting to the base of the stone. “I hope that this class makes certain something like this never happens again. You guys… even the student who died when Kakarot came… if I can get everyone to be as strong as me, or at least like RWBY, then maybe I won’t have to worry. Plus,” you say with a sad smile. “Then I’ll… have people to train. Who knows, maybe they’ll be stronger than me.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“When did you learn how to do the Kamehameha?” Ruby chases Blake around the room.
“I-I was just practicing the Ki control and copied how that old pervert did it.”
“Why didn’t you tell any of us?” Yang says from her bed, watching the sight before her.
“I didn’t think…” Blake holds Ruby back. “It mattered… and I thought… you guys,” Blake pushes Ruby back, knocking the girl onto her butt. “Were practicing it too.”
“I… haven’t,” Ruby admits, rolling into a sitting position. “I guess I’ve been bad.”
“I have, a bit…” Yang rubs the back of her hair.
“I have too, but mostly focusing on my dust.”
“Then that’s why,” Blake crosses her arms. “I’ve been practicing every day since the Saiyans.”
“Really?” Ruby sways from side to side. “Wow… I need to step up my game. I think you’re training even more than (Y/N).”
“No,” the other three reply.
“But he always takes breaks. I remember he said that’s important,” Ruby rolls onto her back, still cross-legged.
“I suppose,” Blake nods. “I hope his class goes well. He’s been very excited about it.”
“It’s been fun to see,” Weiss nods. “I only think he has that much fun when training.”
“He is an interesting person to watch,” Yang lays back on her bed. “Little dense, but it’s cute.”
The three other girls raise a brow and look over at her. “Cute, huh?”
“Heh,” Yang looks over at her friends. “Yeah… passion is fun to watch. Like Blake and fish.”
‘Hey!”
The girls all laugh, but a sudden feeling silences them all.
“Is that (Y/N)?” Ruby speaks, her face as serious as the others.
“Yeah… but I can’t sense anything else,” Blake says with her eyes closed. “Maybe he’s training?”
“Probably,” Weiss nods. “Thought he would get some rest.”
“Let’s hope he gets some sleep. I doubt he would even go to class if he didn’t sleep,” Weiss nods.
“Haha, yeah,” Yang nods. “Hopefully he’s okay. It was just a brief flare. Usually, he raises it for longer. Ha,” Yang shifts in place. “Better watch my words.”
“Why?” Ruby looks to Yang, but her sister doesn’t respond. “Why!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“Finally,” you stretch your arms. “Classes are so boring. No, I can have some fun. I should grab some beans before class, just in case I go too far,” you end with a chuckle.
You flair your aura and speed into the air, completely ignoring the fact you were in the middle of a crowd. But, at this point, the new first years are getting used to your abilities.
“Are we going to his class?”
“I kind of want to. Flying? That’s awesome!”
“We wouldn’t need to wait for a ship!”
“Right?”
“Maybe I won’t be the weakest in class.”
“That’s true.”
“Hey!”
“What? You said it!”
Topaz crosses his arms and watches you fly off. “They let an alien here…” Topaz thinks on the information he’s gathered recently. How another man arrived, killed a student, and was fought off by you. How you were recorded transforming into a massive ape and slaughtering innocents. How you fought a massive mutated Leviathan by punching it into space. There’s also the strange reports of the planet shaking, but nobody can tie that to you. By what he’s gathered, there’s no way you weren’t correlated with it. “Hiding that from us…”
He sees you turn back around, seemingly looking for something. You meet his gaze then smile and wave at him. He smirks, giving you a brief chin flick recognition. You clench your fist in front of you in a friendly manner before continuing your path.
I guess it was Topaz. Felt like someone was watching me.
From the crowd, Mercury and Emerald peer at you.
“We really have to keep a watch on this guy?” Mercury whines, stretching his neck.
“Cinder asked us to do it while she’s gone.”
“She’s been gone for so long,” the gray male complains. “When’s she coming back to enact her master plan?” He says with a whimsical tone. “Whatever that is.”
“Mercury,” Emerald scolds.
“Fine, fine,” Mercury surrenders. “Just think it’s dumb. She’s been off with that smoky illusion guy with a while.”
“I get the chills from him,” Emerald admits, looking back to where you were in the sky. “He talks down on everyone as if we’re irrelevant.”
“Show him who’s irrelevant,” Mercury says in a confrontational tone.
“Shut up and let's keep an eye on this little class he’s running.”
“Got it, chief.”
“Ugh,” Emerald rolls her eyes.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You stand in the classroom fifteen minutes before class is scheduled to begin. The class is tidy, there are markers for the board, and you have… nothing. You didn’t bring any sort of papers, study sheets, or homework.
“Talk, then train. Talk, then train,” you bounce in place over and over. “I can do this. I. Can. Do. This!” You punch the air with each word. “Should be easy. I can’t wait for everyone to get here. Man, I couldn’t even get my mind off it while training. I’m gonna make everyone so strong!”
You turn to the door, keeping a wide smile for the minutes that go by until your class is in session. As you thought, RWBY arrives right on time.
“Oh, girls, can you sit at the front?” You point out a spot. “I wanna use you, girls.”
“Use us?” Yang says with a bit of a joking tone. “How so?”
“Oh, just as examples. You’re a goal for other people.”
Yang slouches, pouting that you didn’t pick up on her flirty joke. “Right.”
Ruby simulates shooting down an aircraft.
“You don’t even get what I said.”
“I can hear, Yang!”
“That’s debatable,” Weiss says with a smirk.
“Hey!”
You hop in place, throwing a few swift punches. “Come on, I just want people to get here already. I can barely hold in my excitement!” You hop up in down.
And so, people do show up. Some full teams of new students and old ones, some just coming themselves to see what the commotion is all about, even team TREE makes an appearance. Men and women, humans and Faunus, the entire classroom fills up within five minutes of you waiting. This just brightens your day to no end, and it’s clear by the massive smile on your face. It almost starts to freak out the other students.
“Hello!” You wave at all the new faces. “I… don’t really recognize a lot of you. But that’s okay!”
“Do you need to know our names?” A girl asks while lifting her hand.
“Nope,” you shake your head. “I’m sure I’ll figure it out. If not…” You cross your arms and chuckle. “Well, it’s not a big deal.”
“O-Okay,” she lowers her hand.
“Alright, so lets recap,” you begin pacing. “In this class, you’re going to learn how to use Ki. It can amplify your strength, speed, durability, let you sense other people, use attacks like this,” you hold out your palm and form a small yellow ball. “Depending on how strong you get, this little ball can do a lot.”
“Like what? What can you do?” One man speaks out.
“Me? Well,” you cross your arms. “With the Kamehameha, something a little more advanced…” You spin around on your heel while you think. “I think I’m about… ha!” You snap your fingers. “With some hard training, you may be able to blow up the planet.”
“WHAT?” The class, save RWBY, shout. “The planet! You can do that?”
“Fairly certain, yeah. A better relation is,” you gesture to RWBY. “They’ve been training with Ki for about a year now. They’re good gauges to see how far you can go. So, during our training, make sure to watch them. They can answer some questions you may have too. You’re also going to be learning hand to hand combat. It’s a big part of how I teach, but,” you keep eye contact with different students. “You can use these new skills with whatever weapon you want, maybe even improve your Semblances, but no matter what you’ll learn how to fight with just your body,” you root yourself in place and look to the class. “Any questions?”
Nearly everybody raises their hand. You slouch forward, disappointed. “Nevermind. Questions later. Come on, we’re going outside right away.”
“But we haven’t-“
“OUTSIDE!” You fly off your heel and head for the door. “Come on!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You hover above the class as they all attempt to meditate. You want to test their spiritual connection before continuing the training. You’ll eventually have to build up their bodies as well, but that’ll come after you get a feel for everyone. So far, you haven’t felt any significant Ki from anyone. RWBY is walking around, giving small pointers to people they see struggling. To your surprise, you feel a surge of Ki from the ends. You immediately fly over, a wide smile on your face.
“Hey, you two are doing great!”
Mercury and Emerald open their eyes, smiling up at you. “Thank you! It’s just… such a weird feeling,” Emerald speaks.
“Definitely eye-opening,” Mercury adds.
“Haha!” You pump your fist in the air. “That awesome! Keep trying, everyone!” You run past them to the others attempting. “We’ll be doing this for the next ten minutes!”
Emerald and Mercury share a devious smirk. “Guess we have learned a thing or two from her.”
“And that might make this even easier,” Emerald nods.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“Like this,” you say once more, showing off the same few punches. “Trust me, this is easier than the milk runs,” you relax.
The entire class follows your lead, trying their best to mimic your stance and punches. You cross your arms and watch as most fail to follow a basic routine. At least, what you think is a basic routine.
“Hm…” You examine all their styles. “Nobody is… bad. I think we can work from here. I want everyone to pair up and just spar. Nothing serious, don’t hurt each other. Just practice actually using your body.”
Everyone seems to be tiring a bit, both mentally and physically. The find another person, mostly friends, and find a place to start.
“And don’t worry about being over the top!” You shout. “Just do what you can!”
Topaz approaches you, leaving his team behind. “Can I practice with you?”
“Me?” You point. “Sure, shithead!” You say with closed eyes and a wide smile. “Let’s do it.”
Topaz huffs. “Of course…”
“You know,” you say as he attempts to throw punches at you, which you effortlessly pass by. To you, they’re moving at a snail's pace. “Why did you tell me that word was good? I got in trouble cause of it.”
“Because,” Topaz becomes a little frustrated that you’re just dodging everything he’s throwing. True, he’s not a hand to hand combat but he at least had some training for it. You’re basically spitting in the face of that training. “I thought it’d be funny.”
“Hm,” you become perplexed. “Was it funny?”
“I… think so,” he starts taking steps forward, eliciting you to back up. “It made us laugh.”
“Oh, well,” you catch both his fists and smile at him. “Cool. Just, please, don’t make me say bad stuff again. I don’t want to make anyone mad. But jokes are okay! I can take them.”
Topaz tries his best to free himself from your grasp, but it’s like his hands stuck in stone. “R-Right. I’ll remember.” Because of how much force he’s putting into pulling away when you release Topaz he falls on his back. “Okay, let's keep going then. You’re not doing too bad, but you’ll definitely have to get faster. It’ll come in time. Come on, let’s keep going. I’ll make this more of a spar this time,” you offer your hand.
Topaz begrudgingly takes your hand to get back on his feet.
“Alight,” you raise your hands. “Let’s do it!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“That’s it, everyone,” you stand proud back in the classroom. “Thank you all so much for coming! There’s plenty more to learn if you want to improve, so remember to come back next week!”
The class starts to funnel out, save RWBY who approaches you.
“All things considered, you weren’t half bad,” Weiss compliments.
“I did go to Master Roshi and ask for some tips. Didn’t use all of them though,” you cross your arms and tilt your head to the side. “I didn’t see how those magazines would help anyone.”
“Magazines?” Ruby looks to her sister.
“Don’t worry about it,” Yang quickly dismisses. “I don’t know if everyone will come back, but I think you’ll get a following here.”
“Really? That’s awesome!” You cheer. “I do hope they come back. Could you imagine a bunch of people as strong as you guys? Or Krillin and them back at Kame House? Remnant wouldn’t have a problem with Grimm!”
“I just hope people who become that strong have good intentions,” Blake remarks. “You never know what someone could do.”
“Well, if that happens, I’ll just beat’em,” you end with a wide smile. “So don’t worry. I’m not gonna stop getting stronger either. Plus, from what I can feel, there’s nobody really…” Your voice drifts off as you think of Piccolo. You still don’t know how strong he is. He’s never released enough Ki to gauge it. “Nobody… yeah, not many who’s stronger than I am right now. Plus, you girls are no pushovers either,” you give them a thumbs up. “So if you keep growing there shouldn’t be a problem.”
“Right,” Weiss crosses her arms. “Well… how about we go out for dinner?”
“THAT SOUNDS AWESOME!” You cheer. “I’m starving! Let’s go!” You say before running towards the door.
“H-Hey! Wait up!” The girls chase after you.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“I see…” Gero looks at the screen where team JNPR is unconscious, held in separate cells. “I was not expecting you to take this course, Wheelo.”
“If we’re going to lure him in, we need proper bait,” the robotic voice speaks. “And these students are exactly what we need.”
“I did not recommend this course. I won’t have any part in if something backfires.”
“It won’t. The Saiyan’s body, the strongest body on this planet, will be mine.”
Hey! This is done! Sorry it took so long, school threw every assignment at me within two weeks and I wanted to die. The chapter also ended up being longer than I intended it to be. I just kept writing and, hey, 26 pages. Whatever, I don’t mind. You’re getting another Limitless chapter right after so that’s a positive! I hope you all enjoyed the chapter! As you can see, I’m going to be implementing more of the movies into the story. I guess that was clear with Wheelo and Turles being part of the story, but know that more movie characters will show up later down the line. But, hey, we still have plenty to go. We don’t even know if Dragon Balls are on Remnant!
Again, I hope you all enjoyed! I’ll see you next time!
Want to keep up with me? Know what chapter’s coming out next and the progress of them? Follow me on Twitter! Twitter . com (slash) Chinsangan
Questions? Comments? Concerns? Advice? Send me a message!
I also have a Pa tr eon, if you want to check that out! Pat reon . com (slash) Chinsangan
My Discord is now open! If you want to join, either check my bio for a link, find it on my Twitter, or message me directly!
A special thank you to Patreon supporters: James Tubbs, MazMan, Sassylemons, and Big Genatools
Extra special thanks to Ride The Lightning and Nicholas X Wright!
Thank you guys so much for supporting me! It means the world!
And finally, thank you to the Beta Reader: thenameisntimportant
Chapter 17: The Terror of Dr. Wheelo! A Beacon Rescue!
Chapter Text
Chapter 17: The Terror of Dr. Wheelo! A Beacon Rescue!
The weekend is most student’s favourite set of days. Time to catch up with class, with friends, or simply relax more than you have all week. For you, the weekend is a time for complete uninterrupted training. It also gives you more of a reason to distance yourself from Beacon for even more training potential.
“HAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAA!” Your Ki flares higher and higher, pushing away the water below you with its pressure. “KAAIOOOOOKEN!” The colour of your Ki explodes in red flame. You concentrate your power to reach greater heights, to surpass this current limit. “Times… FIVE!” Your body bulks up with the massive surge of energy. “Now! Kamehame…” You position your hands in the proper position. “HA!” You fire the powered up beam, letting it split the waves for miles. You circle your hands around, directing the beam right back at you. With it on course, you put a halt to the Kaioken and prepare yourself for impact. You raise your Ki to its max before the beam collides with your body. A massive cloud of smoke explodes from your position. Before it can clear, you fall back into the water, your clothes completely torn. You keep your eyes closed, breathing heavy after the impact.
“Damnit… That… was… bad…” You start to chuckle. “Looks like… five is my limit… for now. Or maybe… I should give my body a break. How many… have I been hit with… today?” You struggle to speak. “Well…” You reach into your belt and grab a senzu bean before tossing it into your mouth. After a moment of chewing, your power surges once more. You fly out of the water and stretch. “Good thing I didn’t have to use any of those senzu during my lesson. I get to use them for myself,” you start stretching your body once more. “But 5… it’s still pushing myself too far. Man,” you snap. “I went times 13… I wanna hit that again without… dying,” you slouch. “I wish I could find someone to match up with…” You cross your arms and start thinking. “Cause I think… because I’m a Saiyan I get stronger when I fight stronger people. It happened with Kakarot the first time, it happened against Vegeta… I wish I had someone to ask.”
“It’s true.”
“GAH!” You burst back a few feet, eyes locked on Piccolo who’s hovering over the water.
“Your Saiyan biology grants you power when you fight stronger opponents, alongside a greater boost when you recover from near death.”
“Huh…” You relax your body and cross your arms. “That’s cool. Hey!” You fly closer with wide, excited eyes. “You’re really strong! Can I train with you to get stronger?”
“No.”
“What!” You slouch. “Why?
“I’m the guardian of this planet, not your training partner.”
“I saved the planet from the Saiyans!”
“I could have accomplished that myself,” he bluntly speaks. “Ozpin was the one who requested you to handle it.”
“So you’re perfect! If you’re that strong, I’d love to have a new sort of way to gauge myself!”
“No.”
“Come ooon, at least let me spar with you one time!”
Piccolo exhales through his pointy nose. “Very well. If you can land one hit on me, I’ll train you.”
“Really?”
“Yes,” he nods. “Feel free to go all out. Take as long as you need.”
“Right,” you nod and raise your fists. “One hit should be easy. HYA!”
You burst along the water and throw your first punch at Piccolo. As you expected, he gracefully dodges it with his cape flowing behind him. You follow up, throwing every mix of punch and kick you can come up with. Piccolo glides across the water, effortlessly avoiding your attacks as if they were amateurs. You sneer, flaring your power with the Kaioken to try and get the edge. You sweep, backhand, roundhouse, follow up, everything you can do but Piccolo, with those cold eyes, just weaves through it all.
You back up, returning to base. “Wow, you really are fast. I’m gonna have to kick it up even further!” You pull in your arms and increase your power even further. “Alright, TIMES 3!” Your power triples as a result, increasing your speed even further. You try to attack again, this time Piccolo dodges your kick and slams his palm into your chest.
For a moment, your eyes go white. Your body zooms across the surface of the water for miles before you finally crash into the sea. Piccolo seemingly teleports above your location, looking down at the water with contempt.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Team RWBY sits in the library, all weary of one another while playing their favourite board game. The quest for domination, the prize of no homework, there’s so much on the line. Ruby slowly reaches for a card, confident that she now has the key to victory. Right as she grabs it, a shock echoes through all their minds.
“Is that… (Y/N)?”
“Yeah,” Blake nods. “It feels different, though. Not training…”
“Think he’s fighting someone?” Weiss theorizes.
“Without us?” Yang places a hand on her chest. “Nah, he’s probably fine. It’s (Y/N).”
“That… doesn’t give me much confidence,” Weiss admits.
“Me neither,” Blake shakes her head.
“Come on, he’s probably just being extra with his training. Who’s he even going to lose to?” Yang replies.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You soon reach the surface, coughing while you taste sweet oxygen again. You look up from the surface of the water at your green opponent.
“I didn’t know you were gonna hit back.”
“If you consider that a serious blow then you have no business training with me.”
“Welp,” you finally fly out of the water, your clothes completely soaked. “I never did say I thought it was a serious blow.”
Sure thought it though. Guess I have to kick it up… good thing I have more Senzu beans.
“Alright, Piccolo,” you stretch your arms. “You may be stronger than me. You might even be three times stronger than me! But are you four times?” Once again, your body is enveloped in a dark red aura as you rush at the cross-armed Piccolo. The moment you punch he seems to disappear while his foot digs into your back. “Gah!”
Your Kaioken flickers off as you’re sent, once more, soaring across the water until you reach an island. You slam into the base of its small mountain, crumbling the natural obstruction into dust. Your body shivers, both in pain from Piccolo’s attack and the use of the Kaioken. It’s true, you can ramp it up to five without severe side effects, but it still leaves a massive strain on your body.
“Looks like I don’t have a choice,” you get to your feet, leaning on your knees and taking a few breaths. “He hits hard, man,” you stand up straight and stretch your back. “Alright, but let's see if he’s five times stronger than me!” You tighten your body, feeling a tingling pain. “Ah, well, at least this isn’t serious. My body is already hating me. I’ll have to do this quickly. KAIOKEN TIMES 5!” The entire island you’re standing on shakes and explodes, releasing a tidal wave in all directions.
Piccolo watches as the water washes towards him. You suddenly burst through the liquid wall, throwing a wild haymaker at the Guardian. He seemingly disappears, now being high up in the air. You spot him and quickly give chase, leaving a red trail behind you. Your attack misses again, forcing you to look around for where Piccolo has moved.
Damnit, even five isn’t enough. How strong is this guy?
You release the Kaioken and huff. “Alright, calm down. Focus… Piccolo…” You close your eyes and open your mind. “THERE!” You look down at the water and fire a small Ki blast.
Soon after it enters the water, the blast is knocked right back at you. You catch it and let it explode, doing no damage to yourself. When the smoke clears, Piccolo is ahead of you.
“Is it clear that you won’t hit me?”
“Maybe,” you shrug. “But that’s the fun part.”
You fly towards him, not bothering with the Kaioken, and throw a flurry of attacks. Like before Piccolo easily weaves through every attack. Even he is curious why you aren’t using the Kaioken yet. By judging how much it amplifies you, Piccolo knows how far you’d have the push the Kaioken to even touch him at this level… and it would get you killed. But, as a Saiyan, he wouldn’t be surprised if you did it anyway. You throw a kick that Piccolo ducks under… then you smirk. You burst into a 5 times Kaioken and bring your leg back to his head. Piccolo, though minorly surprised, still dodges the speedy attack. You release the Kaioken and keep attacking.
Man, I thought that might catch him by surp-
Piccolo slams his elbow into your stomach, once again changing your eyes to white. The force behind such a meager blow is ridiculous to you. It feels even heavier than the Saiyan’s when they were Great Apes. Piccolo pulls his arm back and kicks you back to the ocean. You grind your teeth and release a massive amount of Ki that pushes back the water behind you.
“Seven, hm? Pushing it, boy,” Piccolo remarks.
You know you don’t have much time like this, but you want to land that one blow. Besides, having to push yourself this far is pretty exciting. You dash forward Piccolo, gathering Ki in your palm. You spin around and throw a kick, which Piccolo is still able to dodge. You quickly twirl around and fire your blast at Piccolo’s new location. Unsurprisingly, he disappears before the blast can hit him, thus it soars into the water.
Piccolo appears behind you and throws his final punch, but this time you manage to catch it. He’s slightly taken aback by this, while you’re smiling with childish pride.
“Got you!” You throw your arm but a seemingly invisible strike lights up your grip, allowing Piccolo to kick you away. You grind your teeth, placing your hand at your side while spinning.
“HAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAA!” You fire a massive blue beam at your opponent.
Piccolo, without even moving, stops the beam dead in its tracks with his Ki alone and dissipates it. You huff and puff, acknowledging Piccolo’s ability to completely negate a times seven Kamehameha. The Kaioken flickers before turning off completely. Your body shutters in pain, having overused the technique to such a degree.
“GAK!” You cough up blood before falling to the ocean, your body shivering in pain. “Ow… seven… yeah…” you do your best to mask the pain but your body is completely spent. “Even five is… a bit much… for me…”
“Hm…” Piccolo crosses his arms, slowly flying towards you. “You’re reckless. How… Saiyan.”
“That’s mean.”
“Hmph,” Piccolo lightly places a hand on your shoulder while moving two fingers to his forehead.
With an odd sensation, you and Piccolo suddenly teleport into your room. You look around, completely baffled. “How… what did you do?”
“That doesn’t matter. Take a Senzu bean,” he grabs them from your belt and feeds it to you. “If you can become stronger, I will train you. But you wouldn’t survive my routines.”
Before you can retort, he teleports away to leave you alone. With the Senzu kicking in, you’re back to full strength. “Man,” you snap. “I really do have to get stronger. There’s someone out there tougher than the Saiyans,” you lift your hand before you and squeeze it. “I love this planet! Just you wait, Piccolo. I’m gonna get even stronger than you.”
Knock Knock Knock
“Oh, people,” you hop over the door and open it up, completely forgetting your clothes are mostly ripped.
RWBY stands before you, not even phased by your exposed body. “Hey, fun training session?” Yang remarks, noting your clothes.
“Oh, yeah,” you excitedly nod. “Super fun. I have more motivation to get even stronger.”
“More?” Ruby tilts her head. “Is that even possible?” She whispers to Weiss.
“I guess so.”
“Well, we were wondering if you wanted to hang out? Maybe play a game?”
“Really?” Your eyes light up. “Sure! Just let me change! Unless shirtless is okay?”
“It is,” Yang nods.
The other, older girls don’t necessarily disagree with their teammate. It’s Ruby who retorts.
“What? Of course he can’t! Yeah, get a whole new outfit! We’re gonna have so much fun!”
“Alright!” You immediately throw off all your clothes and head for your dresser.
The girls facepalm. “(Y/N),” Blake calls out. “Remember what we said about being naked?”
“What?” You turn around, showing the entire Saiyan salami, which isn’t unfamiliar to RWBY. “You said don’t get naked in front of strangers.”
“He’s right,” Yang places her hands on her hips. “He does pay attention.”
“Sometimes. To the small things.”
“Nothing small about that,” Blake shakes her head, then immediately covers her mouth.
Yang and Weiss stare at their Faunus teammate while Ruby didn’t hear.
“I… didn’t say anything,” a strong blush appears on the Faunus.
“Alright!” You hop back in front of them, in the same Gi you’re always in. “Let’s do something fun!”
“That’s not fighting.”
“That’s… not fighting,” you begrudgingly say.
“Do you enjoy anything else?”
“I liked fishing, but,” you look to your behind. “I guess I can’t lure them in anymore. Just gotta get in there, you know? Pound the tuna, get out with a win.”
“Aye,” Yang pinches the bridge of her nose. “We’re leaving you behind,” she turns around and walks away.
“Hey! Hey come on!” You chase after the girls.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
The Next Day…
“-and so we still haven’t had contact with team JNPR.”
“And their scrolls have been disabled,” Ozpin taps his desk. “Which means they were either destroyed or someone is intentionally blocking them.”
“I assure you, Ozpin, my men are searching,” General Ironwood’s voice speaks.
“Thank you, James,” Ozpin nods. “Let's hope it’s a simple miscommunication and not something worse.”
“Indeed. Speak soon,” the connection is cut, allowing Ozpin to relax.
“Hm…” Ozpin turns around to look out the window. “They… are alive. But what are they doing?”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
The team of girls, after ignoring your slumbering body for the entire morning as each got ready. But, one by one, they all reach their peak while you’re passed out on the ground. The four share glances between one another.
“Do we wake him?” Ruby asks the team’s opinion.
“I guess,” Blake shrugs. “Seems like the best thing to do. We should’ve just told him to go back to his room.”
“But he was so tired and cute,” Yang reminisces. “How could we have said no?”
Blake crosses her arms and looks away. “I-I guess.”
Before a decision is made, your scroll, sat on Weiss’ desk, starts to go off. Ruby takes initiative to grab it, just to check. If it’s Ozpin, they’d be sure to send you to him. But, upon observation, it wasn’t a call but a message.
“I don’t know who this is from,” Ruby says, showing off the contact information to her peers.
“That… should be around Atlas, I think,” Weiss speaks up. “Who could be contacting him from there?”
Ruby answers it, now realizing that you don’t have any passwords or security on your scroll. A message pops up, showing each member of JNPR chained up in light cylinder prisons. The whole team freaks out at the sight.
“(Y/N), your friends have been taken!” A shaky, old voice speaks. “You’re the only one I know who could help them. Please, come here,” the screen shifts to coordinates along with a picture of a facility in the snow. “I’m taking a risk sending this to you, but you can stop this madman and save us!”
With that, the message cuts off. RWBY looks between each other, fear in their eyes.
“Jaune… Pyrrha… we need to save them!” Ruby clenches her fist.
“That’s not even a question,” Yang slams her fists together. “Let’s go.”
“What about (Y/N)?” Weiss gestures to you.
“We can do this without him. It’d be something to show off,” Yang smirks. “Come on, we can’t wait. (Y/N) can follow along, if he ever wakes up.”
“Are you sure?” Blake hesitates.
“Of course,” Yang nods. “We’re four scarily strong girls. We can handle rescuing our friends.”
“I guess. We should change for the snow.”
“Right,” the three nod in agreement.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Without letting anyone know, Team RWBY is en route to the abandoned, snowy mountains of Atlas. They’re all in similar outfits – large, thermal outfits with different colour linings that are specialized for each girl. Red, Yellow, White, and Black. The girls land on a glacier and try to look through the tundra.
“Can anyone sense them?” Ruby shouts.
“Blakey? You’ve got the eyes, ears, and senses,” she says with a joking tone.
“I… can’t,” Blake shakes her head. “Sorry. But,” she grabs her own scroll. “We should be close to those coordinates. Weird how their signatures are blocked. I can sense Coco back at Beacon.”
“Can someone block that out?” Weiss asks.
“I don’t know,” Ruby responds. “(Y/N) never said anything about that.”
“Probably means he doesn’t know,” Blake replies. “I don’t think he’d leave that out. The only thing he ever mentioned is purposefully lowering your power…”
“Or…” Ruby’s voice drifts off. “Do you think-“
“No,” Yang shakes her head. “No way. They’re here and alive.”
“Yeah,” Ruby affirms. “Come on, it has to be around here somewhere. It was a big facility!”
“If only it wasn’t snowing so harshly,” Blake complains. “It’s hard to see.”
“Just make sure we communicate. If something happens, make sure to raise your power. That’ll be our beacon,” the leader plans.
“Yes,” the other three agree.
The four girls split into different directions, all searching for the massive facility hidden in the snow and ice. They fly over, not bothering to slow themselves down by walking in the heavy snow. All keep each other’s Ki signatures in mind, all keep their eyes out for the facility.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“Kochin,” Wheelo’s voice echoes in the massive room. “It appears we have uninvited guests.”
“Mm…” Dr. Kochin, an elderly man, bald, strange shaped head, and a lab coat. “I’ll send the Bio-Men to deal with them. We have all the hostages we need.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Ruby shivers in the air, rubbing her arms for more warmth. “How can people even live up here? I think my hair’s going to freeze off! And it’s not even exposed!” She wildly flails her body.
The girl suddenly becomes more serious when she hears something behind her. She turns around, recognizing a small, blue creature leaping at her. The girl dashes back, grabbing Crescent Rose to fight back. The Bio-Man chases after the girl with its dark red eyes.
“What is that thing?” Ruby says while twirling her weapon.
She bursts in for an attack, raising her power to inflict more damage. In one swift strike, Ruby’s scythe cuts right through the creature, resulting in a small explosion behind her.
“I guess we’re getting close,” Ruby puts her weapon away. “Hm… everyone else is powering up too! There must be more of them!”
“Ruby!” Weiss shouts, flying towards the leader.
“Weiss! I’m so glad you’re okay!” The two girls approach one another.
“We have to find Yang and Blake!”
“Definit-“
A sudden wave of freezing air surrounds the girls before they can react. They’re quickly encased in ice and start falling, only to be swept up by two shadowy figures.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Yang slams her fist right into the Bio-Man’s head, cracking its shell before sending it down into the snow where it explodes.
“Creepy little thing,” Yang shakes her head.
“Yang!” Blake approaches. “I saw the explosion. You found one of those too?”
“Yeah. It wasn’t much. Did you?”
“Yeah,” Blake nods. “I hope Ruby and Weiss are okay.”
“They’re strong. It should be okay, but we should find them,” Yang nods. “Come on, let's go!”
The two girls fly towards the direction of Ruby and Weiss, hoping to find their teammates.
“Yang, I can barely sense them.”
“I can’t at all,” Yang shakes her head. “Where are you getting them?”
“I… this way! Follow me!”
The Faunus leads the way, heading faster towards a large glacier. Soon enough, they come across a massive facility somewhat encased in ice.
“Whoa,” Yang shakes her head. “That’s a thing… Why didn’t they let us know they found it?”
“Maybe they don’t even know,” Blake responds in a grim tone.
“Are you saying-“
“We don’t know,” Blake shakes her head. “Let’s just get in there.”
The two land in front of a massive, oval-shaped steel double door that leads into what can only be described as a fortress.
“How did Atlas not know about this?” Blake says aloud while examining the outside.
“Maybe they did,” Yang says with distrust. “Well, let's get in there,” the blond approaches the doors and attempts to pull them apart. They easily slide open, to the surprise of Yang.
“I didn’t open them,” she looks back at her partner. “I guess they know we’re here.”
“We’ll be prepared.”
The two girls are greeted to a dark hallway with water up to their ankles. The girls look at each other before starting to enter.
“I’m not taking off this suit until we’re through,” Yang remarks. “Can’t believe they don’t drain water.”
“I suppose they don’t care,” Blake replies. “I can definitely sense Ruby and Weiss nearby.”
“I can sense them now too. They’re so faint,” Yang begins to walk in.
Behind them, the ice breaks apart. The girls leap into the fortress and prepare themselves for whatever caused it. Out of the water, a tall, round yellow being with a short red vest ascends from the water with a smile. It has no hair, instead having a few sharp bumps on its head. Its hands are merely three claws as opposed to fingers.
In a flash, the creature dashes forward and slugs Yang in the jaw, sending her spiraling deeper into the fortress.
“Yang!” Blake looks back at her partner before feeling the creature focus on her.
The Faunus ducks under its large arm and hops over its leg. Blake spins in the air and slams her heel into its stomach, but instead of colliding with its skin, her leg sinks into it’s being.
“What?” Blake flies back, arcing her body to avoid a straight punch.
“Misokatsun, capture them. Their power is far beyond the others we found,” an elderly voice echoes in the hallway.
The creature, Misokatsun, acknowledges its orders and pursues Blake.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Yang slides to a halt in a large room. She rubs her covered jaw after the attack. “I didn’t even have my Aura up,” she stands up. “That little-“ A metal ball slams into the back of Yang’s head, slamming her back to the ground. “OW!” The woman, now knowing there’s a threat, stands right up and faces the room. “What the…” She sees dozens of steel balls floating in the room. “Stupid ball. What’s even the point?”
On cue, the balls start spinning while four sharp spikes protrude from four sides of each ball.
“Oh…”
The balls zoom in on the blonde faster than she expected. Yang barely dodges, one of the spikes cutting through her thermal gear.
“Oh man,” Yang grabs it and rips the entire suit off to reveal her regular outfit. “These things aren’t a joke!”
Yang starts running away from the balls, subconsciously glad this room isn’t flooded, jump and weaving through the balls. They cut through the ground each time they miss, leaving marks in the fortress. Yang flies into the air, either avoiding them completely or pushing off of them to get distance.
Out of the corridor, several yellow Ki blasts fly out and explode at the opposite end of the room. Blake slides to a halt, still weaponless, arms ready to fight. She redirects one punch but is slammed by the second, sending her skidding across the room. Blake pushes off the ground, spiraling in the air, and throws off her thermal gear. She slows to a halt, grabbing her weapon.
“Okay, Ki bounces off, my punches are absorbed. I have to use my weapon.”
“Blake!” Yang shouts from above.
“Eh? Yang?” Blake recognizes the swarm of balls following her teammate. “Blast them, Yang!”
“Blast- yeah, that’s a good idea,” Yang nods. She moves against the wall before throwing her arms forward to fire a massive amount of shots. Some hit, some don’t, but the explosions cause a chain reaction to any of them nearby. Yang leaps off the wall, still firing at any intact ball she can find.
At the same time, Blake is avoiding attacks and attempting to cut through her opponent. But Misokatsun is too fast for Blake to really get a good hit on, along with being too fast to dodge forever. Blake is sent spiraling into the wall. Misokatsun pursues her to attack again, but Yang comes down on him, hammerfisting his head into the ground. She immediately bounces off the ground to be with her teammate.
“You okay?”
“Yeah,” Blake gets up. “I think if I can cut him he’ll… be weakened. I’m not sure.”
“I’ll follow your lead, then!” Yang nods.
The two girls charge in, Blake by merely running while Yang launches herself forward with her gauntlets. That gives the blonde an edge in reaching their opponent. She slams her fist into its stomach, her fist merely sinking into the behemoth.
“That’s… something,” Yang remarks before firing a shot from her gauntlet to propel herself back.
Meanwhile, Blake comes in from the side and slashes Misokatsun’s side. This cuts through, opening him up for air to burst out. The beast turns around and backhand’s Blake away before covering his side.
Blake slams her blade into the ground to slow herself down. What she theorized was right. He can be cut apart and lose that squishy protection.
“Yang! Throw me!”
“Wha- oh, okay!” Yang jumps back, slams her foot down, and prepares for Blake.
The Faunus hops back a few steps before bursting forward, flying just above the ground, right at her partner. She passes by, grabbing Yang’s hand for the blonde to spin round and round.
Misokatsun flies into the air and starts inhaling more air, blowing up to compensate for the leak Blake made. As he’s blowing up, Yang hurls Blake with all her might. A black streak zooms towards Misokatsun, Blake’s blade pointing towards him. She’s absorbed into its stomach, her blade piercing through it completely. Blake blows through him, spinning around and looking back at the creature.
“Yang!”
“Yeah!”
They unleash a massive amount of small Ki blasts to rip apart the creature. They both stop, breathing a little heavily, and watch as the smoke clears. There’s nothing left. The two girls exhale in relief, Blake descending to the ground.
“We’re pretty good,” Yang says with growing confidence.
“Lucky, too,” Blake sheathes her weapon. “I can feel Ruby and Weiss above us.”
“See any doors?”
“Other than the one we came in?” Blake surveys the area. “Not really.”
“Well,” Yang looks up. “Guess we got no other options,” she chuckles before flying fast into the air.
“Guess not,” Blake follows suite.
The two girls blast a hole in the ceiling and land on the second floor of the fortress. Almost instantly, they’re attacked. Two electrical strings wrap around Blake while a freezing gust overwhelms Yang. The blonde squints, unable to fight back against this wind while Blake screams in agony from the electrical current.
“B-Blake,” Yang struggles to say.
The Faunus falls forward, utterly unconscious. Yang hasn’t followed her partner yet, but she’s completely immobile. Two figures land before her. One is a green, reptilian-like creature with pointy ears and dorsal fins down its back. It dons blue armour with white accents along the ends. It retracts the whips around Blake, smiling at his work. The other figure, a large pink humanoid with red hair tied back into a ponytail. This one has a black chest piece with very short yellow armour around its waist.
“Good job, Ebifurya,” the red-haired one turns around. “Kishime,” the green one responds to its name. “Clearly our message was intercepted,” Dr. Kochin reveals himself from the darkness. “I assume you know the Saiyan,” he approaches the frozen Yang while Kishime grabs Blake.
“L-Let go of… her!”
“Oh, I don’t think so,” Kochin shakes his head. “This just gives more reason for the Saiyan to come. Once he does,” Kochin starts to laugh. “His body will be given to the great Doctor Wheelo!” He throws his hands into the air. “And we will study this new race to create the ultimate cyborgs and bio-soldiers!”
“The S-Saiyan…” A flash of your smile appears in Yang’s mind. “Wait… so the others…”
“The other girls?” Kochin calms down. “They’re also our bait.”
“Tsk…” Yang tries her best to gather up all the Ki she has left while activating her Semblance. Her eyes shift to red as she lets everything she has explode. Kochin and his two goons are blown away by the sudden surge of power. As the smoke clears, Yang realizes her mistake. She used all her Aura and Ki to break out of that and now she’s empty.
“Well,” Kochin stands up and brushes himself off. “That was quite the display,” even he recognizes Yang’s fatigue. “Please,” he says to the bio-warriors behind him. “Restrain her better.”
The two zoom towards the drained Yang and she can’t do a thing.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You finally awaken from your deep slumber. After lifting yourself up and stretching, you let out a mighty yawn.
“Man… I don’t even know what that drink was,” you stand up. “I guess they did say don’t take stuff from strangers.” Your routine of stretching continues. “Where’s everyone? I guess they left me,” you shrug. “I should shower and get changed,” you look down at your Gi. “Into… another Gi,” you end with a chuckle.
You exit the room, completely forgetting the scroll sitting in their room. As soon as you exit the door, your scroll goes off again, showing team RWBY and JNPR captured and unconscious.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Two Days Later…
You sit in the middle of class, staring up at the ceiling.
“You alright?” Eminence asks, looking past her brother and leader.
“Huh? Oh,” you smile at her. “Yeah, I just haven’t seen my friends in a while. I can’t sense them either.”
“Team RWBY?” She persists. “The ones who were helping you teach?”
“Yeah,” you energetically nod. “I shouldn’t worry about it. They’re super strong. But,” you cross your arms and pout. “Not being able to sense them hasn’t happened before. I wonder if they’re hiding from me.”
“Have you tried messaging them with your scroll?” Topaz whispers.
“My… scro- OH YEAH!”
“(Y/N)!” Professor Port shouts. “What is so important that you interrupted my very important story!”
“I figured out how to contact RWBY!” You say before leaping out of your seat and to the door, then run out.
“Hey!” Port shouts. “Ah, no controlling that boy. In fact,” he wiggles his mustache. “He reminds me of another strapping, strong young man: ME!”
“He just let (Y/N) leave?” One whispers.
“Why does he get special treatment?”
“Cause he’s nice?”
“Cause he’s an alien?”
“Cause he can blow us up!”
“Would he do that?”
Topaz rests his chin on crossed arms.
“You okay, leader?” Rubar calmly asks.
“Yeah…” Topaz sighs. “Mm…”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You fly in your window and look around for your scroll. “Where… is it?” You look on and under your bed, in your closet, in the drawers, in the bathroom. “Have you seen it?” You look to your trust Power Pole in the corner. “No? Darn it,” you snap. “Where could my scroll be? I thought I had it… somewhere. Man,” you cross your arms. “And I had such good inspiration.”
You sit on your bed and sigh. “Should I be worried? They are really strong… but not being able to sense them at all… what does that mean? Even when not fighting, their Ki is larger than most,” you stand up and fly out the window. “Piccolo… if anyone would know something it would be him. I should trust the girls, but…” You think back to the stone full of names. “I have to make sure,” you nod.
“You need to find Piccolo?” Ozpin asks.
“Gah!” You turn around and back off, looking at Ozpin who’s standing on the dormitory. “When did you-“
“Piccolo resides on a structure in the clouds. I’ll show you.”
“Show me?”
“Of course, come close.”
You approach and land beside Ozpin. He taps his cane twice on the ground before you two suddenly appear somewhere else.
“Whoa!” You step back and look around. It’s a large circular space with four sets of trees around the edges, spread out evenly, a life of different trees down the middle, and then another quad in front of the only building “How did you-“
“Ozpin, Saiyan,” Piccolo speaks as he walks out of the dark building. “I already know. Why you’re here.”
“This is where you live?” You run to the edge, looking down at the cloud below. “Whoa… Where is this?”
“Between Sanus and Menagerie,” Ozpin replies. “But I believe (Y/N) has a question for you.”
“Yeah,” you fly over and land beside Ozpin. “My friends. Do you know where they are? I can’t sense them.”
“That’s because their Ki is being suppressed. They’ve been captured. RWBY and JNPR.”
“What?” You exclaim. “Both of them?”
“They’re on Solitas, captured in a facility hidden in the ice.”
“They’re waiting for you,” Ozpin adds before revealing your scroll. “This was in team RWBY’s dorm.”
“You-“
“Don’t think you’re the only one who noticed team RWBY’s absence,” the headmaster speaks.
The same message plays, goading you into coming while showing off their captives. This only makes you angry.
“Damnit… they’re using them to get to me,” you shake your head. “Alright. I’m going there and finding my friends.”
“Be careful,” Ozpin advises as you head for the edge. “We don’t know what’s there.”
“Doesn’t matter,” you shake your head. “That won’t stop me,” you burst off the Lookout and head towards Solitas.
“I thank you once more for not intervening,” Ozpin speaks. “The more combat (Y/N) engages in, the more powerful he becomes.”
“Indeed.”
“I also felt that sparring match you had.”
“He has a long way to go before I train him. He’s not ready for me. He’s not ready for the Time Chamber.”
“Perhaps not yet. Though, it would be interesting to see how strong he would get if you trained him in the room.”
“He would die.”
Ozpin chuckles. “He’s a fighter. All Saiyans are. You should put more faith in him.”
With that, Ozpin taps his cane and teleports away. Piccolo is left on his own, watching your progress from the Lookout.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You spot the facility and an entrance where the water is. You fly down to the entrance and blast open the door.
“Well, that was easy,” you soar in, flying right over the water. “They’re somewhere in here. I have to find them,” you rub your arms, shivering. “And quick. It’s freaking cold out here!”
You land in a big room that has tears in the ceiling, floor, and scorch marks all around. You easily recognize those as the result of Ki impacts.
“So they were here, huh? Maybe they went up?” You soar up and through the man-made hole.
This area is far more open but darker. There’s blue with a red tint in the middle, along with platforms all over with multiple layers. The moment you land, you spot a large pink man ahead of you.
“Hey, have you seen my friends? Six girls, two guys. Pretty easy to spot?”
Ebifurya smirks. “No.”
You frown before appearing before him and uppercutting him, knocking him back a few feet.
“Well, guess I don’t need you. At least it’s warmer up here.”
The brute rubs his jaw, angrily staring up at you. That acts as a distraction for the second one, Kishime, comes in from above. You sense his Ki before even seeing him and attack… but he disappears. You raise your brow before sending him behind you. Your body spins and kicks where he was.
This isn’t like everyone else. His Ki is disappearing when he does.
The two opponents land before you, smiling at you with confidence.
“Guess you’re not telling me where my friends are… or let me pass. Sorry, but you’re going down.”
Without missing a beat, the two sprint at you. You keep your eyes on both, getting into your fighting stance. Kishime disappears, forcing you to make a split decision. Do you watch out for him or focus on Ebifurya. You jump and spin over the pink brute, trying to see if the reptile was behind you. Instead, Kishime slams its foot into your back, sending you zooming down to Ebifurya. It knees you in the stomach before punching you towards its ally, who hammerfists you to the ground.
You bounce on first impact, quickly pushing off and flipping to get some distance. The two close in, throwing a flurry of attacks that you’re forced to block and dodge. The push you back towards one of the platforms, quickly forcing you against the wall. You look back, mouth wide in surprise at the wall. You jump and catch both their punches with your heels, pushing against them and the wall. You unleash two blue blasts out of your feet, catching the creatures off guard. You flip off the wall and behind them, quickly activating the Kaioken before dashing at the pink one with both feet forward, cutting right through the opponent. Before Kishime can do anything, you bounce off the wall once more and thrust your fist into its face, completely breaking it apart and sending it flying across the room. You land on the ground, taking a short breath before deactivating your technique.
“Sorry, I don’t really have time to play around right now. Maybe if you didn’t threaten my friends, we could’ve had more fun,” you look around the immediate area for any sort of hallway, door, or progression point. “Guess I should start exploring.”
You start running in any direction, keeping your mind open to your friends' Ki signatures while your eyes are looking around for anything to progress. You finally spot a similar door to the entrance. You make a b-line for it, getting deeper and deeper into the fortress.
Wait… I can sense them now! Their Ki is so low. I have to hurry!
You sprint even faster into the hallway and start gliding over the ground, moving faster than your feet can take you. But, unbeknownst to you, the red surveillance cameras keeps your position monitored.
“Such power. These Saiyans truly are something.”
“He’s gonna kick your butt!” Ruby shouts.
“Kochin.”
“Yes,” the elderly man clicks a button on his cane that sends a powerful shock through the twelve containment units. The agonizing screams of RWBY and JNPR fill the room, spilling out to a point you can hear it.
“That’s…” You grind your teeth and burst forward even faster, going through the hallway and head right up a platform. You reach the top, landing at the edge and get a full view of everyone in the base. Your friends, captured, and Doctor Kochin, smiling. A projection of yourself appears on a screen behind you, which you turn to.
“I’m right, whatever,” you shake your head. “Why are you guys just standing there?”
“At least, (Y/N)! You’ve arri-“
“Seriously,” you walk forward. “You should be able to just-“
A sudden red beam surrounds you while sharp chains wrap around your legs and arms.
“GAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAH!” You struggle to break free of the chains holding you down.
“(Y/N)!” Yang weakly shouts.
“It’s time, Kochin,” a new voice states. “Prepare the process.”
You grind your teeth before ripping yourself free of the chains constricting you. “That was… not nice.”
“Amazing,” Wheelo awes while you step out of the column. “This body… this power.”
“(Y/N)!” Blake tries to get back on her feet. “The big one… he’s trying… to steal…”
“Quiet!” Kochin increases the voltage on all the cells.
“No!” You dash towards Kochin and kick him, knocking him over.
“You… Wheelo will take your body. He’s the greatest mind, surpassing even his decaying body! It doesn’t matter what-“
“I don’t really care,” you leap to the cells. “Let's get you guys out of here,” you reach for them only for a barrier to stop you. “Ah,” you shake your hand. “Weird…” You look down at what they’re standing on, noticing all the lights flashing and cables all slithering to the back of the room. You finally see the giant brain attached to the wall. “That’s… weird.”
“That’s why I’ll take your body.”
“AH! It talks!” You stumble back. “You’re like some weird… big brain boy. It’s weird,” you shake your head. “Well… it doesn’t look like he’s moving,” you place your hands on your hips. “And that old guy isn’t much,” you point at Kochin. “So you mind letting these guys go?”
“Of course not,” Kochin shakes his head. “I’m going to make them all my Bio-Warriors to fight alongside Doctor Wheelo when he takes your bod-“
You shoot a light Ki blast at Kochin, piercing through his chest. “Could you stop, please?”
“No…” Kochin looks down at the whole, electricity sparking. “That’s!” His body suddenly explodes, bits of metal flinging across the room.
“Oh…” You blink a few times. “I wasn’t expecting that. Ah well,” you shrug. “It looks like all the cords are connected to the brain,” you walk past the containment units and stop a decent distance away. “I don’t know what it’s like being a brain, but you’re kind of a mean one. You’re also holding my friends hostage, so,” you raise your hand forward, fingers spread. “Sorry,” you release a blinding Ki blast that explodes on contact. A surge of electricity runs through the cables and explodes. You turn around and jump to the closest person, Ren, and aren’t stopped by any barrier.
“Are you okay?”
“Yes…” Ren struggles to stand with your help. “Thank you.”
“Sorry for dragging you into this,” you help Ren onto his feet and off the unit.
You do the same for everyone else who needs help. They’re clearly tired and injured, but their strength is slowly returning.
“Soon,” Wheelo’s voice booms from the smoke. “Soon, I shall leave this metal shell,” you hop in front of everyone else and take a stance, unsure what’s coming. The column structure you’re standing on begins to light up from the bottom up, surging power into something within the smoke. A giant metal claw wafts away the smoke to reveal a massive metal body with claws, feet with two toes, and a massive scorpion-like tail. Like the wall, his grain is encased in the glass near the top of the body.
“Whoa, his power is insane,” you remark. “Can you guys move?” You look over your shoulder.
“Y-Yeah,” Yang nods. “We can fly.”
“Alright, get JNPR out of here. I’ll deal with this big brain!”
“Are you sure?”
“Yeah,” your eyes are focused on Wheelo’s mechanical body. “You guys are too weak to fight right now. Just get out of here!”
Team RWBY doesn’t want to leave you for this, but you’re also not wrong. They’ve been forced to be docile since being here. Their Ki has been drained, their Aura was kept low, everything was stacked against them. They don’t have enough power to make a difference. With a member of JNPR with each, the four girls fly away for you to deal with the mechanical threat.
“Your body… your powerful, foreign body… I WANT IT!” Wheelo charges forward faster than you thought he could. You’re hit with a bone-crushing swipe with his metal claw, sending you spiraling towards the far wall. He chases after you, firing missile-like Ki blasts from his claw. You continue spiraling until you fire a Kamehameha, stabilizing your body but still sending you towards the all. Your blue blast cuts through Wheelo’s yellow ones and collides with his hulking form. You slow yourself to a halt and take a breath.
The metal man sprints out of the smoke and comes at you, leaving you completely surprised. He catches you in his pincers and slams you onto the ground, then follows up by trying to step on you. You throw your hand and feet up to keep the metal foot away, but it’s slowly winning this struggle. Your muscles are working to their limit, your teeth could crush the wing of an airship at this point.
“KAIOKEN TIMES THREE!” You shout before pushing his foot right off you.
“No!”
You dash back then aim for his leg. Wheelo manages to block your attack with his metal hand, forcing you to jump over and behind him. The red flare goes away after you’re over him, but this is an opportunity for Wheelo to wrap his tail around you. Your voice echoes through the room as you’re slowly crushed by his extension.
“I could snap you in half… but I need that body.”
“It’s… not YOURS!” The red flare of the Kaioken times four envelops you.
With this boost in power, you completely shatter the monster’s tail and dash away. You land on the ground and once again go for his leg, completely charging through it like it was butter. The red tint disappears until your foot touches the ground, flaring up and charging back at Wheelo. You slam into his center, knocking the behemoth a few feet back. The body crashes against the floor while you’re steady, if out of breath from the Kaioken.
Times five is still dangerous for my body. Hopefully, four is enough.
“Wheelo, there’s nothing you can say to save you now. You kidnap my friends, try to steal my body… this ends NOW!”
You shoot off your back foot and charge towards Wheelo. He howls, unleashing a yellow beam from below his brain that you easily swerve around. The contact of that beam bellows up in smoke and destruction, which you appear out of and clobber the metal body with a Ki-fueled punch that sends his hulking shell through the wall and into the tundra.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“Even with all the upgrades to his body,” the female scientist speaks over the shoulder of Gero. “The Saiyan is still overpowering him.”
“They’re truly magnificent creatures,” Gero awes. “Though, I am somewhat worried about the Doctor. We assumed this plan would go smoothly. Wheelo… he wasn’t one to keep his temper in check when things didn’t go his way.”
“How reckless would he become?”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“You damned brat,” Wheelo picks himself off the snow-covered ice. “I’m the greatest mind to ever grace this planet… with your body, I would be the greatest in all aspects of life… you would deny this planet that?”
“What’re you mumbling down there?” You ask, standing where the hole is. “Are you giving up? I can just blast you into the water and it’d be over,” you say as if it’s a positive for both of you.
“THEN YOU DENY THE PLANET LIFE!” Wheelo’s voice erupts before he uses two blasts from his back to soar into the air.
“I’m not stopping anyone from living. Well, you, maybe, but you’re a brain in a jar so I’m actually not sure if that counts. Hey,” you follow him with your eyes as he ascends. “Where are you going?”
“If I can’t have your body, if I can’t have the world, I’ll just destroy it!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“Wheelo, you fool! What’s wrong with you?” Gero shouts at his monitor.
“Is he capable of that?” The woman asks.
“Indeed. It appears we have to rely on the Saiyan once more.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“How does that even make sense?” You ask before powering up.
“HAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAA” Wheelo’s body begins to shine as he pulls himself in.
“He’s not joking!” You put your hands to your side, preparing a Kamehameha. “Why does everyone just try and blow up my planet?” You sneer.
He spreads his body, releasing a massive red beam towards his own base, towards you. In turn, you fire your blue beam amped by the times four Kaioken. The two beams soar towards one another before colliding with one another. The shockwave decimates all the ice around, sending waves crashing over everything around. The constant flickering of the light as the red and blue beams push against one another could blind the average person.
He’s channeling everything he has into this. It’s… a lot…
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
RWBY and JNPR keep flying away at a sluggish pace. They’re suddenly pushed back by the intensity of the clash behind them, which garners their attention when your beams collide. They’d be surprised if Atlas and Mantel didn’t feel or see this display.
“Is he okay?” Jaune asks Blake, who’s carrying him.
“I… think so,” Blake nods.
“Hey, you feel that?” Ruby notes. “More… more people are going there.”
“I recognize the signatures,” Yang replies. “He’ll be okay. Come on, we should keep going. (Y/N) will be fine.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
The base around you crumbles from the immense weight of this clash. Your muscles are doing their best to hold on. Even if five is your limit, holding four for this long is taking a toll. You’re not making any progress either. You felt like four was enough to overpower Wheelo before, but this desperate attack with all his energy is much more than what he had before.
I’m not sure… if my body will handle five right now. I don’t even know if that’ll be enough.
“Hey!” A new voice shouts.
“Huh?”
“We’re here to help,” Tien says as he lands with you.
“Did ya think we wouldn’t feel something like this going on?” Yamcha proclaims with his usual confident tone.
“The Turtle School takes care of one another,” Roshi says while landing beside you.
“Tien, Yamcha, Krillin, Master Roshi,” you smile.
“Let’s show this monster the Turtle School’s Kamehameha!” Roshi shouts.
“Kamehame… HA!” Your four allies fire their own blue beams which spiral around and then join yours. The extra power begins pushing back Wheelo’s Planet Geyser, if only slightly.
“Come on, we can do this!” Krillin shouts.
“Focus your power!” Tien affirms.
“All at once!” You add. “NOW! UNLEASH IT ALL!” You shout before ramping up your Kaioken to five.
“ALL TOGETHER!” Roshi shouts.
The Turtle School unleashes all their power into the Kamehameha, pushing back Wheelo’s blast even more.
“It’s impossible… IMPOSSIBLE!”
“YOU CAN’T WIN!” You shout as your beams break through Wheelo’s and collide with his hulking shell.
The beams break right through Wheelo’s shell, shattering the glass protecting his brain, and inciting explosions within his body. A few explosions erupt throughout the blast, destroying the mechanical scientist completely. You and the others release your Kamehameha, but you’re the only one to truly be fatigued. Your body is shaking, the right side of your Gi is completely torn off.
“I’m… done…” You’re surprised that your body is staying with you after all that. “You know… I should… really show you guys the… the Kaioken.”
“From how you’re looking, I think I’ll pass,” Krillin laughs.
“I’m just… pushing it. It’s not that… bad… ow,” you grab your shoulder. “Pain… pain bad.”
“I would like to learn it,” Tien agrees. “If it would help us become stronger, I’m on board.”
“If he’s doing it, I will too. No way I can let Tien get that much of an advantage,” Yamcha laughs.
“Oh man,” Krillin slouches. “I guess I have to…”
“Who was that, anyway?” Roshi asks.
“Some guy called Wheelo. He wanted to steal my body and take over the world. When I beat him up he just tried to blow everything up.”
“Wheelo,” Roshi brings his hand to his beard. “I know that name… I thought he died years ago.”
“He was just a big brain in a jar,” you snicker through the pain. “But we stopped him. Thanks for the help, guys. I don’t know if I could’ve done it alone.”
“That’s what we do, (Y/N),” Krillin smiles. “Come on, we’ll get you back home.”
“Y-Yeah,” you nod. “Hey Nimbus!” You shout.
Your trusty yellow cloud swoops down from the clouds and lands beside you, seemingly happy to be here.
“Thanks, buddy,” you shakily get on the Nimbus and lie back. “Back to Beacon, buddy.”
“I’ll go with him,” Krillin looks to the others. “I’ll meet you back on the island.”
“Okay. It was good seeing you, (Y/N),” Roshi speaks.
“You too, Master. I’ll drop by soon and show you guys the Kaioken. It’d be cool not being the only one using it.”
You and Krillin fly off towards Beacon, leaving behind the crumbling base Wheelo once used.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“Well, that worked out,” Gero leans back in his chair. “That fool…”
“We took his resources. All his data is backed up here anyway, and it’s all destroyed so we won’t be traced,” the woman pats Gero’s shoulders. “I believe we’ll be moving past our initial ten soon.”
“I want more data,” Gero speaks. “There’s something else on the planet. (Y/N) fought it but the collector was destroyed in the battle,” Gero clicks a button to show a picture of you and Piccolo before your encounter. “I don’t know what this being is, but his data and DNA may prove useful for… another concept.”
Haza! Another chapter down for Limitless! I’m going to do one more chapter before moving on to another story. That’ll be three chapters for it, which is fun. The next chapter… well, I won’t say anything until it’s out. I’m excited about the next big section of Limitless. I hope you enjoyed this, though. Watching World’s Strongest again was fun. It’s been a long time since I paid much attention to it. I’ll see you guys next time! I feel like you’ll enjoy the next chapter.
Want to keep up with me? Know what chapter’s coming out next and the progress of them? Follow me on Twitter! Twitter . com (slash) Chinsangan
Questions? Comments? Concerns? Advice? Send me a message!
I also have a Pa tr eon, if you want to check that out! Pat reon . com (slash) Chinsangan
My Discord is now open! If you want to join, either check my bio for a link, find it on my Twitter, or message me directly!
A special thank you to Patreon supporters: James Tubbs, MazMan, Sassylemons, and Big Genatools
Extra special thanks to Ride The Lightning and Nicholas X Wright!
Thank you guys so much for supporting me! It means the world!
And finally, thank you to the Beta Reader: thenameisntimportant
Chapter 18: A Short Lived Break? An Out of this World Adventure!
Chapter Text
Chapter 18: A Short-Lived Break? An Out of this World Adventure!
Soaring through space, a small white pod with a red window makes its way towards a backwater planet. A familiar planet known by its inhabitants as Remnant…
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
It’s been a few days since Dr. Wheelo’s attempt on your body. Both RWBY and JNPR have recovered and given their report to Ozpin. While all the technical and official nonsense went on, you healed up and have been spending the last few days at Kame House, helping the others to use the Kaioken. You thought of inviting RWBY, but their Ki control is far from perfect and you wouldn’t want the worst to happen. It’s still always possible that you mess up the Kaioken and just die right then and there. Thankfully, Krillin, Tien, and Yamcha seem to be grasping the concept rather well. Their Ki control is, as expected, astounding. Thus, their progress with the Kaioken in the last few days has been fast.
“You’re all looking well,” you say, standing in front of them while they’re standing on the edge of the island.
“I can see what you mean,” Tien nods. “Doubling the Ki in my body… is seems ridiculous to manage.”
“It was,” you chuckle. “Took me a bit, but if I managed I know you all can too. You have the fundamentals down. Once you practice a bit, I’ll come back and show you how to really amp up for your power,” you say while clenching your fist before you. “So just get me when you’re ready. You know where I live.”
“What are your plans?” Krillin asks after lowering his power.
“Uh…” You cross your arms. “Well, I know my friends are okay. I think I have another class to teach tonight, so that’ll be fun. OH CRAP! CLASS!” You slam your hands on your head. “I haven’t gone to class all week,” you slouch. “Ah well,” you perk right up. “I think saving the planet from destruction gives me a few days off,” you nod twice.
“Does that mean we get time off too?” Krillin chuckles.
“Don’t you guys just train all day? That’s time off!”
“We have two very different views on ‘time off’” Krillin air quotes.
“We should take some time, then! I bet the girls know some fun stuff to do!” Your smile grows and grows. “Alright! I’ll go ask them! You guys get ready for some fun!” You fly off the island and head right for Beacon.
“I’m not following,” Tien nods. “I’d rather focus on this.”
“I wouldn’t mind some fun,” Krillin admits.
“Same. I’ve never seen him go out. His version of fun is just… more fighting,” Yamcha sighs. “We’ll see. What about you…” Yamcha looks over at Tien, who’s continuing to focus his Ki. “Never take a break, do you?”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You land on in front of the dormitories, where you sense team RWBY is.
“(Y/N).”
“GAH!” You jump back, looking at Ozpin. “How do you even do that? I can’t sense you!”
“My apologies. I never mean to startle you.”
“I beg to differ,” you brush yourself off.
“I have to thank you for rescuing team RWBY and JNPR, along with defeating Dr. Wheelo.”
“I mean,” you cross your arms with a smile. “He did try and take my body… and blow up the planet…” You place your hands on your hips. “So I had to take him down. It wasn’t just me, though,” you shake your head. “My friends helped me out. I don’t know if I could’ve done it without them.”
“Your ability to defend the planet is invaluable.”
“Is it?” You remark. “I had a little battle with Piccolo and I couldn’t even touch him, even with the Kaioken. He’s way stronger than I am.”
“Perhaps,” Ozpin nods. “But you’ve gotten exponentially stronger in the past year. I’d say you’re on track to match him.”
“Heh, maybe,” you smirk. “But I need to find a better way to get stronger,” you look down at your fist while you clench it. “I’m not progressing enough… I need to find something to really get me to the next level, but,” you shrug once more. “I need to get the others stronger, too. So I guess I can hold off on my own progress for now.”
“Is that what you want?” Ozpin raises a brow.
“Heh, not really,” you rub the back of your head with a goofy smile. “But if they get stronger then I can bounce off them easier. I have to hold back against everyone… except for Piccolo, but that doesn’t count.”
Ozpin smirks. “I see. Well, I just wanted to thank you for your work. However, I request that you don’t miss so many classes.”
“Hehehe…” Your presence shrinks as you rub the back of your head. “I’m sorry…”
“As long as you’re aware. Enjoy the rest of your day. Teams RWBY and JNPR have been granted the week off after their excursion. They’ve recovered well.”
“I’m glad they weren’t too injured. I woulda felt really bad. Maybe I won’t ask them to help me teach again.”
You cross your arms, visibly perplexed. “Maybe… maybe I’ll let them relax for the day,” you look over your shoulder at the building. “I wanted to find something fun to do before or after…”
“Fun?”
“Yeah. Like… uh…” Your smile slowly trails off as you realize something. “What do people my age do for fun?”
Ozpin chuckles. “What do they do indeed. Well, there are places most of you can go. Unfortunately, Ms. Rose is still too young for a few activities available in Vale.”
“You have to be old enough for stuff? Weird,” you shrug. “Alright, I’ll think of something. Or maybe they will. I don’t know. I have a few hours before I teach people… maybe I can!” You’re about to say train but you’ve done quite a lot recently. Giving yourself a break would be wise. “Hm… maybe go to Vale and explore. I haven’t really been to Vale much.”
“As long as you don’t do anything brash.”
“I don’t do anything bad!” You pout. “I’m a responsible person!”
Ozpin chuckles. “Of course. Enjoy the rest of your day… and please remember to attend classes next week.”
“Oh, yeah! I… didn’t just forget about that,” you end with a chuckle. “Alright, I’ll see you later, Ozpin! If you ever find another guy trying to destroy the planet just let me know!” You wave before flying away.
“You say that as if it’s common,’ Ozpin shakes his head. “Although,” he looks to the sky. “It feels like… something more is going to happen.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You stop above Vale, looking around for anything that seems like it could be fun. You may have thought about leaving them alone, but that’s not something you’re very good at. If you can find something fun and invite them to it, then it’ll be like the whole thing never happened. Lucky for you, there seems to be a massive gathering in the town of Vale. Tents, speakers, stands, displays. You’re not too familiar with the city, but that definitely looks like something special is going on. You fly down, landing atop a building and start investigating the area.
It looks like the entire town is packed into this one section of the city, entering and leaving tents, perusing the stalls, trying out the games, and having fun conversations with one another. You hop down, landing beside one of the food vendors.
“Maaaaaaaaaaaaaaan!” You shout, scaring the saleswoman and getting a few looks. “It smells so good! Is that you?” You dash around to the front of the stall.
“I-uh, well, I hope… so,” she shyly responds, trying her best to hide behind her long, black hair.
“That smells amazing. Good job!” You give her a thumbs up. “Hey, what exactly is this whole thingy thing?”
“The WSF?”
“W… huh?
“Well, it’s somewhat of a silly name,” she giggles. “The ‘Weapons Showoff Festival.’ It’s meant to for Huntsmen and Huntresses, or even those in academies, to show off their weapons. Vendors from all over Remnant come to sell their new enhancements or technology.”
“So everyone here likes fighting?” You look around.
“No,” she shakes her head. “A lot of not Huntsmen like to come and gander at what’s new. There’s food, things to buy, things to look at, competitions, and even a big party at night.”
“This is perfect!” You hop in place. “My friends will love this! Thank you so much!”
“I, uh, well, you’re welcome,” she says with a tint of red. “Would… would you like a complimentary cookie?” She gestures to a small glass jar between you. “It’s not what we normally sell, but I made them myself.”
“Of course!” You smile, resulting in her grabbing a small, chocolate chip cookie for you. “Thank you so much,” you practically swallow the cookie whole. “And that was stuperendis.”
“Stupendous?” She questionably corrects.
“Yeah,” you nod. “I’ll see you soon,” you wave before bursting into the air and flying off.
“What… a strange man,” she leans against the stand. “I hope he comes back…”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You soar around the dormitories and pull in at RWBY’s window. Inside, RWBY and JNPR were speaking, but it was cut short when you appeared.
“Hey!” You wave.
“We have a door,” Weiss gestures.
“And a window,” you point. “I chose this one. Hey! I have something awesome to do!” You fly in, not bothering to ask. “I don’t know how you guys are feeling-“
“Terrible,” Ruby writhes in place. “We tried to save our friends… and we just became bait.”
“And we couldn’t even handle those small things,” Jaune lays back on Ruby’s bed.
“They were so gross,” Nora shutters.
“We’re sorry,” Yang hops off her bed. “We should have asked you for-“
“What? Sorry? Why?” You cheerily brush off. “Everyone is safe. Not your fault that they had strong guys. That just means you’re gonna get stronger so it doesn’t happen again, right?” You clench your fist before you. “I’ll make sure that you guys,” you point at each member of JNPR. “Learn some Ki! Master your Ki,” you point at RWBY. “And you’ll all be fine next time,” you turn around and gesture them to follow. “Now come on. I can’t stand seeing you all sad. We’re going to Vale!” You spin around and slam your fists against your hips. “And we’re gonna have fun!”
“Just like that?” Ren remarks.
“Yeah. Why not? I saw this weapons celebration thingy going on. I don’t know much about it, but they had food and, well, you all have weapons so it’s a win-win for everyone,” you end with a slight chuckle and wide smile. “So turn those frowns upside down and get ready for a day!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
With everyone in their casual clothes, save for their weapons, you, RWBY, JNPR, Krillin, and Yamcha all stroll into the entrance of this massive festival. Like you saw before, vendors of food and weapons all situated along the sidewalk while pedestrians loiter around the street, gawking at the weapons or talking with a visiting Huntsman or Huntress. It’s hard to even concentrate one’s thoughts in a place so loud.
“A weapons festival?” Krillin remarks. “Can’t believe they have these.”
“Why wouldn’t they?” Pyrrha asks. “Weapons are a big part of a Huntsmen’s arsenal. Huntsmen, in turn, are a staple in our lives.”
“I don’t know,” Yamcha shakes his head. “I used to use a sword back in the day. I can tell you right now that it’s nowhere near as good as these guns,” he points to his muscles.
“That’s not fair,” Weiss adds. “You guys have been training with Ki your whole lives!”
“Haven’t we been training with Aura and weapons, though?” Yang remarks.
“OH! Are those new models for plasma swords?” Ruby bounces to one stall. “And are those upgrades for dust-based armour? AAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAH! Sniper shells!” Ruby speeds away, leaving everyone else in the dust.
“Shields! You look like you need a shield, young man,” a middle-aged man approaches you with an overly complicated square.
“Oh, cool,” you grab it, flipping it around a few times. “How tough is it?”
“Best on the market!” He smiles. “Could save your life.”
“And that’s my point,” Krillin responds. “People are so overly impressed with what a weapon does instead of focusing on themselves.”
“That’s true,” you turn to your friends, who are now noticing your shield. “Weapons are great, but,” you sturdily hold it out with one arm before punching it, your fist breaking right through everything.
“I… ah…” The salesman is in awe, complete disbelief.
“But they’re not all that. Sorry,” you hand it back to him. “I guess it needs some work. Hey!” You spot a vendor with meat cooking over a fire behind them. “That looks amazing!” You quickly run over.
“Hey! You have to pay for those!” A woman shouts.
“I’m gonna go make sure he’s okay,” Yang quickly jogs over. “Hey! Hey (Y/N)!”
“Face it, kids,” Krillin crosses his arms. “These weapons around us are useless.”
“They’ve evolved and defended humans and Faunus for years! We’d be dead without these things!” Jaune advocates.
“And think how much better you’d be if you were like us,” Yamcha smiles. “Trust me, kid, I know.”
“Then why don’t you help out at all with the Grimm?” Nora asks. “If you’re soooooo much stronger than us measly Huntresses.”
“I, uh,” Krillin sighs. “Sorry, I don’t mean it like that. You girls are plenty strong.”
“Now that we’ve learned Ki?” Blake speaks up.
“Well, yeah,” Yamcha bluntly says. “I mean, look at how you turn tail and ran from-“ Krillin grabs his mouth, dragging the taller man down.
“Don’t listen to him. He’s had his head hit one too many times.”
“Oh, hehe,” Yamcha’s muffled voice comes through Krillin’s hand. “He’s right. Big dumb dumb here.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“That’s not what I was expecting. Do you even know anything about armaments?” Krillin asks.
“I don’t even know that word,” you chuckle. “But they agreed to come and I think it’ll be fun!” You cheer. “Plus,” you cross your arms and look out to the ocean. “They feel bad that they weren’t any help the other day. I hope it motivates them to get stronger… but I also don’t want them feeling bad about it. So,” you look back to your comrades with a smile. “Let’s all get together and make the most out of it! Forget all about that Wheely guy!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Thanks to Yamcha, Weiss, Blake, and JNPR all adopt a downcast expression.
“Are we really useless without Ki?” Jaune sighs.
“No, they lost too,” Yamcha attempts to cheer them up, but Krillin jumps and gives him another smack.
“Yamcha! Go do something!”
“R-Right, hehe,” the scared man slowly starts walking backwards. “You’re all great. I hope I see you… later!” He turns and walks fast into the crowd.
Krillin exhales. “I’m sorry about him.”
“He wasn’t that bad when we trained,” Blake says, just above a whisper.
“That’s because he had something to focus on. You should’ve seen him back in the day. Women were,” Krillin laughs at the thought. “Well, he’s still not the greatest socializer. Listen,” Krillin adopts a reassuring smile. “Don’t beat yourself up too much. We… just have different views on this whole thing,” the small man crosses his arms. “But you’re all plenty strong in your own right. Don’t let what this guy,” he points at himself. “Says mess with that. I’m gonna go make sure Yamcha doesn’t do anything dumb… and (Y/N), for that matter.”
Krillin turns around and jogs after Yamcha, leaving the Beacon students to themselves.
“I don’t know if this was a good idea,” Blake crosses her arms, trying to wrap herself tightly.”
“Well… we shouldn’t waste the opportunity!” Pyrrha attempts to remain optimistic. “Let's see what sort of tech this place has to offer. Maybe we can find something for us?”
“I agree,” Ren nods. “Will you two be joining us?”
“Sure,” Weiss shrugs. “Let’s just see what this festival brings.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You and Yang walk down the street, gawking at everything going on, even while stuffing your face with food your friend graciously bought you.
“So, do you really not care about what happened?”
“Hm?” You say while inhaling a chicken leg. “What?”
“Us… well, we all feel so bad. We just got beat so easily.”
“That’s okay!” You pat her shoulder. “I got beat pretty easily too, a long time ago. Took awhile for me to beat Tien… Krillin got the better of me quite a few times… and, hey, you guys still saved my life against those Saiyans. I totally would’ve been a goner if not for you all.”
“That’s different!” Yang says with a hint of frustration. “They were so above and beyond everything… but these guys… we struggled so much,” Yang’s gestures mirror her mood, throwing her arms ahead of her gripping the air. “But we saw you. You beat all of them like nothing.”
“Mm,” you shift your lips to one side. “I think… I kinda get it. But you guys really shouldn’t see that as such a negative. Just think of it as a… goal!”
“A goal?”
“Yeah,” you nod. “When I meet someone stronger than me, it just makes me happy. I think that… that I can someday reach that level or even get stronger than that. It makes my body shake,” you smile. “I guess we’re different… but it’s still not such a bad thing. I know you all can get stronger, and I wanna help with that! But!” You hop in front of her, stopping the blonde from progressing. “This isn’t what we should be talking about! This is meant to be a fun trip where everyone is happy!”
“Is it?” Yang crosses her arms, leans on her hip, and smiles.
“Yeah,” you cheerily nod. “So let's look around at…” You scan the area. “All this stuff… I don’t really get it.”
“Don’t get it?”
“Step up! See how strong you are and win a prize!” A booming voice catches your attention.
“I’m strong,” you perk up like a small animal.
“Yes, you are, sweetie. We know,” Yang shakes her head.
“A prize sounds fun! Come on!” You grab Yang’s hand and start running, nearly knocking the girl off balance.
“H-Hey! I can follow you!” She shouts, but you don’t listen.
You pull her along right to the large punching machine.
“You two! You look like strong kids!”
“I am a strong kid!” You nod twice.
Yang pinches the bridge of her nose. “He’s so gullible…”
“Well, why not try out our punching machine! The harder you hit it, the better the prize you get! This is for our brawlers, our Huntsmen and Huntresses who like to get up-close and personal with their enemies.”
“That’s us!” You look to Yang, a wide, childish smile on your face.
“Yeah… huh…” Yang tilts her head when spotting some of the enhancements. “Kinetic, huh?”
“Indeed, ma’am! The more you hit, the more energy is stored up and you can release it.”
“Isn’t that like your Semblance?” You note.
“Yeah… these might actually be interesting.”
“Then let's get it!” You nod. “Can I try?”
“Now, now, it’ll take a lot of power to get that prize. It’s the top one!”
“That’s fine,” you nod, hopping in front of the machine. “Alright, can I try?”
The man stutters a little bit. Nobody has been this casual and confident so far. “O-Of course. Hit it as hard as you can!”
“Don’t!” Yang jumps beside you and frantically shakes her arms. “Don’t punch it with-“
You slam your fist into the machine, completely imploding the device while sending it flying diagonally into the air.
“Aaah,” Yang huffs.
“Hehe,” you turn to face her and the promoter. “I did it.”
“I… well, you… um…” The man attempts to keep his composure while other bystanders start gawking. “You… definitely did. You may take the prize.”
“Cool,” you swipe it off the table and hand it to Yang. “Here you go! A present. I don’t need it, and I like you so I think you’d like this.”
“Heh,” Yang shakes her head. “You have such a way with words,” she takes the box and smiles. “Thank you.”
“No problem,” you smile at her. “I… hm…” You become perplexed. “You know, you have a really nice smile.”
“Oh,” Yang runs a hand through her hair. “Well, yours isn’t so bad either. You gotta find a better time to flirt.”
“Flirt?”
“Yeah, when…” Yang stops in her tracks. “Nevermind. Come on, (Y/N), let’s see if we can find my sister.”
“But what’s a flirt?” You chase after her.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Weiss and Blake casually stroll up to Ruby, who’s playing a game for some parts. Ruby holds a small mallet, doing her best to smack the rubber Beowolves as they pop up.
“Ruby, what are you doing?”
“DESTRUCTION!” Ruby shouts while feebly smacking away at the board. “I’m gonna win, Weiss! I’M GONNA DESTROY!”
“You lose!” The game shouts.
“Noooooooooooooooooooo,” Ruby slumps to the floor, tears running down her cheeks. “That’s the eighth time…”
“Ruby,” Weiss shakes her head. “There’s a methodology to this…” The Heiress inserts the coins and grabs the mallet out of her fallen leader’s hand. “You just have to- ah!” The Beowolf pops up and disappears before Weiss can hit it. “Just surprised me there. See, you just…” Weiss waits for one to pop up.
A beowolf rears its head but retreats just as Weiss’ mallet hits. “Darn… I’ll get you…”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“Hehe,” Yamcha and Krillin sit at the more adult section where drinks are being sold. “Look at that one,” Yamcha gestures to another girl.
Krillin’s eyes are already locked on another girl – long blue hair, gorgeous figure, and doesn’t look like she should be here. “Okay,” Krillin rolls his shoulders. “Wish me luck.”
“Get’em, buddy!” Yamcha pats his back. “Now the rest are for me,” he chuckles.
“Hey there,” a blonde woman approaches him. “You look like a tough guy.”
“Ehhh… uuuuh…” Yamcha’s face blushes heavily while some drool falls from his lips.
“I… sorry, thought you were someone else,” the girl quickly passes by him and heads for another guy.
Krillin stops behind the woman, who’s looking at a mediocre weapon design.
“My gosh, I love the look. Huntsmen are so cool when they have these neat weapons.”
“It’s pretty impressive, right?” Krillin tries to speak confidently. “I… have a friend who uses that!”
“Really?” The blue-haired girl spins around, clapping her hands together and smiling at the small bald man, her shimmering blue eyes captivating the martial artist. “Are you a Huntsman?’
“Yep,” Krillin nods. “A pretty strong one, too!”
“So you fight those scary Grimm?”
“All the time,” Krillin boasts. “Me and my partner really put a number on them!”
“Oh really? We should get ice-cream and you can tell me all about it! I’m Maron!”
“Krillin!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You approach JNPR, who’s watching different demonstrations of upgrades for swords, shields, sickles, and poles.
“Heya!” You wave.
“Weren’t you with-“
“It’s a weird day,” you shrug, brushing off Pyrrha’s words. “What’re you guys doing?”
“Checking out these upgrades. I think it could do wonders to my sword!” Jaune says with starry eyes.
“Huh…” You think back on the issues your friends were having. “Can I see your sword?”
“I… why?”
“I just wanna see something.”
Jaune unsheathes his sword and hands it over to you.
“Hm…” You wiggle your hand a few times to get a feel for it.
“You see, these upgrades allow this regular sword,” the presenter shows off the simple blade. “To cut through military-class steel!” He grips the blade with two hands and puts all his strength into slashing through a square section of metal.
You look up at it, noting there are a few more still hanging.
“I don’t think you need it, Jaune.”
“What do you mean?”
“I… think this stuff is really cool. All the neat things people can do to their weapons. But it’s not enough, you know?” You hop up on stage and look to the metal. With a sleek and effortless motion, you cut through the same metal with Jaune’s blade.
“H-Hey! That stuff isn’t cheap!”
“See, Jaune,” you hop off the stage and hand his sword back to him. “I don’t want you guys to think you’re worthless without Ki… but it’s a really awesome way to improve yourself. If you’re not strong enough, you can’t even swing a sword. But if you’re super strong… well, even your simple sword can cut through anything.”
“Yeah… you’re right. A strong foundation is key,” Pyrrha says with a bit more joy in her voice.
“I’ll do my best to raise you guys even higher,” you smirk, clenching your fist before you. “If you’re willing to train with me? You’ve seen what RWBY can do. What I can do.”
“I want… I want to be a good Huntsman!” Jaune says with shaky conviction. “You’re right. Pyrrha, I want to continue our training too.”
“Of course.”
“YEAH!” Nora cheers. “I’m gonna throw buildings!”
“Can’t she already?” You look to Ren.
“Don’t ask.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“SUFFER OUR WRATH!”
“YOU CAN’T BEAT US!”
Ruby and Weiss’ enthusiastic screams are heard for miles. Yang, who followed those voices, is flabbergasted at the sight of her sister and the Heiress being so competitive against a whack-a-Grimm game. Even more surprising, they’re barely hitting any.
“You lose,” the machine says for the hundredth time.
“NOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOO,” Ruby holds onto Weiss, crying.
“You machine… you insult me!” Weiss puts another bit of Lien in and starts it up again. “YOU’RE FACING A SCHNEE!”
“AND A ROSE! A SCHNOZE!”
“A… AH! WE MISSED!”
“GET 'EM, WEISS!”
“Come on, more!” Blake demands.
Yang looks to her right where a food stand run by a familiar old man serves Blake, along with other patrons, massive bowls of fish.
“You think I’m gonna lose,” she looks at her competitors. “I’m getting the lifetime supply!” She declares before digging into the bowl.
Yang shakes her head. “Everyone’s bonkers today…”
She suddenly hears laughing from behind her. She looks back at you, hovering in the air, juggling kids that are no older than ten.
“What is this?” Yang gestures one hand. “What’re you doing?”
“They asked!” You shout back, keeping the kids in a fluid motion while they laugh.
Nora suddenly leaps into the air and into your hands.
“Do it to me too!”
You don’t miss a beat, adding Nora into the group of people you’re juggling.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You sit on one of the arches at Beacon, staring out at the sky. You watched the sun go down, and you’ll remain here until your class starts.
“Having fun?” Yang ascends from the ground and lands at your side.
“Yeah. Did you? I thought us going out was really fun.”
“I think it was a good reliever. Everyone seemed to have fun. Blake won food, Ruby and Weiss… well… I don’t think they’ll be spending much lien for a while.”
“Haha, at least it was fun,” you smile. “Everyone seems motivated now.”
“You too?” Yang nudges you.
“Me?” You look to her, lock eyes for a few seconds, then look back to the sky. “Yeah… yeah,” you cheerily nod. “I always have a motivation…”
“Being strong just to be strong?”
“Heh… yeah,” you snicker. “But… I also want to make sure everyone is safe,” you focus on the purple-eyed girl. “I lost my hometown… and I won’t let that happen again. You guys… this school,” you lay back, taking in the sky. “You’re all so important to me now. I mean that, you know,” you grab Yang’s hand.
“Eh…” Yang isn’t sure how to respond. “Remember when I mentioned flirting?”
“Huh? Oh yeah,” you bring your back up to be eye to eye with Yang. “You never explained to me what that was.”
“Well… you’re doing it now.”
“I am?” You bring back your hand and rub your chin. “Huh… I still don’t get it.”
“That’s sorta why it’s cute,” Yang winks at you.
“Right… right, okay,” you nod. “Yeah, I’m great at flirting!”
“Okay, you’re pushing it a bit. Calm down.”
You cross your arms, still smiling. “You have to explain it all to me. I really need to be set straight on all this.”
“One day,” she pats your head. “Come on, your class starts soon,” she pushes herself off the arch and falls all the way to the ground.
“Oh boy, I should show you what I have planned!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“Five thousand, three hundred and sixty-seven,” you push yourself up, still balancing on one hand. “Five thousand, three hundred and sixty-eight! How are you all doing?”
Your students, half a dozen less in number this time, all do their best to keep up with you. Only Yang and Mercury are following your example of one hand. The others are either doing regular push-ups or holding themselves straight up with both hands. It’s all still progress, even if none of them have gotten past one hundred.
“We’re… really tired,” one says, to which a few agree.
“Maybe… we should do… Ki control…” Weiss huffs.
“Huh… I guess,” you push off your one hand, flip forward, and land on your feet. “I guess we’ll have this as some homework. A sturdy body is a big part, you know. It has to be able to control and house the Ki you’re going to be using.”
Everyone lets themselves fall to the ground and catch their breath.
“So, I guess everyone will get to relax a bit. We’re gonna use the rest of our time to focus on our Ki. Those who already can, please sit over there,” you point a few meters away from the group. “When you catch your breath, we’re going to figure out where you want to go next.”
“Where… can we… go..?” One asks.
“Well, there’s learning how to make Ki blasts, focusing your Ki to amplify your body, maybe focusing your Ki into your weapon. Honestly, I’d like you to end up learning all of these things eventually, but we’re going to choose one to focus on. We’ll figure out flight another time,” you end with a wide smile. “Alright, that’s enough rest. Come on, we’re moving on!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
A Few Days Later…
Ozpin appears in the center of the Lookout. Piccolo has his eyes closed, focusing on a distant planet.
“He’s there, Ozpin,” Piccolo says with a hint of concern. “He’s there… and I’m not.”
“You have to trust your fellow Namekians,” Ozpin slowly approaches his alien friend.
“They’re not strong enough,” he tightens his fist. “And I… cannot leave this planet.”
“No… I suppose not,” Ozpin says, stopping beside Piccolo. “It appears Namek is facing a dark time.”
“What of you? You can go there.”
“No,” Ozpin shakes his head. “That’s not my place. I’m sorry to say, my friend, but I can’t intervene with something so… mm… mundane.”
“Tsk, is that what we are?”
“I apologize, Piccolo, but that’s not what my role is. However…” Ozpin looks to the sky. “It appears you may have someone to go on your behalf.”
Piccolo opens his eyes and feels the same presence Ozpin locked onto. He growls. “Saiyans…”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You drearily sit in class, waiting for the torture to end. Your hand is almost numb from how much pressure you’ve been putting on it. Your heavy head has almost fallen multiple times. That is until a sudden shock racks through your brain. Your eyes widen as you stand up, gathering the attention of the class.
“Excuse me, (Y/N),” Port speaks. “But if you have your own story you’ll have to-“
“I have to go,” you quickly say before powering up and flying straight out of the ceiling.
“Oh boy…” Port shakes his head. “Calm down, students,” he shouts as your classmates begin to whisper about what’s happening.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
As soon as you get outside of Beacon’s perimeter, RWBY soars in behind you.
“You felt it too?” You shout.
“Yeah! It’s one of those Saiyans, isn’t it? That’s what I felt,” Blake replies.
“I think so. Only one of them, though, and it’s not Vegeta!”
“What’re they doing here?” Ruby asks.
“I don’t know.”
While you all fly over the ocean, Krillin, Yamcha, and Tien soar in from beside you.
“You guys too?”
“Of course!” Tien nods. “We’re with you this time.”
“Right,” you smirk at him before bursting forward with even greater speed.
Your entourage follows the Saiyan’s signature, right to the island where the pod lands. It’s a small, barren island with no life at all on it. From what you see, it’s lucky he even landed on an island that miniature. The pod slowly opens up for a large male to exit.
Turles lifts himself out of the pod and the first thing he sees is you, arms crossed, standing in front of a plethora of other fighters.
“Well now, that’s quite the welcome wagon,” he chuckles. “Don’t worry, I’m not here to fight you, Kail.”
“That so?”
Turles steps off the pod and begins walking up the crater towards you. “I’m here for… a request.”
“You’re asking us for something?” Yang sassily responds.
“Not you, weakling. Him.”
Yang grinds her teeth, annoyed at his insult.
“What do you want?”
“You’re a goody goody, I gathered that. You know, there’s a planet being attacked and we’re trying to protect it,” Turles leans in closer with a twisted smile. “Thought you might want to help. Real bad one, Frieza is.”
“Frieza, huh?” You cross your arms. “Never heard of it. Is it a food?”
Turles frowns for but a moment. “He’s…” Turles thinks a moment on how he’s viewed you interact. “A very strong guy.”
You gasp. “Really?”
“Mhm,” Turles nods, knowing he has the fish on the tail. “And I don’t think we can beat him without you?”
“REALLY?” You become even more excited.
“You’re not strong enough to fight Frieza,” Piccolo’s voice speaks.
You all look over to Piccolo and Ozpin approaching from the right.
“GAH! Who is that?” Ruby points.
“I’ve never seen him,” Blake shakes her head.
“A Namekian? Here?” Turles notes. “Odd.”
“It’s nothing to concern yourself with, Saiyan,” Piccolo spits out the last word. “But there’s no point. Even if you went, you’d be decimated.”
“He’s that strong, huh?” Your smile grows.
“That’s why we’re coming together,” Turles speaks. “We’ve all grown stronger. I can imagine you have as well,” Turles focuses on you again. “If we all fight together…” His smile grows wide.
“You’d still die,” Piccolo replies, to which Turles’ face drops.
“When I ask for your opinion, Namekian, I’ll make sure you know.”
“Saiyans don’t take advice, unless it’s advice that gets them killed,” his eyes glare at you, running shivers down your spine.
Turles saunters away from you and approaches the stoic Namekian. “And why are you here… Namekian? Shouldn’t you be drinking water back home?”
“Tsk,” Piccolo lets his arms fall and matches Turles’ stare with even more ferocity. “Bold of you to say… when your planet is ashes.”
Turles furrows his brow at Piccolo. “Hmph, you have quite the mouth. Makes me wonder how strong you really are, Namekian. Clearly,” Turles looks to you and the others. “Lowering power levels is common. I know for a fact Kail… you’re not a measly one thousand. The rest,” his eyes glaze across your allies. “Well, they’re unimportant.”
“Hey!” Yang steps forward.
“Yang,” you coldly say without looking back.
“I…” Yang stumbles over her words, eventually stepping back. “Fine…”
“I… don’t know if we’re needed,” Krillin whispers.
“This wasn’t the strongest, was he?” Tien inquires to RWBY.
“No,” Blake shakes her head. “But he’s no slouch… stronger than all of us individually.”
“And (Y/N)?” Tien pushes.
Blake shakes her head. “No.”
“Well,” Tien relaxes. “I don’t think we’re needed.”
“But-“
“He’s not here to fight, and even if he does there’s…” Tien studders for a moment, hating his own words. “People stronger than us. Whatever happens, (Y/N),” you look over your shoulder at your Turtle friends. “Be safe.”
“I always am,” you flash a smile back.
Tien is the first to power up and fly away. Krillin and Yamcha hesitate.
“I got this guys, don’t worry.”
“You better,” Yamcha says before taking off.
“Be safe, buddy,” Krillin follows suite.
“Good. Less waste,” Turles remarks.
“Hey! Those are my friends!” You step forward.
“They may be your allies, but that doesn-“
“Friends,” you correct him.
“Hmph,” Turles can’t help but snicker. “Right… friends…” The Saiyan huffs. “Listen to me, Kail. Frieza is a horrible person.”
“You tried to blow up my planet.”
“Frieza runs a galactic empire,” Piccolo speaks up. “He’s a monster. Thus, the Saiyan,” the word is venom on his lips. “Is truthful about that. But I am also honest in saying that all of you, even together, are nothing to Frieza. If you go, (Y/N), you will die.”
RWBY looks between each other. On one hand, they’re pretty sure you don’t want to die. But a strong opponent is like sap to a rapier wasp. But there’s also the risk of you getting over your head. They don’t know Piccolo, but Ozpin hasn’t interjected with anything he’s said, nor added anything of his own. As much as they hate it, all they can do is listen to what everyone says.
“If I go…” You take a breath. “If I go, I’d have to be stronger,” you look at the Namekian with a fire in your eyes. “So I’d have to train! But,” your demeanor drops a bit. “I don’t even have a way to get there. Your pod is a little small, Turles,” you point a thumb at it.
“You… don’t have yours?”
“Mine?
“I… can speak on that,” Ozpin finally pops up. “Your pod was given to a friend of mine long ago. In fact… it’s been our special project. How convenient for you, (Y/N).”
“So… what do you think?”
“I think you should go, (Y/N).”
“What?” Piccolo’s sharp eyes lock to Ozpin. “You’re well aware how strong Frieza is!”
“And I think Saiyans can reach that level,” Ozpin calmly responds. “You spoke of Namek’s desperate time, no? Perhaps (Y/N) here can save it.”
“Tsk,” Piccolo looks away. “I’ve given my piece.”
“Hehe,” you crack your knuckles. “Even Piccolo is worried… and if this guy is that strong and that bad… I gotta take him on!”
“(Y/N),” Yang sighs.
“I’ll go!” You turn to Turles. “If I can use my spaceship, I’ll go with you.”
“Perfect,” Ozpin smiles. “I believe you can get ample training done on your way there. Last time I saw it, it can house both of you.”
Turles chuckles. “Very trusting for a human. Are you sure?”
“Of course I am,” Ozpin remains cheery.
Piccolo is visibly upset with this decision.
“Piccolo… Frieza is on your home planet, right?”
“Yes,” Piccolo bluntly replies.
“Mm…” You hop in front of him and smile. “I’ll make sure it’s safe. I promise!”
Piccolo shakes his head. “I doubt you can… but…” He huffs. “If you do, I’ll train you.” Your ears perk up when you hear that, your eyes sparkle, your heart races.
“Really?” You get even closer to the tall, green man.
“Don’t make me regret my offer,” Piccolo scolds your childish demeanor. “This is your choice, Ozpin,” Piccolo looks at the main before raising two fingers to his forehead. “If he dies, I won’t mourn.”
With that, Piccolo disappears, leaving you all with his words.
“Come,” Ozpin begins walking. “We’re going to have to tell my friend that we’ll need the ship. RWBY, return to school.”
“What? We can’t just-“
“Please,” Ozpin turns around, a humble look washing over. “I do not wish to put you in such danger.”
“But you’re putting (Y/N) in-“
“That’s different,” you reply. “I don’t know how strong this Frieza guy is… but I don’t think you should come,” you honestly speak.
“(Y/N)…” Yang’s voice drifts off. “Come on… we’re strong.”
“I know,” you smile at her. “But… hey, you can’t skip school, right?” You end with a chuckle. “Ozpin, where’s this ship?” You focus on the Headmaster.
Ozpin taps his cane twice, teleporting himself, you, and Turles to Atlas. You’re in a large room filled with computers, wires, and workbenches.
“Ah!” Briefs falls back. “Oh, Ozpin… and (Y/N). Who’s your friend?”
“Interesting technique,” Turles notes.
“He’s a buddy,” you smile.
“Is the ship done?”
“The… oh…” Briefs composes himself. “I’ve just been touching it up. It can fly, it has a gravity modifier, food, everything you requested.”
“You asked for all of that?” How long ago did…”
“Do not worry about that,” Ozpin smiles at you. “I’m someone who prefers to be prepared.”
“He is,” Briefs nods. “Well, let me show you how this ship works. It’ll take me an hour or so to prepare. I also need the coordinates of… wherever you want to go.”
“I can handle that,” Ozpin nods. “Don’t worry,” he looks to the two Saiyans. “The ship will fly itself to Namek. You just need to know how the gravity settings work, along with the food and general living.”
“Alright, show us!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
A few hours later…
“Gravity training, hm?” Turles notes, hovering in the air. “I admit, this wasn’t what I expected.”
“Oh, come on!” You soar past him, wasting time by doing tricks above Atlas and Mantle. “We get to train! Isn’t that fun?”
“I’m admittedly baffled by your trust,” Turles follows your movements. “We did try to kill you.”
“Yeah, I’m not happy about that,” you stop in front of him. “But I don’t sense you trying to deceive me. Besides, if you all think you need my help then it’s definitely serious.”
Turles chuckles. “Well… they didn’t. I came here on my own.”
“Really?” You spin around. “Well, it’ll be a pleasant surprise. So we’re just going there to beat this Frieza guy?”
“Frieza leads an army, and there some very strong members. Zarbon, Dodoria, the Ginyu Force… I believe he has someone else with him.”
“Someone else?”
“Indeed,” Turles nods. “Someone told Frieza about that Dragon Balls, and I think that person is still with him.”
“I see… so it’s serious,” you stop moving around and look higher. “Piccolo is trusting me with this one… I gotta do this.”
“Hmph,” Turles rolls his eyes. “Trust? That’s why you’re doing it?”
“Heh, it’s one of the reasons,” you smile at him. “A trip into space to stop a bad guy. I didn’t think this school year was gonna be so awesome!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“I don’t agree with this decision! I understand you want to make (Y/N) a powerful ally, but Frieza is just sending him to death!” King Kai communicates with Ozpin, who’s standing in front of a large, circular pod that Briefs is setting up.
“Saiyans thrive against foes who outmatch them.”
“Not to that degree!”
“Do you not trust your student?”
“Not against Frieza!”
“Everything is ready,” Briefs exits the pod. “The coordinates you gave me are in… should take them there no problem. How did you even know…” Ozpin replies with a simple brow raise. “You’re right, nevermind,” the doctor waves his hands. “I don’t want to know. They can leave whenever they wish.”
“I will get them,” Ozpin taps his cane twice, spontaneously transporting you and Turles to that room.
“Huh?” You look around, still in the air. “Oh, cool.”
“You’re free to leave. I will assure your pod is taken care of, Turles.”
“You… know my name?” Turles notes.
“Please, go,” Ozpin gestures to the ship. “From what I feel, your allies are already locked in combat.”
“Hmph,” Turles passes by and enters the pod, taking a look around.
“(Y/N),” Ozpin gets your attention before you pass. “I’m aware that your opponents may be extremely strong. Train your hardest while you’re travelling. And…” Ozpin materializes a bag in his hand. “I grabbed a pouch of Senzu beans for you. Should keep yourself healthy for training, and could save your life on Namek.”
“Oh, thanks,” you grab the pouch. “Don’t you worry. Gravity training with another Saiyan? I’m gonna get a whole lot stronger, just you watch,” you say with pure confidence. “Thank you, Ozpin. Dr. Briefs,” you bow to both. “I’ll be back in no time. Say goodbye to everyone at Beacon!” You run onto the ship.
Ozpin watches as the door closes and, without delay, the ship powers up and flies out of the hatched ceiling.
“Stay safe… all of you.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You watch out one of the windows as you fly farther and farther away from Remnant,
“Whoa… this is so cool.”
“To you, I suppose,” Turles remarks as he goes over the controls for the ship.
“Alright!” You hop back, completely giddy. “We’re gonna get so strong! You’re gonna be the perfect training partner!”
“Hmph… training isn’t something I’m used to,” Turles remarks. “But I will not sit still for days while you grow.”
“Exactly,” you appear beside him and pat his shoulder. “You’re gonna love… it…” Your face becomes perplexed as you recognize. You felt it before, but it’s so small you didn’t notice it when on Remnant. You leave Turles’ side and jump through the hole to the lower floor.
“What are you doing?” Turles slowly follows.
“I think…” You slowly look around, locking onto the signature… signatures. You slowly approach the closet and open it up, forcing team RWBY to topple out. You also notice the dozens of Gi’s in the closet resembling the Turtle School’s, but none are quite made like yours. They’re more like Krillin’s, except they have the option of a blue undershirt.
“Ah, hey!” Yang whines while Ruby’s plopped atop her.
“I thought we were hidden…” Weiss whines.
“You guys were fluctuating your power,” Blake remarks.
“It’s true,” you nod. “I barely even felt Blake was there. You’re really getting better with your Ki control,” you smile at her while she gets to her feet.
“Thank you.”
“Ah, now I recognize these ones,” Turles crosses his arms. “I didn’t think humans were foolish enough to follow us to death.”
“Mm…” You frown. “I kinda agree,” you scratch your neck. “You risked a lot stowing away. I don’t know how to go back.”
“Well,” Yang brushes herself off. “We didn’t want to let you go off on another adventure without us. You could use our help.”
“Not as you are,” Turles coyly smiles.
“Unless they trained too!” You cheer. “Yes! Now you have no excuse!” You start appearing between them, starting at Blake. “Now you HAVE to train!” You move to Ruby. “And get stronger!” To Weiss. “And better!” Then Yang. “And then we can kick butt together!”
“You’re too excitable,” Turles huffs. “I’m going upstairs.”
“I am too!” You cheer, leaping over to the ladder.
“Same here!” Yang slams her fists together.
“Nope,” you shake your head. “We get first dibs. Besides, I want you guys to focus on Ki control more. Stay down here while Turles and I have fun!”
“Whaaaaaaaaaaaat? That’s not fair!” Ruby pouts.
“But it’s what I said, so whatever,” you shrug. “Oh, wait!” You look up the ladder. “Do you wanna keep your clothes, uh, armour safe? We can wear those Gis so our clothes won’t be ruined!”
Turles looks down at his armour. “I… suppose.”
“Hehe!” You’re already undressing. “Alright, six days to Namek! Six days of the best training!”
Sorry this one took me so long. December was a bit of a busy month, but I wanted to at least get this out before January. Well, at least finish it. I don’t know when this’ll go out. Unfortunately, it’ll be a while before continuing. I’ll be completely finishing Dismal Demon, then do Crimson Shadow, then come back here. So… it’s sad, but it happens.
I hope you have enjoyed this chapter and are looking forward to the next chapter! I hope you all had a wonderful Christmas and a Happy New Year!
Want to keep up with me? Know what chapter’s coming out next and the progress of them? Follow me on Twitter! Twitter . com (slash) Chinsangan
Questions? Comments? Concerns? Advice? Send me a message!
I also have a Pa tr eon, if you want to check that out! Pat reon . com (slash) Chinsangan
My Discord is now open! If you want to join, either check my bio for a link, find it on my Twitter, or message me directly!
A special thank you to Patreon supporters: MazMan, Big Genatools, and Ride The Lightning
Thank you guys so much for supporting me! It means the world!
And finally, thank you to the Beta Reader: thenameisntimportant
Chapter 19: A Journey of Discovery! Onwards to Namek!
Chapter Text
Chapter 19: A Journey of Discovery! Onwards to Namek!
Day 1
You and Turles get suited up in the Turtle Hermit outfit. Turles makes himself different by neglecting to wear the blue undershirt, while you keep it on.
“It’s been a while since I wore this,” you pat your chest. “Pretty cool. I like mine better, though,” you look over to the girls, all holding a set. “Why haven’t you changed yet?”
“We’re not going to change in front of you two!” Weiss barks.
“Ah, okay,” you raise your hands. “Turles, wanna go up there and test it out?”
“Of course,” Turles tightens the bands on his wrists and shakes his legs, making sure the boots are tight enough.
Turles passes by you and goes upstairs right away. You look over to the girls, all holding a set of clothing in their hands while staring at you. Your head tilts to the side, confused at what they’re doing.
“You… haven’t changed yet?”
“We weren’t going to change in front of you!” Weiss barks.
“Why not? You’re not getting naked or anything,” you shrug.
“He’s not wrong,” Yang shrugs, taking off her jacket.
“Yang?” Ruby’s voice is unsure.
“It’s just him. Besides, do you think he’s going to stay here and watch us change or go up and fight that guy.”
Your smile lights up the area. “Definitely the fighting!” You nod, turning away and flying up to the next floor. The open hatch closes off, officially separating the two races.
The girls all take their separate locations, stripping down to their underwear.
“I hope nobody is regretting this,” Ruby says with a chuckle. “Cause I’m certainly not. Nope. Seeing Remnant all the way down there… seeing… I don’t see Remnant anymore,” she whines, jogging over to the window.
“Ruby, put your clothes on first,” Yang calls out, already having the pants, boots, and undershirt on.
Yang pauses for a moment, looking down at her stomach before coming up with an idea. She quickly undresses again, laying her clothes on the floor before getting to work.
“These have always been comfortable,” Blake points out, tightening the belt around her waist. “Perhaps we should keep one of these when we get back.”
Weiss bounces in place, now fully clothed as well. “It’s good to wear this without that old pervert staring at us,” she starts rolling her shoulders. “But what are we going to do down here?”
Save for the serviceable kitchen, closet, bathroom, and mediocre resting station which only has two beds, there isn’t anything on the bottom floor to do. There are heavy weights and a ceiling-mounted string, but there’s no leisure activities, nothing for the girls to do other than sit around or train. The girls are disappointed in this, but it had to be expected. The journey was intended for you and Turles, which means it was probable the only activities that would transpire are eating, sleeping and training. On top of that, this bottom floor was clearly made for leisure and not actual training. But the girls have to make do.
“Training is the only thing we can do,” Yang says as she gets back on her feet, still focused on her project. She’s ripped parts of the gi apart – making the pants short shorts and cutting the undershirt and gi down so her midriff is still exposed. Content with her results, Yang quickly dresses. “We all knew that there’s going to be some seriously strong people on Namek. We can’t be dead weight (Y/N) has to protect.”
“Yang’s right,” Ruby nods, finally getting dressed. The only extra addition to her wardrobe is the cape wrapped around her. Being so far away from home, it’s something Ruby won’t put away. The leader stands confidently in the center of the room, getting her team's attention. “We have to do everything we can to power up and be useful. We’ll do Ki control and when those two are sleeping, we’ll do more bam bam,” she throws two punches in rhythm with her words. “Training.”
“Do you really think they’ll let up?” Blake remarks while taking a seat. “With a partner like that, I feel like he’ll be going for a while.”
“Yeah, I bet his stamina is unlimited,” Yang snickers, leaning on her hip. “But I get your point, Blake,” Yang takes a seat across from her. “So, image training? Ki control?”
“I would like some image training, if you’d assist,” the Faunus smiles at her teammate.
Yang and Blake begin focusing in on each other while Ruby and Weiss are left to themselves. Ruby jogs over to her clothes and grabs Crescent Rose. “I want to do some Ki Control. I wanna amp up Crescent Rose!”
“I’ll join you,” Weiss passes by Ruby, collecting Myrtenaster. “I want to work on my mixture of glyphs and Ki.”
The two girls take position beside each other, Weiss planting the tip of her blade against the ground and summoning a white glyph around her. Ruby takes a deep breath, focusing her Ki around Crescent Rose.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You slingshot yourself over the ladder and land right in front of the entrance. Turles clicks a button, closing off the hatch.
“We don’t want to crush your friends, after all,” he remarks with annoyance.
“Sorry about that,” you chuckle, slowly walking up to him. “I really didn’t know they were there.”
“They’re going to die,” he bluntly states. “They could barely handle us when injured. Frieza’s Forces are…” Turles throat cuts him off, disgusted at what he’s going to say. “They’re… stronger than us.”
“They are?”
“Well, they were,” he clicks a few extra buttons. “Thanks to our biology, all of us have dramatically increased our strength from our battle. Still…” Turles shifts his focus to you, moving his body injunction. “If we arrive on Namek as we are now, we will die.”
“Well,” you begin stretching your legs. “That won’t be a problem, right? Let's get this show going already.”
“Hmph… your enthusiasm is something,” Turles brings up the settings. “Gravity… must we start with ten?”
“Nah,” you shake your head, now loosening up your arms. “I already trained with that before. Let’s go twenty.”
“Good,” Turles raises the settings to twenty-five, just to make things a little more interesting.
The room doesn’t give any feedback on the change, but your bodies immediately feel it. Turles falls to one knee whilst you manage to stay on your feet. Both of you are shaking, finding it difficult to even look at each other.
“Whoa… this is so intense,” you shakily manage to take a step. “Guess… we won’t be fighting right away,” you slowly get down to the ground. “We have to adjust.” You slam both your hands against the ground and start doing push-ups, counting aloud as you progress.
Turles sees your basic method of adapting and decides to follow his own route. He slowly enters a fighting stance and shakily throws a punch ahead of him. His arm wobbles as he retracts it, and wobbles as he throws it again. Both of you begin sweating already at simple actions that you’d be able to do a million times at any other gravity. But your determination to progress and overcome pushes your Saiyan bodies beyond. The concept of time becomes non-existent to you both. You merely train, hitting ups and downs.
Despite the pool of sweat beneath your tense face, you stay strong and keep pushing your body. Even when you fumble, when you drop a bit, you keep your stance and press on. That is until your hands slip in the sweat and you collide chin first with the ground – your body shaking from the impact.
“Ow,” you whine, barely managing to bring your hands up to rub the wounded area. “I ruined… my streak.”
“Shuts you up,” Turles exhales while throwing sloppy high kicks. “I can barely focus with you yapping the whole time.”
“I don’t want to lose count,” you retort, getting right back to holding yourself up with your left arm. “Eight thousand three hundred and fourty seven… Eight thousand three hundred and fourty eight…”
Turles ignores you and focuses on what he’s doing. He’s well aware that he’s not nearly as strong as you. Despite belittling your use of time, you’ve adapted better than he has, even if that is only by a little. While training was never something he ever thought of doing, the fact that you jumped from below Kakarot to rivaling Vegeta validates the act for him. If he follows your lead, he may become the strongest Saiyan. That, or share the title with you. Either way, Turles will not allow himself to be left behind.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“How much do you think they’ll eat?” Ruby asks while approaching the fridge, tired from her hours of training.
“Depends on how much we have,” Yang replies while shadow sparring near the beds.
Ruby opens the fridge and is flabbergasted at the amount of food stored within.
“Whoa… this all looks so tasty!”
Yang leans over to have a gander at what’s inside. “Doubt that’ll be enough. You know how much (Y/N) eats.”
“Well, he’ll have to share,” Ruby nods her head, grabbing a banana for a snack. “At least we don’t have to cook anything. Looks all pre-made.”
“You mean, at least we don’t have to cook anything.”
Ruby turns around, banana in the mouth, and pouts.
“Ifh cwam potualy cuuk!”
Yang chuckles at her sister’s jumbled mess of words. She looks to the floor above.
“Wonder how they’re doing. I thought (Y/N) would get hungry at this point,” Yang shifts her gaze to the remaining members of her team, Blake and Weiss, who’re in deep meditation. “I’d like a chance to use that gravity room.” Yang exhales, signalling her body to relax. She hops on one of the beds and stretches. “I should rest while I can. I want to be in tip-top shape when it’s our turn.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Hours pass as you both manage to adapt surprisingly well. Turles has already begun a routine of punches, kicks, dodges, any movement that can force his body to accept this new gravity and grow from it. You, on the other hand, manage to achieve thirty thousand reps of push-ups – ten for both arms, then ten for each individual arm – and sit-ups.
Turles stops for a second, body extremely fatigued. “You haven’t begun fighting.”
“I’ll get there,” you huff on the ground, recovering from your exercises. “Man… I could use a drink. Or food,” you slowly get on your feet, moving far easier than you did hours ago. “How long have we been at this?”
Turles, also tired and weighed down by the gravity, steadily approaches the terminal. “Thirteen hours.”
“WHAT?” You try to lift your head off the ground, but the gravity and your fatigue make it impossible. “Man… I think this is the longest I’ve gone without eating.” On cue, your stomach grows fiercer than any Grimm could. You start chuckling. “What do you say we take a break? I could probably go for a nap.”
“I agree,” Turles clicks the machine to return gravity to normal. He hops in place a moment, feeling lighter than ever. “Well, I’m sure this will be fruitful when we’re done.”
“Yeah,” you roll onto your stomach and start crawling towards the hatch. “Food… drink… need sustenance.”
“You’re a Saiyan, don’t be so pathetic.”
“I don’t even know what you mean,” you whine, reaching the hatch and opening it.
Turles watches you crawl in and hears your scream followed by a thud. He shakes his head. “I suppose you don’t.”
With you gone, Turles lets himself drop to one knee and pant. He didn’t want to appear weak in front of you. Why he even cares about it is beyond him. Perhaps because he’s always bent his knee and put on a face in front of people stronger than him. Mainly Vegeta, which almost makes the callous Saiyan chuckle. Comparing you to Prince Vegeta would be considered blasphemous, yet the power aspect is there. It’s almost crazy for Turles to think of. Sure, you’re far from the strongest person he’s been around, but the majority of them are so serious and uptight about their immense power. Then there’s you, crawling along the floor and crying about feeling hungry.
The Saiyan shakes his head and slowly shuffles towards the hatch. He’s also famished, so a good meal and some refreshments will do him well. Turles descends the ladder and witnesses quite a sight.
“Jeez, (Y/N), and here I thought you’d be responsible!” Yang says while hoisting you on her shoulder.
“Train responsibly,” Ruby nods her head, arms crossed and very confident.
“Please feed me,” the tears stream down your eyes.
“Alright. But we get the gravity room.”
“That’s fine,” Turles replies, garnering everyone’s attention. “We’re done for now.”
“You girls go on,” Yang flicks her head towards the ladder. “I’ll make sure this meathead gets some food.”
“Thank you, blonde goddess of yums,” you look up at her, the ceiling light making her hair sparkle. “Your generosity will never be forgotten.”
“Oh boy,” Yang laughs, turning towards the fridge and taking you along. “We better hurry.”
Yang sits you down at the eating area and opens up the fridge, swiftly grabbing a whole ham before throwing it towards you in an arc. She quickly shoots a small ki blast from her hand, enveloping the meat in it and roasting the meal to perfection. It lands before you, steaming and ready to devour. As soon as the succulent smell swirls into your nose, your eyes light up like stars. You tear apart the food like it’s nothing, barely giving Yang enough time to set down two drinks and three bowls of soup. You eye the food, then look at her… staring… staring…
“That’s all you get. There’s a lot of us, you know.”
“Hehe,” you smile at her, mouth full and eyes closed. “Bokay,” you barely say with a full mouth.
Yang can’t help but smirk at your admittedly cute appearance – all innocent and happy, eating away like there’s not a care in the world. Yang takes a seat, having her own bottle of water to drink. She looks over at Turles, who’s already taken a bed to sleep.
“Guess he’ll eat later. So,” her focus returns to you. “Have fun?”
“Yeah!” You blurt out after engulfing an entire bowl’s contents. “This is some of the toughest training I’ve ever done, and we haven’t even started fighting!”
“Really? What’ve you been doing?”
“Getting used to the gravity. It’s like training on King Kai’s planet. He had ten times gravity and it took me a while to really get used to it. So Turles and me’ve kicked it up to twenty five! Hopefully, we can get up to a hundred before we reach there,” you gulp down an entire glass of water and slam it on the table, staring blankly for a second.“We have to, right?” You look up at Yang, a confident tone that stuns the girl to her core. “These guys are gonna be beyond the Saiyans… maybe even when they were those big monkeys. I promised Piccolo I would help everyone on Namek. I have to be strong enough to do that! Hehe… having to get stronger, thinking about these guys, I’m getting fired up already!”
A smile slowly creeps on Yang’s face. “You’re incredible, you know that?”
“Huh?” Your face returns to the soft and dumbfounded normal state.
Yang can’t help but chuckle at the quick change between serious and silly. She stands up and starts walking towards the ladder. She stops before it, looking over her shoulder to you, who’s still puzzled. “I’ll train hard too,” she gives you a thumbs up and smiles. “And we’ll win together.”
The brawler jumps to the top of the ladder, landing before it. Weiss, who’s at the controls, closes the hatch and fiddles with the settings. “Gravity training… where should we start?”
(Y/N) mentioned training at ten times somewhere while he was away. We’re stronger now than he was then… so…
“Let’s start at five!” Yang declares.
“Five? What?” Ruby whines.
“(Y/N) was able to do ten when he was weaker. I’m giving you a handicap, sis,” the teasing sister winks. “We can’t be left behind. We came here because we wanted to help. No way we can slack off now!”
“It would be best to use this room to its fullest. I’m certain (Y/N) and Turles will remove us once they’ve woken up,” Blake remarks, already stretching.
“Well,” Weiss hesitantly raises the number to five. “I… guess if that’s what we’re doing,” she takes in a deep breath. “Starting it in three… two… one,” she exhales before starting the program.
All of RWBY drops to their knees, already sweating from the pressure.
“I’m… gonna become a pancake,” Ruby squeals
“We… can do this!” Yang gets to one knee. “We have to…”
Weiss pulls herself up to the console, turning it down to three. While still overbearing, all the girls manage to handle this gravity far better.
“Why’d you do that?” Yang slowly turns to her friend.
“We’ll make our way there. We’re only human, after all,” Weiss tries moving with her speech, that alone being an exercise. “We have five more days. We’ll get up there.”
While wanting to make progress, Yang does feel how much easier this is while still pushing her body. The rest of her team is doing the same. Already testing their movement with this immense pressure.
Yang steels herself and finds a corner to train. She starts throwing punches one after another, adding a different kind of kick every ten sets. As the sweat begins to drip, she keeps focused.
(Y/N), you’re not going to be fighting alone. I’ll have your back, I promise… I’ll be strong enough to have your back!
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Day 2
You’re snoring away while Turles fills his stomach with food. He’s far more restrained than you are, having only as much food as he needs. Even if his appetite can surely match your own, he’s not as gluttonous as his comrades. With a meal fit for training, Turles gets to his feet and approaches you. As he walks, he notices a stack of supplies that were brought by the girls. Momentarily intrigued, Turles changes course and decides to examine their equipment. He kneels down at the pack, noting a small brown pouch. He picks it up and spreads the seams, revealing a big batch of green beans.
“What are these?”
Turles’ ears catch the gravity machine shutting down. He takes the bag and walks towards the hatch, intending on learning what the purpose of these beans are. They’re barely suitable for a snack, but it does cross his mind that it may simply be comfort food for one of the girls.
He stops just at the end of the short hallway when the hatch opens. The girls slowly crawl done, bodies shaking from the intense eight-hour workout.
“I’m… never doing that again,” Ruby whines, getting off the ladder and falling face first.
“It’s a lot,” Weiss nods, following her leader. “Come on, dolt,” she shakily kneels down to assist Ruby. “Beds are… close…”
As Yang descends, her eyes spot Turles. “Well, I guess we’re not as strong as you guys,” she painfully laughs. “You went for nearly double our time.”
“Of course,” Turles rolls his eyes. “Your bodies cannot hope to match a warrior race’s,” his eyes drift down to the pouch. “I was going to ask you… what are these?” He holds his hand up to show the beans.
“He brought those?” Blake notes, being the last to reach the bottom floor. “I wish we’d known. Those are senzu beans,” she answers. “They heal your body completely.”
“What?” Turles exclaims. “That… that’s how Kail recovered during our battle.”
“Got that right,” Yang nods. “Doesn’t matter how beat up you are, they’ll get you to a hundred percent.”
“Give me one,” Ruby cries out.
“We’re going to rest anyway,” Weiss sets the scythe wielder on the bed Turles was occupying. “I’m surprised (Y/N) didn’t use them earlier.”
“I am as well…” Turles stares at them. “Well,” he tightens the pouch back up and walks towards the beds. “We’ll make use of them today,” he stops beside you and kicks you off the bed. “Kail.”
“WAH!” You slam against the hull, rolling down and hitting the floor. “Jeez,” you rub your ribs. “What did I do?” You notice the girls all here, clothes a little torn and drenched in sweat. “Oh, you gals are done?”
“Yeah,” Yang nods, not even worried about your state. She heads right for the bed you were just kicked out of. “Have fun, hot stuff,” she lazily waves at you before falling on the bed.
“At least make some room,” Blake complains, finding her place beside Yang.
You stand up and roll your shoulders, watching the pairs snuggle into the beds. “Well, I guess we shouldn’t waste any time,” you look to Turles, smile, then run for the hatch. “Last one there’s a smelly Grimm!” You shout, flying up to the next floor.
Turles ignores you, staring at the pouch of Senzu beans. He smirks, knowing a way to work this. He tosses it back towards the corner and follows you to the next floor. You’re already at the controls, thankful that they left it at the dial so you don’t have to figure how to get there. You look over your shoulder at Turles with a wild smile.
“Twenty-five again?”
“Neither of us can move normally, so yes.”
“Cool,” you activate the machine. “I hope we can double by tomorrow.”
Turles smiles to himself. If he’s correct, there won’t be a need to train at all. But he needs to demonstrate it to you properly. He feels like just saying it won’t work with someone like you.
“Alright,” you hop forward and get into a handstand position. “Time for more. One… two… three…”
Turles struggles a little bit with keeping normal. It’s clear that both of you have grown significantly in just one day, but the gap between you two still remains. Turles raises his hands and starts a routine of punches and kicks, similar to what he did yesterday.
“When we’re warmed up, do you want to try sparring? Twenty-seven…”
“It would be nice to start actually fighting rather than combating my shadow,” he remarks.
With a plan in mind, you manage your pushups even faster than you thought possible. Within two hours, you manage your twenty thousand total. You push off the ground and land on your feet, stance wide and smile wider.
“I’m so pumped!” You shout with vigour.
Turles turns around, his gi damp with sweat. He’s surprised when you’re still fairly dry. You’re ahead of him. This gravity will lose its edge on you soon. But Turles won’t be behind for long.
“Then why don’t you test something out? Like seeing how much more power you have?”
“How so?”
Turles relaxes his body and slowly approaches, obviously plotting something but you’re not one to pick up on the obvious.
“Test out your new power, why don’t you?”
“Huh? Oh, yeah! I know how!” Your body flares with red ki – the Kaioken – and you put your hands to your side. “I’ll see how I can handle my own Kamehameha!”
Turles hides his smirk. He didn’t even have to coerce you into doing this. Plus, with you adding the Kaioken on top of it, Turles’ power will amplify even higher. As you charge, he starts a plausible sparring routine, inching himself closer to your proximity. You fire the beam, shifting your hands to veer it around the center and back towards you. As it comes around, Turles loses his footing and falls back, turning just a bit to be hit head-on by the blast.
He was not ready for the impact. His eyes instantly go white as pain showers his body. He’s never been hit by something so powerful, and it’s just about killed him.
“Turles!” You shout, your Kaioken flickering out.
You dash to the console, turning off the gravity then jump to Turles. Blood is pooling out of his mouth while the cloth covering his chest has been obliterated, leaving a blackened impact area.
“Damnit, hold on!” You open the hatch and jump down.
You dart across the room, ignoring the snoring coming from the girls, and grab the bag of Senzu beans. You hurriedly glide across the ground and propel yourself back onto the top floor, landing beside your fallen Saiyan comrade.
“Turles, chew!” You shove the bean in his mouth.
He weakly manages to crush and ingest the bean, recuperating immediately. His eyes gain their black colour as breath fills his lungs. At that moment, you both feel a massive surge in his power. In that one moment, he went from weaker than you were on Remnant to on par with Vegeta at full power.
“Hehehe,” he slowly gets to his feet and tightens his fist, basking in this boost. “Look what we can do, Kail,” he turns to you. “We don’t need to train. Our biology will carry us to absolute power.”
“You… did that on purpose, didn’t you,” you frown as you stand up straight, tying the bean bag up.
“Of course I did. I’m no clumsy fool,” he chastises. “Do you not see what we can do?”
“I guess,” you shrug. “But that doesn’t seem very fun.”
“Fun?” He scoffs. “This isn’t about fun, Kail. This is about our evolution!”
“Hehe, I may not know much but didn’t everyone keep going on about a Warrior Race?”
“So what?” Turles crosses his arms.
“Then shouldn’t we get our power from being… well, warriors? Blasting ourselves half to death doesn’t seem very warrior to me.”
“Tsk, you fool. This is our ticket to defeating Frieza.”
“Then blast yourself,” you approach the gravity console.
“I can’t.”
“Why?” You place your hands on the keyboard and gaze over at him.
“We don’t grow stronger from self-inflicted wounds.”
“Guess you’re out of luck then,” you end with a childish grin while the gravity display rockets up to twenty-five.
“I don’t understand!” Turles throws his hand to the side, not realizing how much easier that was now than before. “Why do you want to keep training when we can simply do this?”
“You want to do it this way, Turles?” You place the beans on the console and step away, squaring off with Turles. You slide your left foot back, tuck in your right arm, and raise the left. “Then I’ll hit you as hard as I can. But you better be hitting back.”
Turles stares for a moment, completely awestruck. Even without experiencing their culture, you still reject an easy way to gain power. Maybe he’s the odd one out. Maybe he’s the Saiyan who lacks pride. But you won’t go along with his plan willingly. Still, if you two keep beating each other half to death with increased gravity, the same effect will occur. Besides, even Turles wouldn’t say that fighting the entire trip is more entertaining than blasting holes in each other’s stomachs over and over.
Turles rips off the remnants of his shirt and puts his arms at his side. “Fine then, bring it, Kail,” his eyes become fierce.
You both dash at each other, fists slamming together with enough force to shatter a planet. You push your fist right, then spin around and bring your heel down on Turles’ cheek. He falters, but tightens his fist and uppercuts you, followed by three punches to the stomach and a final kick. You sling through the air, just about to hit the wall before disappearing and driving your fist into his face.
After a second of no movement, you and Turles vanish from view, but the sounds of your fighting continue to linger on. For hours, you and Turles exchange blows as if you were mortal enemies, but the smile is still there. You’d each get an edge once in a while. A Kamehameha to the back here, a Killdriver there, and senzu beans used only when one person couldn’t move anymore.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
12 Hours Later…
All of team RWBY have woken up and gotten ready for the hours ahead. They’re not even sure what time it is on Remnant, merely relying on their internal clock to dictate what’s day and night.
Weiss is the last one to leave the washroom, all showered and geared up in a Gi. Yang and Blake set down breakfast for their team as Ruby sits happily in a chair, humming a happy tune.
“Breakfast, breakfast, yummy yummy pancakes,” she whisper sings.
“Delivered by your darling sister,” Yang sings along, setting down Ruby’s and hers.
“Weiss, you’re here,” Blake puts it down before sitting with her own plate.
The four girls gather together, all beginning their meals.
“You know, I bet we’re the first people on Remnant to have breakfast in space!” Ruby says with rising excitement.
“Yeah, probably,” Yang nods, drowning her pancakes and eggs in syrup.
“We have to take a picture!” Ruby shouts, running out of her chair to grab her scroll.
“Are we… really?” Blake looks to her friends.
“Why not,” Weiss shrugs. “It could be fun to have more pictures of us.”
Ruby appears a little bit away from the table, holding the scroll above her head. Her tongue is poking out the side of her mouth as she readies her plan.
“Are… you planning on dropping it while taking a picture?” Blake tilts her head to the side.
“Mhm!”
“Why not just put it over there,” Blake points to the counter that will deliver a similar angle.
“Because then our messy bed is in view.”
“Gives us character,” Yang says before gobbling down a pancake.
“Oh fine,” Ruby whines, speeding around to the other side and setting her scroll up. “Five seconds! Five seconds!” She jumps on her chair, tipping herself over. “WAH! No, seconds!” Ruby blasts the floor to propel herself up and smile at the scroll. All the girls either full out laugh or barely manage to hold it in. That’s what the scroll captures – four girls all enjoying themselves in their own way.
After some more conversation and a good meal in their stomach, the girls prepare for their bottom floor training.
“Still sore from the gravity training,” Yang rolls her shoulders. “So we should probably cool off until we use it again.”
“I’ll be focusing on my Semblance for now,” Weiss grabs some vials of Dust and lays them down before her. With a deep breath, her snowflake lights up below her.
“I’ll be doing the same,” Blake adds, kneeling beside her pack. As she gathers her weapon, her eyes glaze over the Dust vials that were gifted to her by Weiss. They were effective against some Grimm, and Blake will take any advantage when they reach Namek.
Ruby focuses on her scythe again, putting even more time into her Ki integration with Crescent Rose. That leaves Yang on her own, rather sad that she has nobody to at least share some image training with. She’s about to start a short routine when the hatch opens up. Her eyes immediately dart over, a little disappointed when it’s Turles first, but you follow soon. She’s surprised at your states – only fragments of your trousers are left, with Turles practically wearing shorts. Despite that, you’re both completely pristine in terms of health.
“I’m so thirsty,” you run to the fridge and grab a bottle of water. “Oh, hey Yang!” You wave before drinking the entire bottle in a matter of seconds. “Oh, man,” you slam your chest. “That was a bad idea. Went down the wrong hole,” you start uncontrollably coughing while desperately clawing at your throat.
“Don’t die so pathetically, Kail,” Turles says over his shoulder.
The Saiyan notices Weiss standing before some multicoloured vials. He raises a brow and veers towards her.
“Are you coming back, Turles?” You ask so nonchalantly as if you didn’t just choke.
“Go ahead for now.”
You shrug, quickly heading back to the ladder.
“Hey,” Yang calls out. “Do you want someone to train with?”
You look back, clearly looking a little guilty. “I need… I’m sorry, Yang,” you bow. “Maybe another time. Right now, I need to train at a hundred percent! I just… well,” you rub the back of your neck.
“I get it, I get it,” Yang turns around, slamming her hands on the hips. “I’ve lost your respect as a warrior.”
“GAH!” Your colour fades as your mouth drops. “THAT’S NOT WHAT I MEANT!” You squeal.
“Go on, go. Shoo,” Yang gestures you away. “I don’t even want to see you.”
You slowly, sadly, fly yourself out of sight with round eyes that would entice anyone who didn’t already know you. The hatch closes, leaving the foreign Saiyan with the girls.
“You two have been improving,” Yang notes, being the only one who isn’t in the middle of training.
“You can tell?”
“I can sense it,” Yang nods, rolling her shoulders.
“Sense it?” Turles is clearly confused. “You… can feel our power levels? Without scouters?”
“Yep,” the blonde nods. “Thought you tough guys could do that.”
“No…” Turles thinks about this for a moment. “I request that you teach me.”
“Request? But I…” Yang crosses her arms and thinks. Though this isn’t anything that will increase her power, Ki control is always something they can work on. They aren’t like you, or even these Saiyans. They’ve only started using Ki a year ago while the Saiyans have likely been using it their entire lives. She really can’t lose by doing this training. “Alright, I’ll help. You can handle your Ki, right?”
“Of course,” clearly taking offense to the question.
“Don’t sass the person trying to help,” Yang fires back. “Now come on,” she takes a seat. “I guess you’ll be able to pick up on this soon. You sure you want to use your time doing this?”
“Yes,” he bluntly replies, taking a seat beside Yang.
“Without… changing clothes?”
“That won’t affect my abilities.”
“I guess not,” Yang centers herself and takes a deep breath. “Now… look into yourself… and then outward. Use your Ki to see.”
“How vague,” Turles remarks while still following the girl’s instructions.
“It’s how (Y/N) taught it,” she fires back.
“Kail, huh?”
Turles expands his Ki around him, attempting to feel each person inside the ship. He’s surprised that none of his entourage has ever thought of sensing Ki. But that’s an act born of laziness. They’ve always had scouters, always been able to track everything with a machine. There was never a need to use their own Ki to find others.
Turles does gain a new perspective from the experience, though. Even if these humans are drastically weaker than him, there are still things to learn. They have knowledge and abilities that he, as the dominant individual, does not have. He won’t say it, but that alone grants them a bit of respect in Turles’ eyes. Perhaps he’ll grow in technique along with power during this trip. Even if this distraction leads to you being stronger than him, it’ll add valuable tools to his arsenal that even his fellow Saiyans don’t have. Every advantage will help.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Hours Later…
Your body flows easily through the air as you throw punches and kicks in all directions, imagining them hitting faceless opponents. The room is darker, the only lights being from any stars in space and the shining buttons in the center. A prominent 30 displays itself for anyone who wishes to look. After all the training you and Turles have done, even this feels normal. But that doesn’t stop your muscles from aching and the sweat building.
You land on the ground, pull your hands in, then fire to balls on either side. They circle around the outside until they collide, morphing into a bigger blast that shoots right at you. Your hands raise to catch it, but it explodes on contact. Your body flings into the smooth wall with a loud THUD followed by ear-piercing screeches as your body slides down to the ground. Your chin is the first thing to touch the floor. It props up your body, leaving you a twitching mess against the wall.
“I… think I’m done…” You throw your hand forward and pull yourself, dragging your nearly naked and very sweaty body across the floor. One exaggerated hand swing at a time, you pull yourself to the console. “Pause…” You slap the console. “Pause…” You slap it again. “Come on,” you finally hit the right button, stopping the higher gravity. “Maybe I’ll just… just sleep here,” you let your hand fall down the console, landing on your hair. Your face relaxes as sleep takes over and your body begins to rest.
It doesn’t take long, about seven minutes, before someone comes up to retrieve you. It’s Turles, having sensed that your energy dropped dramatically. All of RWBY follows, stepping away from the hatch so Turles can bring you back down.
“Overworked himself,” The lone Faunus shakes her head.
“Like a Saiyan,” Turles notes.
“Huh,” Ruby notes those words. “Well, should we start? Do you want to join us, Turles?”
He stops midway to the hatch and snickers. “I’ll pass.”
The Saiyan jumps down to the bottom floor, leaving the humans to themselves.
“Why do I feel like he won’t be an ally for long,” Weiss remarks. “Why did you even help him learn to sense?” She turns to Yang, wrapping her arms around her body.
“Well… we’ll need all the help we can get,” Yang casually approaches the console and sets it to seven.
“We’ll worry about that later!” Ruby rallies the team. “We have to focus on getting stronger!”
“Right,” the other three nod.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Day 3
You and Turles have tagged out with the girls after a refreshing rest. The girls take your place, having trained at intense gravity for hours. They aren’t Saiyans like you. They don’t get exponentially stronger from this training like you two. Of course, they are growing in power but not even close to what your Saiyan biology allows you two.
Equipped with a new Gi, you both ready yourself for even more intense training.
“We’re doing it! We’re doing it!” You cheerfully jump towards the console. “Fifty times gravity. This is gonna be so much fun!”
“Fun is a word for it,” Turles remains still, merely watching your upbeat movements. “Will you please start it.”
“Yeah, yeah,” you start clicking buttons. “We’re on our way! We’re gonna hit that one hundred in no time!”
“Try not to skip ahead too fast and kill us.”
“I would never!” You smile widely at him before clicking a button, initiating the gravity.
Like before, there’s an initial shock to the major change in gravity. You both falter a bit, but not the extent of the first run. As you roll your shoulders and move your body, you note that this doesn’t seem as difficult despite the big increase in gravity.
“You notice it too,” Turles speaks. “Our bodies are adapting. I don’t think it will take as long for us to adjust to this gravity.”
“Cool,” you nod, throwing a few sloppy punches. “Well, might as well get started,” you get down on the ground then kick your feet up, taking a handstand position. Like before, you’re going to do basic exercises to get your body used to the gravity.
Turles watches you, remembering that you’ve done this every time as a warm-up. He takes position a foot away from you and mirrors your movements.
“Hehe, wanna see who can get to ten thousand fastest?” You say between push-ups.
“Just don’t be disappointed when you lose, even with that head start,” Turles fires back, quickly catching up.
Your friendly rivalry pushes you through the overwhelming gravity. Your focus was all on each other, on winning, and your mind ignored how hard it was to work through. The hours of push-ups, sit-ups, and the eventually sparring was so natural for your bodies that you adapted to this gravity within twelve hours.
Pushing your bodies to the absolute limit then splitting a senzu bean to get right back into it, your thrill of fighting fueled this training to make this one day the most effective training out of the three. The girls could feel your spike in power when they woke up, almost not recognizing you both. Yang, especially, was surprised since she spent a lot of time with Turles the day before. Though it was some time ago, both of you surpassed some of the other Saiyans when they were a Great Ape.
After over a day of their own training and relaxation, the girls are surprised to hear the hatch open and you two descending. Your clothes, once again, are torn to shreds from the ordeal they were put through.
“You two are… early,” Weiss says, letting her focus drop which causes her glyphs to disappear.
“I think we’ve done enough for today,” you roll your arms, happier than ever. “We thought-“
“You thought.”
“WE THOUGHT it’d be good to train with you guys. Turles mentioned he was practicing sensing and Ki control soooooooooooo, I thought that’d be fun!” You throw your fist in the air.
“YEAH!” Ruby appears beside you, jumping and mimicking your movement.
“I suppose,” Blake opens her eyes. “We could learn more from one another.”
“I would also like to see how you train,” Turles adds, already going for another set of clothes.
“Really?” Yang crosses her arms.
“You’ve been working on things that weren’t your power level. I won’t deny I’m curious what that is. But that’s for another time. I wish to learn about Ki sensing before we arrive.”
“Then let’s get started!” You and Ruby cheer.
Your top completely falls off this time, but you don’t even notice. At least your pants are mostly intact this time around.
“Plus,” you speak alone. “I have something I want to work on too. We can go upstairs to do it!”
With a plan in mind, you all head to the upper floor and sit down in a line. Turles still remembers Yang’s teachings so he’s focused on perfecting the craft. He can already start to feel the people around him, but it’s only when he puts an immense focus on it. From what he was told, you and RWBY can sense things around you like they’re nothing, and even can suppress your power level. These are all things Turles would like to learn, especially since Frieza and his army relies on scouters. It would be a great boon to be able to outmaneuver them.
The girls focus on blending their Aura and Ki together while still being able to utilize each individually. While it sounds counter-intuitive, the ability to have them separate one moment then mixed another could be quite fortuitous and potentially critical for what’s to come. They all are fully aware they won’t be able to reach your level of power by Namek, but if their skills can outsmart the enemy or give you the edge, then at least they’ve justified their reason being there. If not, then they really are just deadweight you’ll have to protect.
All the internal thoughts, all the focus, are disturbed by a massive spike in power. RWBY and Turles’ eyes open, looking to you who’s basked in a blood-red aura. They notice you’re not entirely calm – face twitching, brow furrowing – but your power is staying consistent. In truth, Turles is blown away by this power. He recognizes the move – the Kaioken. From what he saw before and is feeling now, it’s amplifying your power tremendously… and it continues to rise.
The colour darkens as your power grows, escalating from double to triple to quadruple, all the way until it hits seven times your regular power. On Remnant, you could barely get to six comfortably. Now you can hit seven without feeling too many negative effects. While the others don’t know it, you’re both testing how high you can go while also trying to maintain the fluctuating Ki of the Kaioken. Having more power than your body is used to is dangerous, which is why Ki control is so vital with this technique.
The red aura disappears, followed by an exhale. You notice everyone is staring at you, so you cock your head to the side and ask, “What?”
“I’ve just… never felt something like that before,” Weiss admits.
“The pressure is definitely something else,” Yang admits. There’s a moment of silence before she speaks again. “WHY HAVEN’T YOU TAUGHT US THAT?”
“Oh, hehe,” you chuckle, rubbing the back of your head. “I guess that’s fair. I did start to teach Tien and them… but,” your face drops and you get slightly serious. “I don’t think you’d be able to master it before we get there.”
“We could start!” Ruby argues.
“No,” you shake your head. “Because you may get the fundamentals down and use the technique, but… if you mess up, you’ll die.”
All of RWBY remembers finding you on the battlefield, muscles convulsing and blood pooling.
“And I know you gals would use it if something happened,” you end with a lighthearted chuckle. “I don’t want that. I’ll teach it to you when we get back.”
“Correct me if I’m wrong, but that’s the technique you used when you forced us back on Remnant,” Turles speaks.
“Oh, yeah,” you shift your gaze to him and nod. “It lets me multiply my power by… I guess however I want. But go too high without the proper control and the Ki will destroy your body. I’ve been trying to extend how long I can do it,” you look forward as if you’re lost in thought. “At first I could only do it for a few seconds. When I started, it was really just a heartbeat. But if I can keep it up for maybe a minute? Even thirty seconds would be good. I don’t know. It depends on how high I can go when we get there. Looks like seven is my comfort zone right now.”
“Seven times your normal power… that’s close to our increase as Great Apes,” Turles remarks.
“Oh yeah,” Ruby crawls behind Turles. “How is it you have your tail? We cut it off.”
“Our tails can regrow,” Turles calmly explains. “And thanks to the healing pods we have access to, all of us have our tails restored.”
“Huh,” you bounce from side to side childishly. “I got mine pulled out.”
“Why? Your planet doesn’t have a full moon.”
“He transformed before,” Weiss answers. “That same ball you Saiyans used changed him.”
Turles’ face immediately sharpens towards the white-haired girl. “What?”
Weiss recoils a little bit, not expecting such intensity. “I, uh… he transformed before.”
“I don’t really remember it,” you shake your head.
“I do,” Blake whispers.
“That technique is exclusive to Saiyans… else it would have to be taught by one,” Turles raises a hand to his chin. “That’s… interesting.”
“You mean there’s another Saiyan on Remnant?” Ruby shuffles back to her spot.
“That or someone has met a Saiyan,” Turles calmly answers, still reflecting on this information. “This was before Kakarot arrived?”
“Yes,” the four answer.
“I see… that’s very interesting. I may return to Remnant and investigate that,” he thinks aloud.
“And not destroy anything?” You lean into his face.
“No,” Turles pushes you away. “If you help us with Frieza, I’ll have no quarrel with you. But this information is unnerving. Unfortunately, there’s nothing we can do about it now. We should focus on our training,” Turles closes his eyes and takes a deep breath.
“Makes sense,” you follow Turles’ lead.
The others, though concerned, agree that it’s impossible to act on and time-wasting to think about.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Day 4
Like yesterday, your training at fifty times gravity proves fruitful. You Saiyans manage to completely adapt to the gravity and have another day of improvement. Turles wanted to make sure your bodies build properly, so unfortunately you don’t get to kick it up to one hundred just yet. But you cheekily knocked it up by ten, not that either of you noticed. In fact, when you turned everything off for dinner you completely forgot it had been sixty for over five hours.
“I’m surprised you wish to take more breaks,” Turles notes, waiting for you by the hatch.
“Well, we’re going at a good pace,” you approach at a leisurely pace. “Besides, we’re gonna run out of beans if we kept up our pace,” you end with a wide smile.
“We may need them on Namek,” Turles nods, opening the hatch. “Seems you do have a brain.”
“Well, how would I live if I didn’t,” you shake your head, getting to Turles side and bumping him twice on the head. “Silly Turles,” you say before jumping down.
The Saiyan remains still, practically insulted by your actions. He swallows his pride and simply jumps down, wanting to forget that ever happened.
As you reach the bottom floor, you smell the grand meal the girls have laid out.
“Dinner is served, master,” Yang bows.
“Ew, you really did it,” Ruby shivers.
“But of course,” Yang stands up straight. “You think Yang Xiao Long backs down from a challenge?” She beats her chest with one fist.
“FOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOD,” you dive forward, flipping and landing on a chair. “I’m ready.”
“Of course you are,” Weiss sighs.
“If it ain’t broke, don’t fix it,” Yang recites.
Blake takes her seat beside Yang. “Would his stomach be considered broken if it never fills?”
As everyone takes their seats, it’s clear you and Turles get the most amount of food. Despite being very different from you, Turles has shown to have the same unquenchable appetite. The girls get full after an above-average meal, while a full course is what it qualifies as an appetizer for Saiyans.
“I must admit, this is better dining than I’m accustomed to,” Turles says, half-heartedly thanking the girls.
“What do you usually eat in space?” Blake inquires.
Turles rips the meat off some bones, being a little more refined than you but still eating it in one go.
“Life we find on other planets. Animals, bugs, sometimes the inhabitants.”
“Eeew.” Ruby shivers. “I’m trying to eat.”
Turles brushes off the young one. “I remember once we landed on a bug planet that was in some turmoil,” Turles starts chuckling. “They tried to capture us… Vegeta said we should play along. We killed and ate their strongest – some big bug thing. We killed their corrupt King and were called heroes.”
The girls are actually surprised at his story.
“So you don’t destroy everything?” Weiss asks before taking a drink.
“Oh, no,” Turles shakes his head. “We blew up the planet as soon as we left. They were pathetic.”
The girls all go grey in disappointment. You, on the other hand, keep eating without any real reaction to Turles’ story. He notices you’re an absent-minded state, crumbs falling on your pants and little bits around your mouth.
“You could try to clean yourself up, Kail. Act like a Saiyan.”
“What? You’re eating too!”
“Not like a savage.”
“You ate people!”
“And people eat animals. Animals eat people. They didn’t look like us. Not like you humans.”
“What, so Saiyans eat other species?”
“Mm… maybe,” Turles shrugs. “I only know what we’ve done.”
“Hey Turles, can I ask you a question?” Ruby innocently looks at him.
He grabs an apple and huffs. “If you wish.”
“I notice you talk a lot about Saiyans. But what were other Saiyans like? Are they all like you and the other ones?”
Turles momentarily regrets speaking, but the topic has been on his head for some time now. His fingers continue to grind against each other before his chin while his left arm wraps around his stomach. None of you were expecting him to fall this deeply into thought.
“I suppose it depends who you ask. How old are you, Kail? Eighteen?” He looks to you.
“Yeah,” you nod, a noodle dangling out of your mouth.
“Same as Kakarot. We’re not much older than you. Nappa is the oldest, and Raditz is the second at twenty-four.”
“So?” You tilt your head, not making any connections.
“We’re all young. We were children or babies when Planet Vegeta was destroyed. The only one who still remembers our culture is Nappa and Vegeta, though the latter just holds on to his title of prince,” Turles brings his left arm around to his mouth and takes a bite of his apple. “Nappa would tell us that we’re a race of warriors unequalled in the universe, conquering planets by the dozen and selling them off to rich races that desire them. He’d tell us of his own great battles, how Saiyan women would want to breed with him,” Turles can’t help but chuckle at that one. “How we were just so dominant…”
You and RWBY remain silent as Turles recounts his tale. Turles is far different than you originally took him for, and especially what RWBY thought of them. They’d only really interacted with Kakarot, and that was when he attacked Beacon. Only Yang has really spoken with Turles, and that was just about training. You spoke to all of them, saw how they addressed each other, you did somewhat see them as how Nappa described. Conquering figures who only wanted to destroy… but there was something more that gnawed at you. This is relieving you of that feeling.
“You’ve met Nappa, you all have,” he returns to his original stance whilst addressing everyone. “He’s a brute. Strong, confident, and I respect him immensely. I… feel that he completely believes in what he’s saying. But Nappa is an elite warrior, tainted by that life. I don’t think he knew anything else than battle. Even the way he speaks on his adventures makes me feel that he spent very little time on Planet Vegeta. Very little time with a group outside his own. He has one view of the Saiyans, and I’m certain it’s a corrupted lens he’s sharing.”
Turles takes a deep breath, readjusting himself. “Ask others who knew the Saiyans and their song has a different tune. The Frieza Force recalls Saiyans as mere ‘monkeys’ who’s bark outmatched their bite. They say so many of us were weak, that we still are weak, and that the fable of a ‘Warrior Race’ was merely to fan the flames of our ego. Many of our people were small, weak, pathetic. That our so-called powerful warriors were no stronger than our women. Perhaps like you,” he looks over at the girls.
“You’re calling us weak?” Yang challenges.
“Yes. Don’t take it personally, girl,” he casually speaks. “In fact,” he snickers. “The look in your eyes when I said that. The challenging fire… you remind me of what I imagine a Saiyan woman to be. I’ve never met one.”
“So, what, women were only used for birthing?” Blake asks with slight disgust.
“I don’t know,” Turles barely shrugs. “Both sides I’ve heard said they were weak. But most races are weak, men and women alike. You humans and Faunus are no different.”
“We beat you guys!” Ruby counters.
“Please,” he scoffs. “You needed to fight two against one, and only survived because of what he did,” Turles flicks his head towards you. “But, as I said, don’t take offense. Your males were there too and were just as weak. And…” He finds it difficult to say. “Your strength has grown. You’re likely stronger than the average Saiyan male. So take pride in that.”
“Didn’t you have a mother? Wouldn’t you remember what she was like?” Weiss adds her own question.
“Hmph,” Turles chuckles. “Like you, Kail, and like Kakarot, I was sent off as a baby without ever seeing my parents. Raditz says he met his, but can’t recall anything about them. It’s uncommon for children to remain with their parents if they aren’t royalty. But it’s irrelevant,” Turles eats the rest of the apple whole. “Somewhere in the stories I’ve been told is the truth. I don’t believe everything either side says… but it’s all I have. Yet,” Turles holds his fist before him, slowly clenching it. “If we’re the last of the Saiyans, are we even a proper representation? Or just what Nappa wanted us to be? If we are, we’re pathetic.” Turles tone descends into a suppressed anger. “How are we supposed to be such elite fighters, such a feared race when we’ve always been weaker than so many others… Frieza’s army, Frieza, his father, his brother, all of them eclipse us, yet I’m supposed to believe that we were so feared,” his fist shakes with frustration.
It takes a moment for his rage to settle. He takes a deep breath and gets out of his seat. He has nothing left to say and thus marches off to bed. He doesn’t say it, but another thought flows through his head. A reason for paying attention to you. You’re untainted by Frieza’s army. You’re untainted by Nappa’s influence. Whether hitting your head as a child or not really change how you grew up is irrelevant to Turles. He has an interest in you, as a Saiyan, and how you act. Even your power has been gained differently from any other Saiyan he knows, and by his knowledge, you’re one of the strongest Saiyans to exist. Perhaps you’re closer to a true Saiyan than any of his comrades. Perhaps you’re just an idiot.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Day 5
You and Turles wake up while the others are asleep. You just grabbed a pillow and slept on the ground, letting the girls all snuggle up together in one bed. You didn’t want to disturb Turles after last night. Even you could tell he was irritated and wanted to be left alone. After having a bath and a snack, you both head to the top floor without ever sharing a word. Turles is the first one up, so he approaches the console.
His hand grazes over it as if he’s hesitating, and he finally speaks – scarcely above a whisper.
“Kail…”
“Mm?”
“We’re going at one hundred this time.”
“I know. I’d complain otherwise,” you snicker.
Turles momentarily lets a smile out. “I know. We… I need you to realize how important being one of the last Saiyans is,” he finally looks to you. “And what that means for the universe.”
“You guys are kinda mean though,” you cross your arms. “You tried to blow up my planet.”
“You’re right,” Turles nods. “But I believe that you’ll show them something new… especially when we show up with our strength.”
“Something new?”
“A new perspective,” Turles turns on the gravity.
A dark red tint fills the room as the new gravity envelops the room. Your bodies nearly falter right there under this immense pressure.
“That’s… a bigger jump,” you huff.
Turles doesn’t respond, instead beginning the routine you do. He gets on the ground, one hand behind his back, and starts doing push-ups.
“H-Hey! Wait for me!” You follow suit, not daring to be left behind.
And so your training begins again, with under 48 hours until you reach Namek, every second counts. While the girls rest and get their strength back for their own training, you and Turles do your best to become accustomed to the highest level of gravity. It takes hours of training before either of you can manage to move normally at all. That’s all done with your regular workouts along with one to merely get used to the gravity. You and Turles float in the air, spinning round and round like a wheel to work both on your mobility and ability to fly with this pressure.
At the same time, team RWBY has been awake for some hours and has been practising a certain technique that required better Ki control. If you had been more attentive to the energy around you, you’d likely have felt exactly what they’re doing. But because you’re so focused on your training, it’s gone completely past you.
“We got it,” Ruby cheers, pulling her hands in. A smile creeps upon her face as she realizes all her team has done the same. “WOOHOO! WE GOT IT! WE GOT IT!” The red caped rose jumps in the air over and over again.
“Seems we did,” Weiss huffs and puffs, leaning on her knees. “Pretty… tired now.”
“Maybe we should take a break then try again later. Make sure we’ve really got it,” Blake advises.
Ruby’s completely in her own world, still cheering about how they’ve finally managed to achieve the technique.
“Should we make extra for the boys up top?” Yang flicks her chin up.
Weiss approaches the fridge and opens it up. “I highly doubt they’ll be taking a break any time soon. We arrive tomorrow, after all,” Weiss grabs a few premade meals to heat up.
“Do we think we’re ready?” Blake asks aloud.
“We’re not as strong as them, but that doesn’t mean we’re useless!” Yang slams her fists together. “We’ll definitely kick some butt and make sure the meatheads up there,” she points up. “Don’t get too caught up in their fighting.”
On cue, the ship starts shaking a bit. The girls stumble a little bit, Weiss being the one that suffers the most when all the food she was holding falls on her head.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You and Turles train harder in this one day than you ever had before. You both know there isn’t much time before you reach Namek and if you can’t handle the highest gravity then you’ll feel like this training was wasted. But after nearly eighteen hours of training with senzu beans sprinkled in, you and Turles are finally able to move around normally. Of course, that means you two have been sparring as if your life depends on it.
For you, it’s a fun difference from normal training. You love your friends, but none of them can really get your blood pumping, and the last massive training regiment you had was with King Kai… alone. You find it more fun and effective to train with someone else, and it’s clear from the results. You need to make sure that you’re strong enough to protect Namek and help the Saiyans. You’re still unsure how well you’ll match up against Frieza, but you won’t know until you try.
As your fists slam into each other’s cheeks, your eyes lock. There’s a moment where your bodies shake, your muscles tense, but that swiftly goes away as you go limp and fall to the floor. You both hit the ground, panting heavily.
“We’re… not done…” Turles huffs.
“I know. I won’t rest… until this feels like normal…” Neither of you speak for a little bit, allowing your bodies a moment of recuperation. “You think… we can beat Frieza?”
“Me? No,” Turles honestly answers. “You? Maybe.”
“What?” You chuckle. “Why?”
“That… Kaioken of yours… even if Frieza is twice as strong, you’ll overcome, right?”
“Yeah… I’ll have to teach it to you after.”
“After?”
“You said you’re gonna come to Remnant, right? We can train some more.”
“Don’t get buddy-buddy with me, Kail,” Turles barks.
This only makes you laugh. “I think… you’re a bit late on that one, Turles.”
Turles closes his eyes and smirks. “Perhaps…” He whispers. “We’ve rested long enough.”
“You’re right,” you start getting up. “We can sleep tomorrow,” you get into a fighting stance and raise your Ki to the max. “Come on, Turles!” Your body envelopes with the Kaioken. “We’re going a hundred percent!”
“RIGHT!” His voice mirrors all the power he releases. “Don’t go easy on me!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Day 6
With hours of sleep under all of your belts and less than an hour before you reach Namek, all of you prepare yourselves for what may come. Everyone has returned to their original outfits, Turles finding it odd to be in his armour again after all the time in the Gi. As he pats himself down, he notices Weiss with the same vials he’s seen before. He casually approaches the Heiress and kneels down. She sees him out of the corner of her eyes but doesn’t stop what she’s doing.
“What’re those?”
“These?” Weiss grabs a vial, lightly shaking it.
“Yes.”
“Dust. It’s…” Weiss places the vial in her satchel and tilts her head at Turles. “Do you really care?”
“Yes. I’d like to know what advantages you have.”
“Oh… well… it’s something on our planet that I use with my Semblance.”
“It requires a Semblance?” Turles asks.
“No. But that depends on what kind they are. Oh, yeah, Blake,” she raises her voice so Blake, who’s near the beds, will turn around. “I left some Dust by your gear.”
“Thank you,” the Faunus responds.
“So what kind of effects do they have?” The Saiyan persists.
“Well…”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You stare out the upper floor window, watching as you pass by some planets. You have silent excitement that’s easy to see.
“You ready,” Yang nudges you from behind before shifting to your side.
“Yeah, I think so,” you lift your fist before you and clench it. “I’m pretty surprised how much stronger I am… you too,” you smirk at her. “Everyone is.”
You and Yang stare out the window, watching a few other planets as you pass. Yang shifts in place, soon bouncing a bit as she tilts her head to see you.
“Do you… can I ask you something?”
“How many times have you asked that?”
“Hey, shush,” Yang wags her finger. “I’m serious.”
“Okay,” you chuckle. “What’s up?”
“So… you’re super strong now and we can all see it. But, and it’s not like I don’t believe in you! But… well… what happens if we’re not strong enough? If you’re not strong enough?”
Your brow furrows as you look back out of the window. You take a deep breath and put a smile back on.
“Then run. You take the ship, get our friends and get back to Remnant.”
“What?” Yang steps more into your view, beside the window. “No way we would do that!”
“You would because I’m asking you to,” you keep a lighthearted tone but Yang can feel your serious nature. There’s no joke here.
“But…”
You put a finger over her lips, feeling the softness and slight moist texture. “You have to. But try not to worry,” you tap her lips before setting your hand down. “I won’t lose.”
There’s a moment of silence, both of you digesting what you’ve just said.
“But just in case,” you turn over.
“Oh shut it, hotshot,” Yang turns around, punching your arm and walking away. “Try…” Is the only word she can say for a few steps. She turns around, smiling at you with a little more glimmer in her eyes. “Try not to lose, okay? For me.”
“For you?” You begin to nod. “I can do that, I promise. I’d do anything for you.”
You don’t seem to realize how much those words mean to the blonde. She turns away, not allowing you to see her reaction. “I would too.”
You look back out to the window, finally seeing a green planet in the distance.
“Arriving on Planet Namek in… ten minutes,” the automated ship voice alerts everyone.
You tighten your brown gauntlets and exhale. “Alright… no matter what we face, we’ll all get out of this.”
And here we go! Nearly at chapter twenty, look at that! Well, as you can all gather the Frieza Saga will be starting now. You likely noticed that we basically skipped over the first half of the actual arc (Zarbon, Dodoria, searching for the balls, etc.) so the actual arc won’t last toooooooooooooo long. But I have plenty that’ll happen, don’t worry. This section on Namek is gonna be fun. I’m sure you can make some deductions on what’ll happen, but I almost guarantee that this arc won’t play out exactly how you expect.
But how about I just get started on the next chapter, huh? Might take a weird amount of time cause I want to make sure I’m cross-referencing with the show, timing, etc. but it’ll be soon. Heck, this chapter alone turned out way longer than I was expecting. But, hey, I hope you enjoyed and are looking forward to the future! I’ll see you next time!
Want to keep up with me? Know what chapter’s coming out next and the progress of them? Follow me on Twitter! Twitter . com (slash) Chinsangan
Questions? Comments? Concerns? Advice? Send me a message!
I also have a Pa tr eon, if you want to check that out! Pat reon . com (slash) Chinsangan
My Discord is now open! If you want to join, either check my bio for a link, find it on my Twitter, or message me directly!
A special thank you to Patreon supporters: MazMan, Big Genatools, and Ride The Lightning
Thank you guys so much for supporting me! It means the world!
And finally, thank you to the Beta Reader: thenameisntimportant
Chapter 20: The Battle for Namek Begins! Ginyu Force vs. Saiyans!
Chapter Text
Chapter 20: The Battle for Namek Begins! Ginyu Force vs. Saiyans!
Everyone stands ready at the doors as your ship descends on Namek. The black emptiness of space is quickly replaced with the cool green of this planet. All of you begin feeling the energy of the planet and its inhabitants; at least what’s left of them. You tighten your fist at the lack of energy on the planet. You can sense which ones have malicious intent or not, and there’s barely a handful who’s spirit doesn’t crave domination. You can immediately pinpoint the strongest signature on the planet.
“You guys feel that?” Yang nearly begins to shake. “That’s… so much energy. It’s so evil.”
“That’s… that’s Frieza,” Turles confirms. “He’s still stronger than us. But,” Turles looks to you with a smirk. “I think you can beat him with the Kaioken.”
You let out a sigh of relief. “Well, looks like this won’t be too hard.”
“Perhaps,” Turles notes. “But make sure to keep your power levels low. Especially you four. They have scouters, they can find us.”
With the knowledge that you’re stronger than Frieza, you don’t bother feeling the rest of the planet. The shuttle shakes a bit as it plants itself firmly on the planet. The door slowly opens allowing natural light and air into the pod. You take a deep breath as you leave the pod, eyes closed.
“I can sense your friends,” you say. “And they’re almost dead!”
You hover into the air, locking onto their location.
“Then let’s go!” Turles speeds ahead.
“Yeah!” Ruby tries to follow, but you block her.
“No, I want you guys to go over there,” you point behind them. “You feel those signatures. I think they’re Namekians… or at least some good guys. Make sure they’re okay.”
“But we want to help!” Yang argues.
“We have to help the people here. Please,” you keep a calm and serious demeanour. “I’ll be fine. Just make sure they are too.”
They first hesitate for a moment. It’s Ruby who finally responds, “Okay. We’ll do it. Come on, team. We have our role!” Ruby turns around and starts flying towards the three signatures.
The other three slowly fly back, keeping their eyes on you. Your smile meets their worry, “I’ll be okay. We’ll meet up again soon,” you turn around and dash forward.
“(Y/N)…” Yang watches you disappear. “You trust us, so I’ll trust you,” she affirms, turning around and bursting ahead.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Having flown ahead, Turles is the first one to reach the battlefield. The rush of wind soars around everyone on the island, grazing across some of the inclines or rock faces. As he expected, the Ginyu Force – save the eponymous captain – are all here. Guldo, the small green one with a few too many eyes, but thankfully for Turles they’re closed. His head is far from his stub of a body, which puts a smile on the Saiyan’s face. Guldo has always been too high on himself considering he’s the weakest member of the Ginyu Force. Turles just wishes he could’ve seen him die.
But the other three are still alive, with two merely standing on the sidelines, looking a little surprised at Turles’ arrival. A very tall, blue-skinned man with red irises and no pupils to see. His only other notable feature is the brown oval on the top of his head. Turles never knew if that was some piece of armour or actually part of his head.
The one beside him, being far shorter, is Jeice. He has long white hair and red skin with eyes similar to humanoids. He’s certainly not the most outrageous looking member of the Ginyu Force, like the captain himself or Guldo, but he’s that middle.
The last, the one that’s clearly been fighting, is Recoome. He’s one of the taller members and the most muscular. His general appearance is similar to the Saiyans or humans. To Turles’ surprise, Recoome’s hair is closer to a messy mohawk compared to the full head he had before. He’s clearly missing a few teeth and his armour is completely destroyed, leaving only ripped bits of his black jumpsuit.
“That’s one of the Saiyans, isn’t it?” Jeice nudges his giant blue comrade.
“They all look the same to me,” Burter shrugs.
“Well, well, another pesky Saiyan here to play,” Recoome says, turning away from, what Turles now sees, his fallen comrades.
None of them are dead, and Vegeta is even still on his feet, but clearly in no position to keep fighting.
“Turles, you bastard… where were you?” Vegeta painfully speaks.
“I took a detour. Thought you’d handle it better,” he replies with a confidence Vegeta isn’t used to.
“You what?” The Prince barks, but he’s cut off when another player enters the field.
You land beside Turles, taking in the environment to get an idea of what’s happened. With the Saiyans on their last legs and these guys still going, it’s obvious they required help. You pat your bag of senzu beans, feeling two.
I’ll have to split the beans.
“Kail?” Vegeta sharply whispers. “So Turles brought him along… but why? He’s too weak to fight the Ginyu Force.”
“Another one?” Burter complains. “I don’t think I’ve ever seen this one. Is that even a Saiyan?
“He has some weird outfit,” Jeice remarks.
“Talking from the tights guy,” you chuckle, walking towards Recoome.
“What?” Jeice steps forward.
“Kail,” Turles slaps his hand on your shoulder. “Let me handle this guy.”
You look to Turles, noticing he’s just focused on the hulking man before you. With a shrug, you step back and cross your arms. “Alright. But I get to fight those two,” you flick your head to the red and blue comet.
“That’s fine,” Turles marches towards Recoome, cracking his knuckles in anticipation.
“Well, well, Turles. Looking big for your breeches, huh?” Recoome laughs. “You think you can beat me? Huh?” Recoome’s power begins to surge.
Vegeta falls to one knee, finding it harder to keep his eyes open. “What are those idiots thinking? No way they can beat the Ginyu Force!”
“Recoome, I’m going to enjoy knocking out the few teeth you have,” Turles stops a couple of feet away from the imposing man.
“You Saiyans like to make-“
And at that moment, all the Ginyu Force members shook. Burter and Jeice almost recoil in shock when Turles utterly blitzes Recoome, appearing in front of him and lodging his fist right into Recoome’s long cheek. The tallest member’s pupils disappear on impact, his body practically goes limp as the force of Turles’ punch sends him spiralling into a large rock formation. Recoome bounces off the rock and falls flat on the ground, as immobile as the Saiyans.
“Wha- Recoome is… there’s no way!” Jeice’s shaky voice manages to say.
“With one punch? No way! Recoome, you’re playing with us!” Burter shouts in disbelief.
Parallel to the two Ginyu Force members, Vegeta can barely believe what he just saw. A low-class warrior like Turles managed to defeat Recoome in one blow. He’s the one that took down everyone else and nearly killed the prince himself… yet Turles…
Turles lands on the ground and rubs his punching hand. “Cathartic,” he says with a devilish smile. “Kail, it’s your turn,” he crosses his arms and shifts his body to watch the next battle.
“Thought you would’ve let that drag on, but okay,” you shrug. “It’s my turn. It’s my turn,” you happily cheer as you cheerfully hop towards the remaining two enemies. “To think I get to fight some more strong aliens,” you stop before them similar to what Turles did to Recoome and roll your shoulders. “Whenever you guys are ready.”
The two take a breath, taking note of your power levels.
“Only five thousand?” Jeice whispers into his intercom for only Burter to hear. “It must’ve been a fluke. Was Recoome that tired out?”
“He had to be. There’s no way puny power levels like that could beat us. We’re the Ginyu Force!” Jeice rallies his ally.
The two jump to opposite sides of you, clearly wanting a spatial advantage.
“We are the Ginyu Force! And you’re facing…” Jeice throws his arms around, moving as if he’s dancing. Burter does the same thing, though different movements.
“The Blue Hurricane! Burter!”
“The Red Magma! Jeice!”
The two end in a flamboyant pose that really confuses you. “Is this some sort of etiquette in space? Do I have to pose too?” You pose like a starfish, looking at Turles for confirmation.
“No, you idiot. That’s just what these fools do,” Turles replies.
“Oh, okay,” you return to a normal stance.
“Let’s go!” Burter shouts, a blue aura surrounding him before he dashes at you.
Jeice does the same thing, his own body giving off a red aura. The two start zooming past you, leaving trails of their respective colours like streaks in the wind. Over and over they pass you, not attacking at all. You follow them a little confused about their plan. Having two people, you thought they’d just try and overwhelm you right away. Instead, they’re just performing like this is a stage show. With that thought in mind, you do think this would be pretty entertaining if circumstances were different.
“Hey, Burter, why isn’t he attacking?” Jeice communicates.
“He’s probably shaking in his boots like a coward. Trying to bluff us with that puny power level is pointless!” He shouts, making sure you hear that last part.
Vegeta’s rage is boiling at this point. Not only did Turles defeat Recooome, who defeated all of them with ease, but now you’re not even flinching against the remaining two. But how? How did you two become so powerful so quickly? How are you dominating the Ginyu Force when he, Prince Vegeta, couldn’t do a thing!
“So, uh… can I attack now?” You scratch your head. “Ah well, let’s start.”
“What is he- GAH!” Jeice’s momentum is cut short as he bumps into you. “Hey, you weren’t there before! How dare you ruin- GAK!”
Your fist snaps at his face, forcing blood out of his nose. He stumbles back, holding the wounded area.
“You really should’ve attacked instead of talking… or flying around. Hm?” Your eyes dart to the right as you disappear, Burter’s kick passing through your afterimage.
“What? He was right there!”
“Now I’m up here!”
“Huh?” The two look up only for an elbow to crush both their faces.
The Red Magma and Blue Hurricane spiral down to the blue grass below, barely managing to recover. They both land on their hands and knees, scurrying to their feet and trying to find you.
“What? Where’d he go?” Burter looks around, the scouter attempting to track you.
“I can’t see him,” Jeice, too, is frantically scouting for you.
“Hey,” the two hear while feeling a tap on their shoulders.
They instantly turn around and punch, hitting each other in the face and stomach.
“Gah, my face again,” Jeice covers it with both hands.
Burter rubs his stomach, insulted his partner hit him. “What was that for Jeice?”
“It wasn’t my fault!”
You begin laughing, garnering their attention. You’re between them and your allies once more, a wide smile on your face with a few tears from the laughter.
“You guys are pretty fun. Shame you’re working for the bad guy.”
“Kail,” Turles shouts, kneeling over Nappa. “His neck is practically broken. Either finish the fight now or give me the senzu beans.”
“Oh, sure,” you grab the bag and throw it to Turles. “Split the beans in half. It’ll still work.”
“Got it,” Turles nods.
Seeing you’re distracted, the two take the opportunity to attack. As soon as their fists seem to connect with the back of your head, you completely disappear.
“What?” They both shout. “How’s he doing this?”
“Doing what?” You ask, floating a decent distance away.
“Grr…. YOU’RE NOT FASTER THAN ME!” Burter screams, soaring in and attacking with a lightning-fast onslaught.
Of course, every attack is easily dodged by you with seemingly no effort.
“Considering you can’t hit me, I’d say it’s clear I’m faster.”
“SHUT UP!” He throws a punch only for you to completely disappear.
“Yeah,” you say with a load of confidence. “I’m faster.”
Burter turns around, bearing witness to you with your arms crossed and a wide smile. “You… you… you can’t be a Saiyan! They’re all weak!”
“Well, I guess they didn’t train as hard as I did. You should try it sometime,” you casually advise.
With a stressful scream, Burter unleashes a flurry of Ki blasts that you near invisibly knock towards the water. Sweat slides down Jeice’s face as you remain as collected as ever. This juxtaposes Burter, who wildly begins attacking once more.
Jeice muscles tense up as he watches you run circles around Burter.
“He’s just five thousand… how is he doing this to us? We’re the Ginyu Force!” After his outburst, Jeice rushes in to support Burter.
Even with the four extra limbs, the two can’t even land a blow on you.
Meanwhile, Turles has split the senzu beans and is giving them out to his near-dead allies. Their consciousness slowly returns as he approaches Vegeta for the last one.
“It’ll heal you.”
Vegeta eyes Turles with a venomous glare. “Fine,” he roughly grabs the bean out of Turles’ hand.
“What happened?” Nappa pushes off the ground and rubs his head.
“I feel…” Kakarot, still lying on the ground, opens and closes his hands. “I feel amazing!”
“Of course you do,” Vegeta, too, feels his energy surging from the bean. “We were all nearly dead and now we’re back to max. Our power is far greater than it was.”
Turles knows that Vegeta isn’t exaggerating. He knew everyone’s powers before he diverted to find you. With each of them recuperating, their powers have shot through the roof. Vegeta may be even stronger than either you or Turles now. Of course, Turles abandoned his scouter so he doesn’t know the exact power level of anyone, but with Vegeta’s new base power being so high, you might have to use the Kaioken to match up with him.
Which does call into question your training and if it was worth it. With no training at all, Vegeta has powered up so much using his Saiyan biology alone. Sure, you and Turles did that a bit too, but most of your power was garnered from training. Even the others are significantly more powerful than any of the Ginyu Force members, save for Ginyu himself. While it is something to think on, he shouldn’t be so dismissive of this boon. If you’re all in the same realm of power, there won’t be any obvious weak links. At least in terms of the Saiyans. RWBY doesn’t even match Guldo’s power, so their effectiveness is still up for question.
“Wait a minute,” Raditz gets to his feet. “Is that Kail?”
“Kail?” Kakarot’s eyes excitedly search for you. “What’s he doing here?”
“Ask Turles,” Vegeta crosses his arms, looking down on the low-class Saiyan.
You continue to weave through their attacks until you notice everyone else getting up. You catch both Jeice’s foot and Burter’s hand as you greet your comrades.
“Hey, guys! Good to see you up! Guess I’ll finish this.”
“Finish nothing!” Burter shouts, throwing a Ki blast at you.
You disappear, so the blast knocks Jeice a decent distance away. You reappear in front of Burter and spin around, lodging your heel into his neck and throw your foot down, grounding the Blue Hurricane.
The ground shakes and dust takes to the air as Burter meets the cold grass below. As the dust settles, everyone bears witness to a completely incapacitated Burter. Jeice is the only one in denial and shock, seeing his close partner and friend be completely decimated like this. You descend and land beside Burter, assuring that he’s still alive.
“Your buddy is still alive,” you gaze up at the Red Magma. “I’d probably get him to a-“
An unexpected yellow blast lands beside you, disintegrating Burter’s body into dust. You jump to the side a bit, looking back at Vegeta with his arm out.
“Just kill them, idiot!” He shouts, aiming his hand at Jeice.
In a total panic, Jeice turns tail and flies away. “The Captain! I need to get the Captain!” He repeats to himself as he zooms out of sight.
“Tsk, pathetic Kail. All that power and you let one live and the other get away,” Vegeta’s words are less than insulting to you. “I was a fool to even think you were a Super Saiyan.”
“I mean, you killed this poor guy AND you let him get away too,” you shrug. “Doesn’t sound very ‘Super Saiyan’ of you, whatever that means,” you cross your arms.
“Listen here you twerp,” Vegeta marches towards you.
“Stop it,” Turles interjects, garnering everyone’s attention. “I brought him here to help us fight Frieza, not so you could argue.”
Vegeta eyes you up, now knowing that you’re strong enough to tussle with the Ginyu Force, it’s possible that you can be of some use against Frieza, but…
“I’ll endure your presence for now,” Vegeta turns away. “But don’t think your new power will be of any help. Frieza is still far beyond you.”
“You sure about that?” You open and close your fists. “I’m feeling pretty tough.”
“Frieza is a monster,” Vegeta pivots his leg and turns half his body. “The only way we’ll win is if the Dragon Balls grant us immortality. But if Frieza gets them first…” Vegeta shakes his head. “We need to find the last Dragon Ball.”
“Frieza isn’t at his ship,” Turles points out. “So if that’s where they’re keeping them, we may be able to take them away.”
“How did you figure that out? You don’t have a scouter,” Nappa stomps towards the smaller Saiyan.
“I’ve learned to sense without those machines,” Turles remarks. “But it doesn’t matter. Even if Ginyu and Jeice are at the ship, or meet us there, we should be able to win.”
“You’re not calling the shots, Turles!” Kakarot argues.
“Quiet, weakling,” Vegeta barks, which makes Kakarot step back to his brother. “Turles is right. We have no time for petty squabbles. The longer we wait the closer Frieza is to OUR immortality.”
The five Saiyans take off with Vegeta in the lead. You ascend in the air and look towards where Frieza’s Ki signature is. It’s dangerously close to where RWBY went to. You can only hope they’ll be okay. With a quiet wish whispered in your mind, you turn around and quickly catch up to the others.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Team RWBY flies over the water and landmasses of Namek, quickly approaching the few Ki signatures they detected earlier.
“I wish we had more time to examine this planet. It looks… peaceful,” Weiss looks from side to side.
“It all kinda looks the same to me,” Ruby sheepishly. “Is that bad? Am I a bad person?”
“No, it’s just an observation,” Blake replies. “Besides, we’re only seeing this part of the planet. Remnant’s continents are diverse enough.”
“I’m still just amazed we’re on a different planet. Nobody’s gonna believe this.”
“If we say it’s because of (Y/N) they will,” Blake snickers. “He’s introduced everyone to aliens, Ki, planet destruction, space tyrants,” the Faunus shakes her head. “I guess ignorance really can be bliss.”
“We’ll have to see,” Weiss responds. “But we’re about there.”
The four quickly approach a large, white, oval-like structure sitting atop a thin, jagged rock formation.
“What happens if they think we’re bad?” Weiss shouts.
“Then we convince them we’re here to help!” Ruby affirms. “We have to help. That’s what (Y/N) said. That’s what Huntresses do!”
The four land outside of the building, making sure they don’t break anything or enter too unexpectedly.
“Hello,” Ruby takes the charge, stepping in front of her team. “My name’s Ruby Rose! We’re here to help you!”
The girls wait in anticipation, feeling three powers within the building. The moment the largest signature starts moving, a section of the wall slowly rises from the bottom. The girls prepare themselves, hoping this will be peaceful. A green figure exits the building, with some loose clothing – white pants, a blue sash acting as a belt, a white scarf, and an open blue vest that falls around his knees. But, to the girls, he just looks exactly like Piccolo.
“You…” He takes his stand between the open door and the girls, keeping his hands behind his back. “All of you… are not part of the darkness.”
“That’s… good?” Yang raises a brow and smiles.
“The Elder has seen your arrival and your intentions. I do not like you conspiring with those other murderers… but the Elder says to assist you.”
“Other… murderers?” Blake sighs. “The Saiyans…”
“Come in, please,” the Namekian turns around and enters the doorway.
The girls quickly follow, entering a fairly empty room with a hole in the ceiling. Without saying anything, the Namekian begins ascending to the higher floor. Without hesitation or question, the girls follow him to the higher floor. The first thing their eyes spot is a massive orange ball with a darker single star in the middle. A second after seeing that, they bear witness to a massive Namekian in a chair, which all makes them recoil a bit.
“Whoa, he’s massive,” Yang blurts out, immediately covering her mouth. “I’m so sorry!”
The four land, spotting a third, smaller Namekian who’s a little weary of the aliens. Ruby smiles and waves at him.
“Hey there! I’m Ruby!”
“I’m… I’m Dende,” he timidly waves back.
“Greetings, Earthlings,” the giant Namekian’s booming voice gathers all their attention. “I am the Grand Elder Guru. It is pleasant to meet other species without corruption in their heart.”
“Thank you, Grand Elder Guru,” Ruby bows her head, once again taking charge of the situation. “If I may, we’re here to help defend your people and protect them all.”
“That’s an admirable goal, child,” Guru briefly coughs. “I wish I could assist my people more. All their deaths weigh on me like an ocean. It saddens me that our Dragon Balls, our beacons of hope, are now what draws in such nefarious villains and unnecessary violence.”
“A… Dragon Ball? What’s that?” Weiss inquires.
“This object behind me,” Guru points to the orange ball they took note of before. “When all are gathered and the dragon Porunga is summoned. He will grant three wishes.”
“Wishes? A dragon? You gotta be kidding me,” Weiss shakes her head.
“Girl, come,” the Elder looks to Ruby. “Right here,” he lifts his hand beside him.
The young leader follows his instructions and walks beside his chair, under his hand. The large green palm rests on her hair, surprisingly not pushing her down. Guru focuses for a moment, searching all of Ruby’s memories, motivations, and relationships.
“So, another Namekian is out there… perhaps there’s Dragon Balls there, too.”
“We could make wishes on Remnant?” Blake whispers to her blonde friend.
“Maybe…”
“Wait, you could see all that just by touching my head?” Ruby tries to look past the massive hand.
“I can… I see everything within you, and I wish to help. Please, allow me to unlock your reserves.”
“My reserves?” Ruby repeats.
“You have more power within you. Allow me to let it flow.”
“I, uh… okay,” she shrugs. It’s not like she has anything to lose, and if Ruby can become more powerful then it will only help their cause.
The young girl experiences a surge of foreign energy, and then a massive tidal wave of her own. All of her teammates feel this massive increase, also indicated by Ruby’s sudden flourishing Aura.
“Whoa, Rubes, you were that strong all this time?” Yang cheers.
“Wow! I feel amazing! I never thought I could be this strong,” she looks down at her hands.
“Excuse me, Grand Elder,” Blake speaks. “Does that drain you? Is it possible we can all experience that?”
“Of course. If the power is there then I can release it. All of you, come.”
And so, one after another, the members of team RWBY allow Guru to rest his hand on their head and break open the floodgates of their potential. Each of them undergoes the same massive power-up that Ruby did, increasing exponentially. With this, they’re certainly beyond anything back home. The girls rejoice at this new experience, high fiving or just marvelling themselves. But this increase does allow them to feel a new power approaching.
Everyone in the room feels a massive incoming power.
“Whoa, is that… that’s bigger than anything I’ve ever felt!” Yang steps back, her hands shaking.
“Grand Elder, allow me to intercept,” the Namekian speaks.
“No… no, Nail,” Guru shakes his head. “My time has come. Please,” he reaches for the Dragon Ball and hands it to Nail. “When I pass, the Dragon Balls will cease. I will keep the monster waiting for as long as I can with what little life I have. Dende, Nail, accompany the-“ the Elder begins coughing roughly, clearly hurting him. The two other Namekians step forward, but Guru raises his hands to halt them. “Accompany… the humans. Dende, my child, keep them healthy and, perhaps, if you can find the Dragon Balls you can make a wish. But be fast, my children… you must… survive,” he quickly begins coughing again.
“Grand Elder Guru, I cannot leave your side!” Nail counters.
“You… will be more help out there than with me. There’s a kind-hearted Saiyan here to defend our planet. Help him. Help them. Then, maybe… Piccolo can use his Dragon Balls to bring us back.”
“They can bring people back to life?” Weiss says with utter disbelief.
“Indeed,” Guru nods. “Now, go. You have little time.”
Dende, who’s been mostly silent, has tears forming in his eyes. To see the respected and loved Elder Guru willingly give his life to keep them safe and rest his hope in them… it’s a lot for a young boy to handle. But when Nail places a hand on his shoulder, giving him a reassuring look, Dende holds his tears.
Guru takes note of this and reflects on everything that’s at stake. The Dragon Balls, the power of Frieza’s army, and the possibility of the malicious Saiyans betrayal. With a deep, heavy breath Guru comes up with a better idea. All he can do is hope. Piccolo put his trust in the Saiyan here… and even the unexpected sight of Ozpin. Guru, too, will put his trust in them. But from what he’s gathered, none of the people from Remnant desire the Dragon Balls, which means.
“Nail… I’d like you to remain behind for a moment. There’s something we must discuss.”
“Of course, Elder,” Nail bows his head. “Please,” he turns towards the others, handing off the Dragon Ball to Dende. “Wait for me.”
“Of course, Nail.”
“It was an honour meeting you, Elder,” Ruby bows, to which the rest of her team does the same.
With no delay, everyone but Nail and Guru leaves the white house. Nail keeps his focus on Guru, noting a strange aura coming from the grand Namekian.
“Elder, what do you require?”
“Nail… listen well, my child…”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
The entourage of Saiyans barrel through the skies of Namek. Vegeta and his crew already know where the ship is, so your course hasn’t wasted a single moment. As you grow closer, you pick up two incoming powers.
“Vegeta!” Turles shouts, feeling the same thing. “Ginyu’s coming!”
“Ginyu?” Nappa turns around, still keeping pace. “You gotta be kidding me.”
On cue, all of you come to a stop and watch two approaching auras. Within a second, the famed Captain Ginyu and Jeice halt before your group. You pass by the others so you can get a better look at this new opponent.
Captain Ginyu is purple with two black horns on either side of his head. He has similar armour to the Burter and Jeice but has a far more confident feel to him. Though, at the moment, he’s clearly angry. You’re unsure whether or not the bulging veins on his head are associated with that or just what he normally looks like. By the fierce look in his eye, he’s here for blood.
“Which one was it, Jeice?” Ginyu calmly asks.
“Yeah, that one with the weird get-up,” Jeice points at you. “And that Turles one! He beat Recoome with one blow!”
With his name spoken, Turles passes by Kakarot to hover at the front with you and Vegeta. The Prince clenches his fist, not wanting to deal with this idiot for too long. But that’s when he gets an idea. Seeing how Ginyu and Jeice are focused on you and Turles, Vegeta hovers back into the crowd and whispers loud enough for only his allies to hear.
“Ginyu took the Dragon Balls back to Frieza’s ship, and if Frieza isn’t there then they’re undefended. If we keep the Ginyu Force busy we can steal the Dragon Balls, get them away from Frieza, and use them ourselves.”
“Two Saiyans… their powers are far below any of our members,” Ginyu notes.
“I thought that was weird too,” Jeice nods.
“It’s not weird, idiot, it’s genius. They’re obviously suppressing their power and spiking it when the time is right. It appears these Saiyans are a cut above the rest.”
Raditz is visibly upset by this cheap shot. “What did you-“
“Radtiz,” Vegeta sharply condemns. “We don’t want the attention on us. Turles, you hear it?”
“But what about him?” Turles whispers, focusing ahead so the enemies don’t catch wind of anything.
“So you’re the leader of all those goofs?” You place your hands on your hips. “That means you must be the strongest… you do look the meanest.”
“Gah? What? Meanest! I have a lovely face!” Ginyu becomes a bit flustered.
“Do you? I think you look mean,” you shrug. “So, how about we get started. Mean looking and strong. You remind me of when I first met them?” You point over your shoulder at the Saiyans, but that appears to be their cue.
All of them, save Turles, blast off past the Ginyu Force and towards the ship.
“What the?” You watch them disappear in the distance.
“Kail, you should be able to handle Ginyu,” Turles flies higher than you. “But be careful, he has a special technique. I don’t know what it is, but just keep your guard up!”
Turles had been researching the Ginyu Force’s techniques for quite some time, incase a battle like this happened. The only two note worthy abilities to watch out for was Guldo’s psychic abilities, a technique that was a well kept secret within the Ginyu Force. Turles hopes that if you’re at least aware of it, you may be able to avoid it. With his advice given, Turles flies off to catch up with the other Saiyans.
“Thanks, I guess,” you pout. “But why’d you have to leave me? Oh well,” you roll your shoulders and focus on the two before you. “Well, let’s give this a shot.”
“I’ll stop them, Captain!” Jeice shouts, readying to take off.
“No!” Ginyu grabs his subordinate. “They’ll kill you. We’ll deal with this ape first,” he looks back at you. “Besides, our other ally should be at the ship. He’ll handle the Saiyans.”
Another ally?
“Well, then! It looks like Captain Ginyu finally gets to stretch his legs and use his full power! Watch closely, Saiyan, this is a rare occasion.”
“Cool,” you start descending to some land below.
The Captain follows, leaving Jeice to watch the spectacle from above.
You both land and get into your fighting stances.
“I hope you don’t mind if I make this quick. I need to nip your friends in the bud.”
“Quick, huh? I can do that,” you nod. “Alright, how about we stop talking and get started.”
To your surprise, Ginyu completely blitzes behind you and slams his fist into your cheek. You skim across the ground, quickly recovering and pushing off the dirt to get some air. Again, Ginyu appears behind you and kicks. You catch it, spin around and throw him down to the soil below, quickly followed up by a yellow ki blast. Ginyu easily lands on the ground, quickly identifying your follow up attack and knocking it away like it was a softball. The little blast spirals away, landing in the ocean and causing a massive explosion.
The small droplets of water fall in your area for a brief moment. The second it’s gone, you both charge forward again. You both throw your fists forward, but only yours lands. He barrels to the ground, dirt, dust and grass erupt from the crater. You quickly follow, throwing a punch into the dust but there’s nothing there.
“What?”
Out of the ground, Ginyu bursts up, completely catching you off guard so he can land a powerful elbow to your jaw, followed by full body spin that mirrors a sort of dance, only for him to swiftly kick you towards a rock formation. You spin through the air, feet slamming against the rocks and crumbling when you spring off them.
You clash once again, flowing into a string of blocking, striking, and dodging that moves you all over your battlefield, eventually stopping over the water when Ginyu hammerfists you towards that ocean. You stop yourself right above the liquid, forcing a small shockwave behind you that blasts all the water around. You smile at the captain while you slowly ascend to his level.
“You’re definitely a lot stronger than the others,” you stretch your neck, signalling the Captain that you’re still taking things easy.
“I’m flattered you believe that my power is so high, but you should hold your applause!”
“Huh?” You raise your brow.
“You think you’re the only one who can hide their power?”
“Oh, that’s cool!” You aren’t too bothered by his statement.
“Now you will see Captain Ginyu’s power and style!” He strikes a pose, right leg up, right arm across his chest, and his left arm straight in the air.
“Uh… I hope your power is better than your style cause you look pretty lame,” you end with a chuckle.
“WHAT? YOU DARE CALL THE FABULOUS CAPTAIN GINYU’S PERSONAL POSE LAME? HAVE YOU ANY SENSE OF SHOWMANSHIP FOR FIGHTING?”
“Uh…” You rub the back of your head, thinking. “I don’t really do poses. Unless the stance after punching you in the face is considered a pose.”
Ginyu returns to a standing position and rests his hand on his head, shaking it. “What more can I expect from a Saiyan? At least you can be recognized by the elite Captain Ginyu for being strong, but-“
“Hey, are we gonna keep going or..?”
“Gggr,” Ginyu’s face takes a red tint. “HOW DARE YOU INTERRUPT ME! It's clear you need to be put in your place, so here!” Ginyu’s power skyrockets, nearly doubling.
This sudden surge of power catches you off guard, allowing him to burst in and deliver a devastating punch that would’ve taken your head off six days ago. You curl into a ball, spinning until you stand again. When you look back to Ginyu, a purple aura surrounds him as he’s taken a wide stance, one arm back with the other palm open towards you. A large purple blast fires out, near-instantly coming upon you.
“Whoa! HYAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAA!” Your body flickers out of existence as Ginyu’s attack erupts in a massive dome of purple energy and fire. The wind dust from the attack blows back against Ginyu and Jeice, slowly pushing the latter away.
“Whoa, the Captain put a lot into that one. I’m sure he’s space dust now!” Jeice cheers with joy.
Ginyu calmly watches as the dust settles and the crater of his attack is visible. He stands up straight and takes a breath, not totally relaxing.
“Great job, Captain!” Jeice shouts. “You really showed him!”
As Ginyu expected, you come down upon him with a bone-shattering knee that he manages to catch and toss you over him. Your body again flickers as you appear in front of him and lodge your fist into his stomach, forcing out saliva, then flick your leg straight up for a kick to the chin. The Captain soars in the air, finding it difficult to recover from your two attacks.
“That’s… impossible. He hits so-“
You appear behind him and drive your elbow into his back, shooting him right back down to the ground.
“CAPTAIN!” Jeice shrieks, watching Ginyu’s body create a crater upon impact.
You land a few feet away from the crater, waiting for your opponent to get back up. And so, as you thought, Captain Ginyu slowly steps out of the crater with a bit of blood dripping out of his mouth.
“You… what kind of Saiyan are you?”
Jeice’s body begins to shiver. If even the Captain is nervous, what does that spell for him? You smile at the Captain with such innocence that juxtaposes your power.
“One from Remnant.”
“You… couldn’t have more than a hundred thousand… it’s impossible.”
“A hundred… oh, your power reader things,” you tap your ear, mirroring where Ginyu’s scouter is. “I don’t know what my number would be, but I can show you.”
“Heh… hahahahahaha,” Ginyu’s mood quickly shifts. “I act all hurt and you get cocky. Go ahead. Show me all your power before I put you under my boot.”
“Alrighty!”
You take a deep breath, letting your feet spread a little bit before letting your power flow. Ginyu and Jeice’s scouters light up in correspondence to your flaring Aura.
Your voice starts deep and quiet, “Haaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaa.”
Your muscles start to bulk up, your hair whips around and the air swirls as it becomes heavy. Your power starts rising and rising, shooting far past the seventy five thousand it was sitting at before. Ginyu remains confident… until it passes one hundred thousand.
“No… there’s no way!” Ginyu shouts, sweat dripping down his face.
Jeice, too, is in awe at what’s happening before him.
“HAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAA!” You bring your clenched fists into your body as it all tenses up.
Clouds around you are either sucked into the vortex of your power or are blown away. The still water of Namek sways, splashing on the shores and breaking apart loose rock. Though you are showing off all this power, you’re making sure not to affect the entire planet like you could. If you did, Frieza might make his way here right away, before you’re ready. But, if anyone was paying attention, they could certainly pick up the massive influx of power coming off you. But your power keeps rising and rising, getting close to its peak. That only scares the audience you have now.
“A hundred and thirty… a hundred and fourty…” Ginyu’s shaky voice reads.
“HYAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAA!” You stand up straight, eyes glued to Ginyu as all your power comes to the surface.
“A-A-A hundred and sixty seven thousand! This is impossible!” He slams his hands on his head, just missing the horns.
“This is impossible… it’s a bad dream, that’s all!” Jeice tries to convince himself.
“You know, I can get higher than that,” you say with a cocky smile. “Kaioken,” you calmly state before your body is enveloped in red ki.
The two scouters rapidly begin reading your Ki again, quickly skyrocketing to keep track of your power.
“Three hundred and thirty four thousand!” Ginyu slowly backs up, never seeing a power level so high before. He’s only heard that Lord Frieza is five hundred and thirty thousand, but he’s never seen it, felt it, before. Now he’s in the presence of a Saiyan that harbours power beyond anything Captain Ginyu has seen.
“You have to be… you have to…”
“Hehe,” your tone of voice, your posture, your face, it’s all far more serious than it has been. “Just so you know, I can get a lot higher than this.”
With that, you release the Kaioken and return to a goofy nature, laughing at their amazement.
“You’re a Super Saiyan! You have to be! But… there’s no way! They were myths… but you!” Ginyu’s having a mental battle within himself over your very existence. He looks back at you, someone with power perhaps higher than Frieza’s. Fear grips his heart like never before.
You… a Super Saiyan.
With (Y/N)’s true power finally shown, it seems the famous Captain Ginyu has met his match. Is it true? Is it possible that (Y/N) has become the Super Saiyan of legend? Does this mean he can topple the ruler Frieza? Find out next time on… LIMITLESS!
Yeah, I know, but I wanted to do it.
I’m cutting this one a little “short” because I want to stretch out the Frieza Saga a little bit. I mean, this isn’t really short but I could definitely keep going for a bit longer. But, like I said, I don’t want this to end up being only two or three chapters. I hope you guys enjoyed reading it! It’s been fun watching Dragon Ball again to write all this. Now, just cause I said that doesn’t mean everything is going to be a beat by beat retelling of the show. Trust me, there’s going to be some changes coming… well, next chapter! Stick around to see’em!
Anyway, I’ll see you next time! I’ll make sure to work as hard as I can to get it out soon!
Want to keep up with me? Know what chapter’s coming out next and the progress of them? Follow me on Twitter! Twitter . com (slash) Chinsangan
Questions? Comments? Concerns? Advice? Send me a message!
I also have a Pa tr eon, if you want to check that out! Pat reon . com (slash) Chinsangan
My Discord is now open! If you want to join, either check my bio for a link, find it on my Twitter, or message me directly!
A special thank you to Patreon supporters: MazMan, Big Genatools, and Ride The Lightning
Thank you guys so much for supporting me! It means the world!
And finally, thank you to the Beta Reader: thenameisntimportant
Chapter 21: The Dreaded Frieza's Arrival! Beginnings of a Desperate Fight for Survival!
Chapter Text
Chapter 21: The Dreaded Frieza’s Arrival! Beginnings of a Desperate Fight for Survival!
Your confidence lingers on as Captain Ginyu freaks out over your status of a Super Saiyan. You still have no idea what he’s talking about, but if it ends this fight even quicker then it’s all the same to you. But… Ginyu pauses. His eyes slowly drift to you as his smile widens.
“A Super Saiyan before me…” He grabs his scouter, unlodging it from his ear. “Jeice, hold this!”
“Ah!” Jeice immediately recognizes what his captain is planning. “Of course, sir!”
“This is a once in a lifetime opportunity, you know. I can’t let it go to waste!” Ginyu drops his scouter for his subordinate to catch, which makes you raise your brow.
He changed really quick. Why? I didn’t…
“But be careful, he has a special technique. I don’t know what it is, but just keep your guard up!”
Turles’ recommendation rings in your head. His change in demeanour, him throwing the scouter away, and his new wave of confidence. Without a second thought, you blitz behind him and lodge your foot into the back of his neck, sending him plummeting down to the ground below.
“No, Captain!” Jeice shouts.
“I don’t know what you’re doing, but I know you’re gonna do a thing! I’m not gonna let you do a thing!” You raise your hands and keep your eyes on the purple opponent.
“Damnit,” Ginyu slams his fist on the ground. “I can’t catch him like this. I’ll have to-“
A sudden explosion erupts from above. Your eyes whiten as a surprise, powerful blast hits your back. Your body slowly starts to fall before a new figure appears before you, driving his knee into your stomach before pulling it out and elbowing the back of your head. The figure quickly turns around, creating two green orbs in each hand, then throwing them at you. The first hits, spinning you around in the air for the next one to hit your front. This surprise barrage completely knocks you out, allowing your body to heavily crash against the planet.
“Slug!” Ginyu shouts upon spotting the new figure. “What’re you doing here? You were meant to be at the ship!”
Slug, a tall, muscular Namekian with a purple jumpsuit covered with a yellow overcoat, orange scarf, gloves, and boots, finished off with a blue gem that’s strapped to his chest. He has a scar over his left eye, along with a far more opposing face. He smiles at the cowering Ginyu and his defeated prey.
“I felt that surge of power and thought it may be fun. Clearly, I was foolish to think this would be more entertaining than those other Saiyans,” Slug slowly descends, landing beside your bruised and bloody body. “Might as well finish this one-off,” he opens his palm and begins a Ki blast.
“Wait!” Ginyu gets to his feet and runs towards the Namekian. “I want that body!”
“This body?” Slug chuckles. “He’s nearly dead.”
Jeice lands beside his Captain, realizing how desperate Ginyu is for such a powerful form.
“I… Jeice, Lord Frieza’s ship has healing pods, correct!”
“Yes sir,” Jeice nods. “Though I heard Vegeta destroyed one of the rooms.
Ginyu uses his power to lift your body off the ground and hover it over himself. “I believe Lord Frieza’s ship has the older models. We can store him there.”
“B-But sir! Saiyans get stronger when they recover! Who knows how strong this one will be!” Jeice quickly voices his concern.
“Don’t worry, Jeice!” Ginyu puts his hands on his hips, clearly proud of his idea. “By the time he recovers, Lord Frieza will have his immortality!” Slug sneers at that comment, beginning to walk in the direction of the ship. “No amount of power this Saiyan gets will be close to our Lord’s! Then I can take his body and propel the Ginyu Force even higher in the Universe!”
“You’re right Captain, as always!”
The flamboyant fighters take off with your unconscious body. Slug waits for them to pass before he follows. He doesn’t like working with such fools, but it’s what has to be done. If he didn’t lead Frieza and his army to Namek for the Dragon Balls, he’d likely be dead already. Even as a Super Namekian, Frieza is a bit too much for him to handle right now. He had no idea the tyrant could transform, and he couldn’t handle Frieza’s power. At least not yet. He may have let galactic ruler know of the Dragon Balls, but he never told him how to use them. Hence why he wasn’t there when Frieza gathered all seven, and why he doesn’t mind the Saiyans passing by to take the balls away. Frieza wants immortality, but it’s he, Slug, that will obtain such a treasure.
Still, he’s surprised at your power. You’re some random Saiyan, yet you were reaching interesting heights. Not enough to defeat him, but it’s still intriguing to see creatures so powerful. You could make a potentially good henchman once he’s taken over.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
The group of Saiyans swiftly make their way across Namek and approach Frieza’s ship. Vegeta’s eyes glimmer as he sees the shine of the giant orange Dragon Balls. A few random Frieza soldiers are guarding them, which, for the Saiyans, means they’re completely available. The soldiers quickly recognize the incoming Saiyans and immediately panic. The five swoop in to swiftly kill the few soldiers around. Their bodies crumble to the dirt barely a second before the Saiyans boots flatten the grass.
“What a fool Frieza is, leaving the Dragon Balls out like this!” Raditz laughs, grabbing two of the orbs.
“It’s certainly Ginyu’s fault,” Vegeta lets his allies grab the six balls. “He left them alone thinking he could deal with us easily.”
“Hey Turles, you think Kail can beat Ginyu?” Kakarot asks, hoping the answer is yes so he can get his own shot at you.
“It shouldn’t be a problem for him. Come on,” Turles grabs a ball. “Stop dawdling, Kakarot. If Freiza comes back we’re as good as dead.”
“Why don’t we just make our wish right now?” Nappa asks, already hovering in the air with two balls.
While Vegeta originally planned to move everything away, with neither the Ginyu Force nor Frieza here, there’s no reason not to become immortal immediately.
“You’re right, Nappa. Set them down together.”
The Saiyans silently complain that they got ready to go for nothing, but with their wish mere moments away, that excitement washes any annoyance or doubt away. The Saiyans stand around the shining balls, unsure exactly what to do next.
“Dragon Balls!” Vegeta takes the lead. “Grant my wish! Make all of us here immortal!”
The wind blows by them as the seconds tick. There’s no true feedback from the Dragon Balls, no shining light surrounding the Saiyans to signal their divine status, nothing that truly shows off that the wish has worked.
“So… are we immortal?” Kakarot raises his hands, shaking his body a little bit. “Does being immortal feel different?”
“What’s immortal supposed to feel like?” Turles crosses his arms, already doubting.
“I… don’t know.” Vegeta pats his armoured chest. “Would you like to be our test subject, Raditz?” Vegeta lifts his open half at the other Saiyan.
“Wait!” Raditz fearfully raises his hands and steps back.
“Don’t trust it, Raditz?” Nappa laughs.
“Why don’t you get blasted then!” The long-haired man barks back.
“It’s the only way we’ll know,” Vegeta keeps his palm locked on Raditz.
“Maybe… not,” Turles raises a hand to his chin. “Kail mentioned he sensed other Namekians. They’d be able to tell us whether our wish worked or not.”
“T-That sounds better than trying to kill me!” Raditz enthusiastically nods. “Turles, you know where that was?”
“I should be able to find it,” Turles nods, closing his eyes for a minute. “But… Frieza seems to be on his way there.”
Vegeta lowers his hand, taking into account what Turles has said. “If Frieza’s trying to find the Namekians then it’s possible it didn’t work for him either. There’s no reason he wouldn’t have made his wish already,” the prince soars into the air. “Come on! We have to hurry! Grab the Dragon Balls, just in case!”
The Saiyans quickly gather the large orange orbs and take off behind their prince.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
RWBY and Dende wait anxiously outside the Guru’s house. While they want to respect the Elder’s wishes, all of them can feel Frieza’s power get closer and closer every second. Dende tightens his grip on the Dragon Ball, hoping to garner power or strength from it during this time.
“You know, I was feeling really confident with our power-up, but…” Yang paces around, rolling her shoulders, rubbing her eyes, anything to keep moving. “We can’t fight that. We can’t. We have to g-“
A strange anomaly happens within Guru’s house. The girls can feel one power disappear yet another grow stronger. At that moment, the Dragon Ball Dende was holding turns to stone.
“What happened to the Dragon Ball?” Ruby asks, completely lost.
Nail walks out with a heavy head, finding it difficult to look the young Namekian in the eye.
“Nail?” Dende’s small voice speaks.
“It’s time to go, Dende… it’s the Elder’s wishes.” Dende’s eyes fall to the floor, forming tears. He sets the stone ball down, not bothering to carry around dead weight.
“What happened?” Blake looks between the two. “I can’t sense Guru anymore.”
“Your friend is in that group, correct?” Nail looks towards the incoming Saiyans. “Frieza is on his way. We have no time.”
“But-“
Nail takes off before the girls can question him any further. They turn their attention to Dende, who clearly knows what just happened.
“We… need to follow him,” Dende rubs the tears away before taking off.
“Hold on!” The girls do the same, surrounding Dende.
“What just happened?”
“Nail… and Guru… are the same now,” Dende does his best to focus.
While not wanting to be obvious, the humans can only make some guesses to what that means. But with Dende’s words and what they sensed, each of them can gather what may have happened, even if they don’t have all the answers. The girls look ahead to the heavy-hearted Namekian who now carries the weight of his race on his shoulders. It’s clear they’re doing everything they can to defend their home… and the girls have to give the same amount of effort to help.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
As the Saiyans continue their streak through the sky, the ones holding the balls feel a strange sensation.
“Vegeta!” Nappa shouts, making the Prince stop.
All the Saiyans look at their balls, then at the others. All the shiny, orange balls are now like stone.
“What did you do?” Vegeta’s voice echoes.
“Nothing! They just… changed,” Raditz holds the two balls before him. “What’s…”
“Did the wish just take effect?” Turles theorizes. “Or did they just become null?”
Vegeta’s rage slowly heightens. This uncertainty is gnawing at him, causing his body to shake and the planet around him to quake.
“Was it those damn humans you brought with you, Turles!” He focuses his rage on the calm, collected Saiyan.
“Maybe,” Turles shrugs. “But they just intended to help the Namekians, I don’t think-“
“Don’t think what?” Vegeta charges him, grabbing the collar of his armour. “Don’t think they would try to stop our immortality?”
“If it wasn’t for me getting them, you would’ve all died.”
“We only needed Kail, not those pathetic wastes of space dust!”
“You haven’t even seen them. We don’t know if that’s what happened,” Turles stands his ground.
The others stand back, unsure of how to approach this rising intensity.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Ginyu, Jeice, and Slug pass above the ship with your limp body floating beside them. Their eyes all lock onto the battlegrounds in front of the ship, housing destroyed bodies, dried blood, and a lack of Dragon Balls.
“Jeice, assure the healing tanks are in proper working order,” Ginyu commands as they land on the ship.
“Of course, Captain!” The Red Magma quickly follows orders.
The two remaining men look down at the devastation before Frieza’s sacred ship. Ginyu clenches his fist, realizing what losing the Dragon Balls will do to Frieza.
“Slug! You were supposed to be guarding the Dragon Balls! Lord Frieza will not be pleased!” His voice mixed with anger and fear.
“It doesn’t matter, Ginyu. We can find the Saiyans with those little toys of yours,” he smugly taps his ear, inferring to their scouters.
“And, like Frieza found out-“
“Lord Frieza!” Ginyu swiftly corrects.
“Right, well, the Saiyans likely hit the same wall and can’t use them. We have nothing to fear. Now put your little project away and let's be done with them.”
“Captain!” Jeice swoops around to be in sight of his leader. “Some of the tanks were destroyed, but slow healing ones are still intact.
“Perfect!” Ginyu perks right up. “Come, Jeice, let's put our Saiyan friend here in the tank.”
And so, the purple and red enemies bring you into the ship, properly place connectors to your temples and a breathing mask over your mouth. With your blurry vision coming in and out, you’re unable to tell what’s really happening. All you can hear is a latch close and water, or some sort of liquid, fill up wherever you are. Thanks to the rebreather on your face, even when your space is filled with liquid, you’re still able to breath. But as this substance surrounds you, your body relaxes and feels like it’s repairing itself. You can’t deny that it feels good. You slowly open one of your eyes, spotting Ginyu and Jeice through the glass.
But as quickly as you saw them, they hurriedly ran out of the room. You close your eyes again and try to sense everything on Namek.
Damnit, I messed up. I didn’t sense that guy get the drop on me. He was way stronger than Ginyu... I just hope everyone can stay safe until I’m back. Where is everyone… The Saiyans are together, and RWBY… who’re those two with them? One is small but the other’s energy is amazing. If they all get together, they should be able to beat Frieza, Ginyu, and that guy who cheap shotted me. At least, I hope…
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
The two Namekians and four Humans fly in a group. By the way Nail has subtly shifted their flight pattern, Dende is in the center and is the most protected. Ruby, who’s to Dende’s left, looks over at the young Namekian.
“You’re Dende, right?” She softly asks.
“Oh, yeah,” Dende nods.
“You’re pretty strong, you know. You’re still going after… well, I can’t even imagine,” her eyes trail ahead. “But don’t worry!” Her gaze returns to him as she smiles. “We’re going to make sure to kick all these bad guys’ butts! We’ll bring back your friends and family, I promise!”
Nail takes note of the promise the young leader made and can feel a presence inside him warm up. The Namekians haven’t hosted many aliens, and this is clearly one of the worst cases. But hearing these aliens vowing to help brings hope to the jaded Nail. Whether they’ll be able to come out victorious is another story. At least he knows the Dragon Balls can no longer fall into malicious hands.
“Your friends are ahead,” Nail notifies.
“They’re not really our friends,” Weiss chips in. “But they’ll help us.”
“Is… (Y/N) not there? I don’t sense him,” Blake says with closed eyes.
“Yeah, now that you mention it!” Yang follows up. “Where is he?”
“We’re approaching,” Nail speaks once more.
The group stops close to the Saiyans, bearing witness to the conflict. The Warrior Race all turn to the newcomers, their prince immediately letting Turles go.
“There you are! What did you do to the Dragon Balls? Why are they stone? Why didn’t our wish work?”
“The answer is simple,” Nail crosses his arms, unfazed by the threatening Saiyan. “You did not have all seven. Only six. Even if you had the seven, you do not know how to summon the great Porunga, nor do you speak our language. The Dragon Balls would never work for you, menace.”
“What? We needed a password and… damnit, why didn’t I know this?” Vegeta gets closer to Nail.
“Likely because you slaughtered all my brothers you came across,” Nail’s tone becomes deathly serious.
Vegeta, however, chuckles at the words. “They weren’t cooperative.”
To his disappointment, this doesn’t faze the stoic Namekian. RWBY, however…
“Wait, you killed their people?” Yang flies forward.
“Of course,” Nappa says with pride. “All we wanted was the wish.”
“I can’t believe you!” Weiss scolds. “I thought you came here to fight Frieza!”
“Fight Frieza? Who gave you…” Vegeta quickly answers his own question. “Turles, that’s what you told them?”
“That was the plan. Get immortality, kill Frieza.”
“And now we have no immortality. Do you still plan on fighting Frieza?” Vegeta’s voice slowly grows.
“We’re all stronger now. Together we may have a cha-“
“Together,” Kakarot laughs. “What happened on that ship, Turles?”
Turles turns his head to respond. “If any of you wish to fight Frieza alone then I invite you to try.”
“Speaking of which,” Nail turns around. “That giant power is approaching, fast.”
“F-Frieza?” Raditz’s fear is evident, but it blends with everyone’s dread. “Can we run?”
“No,” Vegeta descends to the ground below, causing the other Saiyans to follow, and then RWBY’s group to do the same. They all land on the ground, dropping the null Dragon Balls. “We face Frieza here.”
“But what about (Y/N)? Where’s he?” Yang shouts.
“Kail? He’s dealing with Ginyu,” Turles answers. “I’m sure he’ll join when he’s able.”
“Who’s Giny-“ Ruby’s voice cuts out when a massive power’s pressure overwhelms her.
“Now, what do we have here?” A new, sophisticated voice speaks.
Standing on elevated land, the infamous Frieza holds a stone ball under his arm. He’s a short being, shorter than Vegeta, with a large purple spot on his head that has a shine similar to the Dragon Balls in their prime. That purple is surrounded by thick white skin. Like Ginyu, he has two black horns coming out just above his temples. His arms and legs host a similar structure – the limbs being pink with a stripe-like pattern while the forearms and shins are a white with a brown section, similar to the armour seen on all his soldiers. His feet, hands, and what little they can see of his chest are all a pale purple. Like his soldiers, Frieza wears the same chest piece – his mostly being purple – with the large pauldrons all the Ginyu Force had, and also wearing a pure black, extremely short bottom wear that reminds the girls of thick underwear. Finally, his tail has a similar look to his arms and legs, but the last foot of his tail is a sleek purple. And, of course, he has a red scouter which showed him exactly where everyone was.
Nail is the only one who stops his body from being overtaken with fear. Everyone else, even the Saiyans, shiver at the sight of Frieza’s overwhelming presence.
“When I saw this useless orb I had a bad feeling that my Dragon Balls had succumbed to the same fate. Clearly, you’re all aware of this, hm? I hope you’re satisfied, truly. You’ve successfully dashed my hopes upon the craggy shores of your ignorance. And what has become of the Ginyu Force, I wonder? Or Slug? Did you do away with them all?”
“LORD FRIEZA!” A deep voice shouts from behind the group.
Everyone’s focus turns to Ginyu, Jeice, and Slug as they arrive on the battlefield, hovering just behind the Saiyans. They all spot the Dragon Balls, but only Slug realizes the true extent of what’s happened.
Upon seeing them, Turles can only expect the worst. If Ginyu, Jeice, and Slug are here that means you’ve lost, and are likely at the bottom of a lake now.
“The Dragon Balls! Lord Frieza, forgive me! I failed to protect them as you instructed,” Ginyu bows his head, to which Jeice follows.
“Well, it appears not all my forces have perished on this putrid planet. Oh, Ginyu, you do not realize how deep my rage flows right now,” those words make the purple captain go blue. “But luckily for you, I have plenty of playthings to vent said frustration on,” Frieza’s menacing red eyes descend down to his opposition.
He soon steps off the edge and floats down, getting closer to the humans and Namekians. They all back, save Nail, out of pure fear. Their intense heartbeats can practically be heard across the planet. But Frieza’s shrill scream overtakes that.
“YOU VILE, FILTHSUCKING MAGGOTS! YOU WILL RUE THE DAY YOU CROSSED MY PATH! PREPARE YOURSELVES TO EMBRACE OBLIVION!” He steps forward, finally showing the tip of his anger.
Ginyu, Jeice, and Slug land behind the group, effectively preventing any escape. Slug is the only one not smiling, frustrated in knowing that there’s no way to achieve his wish. All he can do is remain on Frieza’s good side until he can escape.
“Step back,” Nail commands.
RWBY and Dende dash back as the Saiyans step forward to combat Frieza. But, since they’ve gone behind, they’re now facing the people who assumedly defeated you.
“Going somewhere?” Ginyu smiles, his power rising for the battle ahead.
“Team, we’re gonna have to fight!” Ruby shouts. “Stick together!”
“Right!” The other three nod.
In unison, all their powers flare up to over fifteen thousand.
“And so your rule comes to an end today,” Vegeta steps forward, taking the lead in the fight against Frieza. “You’re mistaken if you think I’ll go down easily.”
“Oh, Vegeta, clearly you’ve forgotten how truly terrifying I am. How about I remind you!” Frieza screams, finally releasing his power.
That very act forces rocks around them to rise and the planet itself to shake. Even you, in the ship, can feel the effect of Frieza’s power. RWBY and the Ginyu Force all delay their battle to bear witness to Frieza’s growing pressure. After a moment, Frieza smiles.
“You really shouldn’t be all clumped up like ants,” he calmly states before lifting a single finger. The tip slowly glows pink before releasing a beam right at the center.
Everyone spreads out, but RWBY keeps themselves and Dende together. Frieza focuses more on the Saiyans, as they’re the ones that have irritated him the most. Massive clouds of smoke erupt every time Frieza’s blasts connect with Namek. All the Saiyans, Namekians, and Humans scatter upon Frieza’s assault while the tyrant laughs, blasting anyone he can see. As Ruby launches herself into the air, Jeice appears behind her with his elbow ready.
Right as Ruby realizes he’s there, his elbow slams into the back of her skull. Her body spirals down to the ground below, but right as she’s about to connect she explodes into three separate twirling red forms. Jeice is caught off guard as the three approach him, unsure which one is really her. He throws his arm forward and blasts the most right one.
Ruby, now behind him, deactivates her Semblance and charges with Crescent Rose, the blade tinted with yellow Ki. She passes by Jeice, her scythe slashing right by his back and locks into his ribs. Ruby, opposite to the blade pulls it towards her while bringing both feet up to lodge in Jeice’s face. The Red Magma flips in the air a few times, quickly recovering and looking at his damaged armour and bleeding body.
“You little runt! You’re nothing to the Ginyu Force, even if you have that weapon!”
“She’s got more than that!” Yang shouts, swooping in from behind at full power and throwing a wound-up punch.
Jeice catches it, readying to counter-attack but a strange black glyph wraps around his hand.
“What’s this?”
Weiss, standing high above the fight, points her weapon at her teammates’ enemy.
“Yang!”
“Got it!” Yang fires the gauntlet of the fist Jeice caught, completely disrupting his balance. She throws a hook with her left, then two kicks from the right to then fire off her gauntlet to spin her around, building momentum, and driving her fist into Jeice’s face. The impact shatters his scouter, rendering it a useless decoration. Weiss widens the glyph, capturing his whole body in it. At the same time, Yang kicks off him and flies around, spotting Ruby doing the same thing.
“At the same time, sis!”
“Yeah!” Ruby nods.
With their weapons ready, both come around, completing a semi-circle. As Yang comes in, Ginyu appears, zooming towards her and lodges his knee full force into her stomach. The combined force of coming to a sudden halt and Ginyu’s raw strength nearly decimates Yang’s body then and there, even with her Ki protection. At the same time, a gloved hand wraps around the back of Weiss’ neck and pulls her back.
Blake turns around, noting Weiss had been ambushed.
“Weiss!”
The disruption disables her glyph, allowing Jeice to catch the distracted Ruby’s attack. He shifts to the left, grabbing her weapon and crushing her with a devastating hook. The impact forces Ruby to release her weapon and plummet down to the water below.
“Stupid girl!” Jeice shouts, throwing her weapon to the side and quickly posing with one hand over his head. “Crusher Ball! You’re dead!” He throws the red ball at Ruby’s helpless form.
The young leader can only watch as impending doom approaches, but a figure appears above her, knocking the energy ball far away. Turles quickly turns and grabs Ruby, ensuring she doesn’t impact anything.
“You’re out of your league, Ruby. Stay back,” his voice is calm and collected, despite the chaos all around him.
“Hey! Why’re you butting in?” Jeice shrieks.
Without saying a word, Turles rushes towards the Red Magma at speeds he can’t even fathom. Turles’ fist breaks right through Jeice’s body, crashing through his armour like it was paper. Jeice shivers, his eyes slowly looking down at the arm covered in blood – his blood. Turles pulls out his fist and gently puts his hand right over the wound. Again, without a word, he unleashes a purple wave of Ki that completely disintegrates Jeice.
“Jeice!” Ginyu shouts, knee still lodged in Yang. “How dare you!” Ginyu pulls his limb back, letting Yang’s body lifelessly fall to the ground.
Ruby quickly swoops up, catching her sister and landing behind some rocks, out of Frieza’s sight. Though, the sound of his blasts and explosions is still very loud. As she sets down her older sister, Ruby hears Weiss cry out in pain. Her eyes quickly dart to the source, seeing Slug’s extended arm – the sleeve now ripped, showing off his Namekian skin – pulling Weiss towards him. With his other hand, he’s firing smaller blasts at Blake, keeping her at a distance.
“Turles, help!” Ruby requests, already bursting off the ground towards her teammate.
Sadly for the young leader, Turles is already locked in combat with Ginyu – hellbent on avenging his teammate's demise.
At the same time, Vegeta has become sick of simply dodging Frieza’s attack. With Raditz being Frieza’s current target, the Prince takes the opportunity to appear behind the emperor and roundhouse Frieza towards a rock formation – the same one Yang is hidden behind. Of course, Frieza is able to stabilize himself, but he’s infuriated that Vegeta could even make him move. The Prince stands confident, egging Frieza on to attack.
“Oh, Vegeta,” Frieza regains his composure. “I can’t wait to watch that bravado turn to ash. One lucky hit and you believe you’re the strongest around.”
“Heh, maybe,” Vegeta keeps his smile up. “But it doesn’t matter. You’re out of your league, Frieza. Look around,” the two powerhouses spot the other Saiyans. “We’re nowhere close to the power you once knew us at. Together, as a race, we will crush you. With I, a Super Saiyan, leading the charge!”
Frieza notes the continuing battles – Slug now dealing with Ruby and Blake while Ginyu is locked in heated combat with Turles. The rest are prepared to fight together against Frieza. The Emperor cannot deny that all the Saiyans’ power levels have grown significantly… but it’s truly no matter for him. If he kills Vegeta first the rest will crumble.
“Oh, Vegeta, I must say you always have such distasteful jokes to tell. Unfortunately, I’ve had enough of your act!”
Frieza charges at his former underling, their fists colliding with neither giving ground. The ruler is genuinely surprised that Vegeta’s even able to hold his ground against the amount of power Frieza’s putting out.
“Nappa!” Turles shouts, ducking under Ginyu’s punch and grabbing him from behind, full nelson. “Frieza’s distracted! Let’s finish this fool off!”
Nappa’s hesitant for a moment, but with Kakarot, Raditz, and Nail there to back Vegeta up, he can spare his time to kill Ginyu. Besides, it would bring the brute great pleasure to put down the purple nuisance.
“Filthy Saiyan! You two can’t defeat me!” Ginyu shouts, his voice barely reaching out thanks to the pressure of Vegeta and Frieza.
Nappa powers forward, his fist glowing with Ki to slam it into Ginyu’s stomach. Turles immediately let's go and kicks off him, holding his hands in front of him to form an orange ring.
“Finish this fast, Nappa! Full power!”
Nappa strikes Ginyu with his other fist, disorienting the leader and knocking him towards Turles. The bulky Saiyan pulls his hand back, forming a fire-like blast in his hand to throw.
“DIE!”
“KILL DRIVER!” Turles shouts, blasting the ring towards Ginyu.
Without any chance to escape, the renowned Captain of the Ginyu Force is caught between the two powerful attacks, ensuring that he meets his fellow teammates in the afterlife. Turles and Nappa take a breath, satisfied with the outcome. This also confirms what Turles thought before, that Nappa, along with the others, has caught up with him in terms of power.
Meanwhile, Slug is laughing at the fruitless attempts by Blake and Ruby to rescue their friend. Even with one arm wrapped around Weiss’ neck, slowly wringing out the life in her, he’s still able to block or dodge every attack the girls try to throw.
“You children are out of your league,” Slug catches Blake’s weapon while his eyes momentarily go white. There’s no time for the Faunus to react as two thin beams pierce her chest, barely passing her heart.
“BLAKE!” Ruby howls, watching her teammate’s eyes wash over while her body falls.
“Worry about yourself!” Slug laughs, raising Weiss high in the air with his stretching arm and slamming the Heiress’ head against Ruby’s. He retracts his arm, allowing both their bodies to crash into the water below. The two girls sink to the bottom, blood slowly rising past their hair and polluting Namek’s water.
“The girls!” Turles spots their fall.
“Don’t worry about them!” Nappa shouts, pointing towards the approaching Slug. “What’s wrong with you?”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Your body still floats within the pod, slowly repairing your body to its peak. But you can still sense everything that’s going on.
No! All of RWBY’s energies have dropped. They’re barely even alive and I’m not even strong enough to help. Please, Turles, I’m begging you. Keep them alive!
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
With nobody paying attention to him, Dende swims under the water to find the two fallen humans. He quickly spots their bodies and approaches, but another body enters the water. With Yang and Blake under his arms, Nail grasps the two remaining girls and looks at Dende, flicking his head towards Crescent Rose and Myrtenaster. The young Namekian immediately understands Nail's instructions and gathers their weapons. The two burst out of the water and fly to a nearby island that’s away from the fight. Nail drops the four girls down, turning back towards the battlefield.
“Quickly, heal them Dende, and do not let yourself be exposed. If the enemy learns of your powers, they’ll come for you,” is all Nail says before taking off back to the fight.
Dende doesn’t say a word and immediately starts healing. Yang is the one least injured, so he saves her for last.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
With Frieza and Vegeta locked in a power struggle, Kakarot and Raditz fly behind their enemy.
“Kakarot!”
“Yeah!”
The two of them charge a yellow beam and fire it off at the same time, hitting Frieza in the back. The momentary imbalance allows Vegeta to gain the upper hand, pulling Frieza down to knee him in the jaw, then quickly following up.
“GALICK GUN!” Vegeta slams his palms against Frieza’s chest and releases the purple beam. “Kakarot! Raditz!”
Without a word, the two prepare their own attacks. Raditz lifts both hands in the air beside him, charging a black and white energy that sparks with similar electricity, while Kakarot fuels all his Ki into a blue beam in his hand. The two release their individual attacks, assuring Frieza is hit from all sides. As they all explode and the three Saiyans regroup, Frieza’s rising power and shriek dispel all the smoke that came from their attacks. His scouter is destroyed and there’s even a few scratch marks along his legs and armour.
Yet Frieza isn’t upset at all. In fact, he begins laughing.
“Well, well, it appears all that babbling wasn’t just to delay the inevitable,” Frieza’s eyes drift over to Slug, who’s dealing with Nappa and Turles at the same time.
Slug is still hiding a significant amount of power. He should handle those two Saiyans, no matter how strong they are. These three, however…
“Are you realizing our Saiyan might, Frieza!” Kakarot goads. “We’re not your footstools any longer!”
“It looks like we won’t even need Kail,” Raditz speaks with confidence.
“So, Frieza, how about your transform!” Vegeta points at him.
“Oh?” Frieza raises a hand to his mouth. “You know a little more than I expected, Vegeta.”
“Right, Zarbon mentioned that,” Kakarot nods. “He barely raised his power. Even if Frieza was double that, we could destroy him!”
“Is that so?” Frieza becomes a little more intrigued. “You know, I was thinking of just playing around a little bit, but it appears you monkeys are getting a little too big for your breeches. I always knew the price of keeping you as pets,” Frieza’s power spikes for just a moment, breaking his armour into pieces. “But I’ve prepared myself to put you down.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
While being far more difficult than with the girls, Slug still manages to go untouched despite the onslaught from the two Saiyans. They ignore all the power erupting from Frieza and Vegeta, ignore the combination attacks, and just focus on the fight before them. Few times Nappa’s foot or Turles’ elbow manage to barely graze the Namekian’s body, but they still never connect. This only frustrates Nappa and worries Turles.
Who is this guy? He’s stronger than the Ginyu Force put together. There’s no way Frieza just had this in his back pocket the whole time! Wait! If he’s a Namekian then maybe that’s how Frieza learned about the Dragon Balls. He turned against his own kind. What filth.
Even with his assumption, this doesn’t help Turles’ battle at all. Slug is still stronger than he ever could’ve expected, even with their enhanced power. The two Saiyans back off for a moment, just short of breath.
“You two aren’t bad at all. You remind me of that other Saiyan I put down,” Slug chuckles.
“What? Kail?” Turles clarifies.
“Perhaps,” Slug shrugs. “I imagine it doesn’t matter. Ginyu just wanted his body but, well,” he chuckles. “He doesn’t even have one himself. Maybe you’ll get lucky and he’ll get out of that tank.”
“The healing tank,” Turles can’t help but smile. “That means Kail will come back and finish this with us. And that means,” he points at Slug. “You have no chance.”
Slug bursts out laughing. “I defeated him in seconds. What makes you think his presence will change anything?”
“He’ll get a boost, too,” Nappa nods, seeing why Turles is putting stock in your life. “It doesn’t matter. We’ll kill you and Frieza without him!”
“No,” Nail zooms beside them, eyes locked on Slug. “This one is mine.”
Slug clearly becomes enticed by the presence of a Namekian. “You’re new… and merged with another. Well, well, you’re the reason the Dragon Balls went null. You merged with the Grand Elder!”
“What? You’re the reason we didn’t get our wish!” Nappa throws his hand at Nail.
“We didn’t have all seven anyway, Nappa.”
“Begone, Saiyans. This is between us Namekians.”
“Indeed,” Slug tosses away his gloves and the ripped sleeves that still flapped along his arm. “I’ll have fun seeing what you can do.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Working quickly, Dende heals all the members of RWBY, unintentionally in the order of their team.
“You really saved us, Dende,” Weiss bows her head.
“Yeah, I can’t thank you enough!” Yang pats him on the back. “But man,” Yang looks at her hands. “We got completely beaten by those guys. They’re so out of our league. How are we going to help?”
Ruby’s eyes stare at the blue grass, thinking on what they can even do. What Yang said isn’t wrong, all of them were going full throttle yet were knocked out with barely a few hits.
“Weiss, your glyphs worked, even though that guy was stronger than us.”
“Yeah… yeah, it did,” Weiss nods.
“So we can’t rely on our strength. If we can’t beat them with our power, we have to outwit them. These guys don’t know about our Semblances!”
“I did store that damage he hit me with,” Yang says. “So I have that. But these guys… I’ll have to store up a lot and let it all out at once. I bet they wouldn’t expect a huge attack coming from me.”
“Okay, we’ll have to be smart,” Ruby takes charge. “Weiss, try to keep everyone supported with your glyphs.”
“Got it.”
“Blake, try to hit and run. You have some Dust, right?”
“I do.”
“Then I trust you’ll know when to attack and retreat. Yang… do what you do,” she nods at her sister. “I’ll try to distract who I can, and if someone gets hurt I’ll bring them back here. You’re okay with healing, right Dende?
“I am,” the boy gains a spark of hope.
“Then we have a plan. Let’s help whoever we can!”
The four instantly soar into the air and head towards the battlefield.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“HYAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAA!” Frieza clenches his fists and hunches forward, pink energy flaring around his like a tornado. Harnessing that power, Frieza’s body begins to bulk up, starting with his upper body. His chest, arms, and head grow to such a degree that it’s almost comedic. His horns grow too, curving upward instead of straight out.
Everyone – the Saiyans, the humans, and the Namekians – all pause to witness this transformation. Each of them, save the Namekians, have sweat drop from their faces.
“N-No way… that pressure,” Weiss’ body shakes.
“This… is insane,” Yang barely manages to get out.
All the Saiyans merely watch with fear as his legs finally grow to compliment his new form. And with that, Frieza stands up straight, smiling at Vegeta, Kakarot, and Raditz. He takes great pride in seeing those who mocked him now trembling with fear.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Sensing out the battlefield, you can easily feel Frieza’s power practically double.
That’s Frieza? Man, his power is insane! But if everyone holds out, we should be able to win. Once my body is healed, a ten times Kaioken should still be able to take him down. I just hope everyone can hang on…
Wait… is that RWBY? They’re back to full strength! How? There are no Senzu beans left! Well, I won’t take that for granted. Just be careful, girls.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Frieza begins to laugh at the Saiyans. “What’s wrong, Saiyans? What happened to all that confidence you had? You, Vegeta, who spat in my face so eloquently mere moments ago, and the rest of you irrelevant ants who believed you actually had a chance for survival.” Kakarot and Raditz can’t even feign confidence at this point. Even if they can’t sense energy, it’s clear that Frieza’s power is far greater than it was before. Nothing like Zarbon. “I don’t blame you for being fearful, you know. I scare myself sometimes,” he begins to chuckle. “After all, with a power level of one million, it’s hard to control myself.”
“What?” Turles is completely ignoring Slug at this point. “One million… is that… even possible?”
Slug and Nail remain silent. They know they’re reserves are vast, and possibly even comparable to Frieza’s current form. Still, this has a far more raw and terrifying feel to it that can’t be denied.
“No way! Nobody is that strong! Not even you!” Vegeta cries out, his voice shaky. Not even he can believe it, despite feeling the pressure Frieza’s exerting. “It’s… not real.”
“Oh, trust me Vegeta, you’ve entered a nightmare. The only way out is the release of death,” Frieza raises his closed fist before him. “So… let’s begin,” he opens his palm, practically shifting the entire colour spectrum with his energy. Everything goes white and black as he releases a terrifying shockwave that shatters all earth around him and sends everything spiralling away.
No matter their race or distance from Frieza, this attack blows everyone back with ease. Most can recover quickly, but the girls aren’t able to recover. They are caught in the powerful hurling winds, spinning them away from Frieza’s menacing form. The water around him blows back as well, causing tidal waves across Namek. The water even shakes the ship you’re residing in.
As the dust settles and rock falls like rain, Frieza has his hands on his hips, standing on one, untouched piece of land. The Saiyans are all far apart now, eyes glued on the tyrant. Nail and Slug are also blown apart, now having Nappa and Raditz spaced out between them. But, despite their eagerness to prove who’s the strongest Namekian, they’re no different than the Saiyans – stuck gawking at Frieza.
“Is everyone okay?” Ruby rises into the air.
“We’re good!” Yang and Weiss have their arms linked.
“Yeah,” Blake slowly ascends. “But that wasn’t normal.”
Hearing that, Frieza laughs even more. “Insects marvel at even the slightest movement from a dinosaur,” he looks over at the girls. “I was merely saying hello. Any lowly Saiyan could’ve done that,” his eyes slowly drift to his tailed nemesis. “And speaking of lowly Saiyans… which one would like to start the horror show?” Frieza’s eyes wander to the awe-struck Saiyans, deciding which to be rid of first. His eyes first land on Turles, but he ignores him. Turles always had a witty mouth, but he knew his place and never stepped on Frieza’s toes too much. He’ll leave that one for the end. Then there’s Vegeta, the proud prince. He has a soft spot in his heart for Vegeta, but his little crusade has cost the overlord much and he will be punished, but maybe later. His eyes then drift to Raditz and Kakarot – the brothers. They were ones that mocked his fist form as well… and so he found someone to make an example of.
“You,” he whispers before bursting off his island.
Only the Namekians can follow Frieza’s movement as he near-instantly rams a horn through Kakarot’s stomach, piercing bones and puncturing organs. The Saiyan feels the pain before he even spots Frieza’s approach. Everyone is shocked at how quickly one of their warriors is taken out.
“Kakarot?” Raditz’s voice is barely above a whisper.
“That was… so fast,” Vegeta speaks to himself.
Even RWBY, despite having no love for the Saiyans, are appalled at what they just saw. Kakarot’s power was dozens of times stronger than their own, yet he was dispatched in an instant. The fire within them they’re trying so hard to kindle fades, even more, every passing second.
Kakarot’s eyes slowly lose their solid black colour as blood trickles down Frieza’s horn and down his chin. Frieza chuckles, licking the blood off his cheek.
“Hm, repulsive. Just as I expected from a Saiyan.”
Kakarot doesn’t bother with words. The shock in his body makes it hard to even move. Yet somehow, through battle instinct, he tries to knee the horned menace. Frieza catches the knee and squeezes, shattering the bones like nothing.
“I would try to toy with you, but there’s plenty to play with. You’re just in the way,” Frieza lifts himself straight up, forcing Kakarot’s body further down his horn.
The Saiyan’s complexion becomes blue as more blood pools out of him. Without a second thought, Frieza casts his head back to fling the Saiyan’s body off his horn and towards the waters below. Everyone watches with intensity as Kakarot’s seemingly lifeless body tumbles through the air.
“Well,” Frieza crosses his arms and looks towards the others. “Who’s next?”
There we go! Finally, the battle against Frieza has begun! Adding Slug into this portion was a fun little thought Name and I had for a while. We showed we were incorporating movie villains and who better to tell Frieza about the Dragon Balls than a Namekian? As you can already see, this is where some changes are taking place. Ginyu and Jeice, in particular, were handled rather quickly here, but with the Saiyans being so strong it only makes sense. Oh, and having Turles fight against Slug is just something I can’t resist, especially with their little story together in the Xenoverse series. Plus, watching Dragon Ball while writing is, like, the best thing. Cause, if you didn’t know, Dragon Ball if literally my favourite thing ever so I’m honestly living the dream.
I hope you’re all enjoying it! Honestly, I’m just having such a blast writing this. Doing a massive brawl like this will be a joy to write, and hopefully fun to read. I’ll keep going with this fight for a while. Technically I only have one more chapter to write before I get to the four chapter turn-over and do some Crimson Shadow… buuuuuuuuuuuuuuuut we’ll see. If it comes to it, I’d rather keep my momentum and write till the end. Who knows how long that may be. We’ll just have to see.
Again, I hope you all enjoyed! I’ll see you next time!
Want to keep up with me? Know what chapter’s coming out next and the progress of them? Follow me on Twitter! Twitter . com (slash) Chinsangan
Questions? Comments? Concerns? Advice? Send me a message!
I also have a Pa tr eon, if you want to check that out! Pat reon . com (slash) Chinsangan
My Discord is now open! If you want to join, either check my bio for a link, find it on my Twitter, or message me directly!
A special thank you to Patreon supporters: MazMan, Big Genatools, and Ride The Lightning
Thank you guys so much for supporting me! It means the world!
And finally, thank you to the Beta Reader: thenameisntimportant
Chapter 22: The Battle Against Terrifying Conquerers! Revel in the Horror of Frieza!
Chapter Text
Chapter 22: The Battle Against Terrifying Conquerors! Revel in the Horror of Frieza!
“K… Kakarot?” Raditz shivers at the sight of his brother.
The normally confident Nappa is shaken by this morbid sight. He would normally chastise his Saiyan comrades, but Frieza’s unparalleled speed and power would’ve caught any of them off guard.
“FRIEZA!” Raditz's power flares with his anger. “I’LL KILL YOU!” He zooms in throwing a punch that Frieza easily catches. Raditz’s knee quickly tries to make a mark, but it meets the same fate as his fist.
“My, my, Raditz, quite the spark you’ve got there,” the tyrant taunts.
“SHUT UP!” His fist and knee light up in a purple glow before exploding into a cloud of dust.
Swiftly, two bodies fly out of the dust, locked in combat. Raditz does his best to try and even hit Frieza, but all his attacks Frieza casually dodges, even in his bulky form.
Seeing an opportunity, Ruby quickly speeds into the water, having kept her eyes locked on Kakarot’s body the whole time. She easily locks onto his fading Ki, grabs him before he lands against the bottom of the lake, and flies out towards Dende, keeping under the water just in case Slug or Frieza catches wind.
Thankfully, Nail has Slug’s full attention. Not that he would care anyway.
“Let those morons fight. It’ll be nothing compared to a true Namekian brawl!” Slug cracks his knuckles.
“I don’t care for your spectacle. You are a plague on our race and must be destroyed,” Nail says calmly, tossing aside his blue top. “I, Nail, the last Warrior Namekian, will be your undoing, Slug!”
Yang flies up beside Nail, “We’re gonna help,” she sharply whispers. “We’re going to-“
“Silence,” Nail states. “Whispering is pointless. We Namekians have excellent hearing,” his eyes remain on Slug. “I will handle this alone. Stay out of this, humans.”
“But we can help!”
“Not now, you can’t.”
Yang is taken back by his outright dismissal of her help, but that won’t keep her down. She’ll step in if necessary, but perhaps keeping back is best for now. She already knows Slug is far more powerful than her right now. But, still, the three members of RWBY keep close to Nail’s battle, hoping the Saiyans can hold their own against Frieza.
And so, with a flash of power from both Namekians, they clash in a spectacle rivalling the others. The two Namekians are even, neither of them managing to land a solid blow on the other. With that, none of the humans can spot a chance to help. Then again, they can barely follow Slug and Nail’s quick movements.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
The only Saiyan who’s realized the Namekians have started fighting is Turles, and even then his attention is split. He’s unsure how powerful Slug is and whether Nail and the girls will need help, but at the same time, it’s clear Raditz has no chance against Frieza. Despite his angry outburst, Raditz’s power is still nothing compared to the transformed Frieza
“Raditz is running out of steam! Vegeta, come help!” Nappa shouts before flying in to support his Saiyan comrade. “You won’t be able to handle the mighty Nappa!” His confidence is admirable, but even with him joining Raditz, Frieza seems unfazed.
“The mighty Nappa?” Frieza chuckles. “I would say maggot,” Frieza flicks his tail, going right through Nappa’s guard and smacking him away. “Is a more appropriate term for you. Speaking of trash,” Frieza focuses on Raditz, grabbing both of his hands mid punch.
The Saiyan’s anger is still high, so he tries kneeing the overlord. Even when the attacks connect against Frieza’s chest, he doesn’t flinch. That confident, chilling smirk remains on his face.
“I believe I should take it out,” to repay Raditz for his attacks, Frieza knees the long-haired Saiyan.
His eyes go white, his voice cackles as his body is pulled by gravity. But Frieza doesn’t agree with gravity’s decision. Still holding the Saiyan’s hands, he pulls him up and slams his mighty knee into Raditz’s chest again, and again, and again. He lets go and grabs the broken Saiyan by the neck.
“What happened to your spark, Raditz?” Frieza starts laughing, looking over at Turles and Vegeta, the latter of which is hesitant to attack. “And you, Vegeta? You were so confident moments ago? Does my power scare you?” Frieza notices Nappa on the ground, slowly getting back up. At breakneck speeds, Frieza descends, his right foot landing on Nappa’s head and wrapping around it. He slowly steps down, intentionally not outright killing the Saiyan just to prove a point.
Nappa grits his teeth, wanting to just blow up the earth beneath him but well aware of what that’ll do. Raditz is totally out cold, with absolutely no way to protect himself. Any attack that would potentially harm Frieza would kill Raditz. Nappa shakily grabs the foot threatening to crush him and incites Ki, trying to burn Frieza’s limb.
“And that’s what your might brings, Nappa? A bug bite?” Frieza laughs.
Turles and Vegeta watch with absolute helplessness. It’s rare for the Saiyans to be so hesitant to fight, but there’s really nothing they can do. Turles especially knows how worthless it is, being practically ten times weaker than his opponent. Frieza is revelling in their fear.
“Perhaps it’s time to finish up and move onto a royal event,” Frieza’s eyes gleen up at the Prince.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Ruby bursts up from the water and lands beside Dende, resting Kakarot beside the young Namekian.
“Back quickly,” Ruby chuckles, trying to keep the tone light despite the situation. “Please, heal him too.”
Dende hesitates, looking down at one of the invaders. “I… can’t,” he looks away, knowing he’ll be disappointing his new ally. “I just can’t.”
“What? Why? Do you need time to recover?” Ruby presses down on Kakarot’s wound.
“No! He killed my people! Destroyed villages! I can’t help someone so evil!” Dende proclaims to the girl.
“I…” Ruby looks down at the dying Saiyan. “I understand. They all came to my planet too, tried to kill my friends and destroy us,” Ruby shifts her gaze back to the Namekian, a comforting smile on her face. “But right now we have to rely on them. If we let all the Saiyans die, we’re going to lose. At least until my friend, (Y/N), gets here. Please, Dende, I’m begging you. Nail won’t be able to beat those two by himself.”
The echo of Frieza’s laugh reaches their ears, and only Ruby can feel what’s happening. “Two of them are dying…” Ruby clenches her free hand. “Dende, please. We all want to beat them. We all want to survive.”
“I… f-fine,” Dende nods, quickly starting to heal the Saiyan. “But once Frieza is gone I won’t do this anymore!”
“I agree,” Ruby smiles, leaning off Kakarot so Dende can work his magic.
The young girl flies near the edge of the rock face hiding them, seeing with her own eyes how Frieza is dominating Nappa and Raditz.
“Oh no…”
“What the?” Kakarot’s eyes open, seeing Dende right away. “You… healed me?”
“Whoa,” Ruby turns around and lets herself fall to the ground. “You feel way stronger!”
“Because I’m a Saiyan,” Kakarot gets to his feet and feels the power flowing through him.
Without a second thought, he blasts off and heads towards Frieza.
“Dende,” Ruby starts running. “I’m going to bring two more. Don’t worry,” she turns back to him and gives a thumbs up. “We’ll get through this!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Frieza readies himself to finish off the two Saiyans when Kakarot speeds in, fist drilling into Frieza’s stomach. The tall tyrant spins off Nappa and releases Raditz, quickly recovering with a hint of anger.
“Who dares lay their filthy-“ His eyes land on Kakarot, standing in front of Raditz and Nappa with a cold gaze. “You? But you were as good as dead!”
“I don’t know Frieza,” Kakarot rolls his shoulders and gives a smirk. “I’m feeling pretty alive.”
In a flash, Kakarot closes the gap between him and Frieza, throwing a punch which the ruler blocks, but is pushed back. Frieza knocks the attack away and goes for his own knee, but Kakarot spins out of the way, elbowing Frieza whilst doing so.
“What the?” Vegeta questions, high in the air. “How is Kakarot even still breathing? Did Turles have-“ Vegeta looks over at the named Saiyan. “No, he hasn’t moved. Was it the girls? Huh?” Vegeta spots Ruby, grabbing both Nappa and Raditz by the leg and flying away from the battlefield. “What is she doing?” Vegeta follows the girl with his eyes.
“Incredible,” Turles watches Kakarot keep pace with Frieza, their battle taking to the sky. “Kakarot’s way stronger than he used to be. Seems our biology really does mean more than training. But how did he…” Like Vegeta, Turles gets a glimpse of Ruby dragging the two bulky Saiyans with her, and the Prince being curious about what’s happening. “If Nappa and Raditz get a similar boost, I doubt Frieza will be able to survive. That just leaves…”
The two Namekains’ fists clash over the skies of their planet, getting farther and farther away from Frieza’s fight. Slug crashes against Nail’s forearm, Slug catches Nail’s elbow, their knees clash, it’s a blur of movements that would be difficult for most to follow. Nail manages to get the upper hand with a surprise knee to Slug’s jaw, followed by a wound-up slam towards the ground below. Slug twirls, easily regaining his bearings before landing on the blue grass. He immediately dashes back, avoiding Nail’s kick. The loose bits of dirt and grass erupt from the impact point, falling like rain around the planet’s defender.
Slug slams his hands on the ground to slow himself down, eyes locked on his Namekian foe as Nail speeds towards him. Slug smirks moments before his hand speeds out of the ground, grasping Nail’s neck.
“Gotcha,” Slug smugly says, pulling Nail towards his open hand, green energy forming.
Nail’s stoic nature breaks, showing his worry for the attack. But, from behind, Yang charges in at full power. She spins around, using her gauntlets to gain more momentum, and slams her fist into the side of his head. With the break in focus, Nail is able to break free of Slug’s grasp.
“I told you not to interfere!” Nail chastises.
Yang ignores him, throwing her hands forward and firing a yellow blast to keep the pressure on. “Come on, keep fighting!” She screams.
Though he doesn’t like her tone, Nail knows that fighting Slug is what’s most important. From his position, Nail copies Yang’s move and fires off a barrage of blasts at the evil Namekian, fanning the flames and expanding the smoke’s reach.
“HYAAAAAAAAAAAAAAA!” A barrier forms around Slug, blocking all their attacks and whips the smoke away.
Nail quickly notices his hands are in the ground again, meaning only one thing.
“Move!”
Slug’s green hands break through the ground again and go for his opponents, but a black glyph forms around his wrists, stopping them in their tracks. Weiss, hoisted up on a nearby rock, holds her blade towards his arms.
“Blake!”
The Faunus swoops down before Slug, slashing his chest twice with her Ki-fueled blade before leaving a flaming shadow with her semblance that blows up immediately. She flies right above, holding out her free arm and blasting down.
“Come on!” Yang jumps over Slug’s arm before dashing towards him.
Nail flies around it, speeding past Yang.
“Well, well, it appears you have some friends,” Slug smiles. He opens his mouth and blasts once towards Nail, forcing him to dodge left and away from Yang. Seeing that, he focuses on the girl and releases an even larger, wider blast. Yang tries to divert her course but the blast is too big.
“Ooooh man!” She holds her hand up to block but a presence pushes her aside and takes the attack.
Now on the ground, Yang looks up at the figure within the smoke, slowly becoming visible. Turles waves his hand to disperse the rest before crossing his arms.
“Be more careful,” he eyes the girl.
“You’re… not fighting with the others.”
“They’ll be fine. But Kail will be disappointed if I let you fools die here,” he says while Yang gets up. “And I don’t think the Namekian will focus on that,” he smirks, glancing at Nail.
“Hmph, a filthy Saiyan,” Slug remarks. “I’m surprised you care for such weak creatures.”
“Don’t expect to know us,” Turles barks back. “But I know you. I sense that you’re holding back, and I thought a Saiyan would tip the balance.”
Slug smirks, pulling back on his arms, the tension rising in his wrists before they eventually tear off.
“Ew! Why would he do that?” Weiss says to herself, releasing the glyphs.
While his arms return to their original length, Blake retreats with her yellow-haired teammate. Without much issue, Slug flexes his body and reforms both his hands, greenish-yellow liquid dripping off them.
“Whoa, whoa, they can do that?” Yang furiously points.
“We can, yes,” Nail calmly responds, still on his own. “Please, stay out of this fight. It is beyond you.”
“You too, Namekian,” Turles steps forward, approaching his enemy. “Just accept the help.”
“I won’t from scum like you.”
“What was the saying? Beggars can’t be choosers?” He recites from the conversations he had with RWBY on the ship.
“Enough talk!” Slug flicks his hand to his sides and summons enough purple balls to hit all the opponents in front of him.
“Spread out!” Turles throws his hand towards the girls before speeding forward.
Slug throws all of them forward, each locking onto someone. Blake and Yang dash back and go their separate ways while Nail goes straight up.
Turles spins around, intertwining his fists and hits it from the right, sending the blast spiralling miles and away. The explosion darkens the air for a split second, leaving a massive dust cloud in its wake. That moment Turles knows the girls will die if that hits them. But with Slug so close, he has to attack. Turles winds up his fist and throws it, only for Slug to catch it and deliver his own counter punch. Turles tumbles across the ground, quickly holding both hands up and firing a flurry of purple homing blasts. Slug flies towards the Saiyan, dodging and spinning through his attacks. That’s when Nail takes the opportunity to come in from the side with a kick that drives Slug face-first into the ground. He hovers over Slug for a moment, before flipping back, over Slug’s Darkness Star, and fires a two-handed blast that both pushes Nail away but forces Slug’s own attack upon him.
At the same time, Yang and Blake have been weaving around the battlefield with Slug’s attacks getting closer and closer.
“Weiss, we need some assistance!” Yang screams.
“Got it!” Weiss points her blade towards her allies, summoning glyphs to speed up her friends and slow down the attacks.
“You’re a lifesaver!”
“Just get as far away as you can!” The white-haired supporter shouts, keeping herself focused.
Yang and Blake speed away as fast as they can, trying to get distance from everyone. They saw the explosion from Turles’, so they can’t destroy them so close. As the gap widens, Weiss summons a larger glyph that the blasts slam into. She instantly summons three more, making a box for the explosion to erupt within, which comes as a surprise to her teammates. Sweat drips down her face and her Aura flairs as the intensity of the dense explosion causes havoc within the small space. But, it does weaken, and so too does Weiss. She drops to one knee, taking a few deep breaths.
“Come on Weiss, just a bit more,” she whispers to herself.
She notices Yang and Blake speeding towards her and gives them a thumbs up. The two understand and divert their course back to Slug. Weiss is strong, they know that. They need to keep focused on the enemy before them.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Ruby hauls the two massive Saiyans back to Dende, setting them down before falling on her butt.
“Man, they are heavier than they look… and that one’s huge,” she lazily waves her hand toward Nappa.
Dende, though still uncomfortable with the prospect of healing these monsters, goes through with it anyway. He starts with Raditz, and that’s when Vegeta spots it. He sees Raditz’s wounds heal, his strength surpass what it once was. When it's done, the long haired Saiyan stands up, surprised that he’s still breathing.
“What? The Namekian brat has a healing ability?” Vegeta's focus on this has made him blind to the battle with Frieza, or the fact that Turles has sped off to fight Slug.
Nappa is quickly healed too, getting on his feet. “Wow, looks like this planet has more use than just Dragon Balls,” he slams his chest, enjoying his newfound power. “Thanks, squirt. I’ll remember that.”
“Yes, and you. Thank you,” Radtiz nods at Ruby.
“Uh… yeah… no worries. Just don’t try and blow up my planet again,” she sheepishly brushes off, still a little intimidated by the two men.
Nappa laughs. “I wouldn’t worry about that, kid. We’ll be in too great of a mood after killing Frieza!”
“Nappa… thank you for helping me,” Raditz begrudgingly says without looking the brute in the eye.
“Of course! What would a weakling like you do without me?” His confident tone so natural.
“Um… Shouldn’t you go help Kaka… Kakarot?”
“Kakarot’s fighting Frieza?” Those words ignite Raditz to take off immediately.
“You should’ve killed us when you had the chance, Frieza!” Nappa announces while taking off.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Kakarot and Frieza remain fairly even in their brawl, with Vegeta staying as a baffled spectator. With one Zenkai Boost, Kakarot has shot far past the prince and is now going toe to toe with Frieza in his overwhelming form. Vegeta almost feels insulted by this course of events. He, the Prince, outclassed yet again. First on Remnant by humans and low-class scum, again when you returned with Turles and easily dealt with the Ginyu Force, and now Kakarot with Frieza. Every time his power is eclipsed by those beneath him. It infuriates the Prince.
Meanwhile, Kakarot is completely focused on the battle before him. Even he’s surprised with his newfound power, but he isn’t letting that distract him from the fight. Their stalemate ends when Frieza lands a surprise kick to Kakarot’s face, sending the Saiyan barrelling towards the ground. He recovers, spinning towards the ground and letting out a weak blue blast to break his fall. He looks up, bearing witness to a fast-approaching Frieza. Kakarot throws himself back, putting more power into his blue beam as it rises from the ground, cutting through the air and hitting Frieza. Even with a massive explosion, Frieza isn’t slowed down at all.
“You pathetic Saiyan!” He shouts, throwing a punch that, even when blocked, locks Kakarot against the ground. “You really believe you could match up to me?” He opens his hand, a pink glow forming. “You Saiyans are nothing but a nuisance!”
Acting quick, Kakarot throws his hand towards Frieza’s blast and ignites it himself, forming a large crater where they once were.
Barely fazed by this, Frieza flares his power to blow away all the smoke. “You impudent-“
Kakarot flies in with a powerful, charged haymaker that sends Frieza spiralling away.
“You’ve underestimated Saiyans for too long, Frieza!” Kakarot quickly pursues his enemy.
Frieza shakes his head, about to steady himself when Kakarot comes down from above with a powerful heel to his gut. The transformed menace puts one hand over top of the other and fires a massive pink and purple beam, increasing his momentum towards the ground. Kakarot focuses everything into his hand, a blue glow forming around it. He throws a blue ball towards Frieza’s attack, the two energies colliding.
The pressure from this event spins the winds of Namek, whipping Kakarot’s hair around while pushing against the watchful Vegeta. Kakarot keeps his power focused, attempting to overpower Frieza’s beam, but his blast is slowly being pushed back.
“No… come on!” Kakarot shouts to himself.
Frieza begins laughing, knowing he’ll be winning this encounter soon. But that confidence is blown away when two new energy beams fly in from the sides. These are strong enough to disrupt Frieza’s flow and allow Kakarot to win the collision. Frieza is hit by the brunt of all three attacks, igniting a massive explosion that can be seen from outer space.
Kakarot lets out a sigh of relief, quickly spotting Raditz and Nappa approaching.
“Kakarot, that’s quite the power you got there!” Nappa slaps his own muscles after stopping. “We were worried about you. Well, mostly Raditz,” he coyly looks over to the long-haired Saiyan. “Shouting at Frieza and charging in like a fool.”
“Really?” Kakarot eyes his brother for confirmation.
“What does it matter?” Raditz bursts out. “Frieza’s not dead. We should focus on that.”
“Thanks, brother.”
“Just… never mention it!” The elder barks.
As the dust clears, Frieza rises with anger written across his face. The fire of his rage goes wild as he sees Raditz and Nappa, completely healthy.
“What? Now all three of you are back? What’s going on?”
“You’re facing the tenacity of Saiyans, Frieza,” Nappa slams his right fist into the left palm. “The thing you fear!”
“Super Saiyans…” Kakarot chuckles, barely believing it himself.
“No matter what, you’re dying by Saiyan hands right now, Frieza!”
On cue, the three Saiyans unleash all their power. Their white auras merge, growing and swelling to something beyond even Frieza. Their bodies gain a hint of the white tint, muscles growing as the Ki surges. In a flash, the three Saiyans charge at Frieza with killer intent. Frieza only manages to block Kakarot while Nappa and Raditz land their two blows. The tyrant’s body flips backwards wildly while Nappa pursues it and Raditz unleashes some loose Ki blasts that arc around Nappa and hit Frieza. The behemoth of a Saiyan slaps his hands together and sledgehammers Frieza to the ground.
The alien ruler lands on his feet, frustrated that these impudent Saiyans are overpowering him to this degree. The three Saiyans fire a combination blast once more, but Frieza’s pure power mixed with rage blows them all away.
“I do hope you see the reason why I exterminated your race?” Frieza speaks with calm spite. “I do admit, you’re far stronger than any other Saiyan I’ve seen… so I commend you for that. However,” his pleasant tone goes deep, his eyes sharpen. “This is becoming annoying. For your efforts, I will reward you all,” Frieza tucks his elbows beside him. “And show you what true horror is.”
“Talk all you want, Frieza! The three of us can beat you at your full power!”
This makes the wicked ruler chuckle. “Please… this is a mere fraction. Let me show you my third transformation!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
The RWBY gang gather together, standing a bit behind Nail and Turles who’re firing rapid-fire Ki blasts where Slug was, ensuring to put maximum pressure on him after he was hit with his own attack.
“We should join in!” Yang says whilst raising her hands.
“No, let them handle it,” Ruby quickly shoots down. “We wouldn’t be strong enough to help. We should save our Ki.”
Yang follows her sister’s, her leader’s, command and merely keeps her senses ready in case. The girls just hope that Turles and Nail can put down Slug for good. From what they can sense from the other fight, Freiza is still stronger than all the other Saiyans, but the difference is small enough that all four of them can win.
But Slug isn’t willing to go down so easily. With an ear-piercing roar, he unleashes a barrier to block all the blasts, along with a shockwave that pushes the smoke back towards his attackers.
“It seems like you intend to piss me off,” Slug speaks, breathing a little heavily. His clothes are torn around his shoulder and pants, but nothing too drastic. “But you don’t know the extent of a Super Namekian’s power!”
“A Super Namekian?” Turles raises a brow, noting the similarity to the Super Saiyan legend.
“Is it possible? Guru told me stories but… we haven’t seen a Super Namekian in ages,” Nail keeps focused on Slug. “It won’t matter. He isn’t invincible.”
As if it was planned, both Frieza and Slug increase their power at the same time. Slug’s is a simple change – his power magnifies immensely, as does his size. Second by second, his muscles, bones, everything grows above the height of Frieza’s ship. The girls and Turles immediately make a connection to the Great Ape transformation. Which means he may have some of the same strengths and weaknesses. He’ll be stronger, faster, but he’ll have more blind spots. Problem is, he was already a tough opponent before. Now…
But for the other Saiyans, they see a radically different transformation. With a fluid red aura surrounding him, Frieza undergoes a dramatic transformation. Three spikes grow out of his back, two larger ones near the top and a third, smaller one below, mimicking a triangle formation. His shoulders sprout out, similar to the armour he wore before. His face also mutates, his mouth ever so slightly coming forward while the back of his head elongates by a foot or so. His black horns disappear, replaced by two sets of white horns, the ones closer to his head are smaller and the ones farther back are longer. The shining purple texture grows across the entirety of his head, becoming his new forehead. With his skull reshaped, it’s a lot more compact, his smile nearly going across his entire face. He appears to have lost some height, and his colours remain mostly the same, but it’s clear to all who can sense that his power is nothing like it was before. It’s grown far beyond even Slug.
Both groups, the Saiyans, and the mixed races, ogle at their opponents' new forms and power.
“You should feel honoured,” Frieza’s voice is different, less deep but seemingly more snake-like. “You’re the first to ever witness this transformation.”
Slug’s laugh also shows the deepening of his voice. “Well, it looks like you’ve started your final fight. There’s no beating a Super Namekian!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
From your pod, body still healing, you feel the massive increase that both Slug and Frieza undergo.
Oh man, they were so close… I don’t even know if I can beat them at full power with Kaioken. Come on, guys, just hold on. I’ll be there soon!
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“Namekian, you’re still in this?” Turles reassures.
“Of course,” Nail remains stoic despite the situation.
“Women, stay back,” Turles shouts before he and Nail burst off the ground.
The two aliens branch off in different directions to split the giant’s attention. Slug doesn’t even move as Turles and Nail charge in, a roar behind their punches. They both connect with Slug’s cheeks, but it doesn’t flinch the Super Namekian in the slightest. With a flex of his muscles, his power erupts like a hurricane, blowing the two fighters back. Slug roars as he points his hands towards both his opponents and extends his hands towards them. Nail manages to swerve around it, but Turles succumbs to Slug’s green grip. Nail glides across Slug’s arm, charging a blast in his hand.
“Release him, fiend!”
Without skipping a beat, Slug turns his head, large, beady eyes locking on Nail while smiling. He opens his mouth, a yellow tint already there. Nail is caught off-guard, unable to dodge as Slug’s massive blast overwhelms the heroic Namekian, forcing him away. Keeping focus on Nail, Slug swings his other arm around, Turles still struggling. He opens it at the last second to slam Turles into Nail, and then keeps the momentum going to crush them against the ground. His hand slowly lifts off and slithers back to its proper proportions.
“Well, well, where’d your confidence go? What about you humans?” He turns his head towards RWBY, who’s shocked that their two allies went down as quickly as they did.
“How’re we gonna bring them to Dende?” Yang whispers.
“There’s no point whispering,” Blake says in a regular tone. “Remember, they can hear us.”
“Damnit,” Yang snaps.
A sudden purple blast hits Slug’s cheek, not doing much. Everyone focuses on Turles, one eye closed, armour broken, and breathing heavily. He’s standing in front of Nail, who’s unconscious.
“That all you got… you big bastard?” He huffs, though his body has been beaten it’s clear his spirit is still strong.
“Interesting taunt, Saiyan,” Slug turns towards Turles, his heavy steps shaking the ground. “You know, I like you. I’ll give you one chance to serve under me.”
“Under you, huh?” Turles chuckles. “I politely decline.”
“Then you die,” Slug raises his palm and fires a Ki bomb.
Turles quickly grabs Nail by the heel and throws him away, quickly blasting off upward to keep Slug’s attention away from his allies. Slug does focus on Turles, firing beams out of his mouth the nearly clip the Saiyan multiple times.
“Weiss!” He shouts. “I want the Dust!”
“Dust?” Her mind wanders back to the questions Turles posed on the ship. “But you can’t just inject-“
“Just help the Namekian and give me the Dust!” Turles loop-de-loops around Slug’s attacks, getting closer to the girls.
“Yang, Blake, we have to help him,” Weiss grabs the Dust crystals in her pouch and sets them on the ground. “Ruby, get Nail.”
“Already on it!” The leader speeds off, not bothered that Weiss is taking command here.
“We have to distract Slug so Turles can get the Dust,” Weiss continues. “Just for a second.”
“We can do that,” Yang slams her fists together. “Come on, partner!” She takes off.
“Right,” Blake quickly follows.
The two girls move around to Slug’s back, both hitting the back of his knee with all their might. Even if Slug is infinitely stronger, this catches him off guard and makes him fall.
“Turles, here!” Weiss directs while forming multiple sturdy glyphs around Slug, forming a makeshift coffin. She knows it won’t hold him for long, but every second counts.
Ruby lands beside Nail and hoists him up, but notices his injuries are far less severe than Turles’. From her view, he should be the one trying to seek help, especially after learning they get stronger from healing. But this isn’t the time for Ruby to be questioning everything. Every second counts, and Nail being at full power is better for everyone. She gets a good grip on him before flying towards Dende’s lookout spot.
With his moment secured, Turles speeds to Weiss, landing on his knees and wincing.
“Turles! You’re-“
“It doesn’t matter,” Turles grabs the Dust crystals.
“I told you, that’s not how you’re supposed to use Dust. It’s going to hurt your body the entire time!”
“I know,” Turles stares at all the different colours for a moment, coming to terms with what he’s about to do. Without any doubt, he stabs two into either leg and the rest into his forearms.
The Dust release their respective colours pulsing through his body, bulking up his entire body. Despite the immense pain, Turles also feels all the power coming with it. Not only that, but his battle-hardened body adapts to the new, unique properties of each crystal. Already knowing what each does thanks to Weiss, he’ll be able to master this relatively quickly. But he won’t know until he tries. Like Weiss warned him, all the different Dust in his body, combining that with Ki, may end up killing him. But right now he has no other option.
Turles chuckles, taking a deep breath to ignore the pain. He looks towards his caged opponent, as cocky as any Saiyan. “I win.”
Seeing Slug burst from the glyphs, and that eruption forcing Weiss to her knees, Turles speeds forward, faster than ever, and charges Slug before he can gain his bearings. The Saiyan circles around Slug’s head and punches, unintentionally powering his attack with gravity Dust. The hulking Namekian feels the weight of Turles’ fist more than he was prepared for, nearly falling over again.
“You little runt!” Slug attempts to swipe the Saiyan out of the air, but a mix of gravity and lightning Dust makes Turles faster than Slug’s used to. He dodges Slug’s hand then blasts his forearm, the usual purple Ki now tinted with blue. On contact, ice spreads across Slug’s arm, enveloping his entire hand but stopping a bit before his shoulder. Turles dashes right at it, charging through and shattering the massive limb. He immediately turns around and fires a Ki blast, intending to fuel it with fire but instead a gust of wind spirals with the attack. It blows Slug back on impact, knocking the beast off his feet. The intensity of the wind is so much that Yang and Blake are blown back too, but with some quick thinking, Wiess creates some glyphs to slow them down and land her teammates beside her. While surprising, Turles plays it out like that was intended. He crosses his arms, looking down at the Super Namekian.
“And you lose…”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
The Saiyans surrounding Frieza can feel the pressure of this new transformation. Even with their new power, it’s nothing against this terrifying form. But that doesn’t break their spirits in the slightest.
“Well,” Nappa smiles while nervous sweat drops slide down from his forehead. “It looks like we’re gonna have to put in all our effort.”
“Will that even work?” Kakarot whispers.
“We have no choice now,” Raditz sighs, shaking his head to rid any negative thoughts. “Let's go then!”
“I’m glad you still all have confidence,” Frieza laughs. “Shall we see how long that lasts?”
The three Saiyans charge in, throwing their own punches or kicks. Frieza seems to instantaneously disappear, his movements too fast for the three to track. They all stop dead and look around.
“Does anybody see him?” Nappa calls out.
“No… he’s-“
“Too fast?” Frieza confidently finishes.
Hearing him between them, each Saiyan turns around. Frieza's shin snaps into Nappa’s neck, sending the bulky Saiyan spiralling away with white eyes.
“Nappa! Damnit!” Raditz throws his two hands before him and fires a white and black blast.
Kakarot is barely able to react and move out of the way, while Frieza’s insane speed makes it childs play to avoid. The explosion kicks up fire and dust, separating the two Saiyan brothers.
Kakarot hovers higher in the air, coughing. “Damnit, Raditz, why’d you do that?”
“I think the reason is quite clear, Kakarot,” Frieza replies.
The Saiyan turns around, guard up but a nearly invisible blast from Frieza breaks right through and knocks him a few feet back. The damage he took from that alone is substantial, making his body weak and breathing heavily.
Frieza laughs at the faltering Saiyan. While destroying their planet and killing their king was fun, he can’t deny how much joy it brings him to watch them crumble before him. But Kakarot still has a little too much defiance left. “Now, now, you looked quite confident when you charged at me before. Would you like to try again?”
Kakarot, despite his weakened state, still charges at Frieza, doing his best to land a blow on the menacing figure. But Frieza leads him round and round, clearly just playing around. He surprises Kakarot by charging first, lodging his knee into the Saiyan’s chin. Kakarot falls back a moment, but there’s barely a passing second before Frieza continues a flurry of kicks that knock the Saiyan one way, then the other, spin him around, stop him in place, and finally, Frieza flips forward and slams his heel against Kakarot’s shoulder, plummeting the Saiyan into a rock formation.
It crumbles around him, but not enough to bury the younger brother. Kakarot, his body broken, can still see the looming conqueror watching from above. It’s only for a moment, as Raditz flies out of the thinning dust cloud and charges at Frieza. Without any hesitation, Frieza disappears right as Raditz throws a kick, then appears behind him and fires a blast that breaks through Radtiz's armour. The wild-haired warrior falls like a rock, crashing against the smooth grass with a loud THUD.
“B-Brother…” Kakarot whimpers. “No… damnit…”
Frieza crosses his arms and gazes at the fallen brothers. “It’s about time you associated the name Frieza with terror. You Saiyans have always been too big for your breeches, and you need to be put in your place. But which one should be the example? I think killing a brother before the other’s very eyes would be quite the shock, wouldn’t you say? Or do Saiyans even care for their kin? Vegeta rarely seems to. Look at him,” only his eyes shift to the spectator Prince. “Have you decided to join yet, Vegeta? Your comrades are about to die!”
Vegeta doesn’t respond, still thinking of what to do. The only option now, with Frieza being so strong, is to have someone put him near death and have the Namekian brat heal him. He’ll get more than enough power to fight Frieza. Perhaps even become a Super Saiyan. But he can’t do it while Frieza is watching. If Frieza’s death and Vegeta’s ascension requires one of the low classes to die, then so be it.
“Do what you want with them.”
“Hahaha, so cold, Vegeta. And they call me a monster,” he returns his focus to the crippled Saiyans. “Very well. How about…” Frieza’s eyes drift from one to the other twice. “You!” Frieza points one finger at Kakarot and fires.
The purple tint of the blast illuminates the sky as Frieza’s attack speeds towards the trapped Saiyan. But another, yellow blasts swoops in from the side and knocks Frieza’s blast off its course, far off into the distance.
Kakarot, Frieza, and Vegeta look over to see Nappa, his neck a little creaked and his breath heavy.
“You dare try to kill someone while the mighty Nappa is still in play?” He taunts.
Without thinking for a moment, Vegeta sees this as his moment to achieve more power. He flies off while Frieza locks onto Nappa.
“You really think you can do anything?” He laughs at the notion.
“Of course,” Nappa puts on a pained smile and points at himself. “I am the Great, the Mighty Nappa. Nobody can match up to a Saiyan Elite!”
“Nappa… what’re you doing?” Kakarot whispers to himself.
In Nappa’s mind, he knows this is a losing battle. But if he can distract Frieza for long enough then perhaps this time will be worth it. He saw Turles power up against the giant Namekian, he knows what Vegeta is planning to do with Namekian child, soon there will be others more capable to fight Frieza. But right now, as Nappa, the oldest, the most experienced, and the great general of the Saiyans… he will take the full force of Frieza’s power. Even if Raditz and Kakarot are lower class, their power is beyond any Saiyan he’s ever seen. They’ve earned his respect. If Nappa is the only Saiyan to fall here, and Frieza is killed, it will be worth it.
Nappa puts his right arm forward, sliding his by his ribs while his legs spread. Everything Nappa has left is rising to the surface. “Now face me, Frieza! Face a Saiyan Elite!” His voice is fueled with feigned confidence. “FACE NAPPA!” He opens his mouth and fires a blinding yellow beam that doesn’t even make Frieza flinch. It hits directly, exploding in an impressive show that puts most fireworks to shame. But, as Nappa predicted, Frieza is unaffected. The elder Saiyan, with nearly all his power gone, still charges at Frieza.
“What a joke!” The tyrant laughs. “You still have so much confidence, huh? Why don’t we replace that with terror?” Frieza snaps two fingers at Nappa, firing a small purple blast that hits Nappa’s chest and stops him dead in his tracks. Frieza chuckles, firing two more blasts that go right through Nappa’s right thigh and left shoulder. Blood spills out of those spots, but the Saiyan keeps his fire. Seeing that, Frieza rapidly fires the blasts over and over, bruising and penetrating Nappa’s body.
“No… NO!” Kakarot tries to push the rocks off him, but he just can’t. With Raditz still down, there’s nobody to help him. All the Saiyan can do is watch his ally be torn apart by this monster.
Frieza laughs and laughs as Nappa gets closer and closer to death. The fire he’s holding onto shrinks and shrinks, the embers cooling. More and more go right through his body. Nappa can’t even move any of his limbs at this point. As more blood falls to the clear water below, as more blood sprouts from his mouth like a fountain, the light in his eyes fades. Frieza knows this and stops, sadistically watching as Nappa’s lifeless body falls to the ground. It crashes against the coast of a landmass, his lower body below the water while his upper anchors on the ground.
Frieza laughs at the Saiyans corpse, looking back at the two helpless ones. “Well, there’s one. I’m almost surprised you ants managed to last this long. Even Slug…” He takes a gander at his pathetic allies’ battle, and how poorly he’s doing. Frieza spots the three girls of RWBY, together. “It appears he’s having more trouble than he thought. Perhaps I should clear out some of the rabble,” Frieza opens his palm and fires it at the travellers from Remnant.
The blast is so quick that nobody from RWBY can see it, but Turles knows. Feeling Nappa’s demise, he gave them some attention. The girls are dead. There’s no way they can protect themselves from that blast. Instinctively, Turles dashes between Frieza’s attack and the girls, slamming his feet down to raise some of the rocks around him as a small extra defense. The girls don’t even know what happened. There’s a sudden explosion beside them, dust everywhere, and they can’t feel Turles Ki anymore. The smoke quickly clears, rocks falling around them, with Turles shakily standing before them.
“T-Turles?” Blake’s voice shakes.
“You’re all… okay?”
The girls can see blood dripping down, staining the grass. He slowly turns around, showing off how damaged he really is. They can’t even tell whether the attack is doing more damage to his body or the Dust. He has a massive blast mark on his chest from Frieza, but his body is reacting negatively to the Dust. Around the draining fire crystal, his skin is searing, steam rising off. Around the ice crystal his skin is a pale, blue tint that’s clearly frostbite. Even his veins are now showing, swirling with unnatural colours. Yet despite all that, the Saiyan… smiles at the girls.
“Oh my, Turles,” Frieza is genuinely surprised by the Saiyan’s actions. “I never thought he was one to do that. Shame, I was going to save him for the end. Oh well, the only good Saiyan is a dead Saiyan.”
“You’ll… have to hope the Namekian can… finish it… aha… ahahaha,” his weak laugh gives the girls pause. “Protecting someone else… is that dying like a Saiyan? I… don’t know,” his eyes trail to the sky. He’s not speaking to anyone at this point. “it’s… dying in battle. That’s pretty… Saiyan… right?”
Turles falls to the ground, his life quickly fleeting.
I protected them, Kail… it’s up to you now…
And the last breath leaves Turles body, the second Saiyan to fall in this battle. The girls watch in horror, being reminded of when your villagers were turned to ashes. But even then, they never saw a body limp in front of them. Let alone someone who they grew rather fond of.
“I… Turles…” Weiss whimpers, slowly covering her mouth. “My god… how could this happen?”
“We… we have to focus,” Yang shakes her head. “That big… big guy…” Her eyes are still glued to the Saiyan corpse. “We can’t…”
Slug gets on his feet, shaking his head. “That damnable Saiyan! I’ll tear him apart!”
“Too late, Slug! This is the only help I’ll offer you. Deal with the rest of your pests, else I’ll kill you myself.”
“Grrr,” Slug holds his tongue and looks at the girls before him. “Then I’ll just turn you to dust!”
Frieza chuckles. “Perhaps I’ll make this quick. Kakarot!” He looks down at the black-haired fighter. Despite most of them not being any threat right now, it’s clear that their power has astronomically increased since he saw them before Namek. Though he’s not worried about a Super Saiyan forming from any of them, Frieza can’t help but be worried about this massive boost in such a short time. To make sure that there’s no doubt he’ll be the victor, the tyrant makes a decision. “I will finish you off in a more refined way. You’ll bear witness to my ultimate form. My true form!”
“Tsk… of course… I will.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Ruby lands beside Dende, not even having to say anything for the young healer to know what to do. Especially since it’s Nail this time.
“Nail’s not very hurt,” Dende points out.
“I know… but Turles said to bring him here anyway. I don’t know-“ Ruby’s senses kick in, sensing an influx of energy. Turles’ is shooting up while the three Saiyans fighting Frieza are falling.
Ruby clenches her fists, feeling helpless. All she’s been doing is jumping between people, making sure they’re healed. It’s helpful, but so many people are getting hurt and all Ruby can do is fix that, not prevent it. She’s well aware this fight is beyond anything she’d ever experience on Remnant. This is way out of her or her team’s league. But still… it infuriates her. All she wanted to do as a Huntsman is help people, human or not. And now she’s powerless, even after becoming one of the strongest humans in history.
That’s when she feels it. Nappa’s energy disappears… Turles’ energy disappears… Sweat drops down Ruby’s face as two people far beyond her have fallen, especially Turles. She may not have known him much, he may have tried to destroy their planet, but the small time they had shown more to him than just a bloodthirsty killer. It gave hints that he, and maybe the others, weren’t really so bad. But now two are dead, and two are on the brink.
Dende finishes healing Nail, so the tall Namekian stands back up. “Dende? Thank you, but…” He takes a moment to sense the area. “People are dead… Slug is not. We cannot rest.”
Nail quickly takes off, back to the battlefield. Before Ruby can tell Dende about the two other Saiyans, Vegeta hurriedly lands.
“Good, you’re here. I need you to blast me,” he says to Ruby. “And then you heal me.”
“What? That’s so sudden-“
“Stop arguing,” Vegeta violently grasps her collar. “We don’t have time!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
With his mind made up, Frieza starts breaking the shackles of his power. His body shakes, his fists clench, his eyes get red veins around the sides. Unlike the other forms, this transformation appears to be more strenuous for Frieza to undergo. His body glows pink, cracks of raw energy forming around his skin. Dark clouds form around Frieza and the lone island he’s taken, the water rages, pieces of the planet crumble under pressure.
Kakarot, now having rested for a spell, manages to throw some of the rocks off him and slowly crawl out of the rubble.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
This massive surge in power can be felt by everyone, especially Vegeta. He tightens his grip on Ruby while Dende remains fearful.
“Listen to me, you pathetic little girl. Even you can put me on death’s door if I lower my defenses to zero. Do you want Frieza to kill you? Then let me gain the power of a Super Saiyan!”
Ruby can barely comprehend what he’s saying. To mortally wound him… she’s never done something like that to another person. But in this situation, with the rapidly rising Ki she’s sensing, there’s barely any choice.
“I… I don’t… hurt people like-“
Vegeta slaps her with the back of his gloved hand. “Throw your worthless mercy aside! If you don’t do this then we all die! You not hurting me guarantees death for all of us! Is that what you want you stupid, worthless-“
Ruby shakes her head and jumps back, grabbing Crescent Rose. “F-FINE!” She layers her blade with Ki, changing it to a glaive-like state and charges forward. It pierces right through Vegeta, tearing up his innards. The young Huntress-in-Training pulls out her weapon and retracts it, eyes closed to not see what pain she’s caused.
“P… Perfect… now… brat…” Vegeta falls to one knee, blood spurting out of his mouth. “Heal… me…”
“Do it, Dende! Others need help. Please!” Ruby’s voice cracks out of desperation and stress.
“R-Right!” Dende immediately goes to heal Vegeta while Ruby flies into the air.
She spots Nail who just joined her teammates, along with Frieza transforming and the two Saiyan brothers struggling to stay alive.
“Quickly, Dende! We have to heal the others before he’s done!”
Frieza isn’t able to move or hear much, but his eyes are still very much usable. He can see the two, weak Saiyans, he can see the battle his partner is engaging in. Nothing will get past him.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Nail lands beside the leaderless RWBY, eyes still glued to Slug despite feeling Frieza’s power. He knows that Frieza will be far too much to handle, but if Slug is also in the picture then there’s absolutely no chance of victory.
“Nail? You’re-“
“I apologize for being incapacitated. Please, leave the rest to me.”
“But this guy is way stronger than all of us! He even killed Turles!” Weiss screams, her voice shaky.
While detesting the Saiyans, Nail can tell by Turles’ position alone that he fell protecting the girls. He has no pleasant thoughts for any of his comrades, but he can at least acknowledge that Turles may have been a kinder soul. But right now he has an enemy before him.
“But…” Yang slams her fists together, sparking a fire within her. “That means we have to win. We have to! Cause right now,” Yang shakes her head and whistles. “I’m ma-“
“GAH!” Slug grabs his ears for a moment in pain, but it doesn’t last long. Nail, on the other hand, merely winces.
“What happened?” Yang raises her brow.
“That’s it!” Nail quickly rips off his ears while Slug is still in pain. “Whatever you did, do it again! That frequency is irritating to a regular Namekian, but to a giant one like him would be torturous.”
“That’s… alright then!” Yang smiles, finally getting the upper hand. “You can all whistle, right?”
“Y-Yeah,” Weiss nods, trying to get her head back in the fight.
“Let's put him down for good this time. You think we can do what we practiced?” Blake speaks.
“You read my mind, partner!”
The three girls start whistling different tunes, the simple sound ringing in Slug’s head.
“Stop! STOOOOOOOOOOOOP!” He frantically shouts while falling to one knee. He looks up, firing in any direction to try and stop the girls, but he never aims where they are.
Without speaking, the three girls coordinate effectively. Blake and Weiss fly up and to either side of him while Yang flies right over and turns to face his back. Nail sees them preparing an attack, so he raises his energy to join.
The three girls, still whistling, extend their hands to the side then maneuver one up and the other down until they’re equal, then connect their palms in the middle. Each of them focuses all their energy at that point as they move it to the side of their hip. As their energy focuses, a blue tint surrounds their hands, and that’s when Blake and Weiss fire it not at Slug, but Yang. The blonde dragon steadies herself as the two attacks hit her dead on, using up all the Ki she had left for defense. But, through the smoke, her glowing hair and furious red eyes shine through.
“HAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAA!” Yang fires, her blast using all the energy she has along with double her teammates power.
On his knees and weakened, Slug doesn’t even notice the blue beam as it connects with his back. As the weight of Yang’s Kamehameha breaks Slug’s balance and makes him fall, then Nail speeds in between Slug’s body and the ground, unleashing a massive yellow blast that overwhelms Slug’s front. With both his sides being hit by attacks and the constantly whistling, Slug finds himself unable to defend in any way.
Yang falls to the ground, only saved by Weiss and Blake supporting her on either side.
“Are you okay? That was really risky.”
“It paid off… but I’m done until Dende gets me,” she ends with a weak chuckle.
The girls land on the ground, staring at the large dust cloud before them. Nail flies around and takes position with them, smiling. Before saying anything he closes his eyes, flexes a moment, then regenerates his ears.
“I was surprised when you shot at your ally, but I believe I understand why. You have very unique abilities.”
“Hehe… if only it was less painful,” Yang jokes.
“Dende’s over there!” Blake points out, seeing Ruby drop off the boy. “Come on, Yang, let's go!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Dende finishes healing Vegeta, restoring the wound in his chest. Knowing he’s fine, Dende looks to Ruby. “Can you show me to the others?”
“Yeah!” Ruby uses her Semblance to scoop Dende up and bring him over to the Saiyans. She can’t help but feel immense pressure and anxiety with Frieza right there, power skyrocketing, but she can’t hesitate now. People need her.
Vegeta remains, marvelling at the new power granted by his Saiyan cells. “At last…” He opens and clenches his fists, a smile growing on his face. “At last, I am a Super Saiyan!” The Prince flies over the protective rock and spots Dende now healing Kakarot. “With Kakarot and Raditz receiving similar boosts, maybe they, too, will experience the power of a Super Saiyan. Of course, I’m the first and will be the one to crush Frieza beneath my boot,” he laughs. “Come now, Frieza,” he focuses on the still transforming foe. “Show me your full strength.”
Frieza, too, catches sight of Dende hovering his hands over Kakarot until the Saiyan is in tip-top shape. That’s when he realizes exactly how none of the pests fighting him are staying exterminated. That’s the moment he knows his first move.
With his wounds healed, Kakarot gets to his feet and nods at Dende. “Thank you. Help my brother.”
“Ruby!” Weiss shouts while she and Blake fly Yang over.
“Oh my god, Yang! Please, Dende, heal her first!”
The three girls land closer to Dende, so the young Namekian goes for them.
“Hurry up!” Kakarot pleads. “Get Raditz, Frieza’s almost-“
A blind flash explodes from Frieza’s location as his bulky skin shatters. Dende is barely able to heal Yang before everyone watches in awe. A sleek silhouette can be seen through the fading smoke, far smaller than the form he was just in. His skin is completely smooth and now mostly white. He keeps the shiny purple spots on his head, shoulders, below his chest, outer forearms and shins. But his eyes, his menacing red eyes are what paralyzes everyone.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Keeping tabs on the entire fight, you’re beyond blown away by Frieza’s massive jump in power.
Man, what’s going on out there? Frieza’s power won’t stop growing. Come on, already, I need to get out there!
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“That’s… Frieza’s final form?” Ruby asks. “He’s… kinda smaller now?”
“A lot less menacing.”
“Don’t fool yourself,” Nail lectures. “His power is beyond anything we’ve seen,” sweat drops down the Namekian’s face.
“Quickly, get Raditz!” Kakarot commands, flaring his power. “I’ll make sure Frieza’s distracted.”
To his word, Kakarot charges forward at the sleek ruler. Dende follows Kakarot’s word and kneels over Raditz… which makes Frieza smile. He lifts his finger and points, with a calm, “Bang.”
In an instant, invisible to nearly everyone, a beam crashes into Dende and Raditz, killing the two instantly. The explosion is what tips everyone off, making everyone, even Kakarot, stop and look.
“Dende, no!” Nail shouts.
“Raditz…” Kakarot’s body shakes.
“It was fast,” Vegeta says to himself. “But I still saw it. I can follow his movements,” he confidently claims.
“Damnit! DAMN ALL OF YOU!” Slug hulking form rises from the smoke, hovering in the air and looking around.
Frieza bears witness to his injured, frustrated form. “You disappoint me, Slug. I leave you with insects and you couldn’t even squash them. The only one who died there was of my doing.”
“I’ll crush them all with my hands alo-“
Frieza fires a thin pink beam at Slug’s chest, paralyzing the Super Namekian. “I care not for your empty threats. You spoke of being so powerful, yet the one chance I gave you to prove it was fruitless. I have no need for subordinates who can’t swat flies,” Frieza opens his palm and smirks. “Why don’t I do you a favour and reunite you with your kin?”
“N-NO!” Slug shouts, but his voice is cut off by a massive explosion. This time, there’s no falling body. Merely ashes taken by the winds of Namek.
That alone strikes fear in the hearts of RWBY. Though their leader hasn’t fought Slug too much, the rest had such a difficult time, even with Nail and Turles helping them. Then Frieza obliterates him in an instant with barely any effort. And for Frieza to just kill a comrade in cold blood.
“Why look so shocked?” The tyrant’s tone is as calm as ever. “Now you only have to worry about me. I do say, that’s rather generous. Now, shall we move onto the real horror show? I’m sad two will miss out, but I’m sure you can fill them in when you meet in the next world. Now the question is…” He chuckles. “Who shall I send next?”
Thank you all for reading! Yeah, starting out like that. Not typical of me. But, really, I enjoy writing this story so much and it makes me happy people actually like reading it. If they didn’t, and everyone just wanted me to do Crimson Shadow, then I would be a sad little Sangan. Especially since I like Dragon Ball astronomically more than RWBY. But, for those who’re more RWBY fans, don’t worry. Like I said, this story flips between RWBY and Dragon Ball centric arcs. The Frieza Saga is almost done so, very soon, we’ll be focused more on Remnant and stuff there. It’ll be fun. It’s basically a slightly calmer saga before the big DB stuff. Always fun.
I have been enjoying using RWBY for this fight. I mean, there’s a lot of differences between the way this fight is going and the anime. Way more characters here… well, there was. Now that Frieza is in his final form… well, I think you can all expect things to be expedited. This is one of those examples of me not just ripping off Dragon Ball one for one. It’s very similar, obviously, but I think the Frieza Saga is the only DB saga that will be extremely similar. The others will have a lot more originality, I think.
Anyway, I’ll chat with you all next time. Again, I hope you enjoyed and are looking forward to the next chapter! I’ll be a ton of fun!
Want to keep up with me? Know what chapter’s coming out next and the progress of them? Follow me on Twitter! Twitter . com (slash) Chinsangan
Questions? Comments? Concerns? Advice? Send me a message!
I also have a Pa tr eon, if you want to check that out! Pat reon . com (slash) Chinsangan
My Discord is now open! If you want to join, either check my bio for a link, find it on my Twitter, or message me directly!
A special thank you to Patreon supporters: MazMan, Big Genatools, and Ride The Lightning
Thank you guys so much for supporting me! It means the world!
And finally, thank you to the Beta Reader: thenameisntimportant
Chapter 23: The Fallen Prince's Last Request? The Final Stand of the Warrior Race!
Chapter Text
Chapter 23: The Fallen Prince’s Last Request. The Final Stand of the Warrior Race!
Frieza’s presence alone is enough to put nearly everyone at pause. Even having achieved another Zenkai boost, Kakarot’s nerves aren’t keeping calm. He’s seen this monster kill Turles, Nappa, his brother, all Saiyan comrades he’s been with for years. No matter how much stronger they’ve gotten, Frieza’s exceeded them at every turn. He’s a monster. A freak of nature. Yet despite all logic, despite his body hesitating, Kakarot’s will pushes past all of it. His pride as a Saiyan, his need to avenge his comrades, the young Saiyan, with rage beating out of his heart, charges Frieza with everything he has.
“FRIEZA!” He screams, dashing over the disturbed dirt and then the water. The Saiyan pulls his hand back for a hook but, without even seeing it, Frieza delivers a punishing blow that sends Kakarot beaming through multiple islands.
Team RWBY is all but shaking in fear, both from the nearly incomprehensible amount of power Frieza has and how fast his attack was. They know they’re outmatched, but it didn’t even look like Frieza moved when he hit Kakarot. Their green compatriot, Nail, is hesitant to attack as well. He’s furious that Dende was slain by this monster, but he’s also well aware of the massive power difference. He couldn’t see Frieza’s attack either, but he felt the momentary jump in power Frieza had. He doesn’t want to say it, but the way it’s looking, his planet and race are doomed.
“Oh, do forgive me, monkey,” Frieza’s deathly calm voice speaks. “It’s been quite a long time since I’ve been in this form. I do hope you haven’t perished quite yet,” Frieza seemingly teleports from his location to just in front of the recovering Saiyan. “Ah, splendid. You still draw breath,” Frieza grabs Kakarot by the back of the neck. “Let’s see how long that lasts.”
“FRIEZA!” Vegeta shouts with a confident smile. Everyone looks to him, floating over the island that RWBY stands on. “Why’re you wasting your time with these worms when you can face your demise right here,” he points at himself. “Prince Vegeta, the Super Saiyan!”
Frieza’s eyes widen at those words. Meanwhile, everyone has no idea what he’s talking about.
“A Super Saiyan? What’s that?” Weiss outwardly asks.
“Is it the same as our Super Namekians?” Nail theorizes. “Special warriors that surpass all. Even still,” his eyes drift to Slug. “Frieza defeated one of those with ease. I doubt a Super Saiyan would do much better.”
“So he’s a super strong… Saiyan?” Ruby simplifies. “I guess we’re Super Humans cause we’re way stronger than everyone else. Super Team RWBY!”
“Glad you can bring some light, sis,” Yang shifts focus from Vegeta to Frieza. “I just hope that doesn’t go out too soon.”
The momentarily surprised Frieza returns to his cool, confident self. “A Super Saiyan? How drole,” he flies towards the island, Kakarot still helpless in his arm. “Very well, Vegeta. Since nobody else is laughing I’ll humour your joke,” he throws Kakarot to the ground, nearby the girls. “Go on. Show me this legendary power of yours.”
“Kakarot!” Ruby runs to him and kneels. “Are you okay?”
The Saiyan rubs the back of his neck, trying to catch his breath. “I’m fine,” he dismisses the young girl’s concerns. “Vegeta… are you really?” He looks up at his prince. “Can you do it?”
With Frieza willing to fight, Vegeta channels his power far beyond what anyone has felt before. His energy surges past Slug, past any of the other Saiyans, past all of Frieza’s previous forms. His teeth push against each other with immense force as yellow lightning dances around his body. With his energy gathered, Vegeta releases a final scream as his power plateaus. The girls, Kakarot, and Nail barely manage to keep their balance with Vegeta’s massive pressure and blinding light.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You also feel this massive influx of power from the healing chamber.
Whoa, is that really Vegeta? How did he get so strong so quick? Maybe Vegeta can put a stop to Frieza before I’m healed.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Frieza, however, is not phased at all. As the dust settles, Frieza’s left unimpressed. “Was that all it was? A childish light show? It would make sense for Saiyans. All spectacle with no substance.”
“Think what you want Frieza, but I’ll have your head spinning with this new power!” Vegeta declares before charging in.
He throws a hook that Frieza merely speeds away from, but Vegeta chases immediately. “You’re not fast enough!” He declares, immediately throwing a barrage of punches and kicks that Frieza finds more irritating than threatening.
“Whoa, he’s keeping up with Frieza!” Yang cheers.
“No,” Nail shakes his head. “It’s as I thought. Frieza’s a monster we cannot match.”
“Damnit!” Kakarot slams his fist on the ground. “We thought… I…”
“Kakarot?” Ruby whispers.
“We’re dead…”
“What’s wrong, Frieza?” Vegeta laughs. “You can’t even fight back, can you? You’re fearing what I can do!” Vegeta spins and roundhouse kicks, which Frieza weaves under but Vegeta thrusts his hand forward and unleashes a purple blast that envelops the emperor. Vegeta stops the attack and flies back, laughing at the smoke cloud Frieza is undoubtedly injured in.
“Look at that, Frieza, I told… you…” As the smoke clears, Frieza is gone. “What? Where did he go? I can’t lose him like this. I’m a Super Saiyan! My instincts should be at their peak! So…”
Frieza laughs, drawing attention to him standing on a nearby island. “Now who’s head is spinning, Vegeta? Can a ‘Super Saiyan’” he mocks the words. “Not keep up? Perhaps my worries were unfounded if this is all a Super Saiyan can do. How sad, after all that boasting,” Frieza holds his finger before his mouth and laughs. “I suppose this joke was a funny one, Vegeta.”
The Saiyan prince stands in disbelief at what’s happening.
I am a Super Saiyan, the strongest warrior in the universe. I should be destroying Frieza. Am I really not one… or is he just beyond even the legend. NO! NO!
“The legends are true, and you’ll see! I can’t be defeated… I CANNOT BE DEFEATED!” Vegeta’s prideful voice screams as his energy surges around him.
He releases a massive yellow blast at his foe, which only makes Frieza chuckle in pity. He speeds out of the way as the blast hits, a massive cloud erupting. Vegeta stares for a moment before realizing where Frieza went. His power surrounds him again as he fires a barrage. “YOU CAN’T RUN!”
Vegeta’s blasts follow Frieza as the emperor flies through the sky as if dozens of explosions weren’t on his tail. But none of them can hit, and Vegeta’s simply firing out as many as he can without focusing. Frieza picks up on that and decides to have a little more fun. He momentarily speeds out of the barrage and in front of Nail, catching everyone off guard.
“Wha-“ Nail’s cut off as Frieza grabs his neck.
He then blitzes back to the light show, away from where Vegeta was aiming.
“Over here,” Frieza taunts.
Without looking, Vegeta turns and fires a massive barrage that all connects to their target. He smiles, finally landing a hit on Frieza but once the dust settles everyone bears witness to Nail’s charred, lifeless body.
“Wha- how?” Vegeta flicks his head to where everyone was. “He went there… then…”
“Oh Vegeta,” Frieza tosses the Namekian’s body aside as if it was nothing, a mere toy in this game.
“NO! NAIL!” Blake screams. “Vegeta… he…”
“No, it was Frieza,” Yang clenches her fists. “He’s… a monster.”
Kakarot watches silently, seeing the hope in Vegeta’s eyes slowly fade. But, for one moment, the fire reignites.
“You really are hopeless. Any time I get even slightly serious and you can’t keep up,” he ends with a snicker. “In truth, I may be regretting letting you kill the Namekian. I’d much rather have the satisfaction of ending their race myself. Alas,” the alien shrugs. “I suppose I’ll even the number some day. I have grown quite attached to the four hundred and seventy-three.”
Frieza’s complete disregard for Vegeta as a serious threat only stokes the fire of the prince’s anger. His frustration finally bubbles into one last attack. “No… NO!” Vegeta bursts higher into the air. “I AM… I AM!” He stops throwing his hands and feet towards Frieza. “I AM A SUPER SAIYAN!” With every fibre of his being, he fires a purple blast that overtakes the sky with its colour. The blast swirls down to Frieza, but the tyrant doesn’t flinch.
“Vegeta, that’ll blow up the planet!” Kakarot speaks up.
“WHAT?” The four girls panic.
Hearing that, Frieza finally decides to act. While Namek blowing up would be merely a minor inconvenience for him, everyone else would die. That wouldn’t teach any sort of lesson. So, Frieza charges the blast and, with one leg, kicks it right back at Vegeta as if it were a soccer ball. That alone shocks everyone watching, but the Saiyan Prince who has to see his own blast be easily knocked back at him, to feel it breeze past him and leave the atmosphere. He doesn’t even bother looking when it explodes into a spectacle of deadly lights. Vegeta just stares down at Frieza, awe-struck.
He put everything, EVERYTHING, into that attack. All his Super Saiyan power and Frieza knocked it away like nothing. He’s never seen this before, this massive gap that not even a Super Saiyan can overcome. All this hope he stocked in his allies, in himself, betting his pride on beating Frieza and he’s still just nothing in comparison. Fear and frustration fill the Saiyan prince until tears slowly fall from his eyes.
He can’t win. Everything he’s ever wanted, all his desires are mere specs of dust in the wind compared to the hurricane of Frieza’s power. That click in Vegeta’s mind shatters his resolve, his will to fight. There’s no point anymore.
“Well now, I believe it’s only fair if I attack next,” Frieza brushes himself off. “Do brace yourself.” Frieza puts one shoulder forward as his body adopts a slight glow. He slowly ascends, smiling the entire time at the fool above him. He picks up his speed, charging straight for Vegeta, who does nothing but watch as Frieza slams his head against the prince’s chin. Vegeta is flung higher into the air, closely pursued by Frieza who starts spinning forwards until slamming his tail down on the Saiyan, plummeting him into the water. The ruler merely laughs as he descends, landing on a lonely piece of land. Not even a few moments pass when Frieza becomes a touch bored. Instead of waiting for his Saiyan opponent to rise, Frieza uses his power to push the water away, forcing it into a bowl shape around him with Vegeta lying face first in the ground at the center. Spotting his prey, Frieza slowly descends below the water level.
RWBY watches in horror, bodies unable to move as Frieza leaves their line of sight. Kakarot finally manages to get to his feet as Vegeta’s cries of pain echo from below. There’s no doubt that Vegeta’s betrayal is ringing differently with Frieza than anyone else. Normally, Frieza instantly kills someone who’s disappointed him, sometimes dragging it out for entertainment. But to this degree? No, Frieza has taken this more personally than Kakarot’s ever seen. He’s well aware that his own life is forfeit, but it certainly won’t be as painful as Vegeta’s.
The prince’s body suddenly flies out of the hole, followed by Frieza who proceeds to elbow the helpless Vegeta a few times in the stomach, then kicks him towards his fear-stricken friends. Vegeta crashes into the ground close to the girls and his Saiyan comrade, his body shivering from the amount of damage its taken. Bits of his armour are chipped off, there are tears along his jumpsuit, and, of course, the little skin that the girls can see is bruised and bleeding. Let alone the constant blood flow from the Prince’s mouth. Frieza proceeds to appear between the group and Vegeta, eyeing the state of his other enemies. Kakarot is the only one with any fight in him, but even that’s weighed down by the fear.
Seeing this, Frieza turns around and wraps his tail around Vegeta’s neck to lift his limp body before him. He proceeds to slam his fist into the prince’s back over and over and over, eliciting a yelp of pain each time.
Kakarot finally decides to try and help, charging at Frieza only for the tyrant to parry his punch and grab his neck.
“I should’ve known it was you who’d attack. You see that, Vegeta?” He twists his tail so Vegeta’s hazy eyes can see his comrade struggling to break free. “You have friends willing to die for you,” he tightens his grip on Kakarot’s neck. “So touching, it makes me vomit,” Frieza throws the low-class Saiyan towards a small rock formation, indenting his body into it. “Now wait patiently, Kakarot. Your time will come soon. Be more like those insects,” he tilts his head over to see RWBY. “They know when to stay pu-“
A weak blast hits Frieza’s cheek, annoying the graceful ruler. He slowly turns his head back towards Kakarot, palm facing Frieza. “Pathetic,” Frieza flicks his arm towards him and fires a similar blast that, on impact, destroys all of Kakarot’s armour and ends the Saiyan’s life.
RWBY watches in horror as the lifeless body of Kakarot becomes visible through the smoke, eyes glazed over.
“To my knowledge, you creatures have not crossed me. You allied with the Saiyans which is quite the offense,” he slams his elbow into Vegeta’s back, forcing him to cough up blood. “But it’s possible it was forced upon you. You all seemed closer to the Namekians…” Frieza closes his eyes. “I have to say, putting an end to these worthless Saiyans has alleviated my mood quite a bit. Tell me, has your planet ever heard of the Mighty Frieza?” He resumes his red gaze to the girls.
Words can’t pass by the lumps in the girls’ throats, but the subtle shake of the head by Blake is more than enough to answer.
“I see. Perhaps this is a pleasant moment for us both. I would not like my first introduction to a new planet to be so downcast. I am quite the generous man, after all. Wouldn’t you say?” The team doesn’t react to this one, save the uncontrollable nervous sweat. “Indeed,” Frieza nods his head. “You may have sided with the Saiyans and combated my forces, but with your power levels, I barely see that as an issue. So, return to your planet. Tell them of the Mighty Frieza and his overwhelming kindness, then perhaps I shall pay a visit to your planet and we may form a healthy alliance. I do say these terms are quite generous, do you agree? After all, you have first-hand experience at what happens when you take my good-hearted nature for granted,” Frieza slams Vegeta against the ground, raises him up and punches his ribs, breaking a few more. “So, why don’t you just…”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
No… Kakarot too. Damnit, come on! I need to get out the-
While you’re not aware of the sudden green light, you can feel your body pulse at one hundred percent. You throw the rebreather away and burst out of the pod, destroying it and the ceiling above. You fly through the new hole and take a deep breath of Namek’s air.
“Wow… I feel so much stronger… it’s almost insane,” you chuckle, looking down at your arms. “But this isn’t any time to sit around. I’m sorry I wasn’t there, but I’m coming now!”
Your aura weaves around your body as you seemingly disappear, crossing the planet in an instant to land right behind the girls, eyes sharp on Frieza.
“Run along…” Frieza’s voice trails off as he sees you arrive.
The girls turn around, feeling the burst of air that compliments your arrival. All of a sudden their fear and anxieties wash away, replaced with smiles and relief.
“(Y/N)!” They all cheer while running towards you.
“What happened?” Yang immediately asks. “Where’ve you been?”
“Hehe,” you close your eyes and rub the back of your head. “I messed up a bit, but don’t worry, I’m here now. You fought your best and I’m proud of you all.”
“We did… but…”
“I know,” you put your hand on Ruby’s shoulder.
For a moment, you look around at all the bodies around you. Nappa, Raditz, Kakarot, Turles, Dende, and Nail. All people who fought to protect your friends, defend Namek, and defeat Frieza. The fact that you could’ve been here, maybe prevented some of the deaths angers you. But letting that hang over you will only disrupt your fighting sense. And you’re certain you’ll need everything you have to beat this guy.
“So, why don’t you all stay back. I’ll take over from here,” you pass by Ruby and walk towards Frieza.
Frieza sneers at that comment, now regretting offering these lifeforms their lives. But a fool is a fool, and you will be dealt with like all the others.
“But-“
“Hey, Yang,” you look over your shoulder at her. “Remember what I said on the ship?”
“Tsk… I…”
“Good,” you turn back to Frieza.
Frieza, his interest intrigued, tosses Vegeta away to focus on you. The prince, upon hearing your voice, finally starts to click back into the world again. He shakily looks over at you.
“Frieza, huh? You’ve done a lot of damage here. How about you stop messing with Vegeta and try me on for size,” you confidently smirk at him. “I’ve been looking forward to fighting you.”
“K-Kail… you… fool.”
“Kail?” Frieza raises a brow, connecting the dots. “Correct me if I’m wrong, but that’s a Saiyan name,” Frieza exhales. “And here I thought I was about to be done with you all, yet more Saiyans crawl from the dirt. It would’ve been smarter for you to flee, Saiyan. The only thing I can offer you now is a swift death… if you kneel before me.”
“Tempting,” you roll your shoulders, keeping an air of confidence. “But that offer kinda sucks.”
“Hm,” Frieza squints his eyes, annoyed at your arrogance.
But Vegeta is impressed. Your confidence, your tone, you’re like a completely different person. Far beyond what even he could achieve during this battle. And that makes him wonder… is it possible? Could you finally have shattered your limits and become a Super Saiyan?
“Well, care to put that confidence to the test?” Frieza proposes.
“Sur-“
In an instant, Frieza appears before you with his leg wound up to attack. But, without moving, you flare the Kaioken for a mere heartbeat and backhand the tyrant’s cheek. Frieza’s unable to react since he couldn’t see it. He’s sent twirling back for a short time, yet is easily able to recover himself and land. You lower your fist and walk forward, placing yourself closer to Frieza than Vegeta. The alien ruler rubs his cheek, unamused that you were able to hit him at all.
“Insolent fool,” Frieza stands straight and points his finger towards you, firing a barrage of pink beams at your body.
“NO! Move!” Yang shrieks.
Without flinching, you slap the blast out of the way, sending it spiralling towards an uninhabited island.
“What?”
“That won’t work on me, sorry,” you lower your hand.
That alone makes Vegeta laugh. “Well… well… it looks like your luck really has run out, Frieza,” he hoists himself up with his elbows to glance at the named alien. “Cause now you’re really fighting him… a Super Saiyan…” This time, Vegeta’s claim holds a bit more merit, but his laughter begins to annoy him. “He’ll… defeat you… give you what you’ve long deserved, aha… ahahaha- GAK!” A pink beam pierces through the prince’s chest, causing more blood to spew from his mouth as he reverts to lying completely on the ground again.
“No! Vegeta!” You snarl. “He couldn’t even stand! What’s wrong with you?”
“Do not blame me for his foolish actions. He should’ve shut his mouth long ago. Yet on and on, again and again, this foolish Super Saiyan nonsense. It’s tiring,” Frieza crosses his arms.
“You… you fool, Kail,” Vegeta wheezes out. “ You’re not really a Super Saiyan, are you? Damn it… you child… stop seeing this through your kind-hearted eyes. You must harden your heart… it’s the only way… the only- GAK,” more blood spews from his mouth.
“Just shut up, Vegeta! You’re not gonna make it if you keep talking!”
Vegeta shakily clenches his fist, dragging in the dirt below his fingers. “Kail… please… just listen… listen to me…”
“Still talking?” Frieza crosses his arms. “I’d be impressed with his tenacity if I wasn’t sick of his preaching,”
“You need… to know… about my home, our home, Planet Vegeta… It’s gone, yes, but not… not because of-“ He coughs again. “Because of a meteor… it was… was…” His body tenses, voice cracking. “It was Frieza! He did it! After us Saiyans…” Finally, more tears flow down his face, mixing with some of his blood. “He betrayed us, threw us away and wiped our race from existence… except us. You understand me, Kail? We… you… are all that’s left. My father… your father… everyone he slaughtered without mercy.” While you and RWBY are invested in this story, in Vegeta’s heartfelt words, while Frieza takes pride in his actions. “He was scared… of our numbers, of a Super Saiyan rising. He’s terrified… of us… please…” His coughs and sobs mix, weighing on your heart. He raises his hand towards you, unwavering in his speech. “Please… Kail… I beg, I plead of you… kill him… kill Frieza. He has to die… by a Saiyan… please…”
His voice tapers off as his eyes close, his arm falls, and life leaves his body. The winds of Namek blows his spirit away to the afterlife, leaving only his wishes and pride for you to take in.
“Vegeta…” Your voice shakes with anger.You shake your head and kneel down, placing a hand on his shoulder. Your subsequent breaths are hefty, audible to all around you. RWBY is caught off guard by your more calm demeanor and careful movements. But this is a situation like none other, and, like you, realize that you, Kail, are the last living Saiyan. Being a Saiyan isn’t something you thought of too much. Even learning that you’re an alien was taken in stride thanks to the circumstances that came after it. But it’s now, with Vegeta pouring his heart out to you, now, when all your Saiyan brothers have been slain, now, when the tyrant who saw to your race’s destruction stands before you with a proud smile, it is now that you fully accept the mantle of Saiyan and the responsibilities that come with it. With a clenched fist, you get to your feet and take a step towards Frieza.
“Listen here, Frieza!” You shout with a powerful tone. “My name is (Y/N)... my name is Kail, a Saiyan raised on Remnant. For the Saiyans, for the Namekians, for every innocent person you’ve killed I swear on them that I will take you down!”
Frieza chuckles. “Is that so? Well, please, show me just how you’ll do that.”
“Girls, take the bodies away from here. Right now.”
Without a word, they all spread out to gather all the people who fell to fight Frieza. Yang grabs Vegeta, taking a moment to look at you. Her heart is heavy at the prospect of you fighting Frieza. But there’s no way you’ll back down now. Not after that. She turns away and flies, sweeping Dende with her free arm. All the girls fly far away from the battlefield, making sure it’s totally clear for you to fight.
Once you feel they’re far enough away, you hop off one foot then push off the ground with another, launching yourself forward at incredible speeds.
“HYYYYYYYYYAAAAAAAAAAA!” You throw a punch, which Frieza blocks with a smile.
The island you’re on completely shatters from the pressure, resulting in you both dashing away and colliding once more high in the air. Just by blocking his punches, you realize how much of a threat Frieza is. The weight behind them is more than you’ve ever felt, even when sparring against Piccolo. With that in mind, you do everything you can to not let that monster get a single shot in. The shockwave from your attacks shakes the area around you, turning rock to rubble and kicking up dust all around. Even with the limited vision that soon comes as you both attack again and again, all you need is his Ki.
You throw a punch which Frieza disappears away from. You immediately fly away to avoid his incoming tail. Rest isn’t what Frieza’s planning to give you, so he quickly pursues while firing a plethora of beams from his eyes, destroying more islands and forcing up massive amounts of water. You spiral around Frieza’s blast before spinning around and firing a few of your own. Like you, Frieza weaves through them with expert skill and catches up to you, throwing a solid punch to your cheek. It takes merely a moment for you to recover and land on one of Namek’s quickly fading islands. Your mind immediately detects a massive amount of energy, so you flick your head to see Frieza’s already incoming blast.
Move, (Y/N)! MOVE NOW!
You swell your Ki for just a moment before bursting off the island mere milliseconds before the attack hits, erupting in a massive mushroom cloud that only feeds the dust already polluting the battlefield.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
The girls struggle to keep their balance with all the shockwaves from your attacks. Even being so far away, their land is starting to crack.
“It’s… unreal,” Blake shakes her head. “I never would’ve thought… something like this would exist.”
“It’s like a movie or something,” Ruby whispers. She then looks over at the bodies, slowly rolling away. “Hey, we should get these back to the ship. Who knows what’ll happen if they stay here.”
“Yeah,” Weiss nods.
“I’ll stay here, just in case,” Yang offers. “He may need help.”
“Alright, we should manage,” Ruby responds, grabbing two of the bodies. “Come on,” she says to the others, then looks back to her sister. “We’ll be back as soon as we can.”
“Yeah!” Yang nods, turning back to the show before her. “Come on, (Y/N). You can do this!”
Just as the girls take off, Frieza’s massive blast hits. They’re pushed even further with the shockwave, while Yang has to try and keep her place.
“You can’t die… please,” she struggles to speak through the vibrations.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You stop midair and quickly lock onto Frieza, who’s deep in the smoke. Against your predictions, he starts blindly firing beams with no clear target area. A few come close, but none threaten to hit you.
Can he… not sense energy? No, all of them use those scouter thingies. I better keep that in mind.
With the new knowledge in your arsenal, you swoop down into the clouds and try to get closer.
“Hiding is a fool's tactic, Saiyan! Show yourself!” Frieza shouts, still firing where he believes you are.
“If you say so!”
You burst out of the smoke below him, catching the ruler off guard and deliver a devastating uppercut that would easily annihilate a planet several times over. You then grab his tail, spin around a few times and throw him down to the ground, quickly followed by a Kamehameha that slams against his chest and forces him into water. A vibrant concoction of colour, smoke and water emerges from the impact zone, causing yet another mushroom cloud. It’s nice that one is finally your doing, if a little sad that you’ve damaged the planet even more. But if you worried about making a crater or two, this fight would be a lot more difficult. As long as you don’t blow up the planet, everything is fair game.
Frieza slowly rises out of the flowing water, a bit irritated you landed such a blow.
“You were robbed of a compliment,” Frieza calmly speaks as he reaches your altitude. “If the water had not washed me off I would’ve had to brush myself off.”
“Huh… so?” You puzzledly tilt your head.
“That hasn’t been a requirement since I’ve battled my father,” he clarifies.
“Oh, I see. Darn,” you snap. “Almost. Guess I’ll have to do it again.”
Frieza can’t help but chuckle. “That opportunity has passed, I’m afraid. You won’t get another chance.”
“I guess we’ll see,” you reply with a confident smile.
With a short break in combat, the smoke and dust finally clears to reveal a tattered and broken section of Namek. There are very few intact islands and even fewer that are untouched. Even from a distance, Yang can’t believe the carnage this battle has wrought so far. She’s never seen anything like it so quickly. As terrible as it sounds, she’s glad this fight is here and not on Remnant.
Frieza stretches his neck for a moment then exhales. “You may make the next move, if you wish.”
“Oh, hey! That’s pretty kind,” you slip into a fighting stance. “Then here I-“ You burst forward and throw a hook, hitting absolutely nothing. “Come?”
Frieza appears behind you, mid-spin to smack the back of your head with his tail. You plummet down to a fairly intact island, managing to get control of your momentum so you flip backwards, hands planting into the ground so you can push off and land just in front of a cliffside. Frieza flies down, ramping down so he can get to an equal level with you. His right arm is pulled in while his left is flexed out, but as he approaches he pulls the left in too, clenching his fist.
Is he gonna double punch me?
You get ready to move when a sudden solid surface hits you from behind. You look to the side, seeing the rock wall that’s forcing you towards him.
He can do that?
With no way of moving backwards, and being pulled towards the incoming tyrant, you have no way of avoiding Frieza’s punishing strike to your cheek. The force blows you right through rock and beyond. You skid across the water, run right through another entire island, and bounce off the shore of another. You roll across the grass for a moment, stopping on a small section of just rock.
“Tsk,” you shakily get to your feet while feeling a warm liquid on your cheek. “Alright then… gotta be a little more careful…” You wipe the blood off and sense Frieza approaching. You quickly look over at another small incline… which gives you an idea. You jump back, narrowly avoiding Frieza’s kick, landing on one knee atop the incline with your palm flat upon it, then leap off it right before Frieza appears.
“Running already? I thought we were just getting started,” Frieza patronizes. “Perhaps…” He hops off the hill and lands a short distance away. “I’ll give you a more forward approach.”
Frieza raises both hands, ripping the ground behind him out from Namek’s grasp. Small bits of dust fall back to their home as it's slowly risen above its new controller. Right as it's atop Frieza, you smirk and clench your fist. Suddenly, small explosions fire off from everywhere inside the artificial island, both hitting Frieza and dropping large chunks of rock upon him.
As they fall, you smirk and pull your arm in. “Haha, I did it! Little energy mines.”
When your hand touched the surface of Namek, you released dozens of small, potent balls of energy within the soil. It was a gamble whether Frieza would use that piece of land, and you planned to fight in this area a little longer to make sure he did it. But the plan came out a rousing success.
Frieza soon walks out of the dust, small bits of debris and particles build up around his shoulders. When he stops, he looks at it.
“Look at that. Gotta dust yourself off,” you snicker. “Guess I did it twice.”
Frieza begrudgingly brushes himself off, eyes locked onto you. “Well, Saiyan, it appears you’re trying to test my limited patience,” the last word is laced with anger.
He bursts forward with a shattering right hook, which you manage to block and repay with a straight punch. Frieza is knocked back for a moment before bursting right back and kicking you in the ribs. You curl into a ball, just above the ground, for a few seconds before flying directly up. Frieza smirks before appearing right above you, standing completely horizontal to look down at you.
“Hello there.”
“Bah!” You blurt out. “Different way!” You fly towards the planet, back against it, then circle around.
To play a little more, Frieza lets gravity reorient himself before soaring towards you. Your fists clash over and over across the battlefield. Problems start to arise when Frieza begins landing blows while you can’t get past his defences. As you charge each other once more, Frieza blitzes you by thrusting his fist into your stomach, forcing blood to come out.
“The first spurt of many. Are you ready?” Frieza quietly speaks, almost as if he wants to try and hear that.
Frieza follows up with a barrage of blows, ending with his tail wrapping around your foot and throwing you towards the planet. Without letting you drop for a second, Frieza appears below you with his knee out, letting your face bounce off it before he spins and kicks you away. He charges a small, condensed ball of power that he fires off to track you, easily hitting its mark and pushing you along its course. Frieza put extra power into that to gauge how much you’ve been hiding from him. If you can’t break free of that then the Saiyans come to a close there and he’s done. But if you do, he’s underestimated you.
Meanwhile, you’re being pushed by your back, unable to break free of its grasp and fly away. Second by second you move away from the battlefield and closer to detonation.
Time it right, (Y/N)… time it right… KAIOKEN!
With the extra surge of a five times Kaioken, you roll around the ball and quickly dash away, landing on an untouched piece of land as you watch the blast go past the horizon and explode. The pressure and size of the explosion are more than anything you’ve seen so far. While Frieza’s testing you with it, you’ve now got more of an idea what Frieza’s power looks like.
Good thing I wasn’t caught in that…but he fired that off so normally. Which means without Kaioken I’m behind…
You pivot your body and look back to the battlefield where Frieza’s eying you.
And if that was really casual, he has a lot more power tucked away. Hopefully times ten will be enough.
As the winds of Namek blow by, you feel more of a chill along your skin. You look down and see a whole left section of your gi, just below your pecs up to the shoulder, is gone. Add that to the whole your clothes already had from Slug’s attack, and the bruises you’ve gotten from Frieza winds up making you look pretty roughed up.
Frieza is uninterested in letting you catch your breath, so he seemingly teleports to your island, taking his own place a good distance away.
“That was a good one, Frieza,” you roll your shoulders. “I’ll have to be a little more careful from now on.”
“Oh, indeed, exercise caution so close to your expiry date. Every second counts,” Frieza crosses his arms. “Though, I must admit that I’m shocked you were able to escape. You’re far from the common trash Planet Vegeta produced. I almost feel like you should be rewarded for being such good fun.”
“I’m not going to lie, I’m surprised you’re even thinking about a reward. You are still trying to kill me, right? Cause I am going to beat you.”
Frieza chuckles at your statement. “Of course, you will try. But, please, do not act as if you know me, Saiyan. I’m a very generous person, when the mood strikes,” Frieza crosses his arms and waits. “In fact, I offered those pathetic lifeforms their lives just before you arrived.” Your eyes widen a moment, knowing exactly who he’s talking about. “But I’m afraid I’ll have to retract my offer. Considering they seemed very fond of you… it means they are indeed collaborating with Saiyans. It’s good we never settled on an agreement. I’d hate to have my honourable word dragged through the mud by worms.”
You grind your teeth, mentally slapping yourself. If only you’d have waited, Team RWBY’s safety would have been guaranteed. But then, Vegeta would have been dead before he could spark your Saiyan pride. It doesn’t matter. You quickly shake your head, getting rid of any doubt. You’re going to beat this guy, so whatever offers he had won’t matter when he’s six feet under.
“I would say this is a rare occasion for you. Saiyans tend to not put me in that mood, but I find your surprising power to be worthy of praise. In truth, I was beginning to think transforming was for mere spectacle, but you’ve made the effort well worth it.”
“Sorry if I can’t find comfort in praise from someone who threatens my friends!”
“Friends, mm? Saiyans were not one to make friends,” Frieza thinks back to their very abrasive and uninviting nature. “You are the most surprising Saiyan I’ve met. So, how about this?”
Frieza tucks in his arms further. “I shan't use my hands for the duration of our fight. How does that sound?”
“Wow, that’s quite the claim. So what if you do?”
“Trust me, I won’t,” Frieza keeps his deceptive pleasantries up. “Now, please, go ahead. The first move is yours.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Yang’s knuckles are pale, fists shaking while watching - or doing her best to watch. Everything is so fast that she can only really sense what’s going on. But, from what she sees, it seems you’re falling behind. She can only hope you have more in reserves. You have to. You can’t lose this.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
With a quick stretch of your arms and neck, you get back into your fighting stance. “Alright then…” With a slow inhale and exhale, you push off your back leg, right hand touching the ground and releasing a small energy ball, then fly towards him. You spin around and kick, which Frieza leaps above before coming down with his heel. You flip back right as your blast shoots out of the ground, but with Frieza’s foot already close he easily kicks it away and pursues.
“That may have caught me off guard, but it’s a childish attempt at an attack!”
Your boots slide across the ground before pushing off to get more distance, but Frieza’s amped up his speed more than you expected. He’s already hovering over you, throwing a barrage of kicks, spinning and straight, that’s got you completely on the backheel. Even if you’re blocking his attacks, they’re slowly breaking through and ruining your balance. Soon enough, one slips by your hand and connects with your face. With a momentary knockback, Frieza slips his tail around your foot and flicks it, forcing your body to follow. As your head jerks towards him, Frieza drives his knee into your face then spins around and slaps you with his tail. You glide across the ground with such pressure that it’s shattering beneath you. But your will returns and you manage to whisk yourself along the ground with your hands until you launch yourself towards a rock, land on it, then spring off towards a still, confident Frieza.
As you approach, you subtly kick your Kaioken up to seven for an extra boost, catching Frieza off guard for a mere moment, but not enough to let you land a blow. He weaves through your enhanced punches, a smile on his face accompanied by a chuckle. Slowly but surely he’s forcing you to use more of your power, and he’s certain there’s plenty more to come. But that can be said for him as well.
Left, right, right, left, spin kick, elbow, hook, Frieza dances through them all as if it were a joke, leading you both back into the sky. He ducks under one punch and shoots up, attacking with his head once again. You’re whisked up for a second, but you snap away so he can’t follow up, but the speed at which you flee isn’t enough. He’s behind you the entire time, winding up his heel to plunge into your back. You’re sent right back down instantly, crashing into the island and forming a small, dusty crater.
Breathing heavily, you push yourself onto one knee while rubbing your back. “Yeah, that one hurt a bit. Darn it, even seven couldn’t surprise him.” You get back on your feet, the dust now clearing, but Frieza’s nowhere in sight. With a deep breath, you focus on his Ki.
His energy is moving so fast… I can’t get a read on it.
As if it flickers in your mind, you turn around and blast a rock. From the smoke, Frieza emerges, approaching you with a smile. You wait just a moment, knowing he’s gotten used to your pace at seven times. You hold your own and wait for the moment to strike. He may be getting used to your speed, but that means he has become stagnant as well. He believes what he has now is enough for seven, but if you push it to ten it has to catch him by surprise. So, Frieza rushes in, just as you imagined and throws a kick.
Times ten!
Your heart beats as soon as the Kaioken flares, allowing you to throw a devastating straight punch that shakes Frieza’s entire body. Spit spews out of his mouth whilst his eyes angrily stay locked on you. You follow up with a strong roundhouse to his lower stomach which pushes him a short distance from you, then you charge above, preparing a sledgehammer. With a new read on your agility, Frieza musters his own power to counteract. He pulls his arm in and springs it right between your incoming arms, connecting with your cheek. He quickly bursts right above you and throws a hook to slam you against the ground.
The tyrant relaxes his body and rubs his cheek, unhappy with being hit.
“Hehe… ehehehe,” you shakily get to your feet, a smile with a laugh. “You… used your hands. What’s with that? We shook on it… technically.”
Though annoyed, Frieza shares in your laugh. “Indeed. Well, let's just say I’m not feeling so nice anymore.”
“Aw, that’s a shame. If these punches were your nice ones,” you stretch your back and exhale. “Well, I’d hate to see your angry ones.”
Finally sick of your clothing being loose, you grab hold of your Gi and rip off the top. Your upper body is now completely exposed, but the lower parts of your orange Gi, the ones below your blue sash, remain. So the orange with hints of blue sway over your black pants, and only small rips of your black shirt limply hang with orange above your belt.
Frieza closes his eyes for a moment to contemplate your next move. Your spontaneous bursts of power are becoming irritating, but that’s just it. He is beginning to notice that it’s only in bursts, which does lend credit to him believing you’re holding back on him, and only unleashing portions of it at the right time. Funny, he does the same thing; only Frieza’s annoyed when it's done to him.
Frieza clears his throat and opens his eyes. “Saiyan… Kail, was it?”
“I prefer (Y/N).”
“(Y/N)… I am going to commend you one final time. You are perhaps one of the strongest opponents I have ever combated.”
“That so?”
“However, I’m afraid I grow weary of this standoff. I believe it’s time this comes to a close. Before I do that, though, permit me to ask… what would you say to becoming my underling? It would be a waste to throw away such talent, and I’m in need of a replacement for my lost forces.”
“Are… are you serious?” You cock your head to the side. “You really think I’ll say yes?”
“No,” Frieza bluntly replies. “Unique or not, Saiyans have never been the self-preservation type. But in rejecting my offer, there is only one route for you left… your death.”
The tone of his voice, the unwavering confidence, it nearly reminds you of Piccolo and Ozpin if they were homicidal rulers. Where Vegeta’s voice had pride and anger, Frieza is cold to the point where a whisper would give you shivers.
“Not to argue since we’re on such good terms… but I don’t think I’ll be dying here.”
“Is that so?” Frieza laughs. “While you’re far stronger than I thought, that does not mean I’m at a disadvantage. I’m wise to the fact you’re holding back, hiding your power, but I don’t think that’s enough to tip the tables in your favour. I believe you’ve deduced I’m doing the same, no? Perhaps that’s too much to assume from a monkey.”
“I have,” you nod.
“Well… I’m quite confident that my reserves vastly outweigh yours… so…” Frieza closes his eyes and nods. “Yes, half. A mere half should be more than sufficient to render you space dust.”
While you keep your mettle about you, it’s hard to feel a little shaken at his words.
“That so, huh? I guess we’ll have to see,” you slide your foot back and get your hands in position to defend or attack.
With more confidence than blood, Frieza extends his hands to his sides, fingers spread, and slides his right foot behind his left.
“Honestly, I’m almost distraught that you rejected my offer. I might miss you, Saiyan… perhaps, when slaughtering those poor creatures and their planet, I’ll remember you as healthy opposition.”
Your body can’t help but shake at the subtle increase from Frieza. He hasn’t shaken the planet, he hasn’t howled in a glorious spectacle of power, yet this is the greatest shift in energy you’ve ever felt in your life. It's horrifying. Your body itself is screaming that this battle has ascended beyond what you’re used to. Even lightning begins to crackle only above your location and nowhere else, striking Frieza yet only becoming an intimidating factor rather than a hindrance. And yet, with his threat to your friends and planet, you can’t back down now.
While Frieza remains in his stance, you speed towards him… only to feel this shock in your body. Before attacking, you cartwheel back to avoid the fastest Ki blast you’ve ever bore witness to. You flip right around back on your feet, keeping focused on Frieza yet wondering what happened. It was like your body knew you were in danger before you did. As odd as that was, there’s no time to think about it. You have to focus completely on his actions and your own. Now’s not the time to lose focus.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
As Yang anxiously watches, the rest of her team soar in from behind.
“Everyone’s laid down in the ship,” Ruby says the moment she lands, walking up beside her sister.
“How’s (Y/N)?” Weiss inquires, moving beside Ruby.
“It’s… hard to say. He’s landed some hits, but as its gone on…” She squeezes her hand. “I think he’s losing.
Blake, standing on the other side of Yang, eyes the far away fight. Even with the few scratches Frieza has, you’re clearly in worse shape. Besides that, while he’s standing very neutral and calm, you’re battle ready and nervous. Your body language is all the information she needs.
“Come, on, (Y/N)!” Ruby cheers. “Kick his butt!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
As focused as you are, you can’t find an opportunity to attack. Without moving his body, even his eyes, he knows exactly what you’re going to do. As you raise one arm a little higher Frieza’s eyes glow, signalling an attack.
“It’s truly a shame. So much potential.”
You finally take the opportunity to attack, appearing right beside him only to be hit by a seemingly invisible elbow. Frieza doesn’t follow up; he stands as still as ever, staring forward while you crumble to your knees.
“And Saiyans constantly waste it,” Frieza continues, speaking over your grunts of pain. “Vegeta, his father, that rebellious Saiyan Bardock, and all those nuisances who robbed me of my wish. Do you know what they share?” He finally turns towards you, grabbing your neck and pulling you up to his level. “Well, you seem to have a sore throat,” he grips tighter, eliciting a sharp grunt. “So I’ll tell you. All of them headstrong, all deaf to reason… and all of them dead. Funny,” Frieza lightly throws you back so you can try and stand again. “You appear to share two of those qualities.”
You stumble back, weakly keeping on your feet. Your stomach is still pulsing with pain from his attack. It’s just incredible to you. Not only was his counter attack completely invisible, but he’s clearly got way more power than you intended. While not relying on it, you remember Turles talking about your biology. You grow stronger while fighting and after a near-death injury. That has to mean your power has been slowly increasing while fighting, but it’s making absolutely no difference.
Was he not bluffing? Is there really just that much of a ga-
Even though you see him before you, his fist meets with your cheek to send you far off the island and over the water. You shake your head and flip around, facing where Frieza was only for his tail to wrap around your neck from behind and pull you into a knee, then spin and throw you towards a more destroyed island. You have absolutely no time to recover, thus you smash into the rocks.
I couldn’t… see him…
You slowly push the rocks off you, only to have a shadow cast over your location. Frieza looks down at you, one of Namek’s suns shining behind him to darken his visage. The only thing you can see is his beaming red eyes.
“Well, well, you couldn’t even keep up with that. Perhaps I gave you too much credit,” he places his hands on his hips and shakes his head. “How anticlimactic.”
“Tsk,” you burst out of the rock and go for a punch, which Frieza easily disappears from and reappears further away.
You try to attack over and over, speeding towards him with a punch or kick. Yet every time is a failure, amplified by Frieza laughing at your pitiful efforts.
“Come now, Saiyan, is that really all you have?” Frieza decides to counter instead of dodge, parrying your punch and responding with an uppercut, then a straight punch in the gut. “Perhaps it's my turn? Would you mind?”
“A… little…” You weakly spout.
“What a shame.”
Frieza goes on the offensive, kicking you to the side then appearing in your path and sledgehammering you down, only to then appear below you so you land on his knee, allowing the alien to deliver a right hook. You soar through the air, body writhing in pain from the tyrant’s booming blows. Of course, Frieza gives you no quarrel as he blitzes right above you and slaps you to the right with his tail, then appears and hits you to the left. He makes a game of it, using your body to draw various shapes in the air, and there’s nothing you can do about it.
“Are you winded at all?” He taunts, finally slapping you right down to the ground.
You crash, unable to stop yourself from hitting the ground. Taking in a few deep breaths, you try to come up with any plan.
At this point, not using the Kaioken isn’t an option. I don’t know if it’ll work, or how my body will react, but I can’t keep going like this.
You slowly roll over and push off the ground when the dirt and stone below you start to crack. Before you can even guess, Frieza tunnels out, burying his head into your stomach before backing out, flying around, and elbowing you away. Against his presumptions, you activate the Kaioken times ten and burst right back at him, throwing a wild hook that completely misses. With your extra power, you can see him appear beside you this time, letting you block his first punch but not his follow up kick to your back. You’re sent spiralling, out of Kaioken, down to an island. Almost as soon as you hit the ground, you come back with the same red flare, throwing a punch at the emperor only for him to catch it and strike.
The power of the blows sends shockwaves out, destroying the flow of water and threatening to blow the girls back. It’s only thanks to Weiss’ glyph that they can remain stationary any longer.
At this point, as Frieza chases you down and attacks over and over, the Kaioken is only meant to block whatever you can. But, as Frieza said, he has a lot of reserves left. Even the Kaioken times ten isn’t enough to keep you in the game. Not anymore.
Frieza lands his final kick, hurling you back down to an island without any hope of recovery. You bounce off the ground and lay there, trying your best to catch your breath. But at this point, you’re debating just lying down.
He’s… so powerful. I was excited before, but now… if I can’t beat him…
Frieza lands right by your body, looking down at your pathetic form. “You have no one to blame for this but yourself. All this pain… your fault,” Frieza kicks you back into the air only to immediately appear above and drive his elbow against your chest, forcing you back to the ground. As soon as you hit and bounce, he extends his tail to grab your neck and throw you across the waters of Namek. He flies overhead, easily keeping up with a speed you can’t break free from. “I would appreciate it if you put a little more effort into this. It’s not as entertaining when you don’t fight BACK!” Frieza crushes your ribs with his foot, forcing you down into the water.
Bubbles flutter from your mouth, being swept away by the swirling liquids around as you plunge deeper and deeper. You lazily sink further down until the sharp pain of no oxygen slams against your chest for attention.
Damnit, air. Need… air! How could I forget that!
You flail your arms around to start swimming up, then remember something.
Wait, Frieza can’t sense my Ki. I could try and swim around to-
Frieza dives into the water, stopping right in front of you. Your eyes widen and your body swims back on reaction. Frieza finds this humourous, almost charming. He wasn’t lying when he said he’d miss you. Along with being exceptionally strong, you have this foolish energy that’s unlike the other Saiyans. Frieza is sure to enjoy beating that energy out of you… slowly.
The tyrant pulls his foot back then, as he swings it, teleports in front of you to slam his foot into your jaw. Not a second later you break out of the water, head tilted back after being hit so hard. Frieza follows up out of the water, casually reaching your level before slapping you back down towards an island.
“Shall we see what’s more durable? You or the planet?” He teases, speeding after you.
Right as you hit the ground, Frieza’s fist buries into your chest. It’s not a sight even the girls can watch. In a mere three hits, the island you were on has turned to dust and you’re being thrown to the next one. Over and over, across the battlefield, pieces of Namek are annihilated while you’re just trying to keep yourself alive. There’s no time to even use the Kaioken to defend yourself. He’s far too fast.
“We have to… help him!” Ruby struggles to say under the echoing pressure of Frieza’s attacks.
“We… can’t even move…” Weiss huffs, doing her best to keep the glyph stable.
Finally, after seven islands, you manage to break free of Frieza’s track and fly straight up. Your enemy looks up, unamused and chases. The moment he catches up, he sweeps your feet to ruin your balance then sledgehammers you back down. His tail immediately latches onto your foot and extends, swinging you around until you slam into another one of Namek’s islands. You roll across the ground, completely at the mercy of momentum. Soon, you transition to sliding and then stop entirely. Frieza, arms crossed, watches from above as you somehow shakily get on your feet again.
Eyes hazy, you take a gander at your tormentor and smile.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“OZPIN!” King Kai’s voice echoes over Piccolo’s Lookout. “DID I NOT TELL YOU THIS WOULD HAPPEN? HE HAS NO CHANCE AGAINST FRIEZA! PICCOLO! WHY WOULD YOU SEND HIM THERE?”
Ozpin and Piccolo have their eyes closed, totally focused on the fight taking place star systems away.
“It’s seeming like it,” Ozpin calmly responds to his frantic friend. “But let's just see what happens. Saiyans are extremely interesting when under stress like this.”
“IS THIS ONLY A GAME FOR YOU? (Y/N) IS GOING TO DIE!”
“No, he won’t,” Ozpin shakes his head. “Do you not see the growing spark in his eyes?”
“NO. I SEE LIFE FADING FROM THEEEEEEEEEEEEM!”
Despite the racket, Piccolo doesn’t waver his attention from the fight. He cares little for Saiyans and even less for Frieza, and he feels frustrated. This is his battle as much as yours. He is the last Namekian, thanks to this monster, just as you’re the last Saiyan. Yet his duties subdue him, prevent him from acting. Now you’re dying because of that. It’s extremely aggravating to Remnant’s Guardian.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“You know, (Y/N), I’m very surprised you’re even able to stand, let alone give me such a rebellious face.”
You shake your head and get back in the game. “What can I say? I’m pretty stubborn.”
“Mmm… indeed,” the emperor agrees. “I hope you realize what kindness I’m giving you. I could easily decimate this planet if I so wished, yet I waste my time playing with you,” Frieza slowly descends to the same plain you’re on. “Now… let us continue the game.”
Frieza points his right hand at you and fires one small beam at your shoulder. You’re blown back, still on your feet, only to be hit by another by your thigh. Left shoulder, left chest, right ribs, left knee, left hip, right shoulder, Frieza’s laugh accompanies these overwhelming attacks that push you further and further back.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
With the winds not as powerful, the girls can finally move around. Yet they’re still awestruck by your screams and Frieza’s power.
“We… have to…” Yang’s fist shakes.
“What can we do? He’s so strong… He’s too strong!” Blake quivers.
“He’s helped us so much… and here we are doing nothing!” Ruby throws her fist forward. “WE HAVE TO HELP!”
“WAIT!” Weiss shouts, noting that Frieza has stopped and you’re motionless. “He’s… what’s he doing?”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
At this point, the pain from Frieza’s attacks feels like the norm. Your body doesn’t want to feel this excruciating agony anymore. Legs shaking, muscles starting to give out, you exhale once more before you’re about to fall…
Then a hand grabs your shoulder.
“What’re you doing, Kail?” A harsh voice questions.
“Uh…” You slowly look to your right. “V-Vegeta?”
The Saiyan, standing in his armour, stares at you with disgust. “Here you are, the strongest of our race and you whimper like a coward!”
“I’m… I can’t… he’s so…”
“You can’t,” another voice speaks from the other side of you. “But we can.”
“Huh? Turles?” You look to your left, where the Saiyan approaches. “You aren’t alone in this battle, Kail.”
“You have the blood of all us Saiyans!” Nappa slams his fist together, approaching from behind you.
“With all our pride,” Kakarot comes from the right, beside Vegeta.
“And all our rage,” Raditz enters next to Turles.
“Does that not pulse in your blood?” Vegeta continues. “Do you not feel the fires of a Saiyan bubbling within you. Before you is the man who slaughtered all of us, who’s brought us to the brink of extinction! Our fathers… our brothers… our comrades.”
“And now, all that’s left is you,” Nappa speaks, the hardy voice wrapping around you. “You are the final trace of our blood, of our ideals. If Frieza kills you, he’ll win. Not just your fight, but the war against our race.”
“We wanted to avenge them,” Kakarot speaks. “We all wanted to. But we failed. Killed, like every other Saiyan who dared fight for us.”
“Because he is scared of a Super Saiyan,” Raditz carries the words forward. “A Super Saiyan that will rise from our race and wipe him out.”
“So embrace our pain, embrace the Saiyans who’s spirit supports you now” Turles cries out.
“ALL OF US!” The five shout together. “YOU ARE THE LAST HOPE OF OUR RACE!” The voices expand, as well as the support behind you. King Vegeta, Bardock, Gine, Tora, Fasha, Shugesh, any and all Saiyans who yearn for Frieza’s demise appear behind you. “DO NOT LET US ALL DIE IN VEIN! KAAAAAAAAAAAIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIL!”
“It appears as though you have nothing left to entertain me with,” Frieza slowly walks towards you. “But I suppose I shouldn’t have expected much more. It appears the Saiyan race ends with quiet breath… how fit-“ Namek’s winds spiral around you, building up more pressure. “Hm?” He raises a brow.
You lean forward, tightening your body and flaring your Ki. “I HEAR YOU!”
“What?”
“HAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAA!” Your scream is laced with the roar of a Great Ape, putting small fear in Frieza as he sees a mirage of the beast tower over you. Your white aura swiftly explodes to red, kicking up your power to unprecedented heights, to twenty times!
“Where did-“
“HYAAAAAA!” You burst forward faster than Frieza was prepared for, your fist barreling into his stomach with such ferocity it nearly goes right through. Frieza coughs up blood and saliva, only for you to lean back and kick him into the air.
“KA! ME! HA!” You slam your palms together, little bits of Ki pooling to form a ball, and pursue him.
Frieza recovers, shaking his head and fueling his anger. “You low life monkey!” He throws his hand in your direction and fires a massive pink beam.
“ME!” Your eyes sharpen when you see the pink beam, with the new speed, you dash underneath the beam and fly up behind Frieza, your eyes locked on Frieza with your body still turning. The galactic overlord slowly moves his left hand to react, but…
“HAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAA!” Your body pivots towards Frieza as you let loose the massively amped beam. It collides into Frieza’s side, a direct hit, and pushes your opponent towards the planet. His screams are heard all the way as the tip of the beam crushes him between itself and an island. “Tsk… HRAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAA!” With everything you have, the beam expands, blowing through the island, under the water, and to the surface of the planet. As soon as it hits, the blue beam expands, blinding colours force the girls to look away as raw Ki, mixed with the water and dust of Namek, swirl and expand into a beautifully destructive show.
You release the Kaioken and Kamehameha, not moving, just breathing. Using the times twenty was a rash decision that you’re definitely feeling now, but with a hit like that, you HAD to have done something to Frieza.
You lower your hands to the side, breathing heavily. “That… was for the Saiyans,” you say under a whisper, watching the surrounding waters pour into the hole your attack made.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“Whoa, that was so AMAZING!” Ruby screams hopping in place. “HE DID IT! HE DID IT!”
“I didn’t even know he had that much in him. His power was way more than before,” Weiss adds her two cents.
“He doubled whatever Kaioken he was using before, certainly,” Blake nods. “It could’ve been ten… maybe twenty. I’m not…” Blake’s sensing picks something else up. “Oh no…”
“Blake?” Yang looks to her partner.
“Feel it… Frieza’s…”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
To your dismay, Frieza slowly rises from the water, his chest heaving up and down, his body scratched, bloodied, and stained. Your eyes shake as you watch him ascend.
“Man… I hit him with everything… how is… he..?”
“You… had that power,” he whispers to himself. “A Saiyan… with that power… it hurt…” He rises to your level, body shaking with an unearthly rage. “THAT ACTUALLY HURT!” His voice echoes across Namek as he recklessly charges at you.
With your power drained from the previous attack, you can do nothing but get hit by Frieza’s headbutt and follow up elbow to the chest. You plummet down to Namek, crashing into some ground and rolling across it for a moment. Your hand shakily gets into position to push up when Frieza slams his knee into your back, flicking the same leg forward to push you off the ground and soar over the grass. He instantly teleports before you, pulling his arm back for a planet shattering blow to your cheek. The sudden change in momentum causes your body to proceed past his arm and flip you right into the ground.
“STUPID!” Frieza kicks your ribs. “SAIYAN!” He slams his heel on your back. “MONKEEEEEEEEEEY!” He throws a stronger kick, knocking you out of the hole you were in and back to grazing across the grass, sliding just before the water’s edge. “Not a single person, NO ONE, has damaged my body as you have!”
The power he’s put into his attacks tells you all you need to know about Frieza’s current frustration. It hurt him, obviously, but not nearly enough to put him down. But if a Kaioken times twenty Kamehameha can’t do the job, what can? Especially now that your Ki supply is running dry after that.
Seeing you struggle to even move calms Frieza for a moment. He slowly walks towards you. “Does this mean your pathetic reservoir of strength is dried up? That’s the final cry of the Saiyan Race… how pitiful.”
You slowly push off the ground and barely manage to keep on your feet.
So… I only have one attack left… alright King Kai, let's see how that Spirit Bomb of yours works.
You set your legs slightly apart and raise both hands in the sky.
Please, planet Namek… the waters, the grass, the trees, insects, anything… lend me your power so I can help your world. Surrounding planets, anything you can spare, please help me rid the universe of this monster.
Frieza stops in place, perplexed by your rather unconventional approach of retaliation. “What… are you doing?”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“What is he doing?” Yang questions. “He’s just… standing there with his hands up? You ever seen that before?”
“Beats me,” Blake shrugs. “He’s not getting any stronger…”
“Wait… what is that?” Weiss points to the sky. “Is that… Ki?”
The rest of the girls follow Weiss’ direction, spotting a rather sizable ball of blue and white energy congregating just outside Namek’s atmosphere.
“WHOA!” Yang blurts out. “What is that?”
The rest of the team stays silent, not having an answer… until Ruby speaks.
“It’s what’ll beat Frieza. I’m sure of it!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Slowly but surely, all living things, even the unbeknownst team RWBY, lend their energy to your trump card. Thankfully, Frieza seems more interested in figuring out why than stopping it. You just hope he’ll stay docile for long enough.
“Did you not hear me, you imbecile? I asked what you were doing!” His voice isn’t as calm as the first time.
“Oh… you know…” Your voice weighed down by your task. “Getting a… stretch in… do you mind?”
“I’m not sure what you’re insulting more, my intelligence or my patience,” Frieza squints. “Either way… I’M NO LONGER IN THE MODE FOR JESTS!” Frieza speeds your position and knocks your back with a straight punch, immediately dashing to your back to slap you away with his tail.
You tumble back towards the innards of the island, body wrenching in pain… but you still get back on your feet and raise your arms again. Frieza frowns, finally touching the ground. “I don’t understand… your power isn’t increasing, you’re not… doing anything!”
“Would you rather me be fighting?”
“I’d rather you be grovelling,” he quickly retorts.
“Well… maybe after this?”
Frieza clenches his fist. “Talking to me like that… who do you think you are?”
“(Y/N),” you nod.
With the risk of angering him, the time taken speaking is allowing the Spirit Bomb to grow larger and larger. It’s expanded beyond the small moon and is swiftly making its way to being a rather competent planet, but it’s still not enough. Frieza’s unbelievably strong and it’s going to take something far larger and denser than any of your training attempts. You just have to hope that you can stall him for long enough.
“So… are you really enjoying this?” You continue the conversation.
“Immensely,” Frieza’s cold voice is carried through the wind. He intently gazes at you, sending a telekinetic force that flings you backwards.
Not being such a punishing blow to take, you manage to flip around and land on your feet, putting your hands right back up as you slide to a halt.
“W-Well… I learned that you shouldn’t… shouldn’t indulge in things you enjoy.”
Frieza steadily approaches, scoffing at your attempt to judge him. “But why not? What’s stopping me?”
“Hehe… when I was a kid, I really liked fish. So I would hunt down three or four fish a day and eat them all. My… my friend told me that if I kept doing that there would be no fish left to eat. So… you know… if you keep beating me up there won’t be any me to beat.”
“How utterly simplistic,” Frieza shakes his head. “But what else would I expect from a monkey? I do agree, however, that I have indulged myself too much in this fight… and your nonsensical arm placement is irritating me. I think this is where our battle comes to an end.”
Frieza’s body almost seems to distort as he moves in front of you and shoves his fist into your gut with more force than he’s used before. You crumble to your knees, holding your stomach whilst coughing up blood. Frieza aims a finger at you, the tip adopting a pink glow.
“Like I said... deaf to reason, headstrong,” you look up at Frieza, seeing his sadistic smile and killer attack. “And dead.”
Before he can fire his death beam, a foreign fist forces itself on Frieza’s cheek. The unexpected attack means Frieza wasn’t steady, so he flies off a few yards, crashing into the water.
“Huh?”
“(Y/N)!” Yang lands beside you, helping you to your feet. “Whatever you’re doing, keep doing it! We’ll hold him off.”
“But-“
“DO IT!” Yang makes sure you’re standing then places herself between you and where Frieza went. “We can keep him busy for a bit, but we all know he’d kill us with one attack… actually,” Yang nervously chuckles. “That punch is probably the only hit I’ll land. Just charge your whatever ball thing you got up there! We’ll buy you time.”
While you don’t like your friends fighting Frieza, you can’t argue now. Every second is critical in gathering energy for the Spirit Bomb. You raise your hands in the air yet again and focus the energy.
“How long do you think it’ll take?” She asks, sweat dropping as Frieza’s energy starts to move.
“I… don’t know. I need more time.”
Frieza bursts out of the water, frantically looking around. “Who dares interfere? What pathetic pest…” He spots Yang, sturdily standing to face him. “Oh, you…” He says with an irritated smile. “I thought you would’ve scurried away. But I suppose you’re too stubborn and stupid to live!”
From the side, Blake swipes in from the side, attempting to slice the emperor. Frieza, now on guard, leans back to avoid it.
“Yet another WORM!” Frieza pulls back his arm to punch, exactly what Blake planned. As soon as Frieza goes to punch, Blake uses her Semblance mixed with Dust, replacing herself with a solid rock formation that traps Frieza’s punch.
“What’s this?”
The stone figure quickly heats up, becoming red, then explodes. Frieza almost instantly wafts the smoke away, clearly unfazed by the attack. “These are the last-ditch attempts of fools? I HOPE YOU’RE SATISFIED!” Frieza raises his right hand, a purple aura surrounding it… along with a black glyph. Frieza’s hand jitters within the glyph, unable to free itself. “These tri-“ Another glyph wraps around Frieza's body, locking the free arm against his body.
Weiss has her hand and weapon pointed at Frieza, both Ki and Aura flaring to keep the strength at its peak.
“GGGRRRRR, STOP TOYING WITH ME YOU ANTS!” Frieza fluidly breaks free of Wiess’ glyphs only to have something hit him in the back of the neck. He pauses, eye twitching and body shivering as he slowly turns his body to see Ruby aiming down her sniper.
“It appears these ungrateful, insolent pests desire to push me to the very LIMITS of my patience, even after I showed them such grace,” his voice is quick and irritated, soon followed by a twisted chuckle. “DO YOU KNOW WHO YOU’RE MOCKING, INSECTS! IF YOU WISH TO DIE THEN SO BE IT! PERISH WITH THIS PLANET!”
Frieza raises a finger to the sky and forms a slowly growing black ball with red electricity cascading around it. His twisted, insane laughter accompanied him the entire time.
“(Y/N), I don’t want to rush you, but is it done yet? I don’t think we can stall him longer!” Yang nervously pesters.
“I… it’s not… enough… it’s not enough!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Still watching from the lookout, both Ozpin and Piccolo recognize that this is the final stroke of battle. However the paint splatters will determine the outcome, and they just so happen to have a personal stake.
“Do you think he’d realize?” Ozpin smirks while raising his hand up, palm to the sky.
“No. He’s an idiot,” Piccolo does the same.
The spirit energy from the two beings quickly fires off into space, speeding towards your looming Spirit Bomb faster than any ship could fly.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“I’m… I’m sorry, Yang… it can’t-“ A sudden shock pierces your mind as two massive amounts of energy add to the bomb. “What was, no, it’s READY!” You shout. “EVERYONE MOVE!” You throw your hands down to the ground, manipulating the complete Spirit Bomb to quickly break through Namek’s atmosphere.
Frieza is none the wiser to the massive incoming attack from above… at least until he feels the unprecedented pressure. He slowly turns his head, spotting the corner of the blast so he turns right around. “WHERE DID THIS COME FROM? IS HE…” A brief flash of you holding your arms up enters his mind. “THIS IS WHAT HE WAS DOING?” Frieza throws his hands forward to catch it, trying to push it back, but it’s overpowering him.
“We gotta go!” Weiss and Blake fly away as fast as possible.
Ruby, already pretty far away, still dashes back since the Spirit Bomb is so large.
“(Y/N)! Come on!” Yang flies backwards.
“I… need to make sure…” You struggle speaking. “Come on… GO!” You throw your arms up then back down, giving it even more force.
Frieza desperately tries to push the Spirit Bomb back, but the attack is so dense and powerful that it’s pushing the emperor closer and closer to the planet.
“NO… NO! I CAN… PUSH IT… BACK!” Inch by inch, he’s closer to Namek, second by second, he’s losing the struggle. “N… NOOOOOOOOOOOO!” His grip falls, his power wades, and he’s swept up by the Spirit Bomb.
The massive blue ball, having no resistance now, speeds into the planet’s surface and explodes. The blast fires up, far past the atmosphere, and the intensity shifts the colours of the planet from green and blue to white and black. Even so far away, Ruby, Weiss, and Blake are engulfed by the intense wind and pressure whipping away from the impact area. The same thing happens to you and Yang to a higher degree. The brawler desperately tries to sway herself towards you, knowing you’re completely tapped out. With small bursts, she moves closer and closer while feeling the blowback of such a gale.
“I… GOT YOU!” Yang maneuvers one last time and wraps her arms around your head, pulling you close. “HOLD ON TO ME!”
It seems like hours for everyone as the Spirit Bomb explodes and dissipates, leaving a massive hole in the middle of a near barren ocean. The majority of the islands are either erased or flooded over by the influx of water rushing to fill the changed landmass. Yet, despite what could’ve absolutely decimated the plant… everything calms down. The relaxing sound of rushing water is all that can be heard now on planet Namek.
The only living soul above the water is Blake, who’s not worried at all. The only one who used a significant amount of power was Yang when she hit Frieza, but the rest have plenty of reserves. With her enhanced hearing and Ki sensing, Blake knows that everyone is swiftly swimming to the surface. As she guessed, Ruby is the first to break free, grabbing a small piece of land beside her for support as she coughs.
“Disgusting… I think a fish hit me. I hope it was a fish,” the young leader shivers.
“Ruby!”
The hooded girl perks up, looking over at her Faunus friend. “Blake!” She flies out of the water and meets with her teammate. “Thank goodness you made it. Is everyone else..?”
Blake peeks over her shoulder where Weiss slowly rises out of the water, coughing like her partner did.
“Gross… my clothes are all wet…”
“Weiss!” Ruby shouts, hands around her mouth to amplify the sound. “OVER HERE!”
“I hear you,” the heiress retorts, squeezing some water out of her hair. “We’re not that far apart.”
Weiss reconvenes with her teammates, now leaving two unaccounted for.
“So they’re…”
“I can barely sense (Y/N),” Blake says aloud. “He really did use everything he had.”
“But… we won, right? Can you sense Frieza? I can’t, but you’re better at it than me,” Weiss squints, trying her best to focus.
Out of the water, washed up on a small piece of land, Yang crawls out, desperately breathing after having to hold it for so long. “Man… you could at least try to lighten yourself up a bit. You’re eight thousand pounds of muscle,” Yang huffs, throwing her arm out of the water and dragging you onto the shore so you can breathe.
“Do I… weight that much?” You barely whisper.
“No, dummy… I’m just tired… uuuh,” Yang lets her body go limp, head landing on your arm as you both try to recover.
“YANG!” Ruby soars in, landing on the ground and quickly pulling on her sister’s arm. “Oh, boy, you two are heavy.”
“He’s heavy,” Yang corrects.
“I’m feeling really light,” you hazily speak.
With you and Yang now out of the water and the remaining two members of RWBY landing on the island, you all take a moment to decompress. The fighting is done, the pain is over… for everyone but you. Now that you’re relaxed, all the hits you took from Frieza are thumping at the surface for you to recognize.
“I can’t believe it… I can’t believe we’re… alive! WE’RE ALIVE!” Yang cheers, staring up at the green skies.
“We’re not off the planet ye-“ Sudden spikes of power shoot through all of RWBY’s minds.
“What are-“
“These powers?”
“What?” Your eyes are half-closed, lazily sweeping between the girls. “It’s not Frieza, is it? Please don’t be Frieza… my arms are so numb…”
“No…” Blake shakes her head. “It’s-“
A white glow surrounds all the girls, briskly stealing them away. You stare forward, really unsure what to think. “Did… I eat something? Are Namek’s waters not healthy for me, cause I spent a long time in-“
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“-them,” Just as you speak, you’re teleported to an unknown world. Dark skies, a strange glow behind you, and cold, white stone floors. “I don’t see anyone… hello?” You lean your head back only to bask in the glow of a massive, green dragon with devilish red eyes, brown antlers, along with equally green whiskers and hair.
“Did I die?”
“I have granted your second wish,” the dragon’s booming voice speaks. “State your third.”
“It talks… it grants wishes… ehe… ehehehehehehe,” you can do nothing but laugh, having no energy to do anything else.
“(Y/N)!” Yang, followed by her teammates, runs to your side. “Are you okay?”
“Are you dead too?”
“He’s not okay,” Weiss sighs.
“Stay calm, (Y/N),” Ozpin’s soothing voice enters your ears. You can feel a hand rest on your shoulder… and a sudden cool feeling emanates from it. “You did well, (Y/N). You won.”
“Professor Ozpin? What’re you doing… what… are you doing?” Though using the same words, Ruby means something different the second time.
“Oh, you know, secret Headmaster magic,” he winks at his student, clearly being coy.
But the technique he does seems to heal all your wounds, restoring your body to full health. You bounce right up, slapping your right peck. “Hey! I feel great! Hahahaha, wow, that Saiyan thing really is something. I can’t believe how much stronger I feel.”
The girls smile at you, but their eyes drift away when they realize how many people are around, along with the massive dragon whose source is seven orange balls with stars ranging from one to seven. Namekians all around, including Dende, and Nail. But if Ozpin’s here…
Then it clicks.
“Wait, we’re back on Remnant?” All four blurt out.
Done marvelling at your new power, you take in the sights and recognize Piccolo’s lookout. But all the people, mostly the Namekians, are unfamiliar.
“KAIL!”
That’s certainly familiar to you. You turn to the source, spotting all your fallen Saiyan comrades, healthy as you are. Turles runs up to you, followed by the others who’re walking.
“It’s good to see you,” Turles smiles, friendlier than you ever remember.
“Uh, yeah! Wait… you… all of you…”
“They were dead, yes,” Ozpin stands at your side. “You can thank Piccolo and Shenron for that being rectified,” he gestures towards the dragon and the named Namekian standing before him.
“What is that?” Vegeta gawks. “Those balls… ARE THOSE DRAGON BALLS?”
Almost on cue, seven objects slam around Piccolo’s lookout from orbit. Larger than the ones Shenron has spawned from, are another set of Dragon Balls.
“Dragon!” Vegeta proclaims. “You are to make me-“
Piccolo’s green hand appears over the Saiyan’s mouth, eyes gleaming at him. “You shall not utter another word. By the kindness of Ozpin’s heart, I resurrected all of you. But I will not hesitate to undo that wish if you even dare utilize my Dragon Balls for your selfish whims.”
Infuriated, Vegeta pushes Piccolo’s hand away. “Who do you think you are, Namekian? You shall not stop Prince Vegeta from-“
With a chop quicker than he can see, Piccolo incapacitates Vegeta, letting his body crumble on the floor. Remnant’s Guardian pivots to the others, who seem to be prepared for battle. “Do any of you wish the same?”
Sweat dripping from them, they all lower their offence.
“Hey, come on Piccolo!” You get between him and the other Saiyans. “Cut them some slack! Without them, there’s no way Frieza would’ve been beaten!”
“So you did it?” Kakarot reaffirms, hope in his voice.
You turn to the Saiyans, giving a proud smile and thumbs up. “You bet those tails I did! I gotta say,” you relax your body, resting your hands on your hips as if Vegeta’s sleeping body wasn’t right beside your feet. “I really thought I was done for a few times. When the Kaioken didn’t work, man, my heart’s never beat so fast.”
“I am still waiting for your final wish.”
Piccolo gazes over at the Namekians, now all gathered around Nail. Though he’s never met them before now, he’s glad they’re safe and happy. But he also knows their planet is not safe. Even if Frieza has been beaten, the word of his defeat will spread and that will bring more of Frieza’s army to the planet. He’ll have to explain why they have to remain on Remnant after, but for now…
“(Y/N)!” Piccolo gathers your attention. “I promised to train you if you successfully defeated Frieza, and I shall keep to that promise. But… I offer you something more now. This,” he gestures to Shenron. “Is Shenron, a dragon who can grant any wish you desire. I use him only in dire situations, and only allow others to use him if they’re worthy. For saving Namek, for defeating Frieza, I offer the last wish to you.”
“What? A wish?” Ruby perks up. “Whoa, that’s super lucky!”
“A wish-granting dragon from magical orbs,” Weiss shakes her head. “I know we talked about them on Namek but to see it… it’s beautiful, really.”
“So what’s your wish?” Blake blatantly asks.
“Hey, what about us?” Nappa barks.
Piccolo huffs. “I was not going to revive you, Saiyans,” his head slowly shifts to them. “So consider the fact I included your names to be revived repayment for your battle.”
“You know…” Raditz coughs. “He… has a point.”
“He does, and we weren’t the ones who beat Frieza,” Turles adds, stepping back to be with his Saiyan brothers. “Kail, what do you want?”
“Uh…” You raise a hand to your chin, slowly thinking harder and harder. “I… don’t know. I’ve never really wanted anything. Um…”
“(Y/N),” Ozpin speaks. “If I may, permit me to make a wish for you.”
“Huh?” You respond curiously.
“You may not fully grasp what Shenron can do, but I’m sure my idea will make you quite happy.”
“Um… okay. Can I do that, Piccolo?”
“If that’s what you wish. Ozpin, what is the wish?”
Ozpin saunters beside Piccolo and whispers in his ear, eliciting a nod from the Guardian. “I see. That can be done,” with that, Piccolo approaches Shenron and begins making the wish.
At the same time, Vegeta starts to stir, getting back on his feet. “What… the Namekian…”
“Oh, hey Vegeta!” Your cheerful, loud voice rings in his ears.
He growls. “Shut it, fool… where are the Dragon Balls?”
“Your wish has been granted,” Shenron decrees after his eyes shine a brighter red. “Farewell.”
The Dragon Balls slowly rise, spinning faster and faster until they fly out in every direction.
While you were distracted by Vegeta, team RWBY heard what the wish was.
“(Y/N)!” Yang shouts. “Maybe… maybe you should go home?”
“Go home? Back to Beacon?”
“No,” Blake shakes her head. “Home.”
“Home…” You think about it a bit more. “But it…”
CLICK
“Wait… that…” You open your mind, sensing towards… “No way!” You immediately burst off the lookout and fly away.
“What’s got him excited?” Kakarot curiously questions.
“Why don’t we find out?” Turles suggests.
“Yes. Get off my lookout,” Piccolo sternly speaks.
“I’m going to follow him,” Turles says again, flying off the lookout.
Without much arguing, Kakarot, then Raditz, and then Nappa flies after you with RWBY mixed between. Vegeta stubbornly stands still, not really caring what wish could possibly have made you happy. That is until Piccolo stares him down again.
“Fine, you stupid Namekian!” He takes off and follows.
Ozpin walks to Piccolo’s side, watching all of Namek’s defenders fly off. “You assured all the humans’ memories were altered?”
“It was part of the wish, yes.”
“I see. Thank you. I’m glad your people are safe.”
“For now… but he-“
“I know,” Ozpin lets his head droop. “But let's not rob their victory. They need rest, especially if Frieza’s family decides to take revenge.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Without realizing everyone is following you, your speed is at its max, quickly leaving everyone in the dust. But they’re still able to follow you into the mountainous area past Vale to a small, happy village that’s living their daily lives.
You land on the main road, looking around at all the familiar faces that you haven’t seen… since… the very thought of it makes your heart sink, yet their smiling faces bring it back up. Everyone smiles at you, if a little worried about your attire.
“Hard training session, (Y/N)?” You hear a joke from a stall.
“You’re looking as good as ever!”
As wonderful as it is to see everyone, you immediately start running towards the butcher shop, and that’s when RWBY and the Saiyans land.
“What is this disgustingly… happy place?” Vegeta snarls.
“It’s his home,” Weiss snaps back. “Treat it with respect!”
“I… how dare you speak to me like that, you-“
“Both of you shut up!” Yang sharply whispers. “Not here!”
As you run closer, the front door slides open for Crystal. She steps out into the sun, basking in the rays until she hears the ruckus. You slide to a halt, awestruck that she’s here, alive, standing so close.
“Oh… (Y/N), what’re you… why don’t you have a shirt? Don’t tell me you’ve been going out without clothes on again, I thought we-“
In a flash, you dash at her, wrapping her in a tight yet cozy squeeze as tears run down your eyes.
“Crystal! You’re… I’m so happy to see you!” You spin around with her helplessly in your arms, yet she’s not too upset by it.
“I, well, I’m happy to see you too!” She hugs you back. “It’s been a while, hasn’t it? I’m glad you missed me. Hey, dad! Come on out!” Crystal shouts.
“Honey, I told you it's Lucent when in front of the counter. How else am I…” He steps outside and sees you, shirtless, all over his daughter. “Oh… (Y/N), you’re back… and without a shirt… hm…”
Without hesitation, you pull Lucent into the hug too, waves of joy flooding over you more than ever.
“Hey, why did- stop tha-“
“Dad! Let him hug you!”
“He… ugh,” with Crystal giving him the look he can’t say no.
So you keep your family close, almost in disbelief that these two, that all of them are back. RWBY watches with pride, never seeing you so emotional over something that isn’t fighting. But it’s good to see such a strong fighter having a soft spot. Though, for Yang, she can’t help but feel a little jealous for some reason. She does her best to push it aside, seeing as it is awful to feel jealous over this touching moment, but still…
While Vegeta has his arms crossed and looking away, the others are a little more accepting than even they thought they’d be. For some, it could be because you defeated Frieza, for Turles, it’s because this may be why you’re such a unique, and possibly true, Saiyan, and for Nappa, it reminds him of how he may possibly feel if he ever saw the Saiyans he hasn’t seen in so long. Of course, that would be on the inside and not out. There’s no way a general like him could show such joy when seeing his comrades.
But for you… it’s simply the greatest day of your life. You defeated the strongest guy you’ve ever gone against AND you get to see your family again. To you, there’s nothing better.
And there we go, the Frieza fight is
B-B-But Chinsangan, where is Super Saiyan? Why did Frieza die when he got hit by the same things Goku did to him? Are you just making Kail that overpowered?
Well, overdramatized reader, did I not say things would end up differently? Both for Dragon Ball sagas and RWBY volumes? Well, here’s an example! Frieza got hit by both the Kaioken Kamehameha AND the Spirit Bomb, so, in my opinion, he’s a goner. Plus, I’m the writer so, you know… that’s what I want. But if you want to criticize that, totally okay,
But really, I hope you all enjoyed this Saga as much as I did! We’ll be moving into some RWBY-centric stuff next time! And now all the Saiyans are here! Yaaaaaaaaaaaaaaay, five more characters to handle, yaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaay, I’m not crying you are.
Want to keep up with me? Know what chapter’s coming out next and the progress of them? Follow me on Twitter! Twitter . com (slash) Chinsangan
Questions? Comments? Concerns? Advice? Send me a message!
I also have a Pa tr eon, if you want to check that out! Pat reon . com (slash) Chinsangan
My Discord is now open! If you want to join, either check my bio for a link, find it on my Twitter, or message me directly!
A special thank you to Patreon supporters: MazMan, Big Genatools, and Ride The Lightning
Thank you guys so much for supporting me! It means the world!
And finally, thank you to the Beta Reader: thenameisntimportant
Chapter 24: Remnant's Newest Inhabitants!
Chapter Text
Chapter 24: Remnant’s Newest Inhabitants!
Focus is something that’s extremely inconsistent for you. Focus on becoming stronger? Rock solid. Focus on protecting your friends? Unshakable. Focus on the schooling you’ve wanted for years? About as sturdy as wet paper. Fortunately, or unfortunately in the perspective of anyone else, there is one instance in school where you’re actually extremely interested, aside from staring at the clock or the sparring sessions. You’re in herbology… again. But, like last year, this is a class you’re both well informed about and actually interested in.
Your assignment at the moment, which you’re completely engrossed in, is creating an acceptable ointment from a set of provided plants. This is the one time that the students around you, who’ve gotten accustomed to your unique personality, are actually surprised at how laser focused and efficient you are. Team TREE, who seems to sit around you most of the time, are some of those baffled folks.
While some of the students are struggling to properly mix, or too nervous since their resources are finite and a mistake will be permanent, you haven’t a care in the world. Easily breaking down the leaves, squeezing out juices for a base, everything being mixed in your own hand. It’s surprising to your friends, TREE, that you’re not checking the notes every few seconds.
“Hey,” the female member of TREE speaks up, leaning forward to whisper past two of her teammates. “Where’d you learn to do all that? You’re amazing.”
“Huh?” You finally break focus and meet Eminence’s gaze, still managing to do with work without looking. “Oh, I… well, I lived down in the forest of… oh, I remember… Samus? No… Sollytits?” That one makes the few people around you chuckle. “Anigma! That’s the continent.”
“No, it isn’t,” Topaz shoots you down without losing focus on his work.
“Aw, I thought I was getting it.”
“It’s close. You’ve got spirit,” Ecru leans past her sister and gives you a reassuring thumb up.
“Why’re you encouraging him?” Topaz shakes his head, still committing to the assignment.
“Why do you always put him down?” Rebar nudges his friend with his lanky arm. “He’s our teacher. Oh, hey,” Rebar switches his focus to you. “Are you doing Ki training tonight?”
“Oh, yeah!” You say with contagious enthusiasm. “It’ll be fun to help out others again. Have you been keeping up on-“
“(Y/N)?” The mechanically distorted voice of Professor Peach echoes through the intercom. “If you’re being so loud, I assume you’re done?”
“Oh,” you sit at attention, unsure where to look when speaking. “I am, professor. It was super easy,” you quickly return to a relaxed manner.
“Come place it on the scanner. It’s on my desk.”
Without thought, you scrape the ointment into the wooden mortar that was provided for everyone. When done, you fly out of your chair and towards the front of the class, nonchalantly wiping off the remnants of the ointment onto your pants. You gently land beside the rather barren desk, only a speaker, an inactive tablet, and the scanner she spoke of. You place the mortar on the scanner and watch as it lights up, making all sorts of noise and achieving its job… somehow. You’re not very technically inclined.
“Interesting. It’s not mixed together how I asked, but it’s still extremely potent. Good job, (Y/N). You’ve done this before.”
“Yep,” you nod, instinctively looking for someone to have eye contact with, but it ends up being you aimlessly glancing around the room. “All the time. I know everything about the plants around here.”
“Indeed?” Her cheery voice almost becomes competitive, something other students catch but you, being you, don’t. “Well, how about we see? A little fun quiz that everyone can take part in!”
The class moans in disappointment, all of them not even finished the current assignment. You hop back, slowly flying yourself back to the desk and sitting on it. You have a big smile on your face, contagious to those who’ve given you their focus. The lights dim and the projector flashes a picture on the screen. It has red petals with a blue center, along with a green stem that’s filled with white dots.
“What’s this flower?”
“Oh, I know that one!” You immediately point to it. “I remember the name cause it got yelled at me a lot. It’s the… Terratorn,” you cautiously say, clearly unsure of yourself. “Right?”
“Ding! That’s right!” The teacher cheerfully announces. “Do you know what it does?”
“Hehe, yep!” You say with a laugh, now spinning yourself up and down with your legs crossed. “I remember once I was suuuuper hungry and just ripped it out to eat.”
“What?” A student calls out. “But that can kill you!”
“That’s what I was told,” you turn to face the student, upside down. “A lot… a lot…” The horrid memory of Lucent and Crystals incessant lecturing for months, and teasing years later. “But I was fine!” You casually say. “I was just kinda… stuck for a while.”
“If you didn’t know, students, there’s a hypothesis that the carefully extracted juice from the Terratorn flower can be coated on a weapon and used to cut through Aura,” her voice returns to a matter-of-fact, teacher tone. “Now, how about this one?”
The picture flickers to a rather flat plant, keeping itself close to the ground with plenty of leaves for photosynthesis. It’s an all green flora, save for a single yellow patch on the tip of the stem.
“Oh, oh!” You point at it… still defying gravity on a whim. “I know that one! It definitely helps with wounds! I don’t know what it’s called, though. But I’ve used that a LOT! It’s so slimy and fun to play with.”
“Hey, (Y/N),” Ecru calls your attention, holding the small plastic case that was given to all students. He’s pointing at one of the labels, reading “Yertta.”
“Y… Yertta? YERTTA!” You confidently declare.
“You’re right, (Y/N)! The Yertta flower is known for its rather soothing properties when applied to wounds. It’s very healthy for our bodies, too. NEXT ONE! Oh, this is so fun!”
The screen flickers to a completely white flower with merely shades of its original colour giving it variety. You stare completely deadpanned at the image, clearly expressing you have no idea what you’re looking at.
“I don’t know what that is. A white flower?” You fly in a little closer, flipping to the right side up, and examine it further. “I’ve never seen something like this around here.”
“It’s an Atlesian Angel!” One of the girls in the back calls out. “It’s soothing in tea!”
“Correct, Saph,” Peach calls out. “You’ve been to Atlas before, (Y/N). Did you not see one?”
“I was in a cell most of the time,” you casually say. “Whoa… I wonder how many flowers there are that I haven’t seen. Come on, Peach, gimme another one!” You eagerly rub your hands together.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
With the class being reduced to a game of “Guess the Flower,” it went by really quickly for you. In no time you’re packed up and out the door, sprinting down the hallway. There’s plenty of loitering students, all having their own conversations. Everyone gets an extra day off, so this weekend has been desired by all for weeks. Of course, not by you. You have no idea what holidays are in general. You always rested every so often, as it was part of the Turtle School way. Plus, you just went on a trip to space, which you assume is the same as a holiday. Either way, you’re definitely out of the student loop. Not that you were one to be in the know. You rely on RWBY for that.
You approach the final turn, shifting your body and sliding across the floor on your right let, ready to sprint forward, when…
“Hey there,” Yang greets, leaning against the wall you just passed.
“Oh, hey Ya… Yaaaaaaaaaaaa-“ Without adjusting your balance, you completely fall to your left, hitting the ground hard. Even still, you’re unphased while looking up at the bombshell. “What’re you doing there?”
Yang shakes her head, not even surprised you’d find this situation suitable for casual conversation. “I was handing in a project and I sensed you coming,” she steps forward and offers a supportive hand. “So, I thought I’d catch you. We haven’t talked much since we got back.”
“Oh, yeah,” you get back on your feet, chuckling. “I’ve had a lot of homework…”
“Have you done it all?”
“Nope,” you shake your head. “It’s all confusing to me. But I have been at my old village a lot too.”
“I know,” Yang leans on her hip and crosses her arms. “I’ve been keeping tabs on you.”
“Really?” You tilt your head to the side. “Well, thanks!” You end with a cheery smile and thumbs up.
Yang rolls her eyes in amusement. “Come on, (Y/N),” she waves you to follow while starting her path to the door. You quickly catch up, attentive to her speech. “I did have another reason for stopping you. It’s a long weekend, so me and Ruby invited our team and JNPR to our house. It’s a big sleepover.”
“Sleepover? I remember Crystal used to say that when I slept at their place. So you’re getting together just to sleep?”
“What, no?” Yang is flabbergasted that you’d believe they’d do something so boring. Yang pushes the door open, assuring she uses enough force to let you follow without trouble. “We’re going to have fun at Patch, tell stories, play games, eat food, and have fun together.”
“But we always have fun and eat food.”
Yang sighs, stopping in place while shaking her head. “Yes, we do. But we’re doing it somewhere else. Do you want to join us?”
“Of course!” You put your hands on your hips, confident in your answer. “As long as you don’t mind if I disappear once in a while. Piccolo is finally training me and I don’t want to miss out on any of it.”
“Training? What do you have to train for? You beat a galactic ruler!”
“Well…” Your eyes shift to the sky, a certain wave of calm crashing down on you. “I don’t know. It’s fun. Besides, I couldn’t beat Frieza by myself… I wasn’t anywhere strong enough, so,” you look back at her, surprisingly tranquil despite the more determined nature of your words. “I have a long way to go.”
Yang can’t help but adopt your happiness, even if you’re still a complete dolt. “As long as you’re happy. So, I’m marking you down as a yes. You better show up, or we’ll come drag you there.”
“I will!” You nod, feet rising off the ground. “Anyway, I have to go see Piccolo. I’ll see you later, Yang!” You wave, ready to burst forward when someone calls to you.
“Hey, (Y/N)!” A familiar boy waves at you. You don’t remember his name, but you certainly recall him from your Ki club. “I can’t believe I caught you,” he stops nearby Yang, breathing a little heavily from his sprint over here.
“Oh, heeey… uh… what’s up?” You quickly ask, covering up your blank on his name.
“Oh, right,” he recollects himself, standing and speaking like regular. “I was talking to some of my friends and we were wondering if you’ll still be doing the club tonight? We weren’t sure if you’d go off somewhere.”
“Oh, for sure!” You clench your fist in front of you. “I’ll definitely do it. I think someone else asked me that too… did they?” You scratch your cheek. “Oh well,” you brush it off with a shrug. “If you see anyone who wants to join, let them know it’s still on!”
“Alright, good to know!” He immediately goes for his scroll and starts typing. “Thanks! I’ll leave you and, oh!” He’s shocked when finally recognizing Yang. “Yang… wow… I’ve seen you… but not up close.”
Yang raises a brow and leans forward. “What’s that supposed to mean, huh?”
“Oh, I, uh, well, you’re so famous and, you know, I just-“
“She’s famous? For being super strong? Or maybe those cool red eyes. I like her purple eyes, though,” you land on the ground, getting a good view of her pearls, which are focused on you at the moment. “They’re really nice to look at.”
“Oh…” Yang’s caught off guard by the compliment. “Well,” she quickly gets her composure back, closing her eyes and confidently smiling. “You can stare anytime.”
“But your eyes are closed,” you point out.
“That’s not…” Yang just pauses and sighs. “You missed the point.”
“Well, my bad,” you chuckle. “I’ll see you both later. I really have to go!” You wave and burst off into the air, leaving a flaring trail of white ki in your midst.
“Whoa… he’s so amazing.”
Yang watches you with a warm smile, as if nobody can see her. As if it was just you two. “You don’t know the half of it.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You twirl through the air, a wide smile on your face as you enjoy the cool breeze blowing against your rapidly moving body. It’s the feeling of complete freedom and peace. Despite what you told Yang about your training, you can’t help but feel a certain level of satisfaction from your actions. You managed to beat a guy who was beyond your imagination in power, and saved an entire planet of people to boot. So much has been thrown at you, but it’s all been so fulfilling. Meeting Saiyans, learning more about them, defeating Frieza, avenging your race… if you had told someone random, or had someone write it in a book, most would believe it’s a crazy fantasy. But for you… it’s just the way life goes.
Speaking of, you look down and notice a massive forest that you used to use for speed and reaction training. A wide smile grows on your face before you swoop down, increasing speed every second. You push yourself to near max speed, entering the forest and zipping through it like the wind itself. At this speed, all the small creatures believe they’re being invaded by hundreds of men. You go around and around, keeping your speed at max while weaving through. To add a little spice, you start throwing up small yellow ki blast into the air, creating a rain cloud of lethal ki. Each of them start to fall at different speeds, threatening to turn the forest into a crater. You stop in the middle, take a long, deep breath to center yourself, and disappear. As each yellow ball drops into the treeline, you appear and chop it right in half, nullifying it. Your eyes are moving a mile a minute, locking onto every threat that penetrates your forest.
“Hiyayayayayayayayaya,” you shout while speeding to each and every blast, rendering them useless. Punches, kicks, whatever it takes, you make sure not a single of your creations continues their existence.
You spot the last one plummeting down, not even hitting the treeline yet. You circle around and burst forth from the leaves, mid spin, and kick the ki right back to the air. The small collection of ki spirals away until it finally explodes high in the sky. A fitting little show for your warm up. You put your hands on your hips, staring up at the bright blue sky and smile.
That was pretty fun. But I should get to… huh?
You hear some screaming and vrooming a short distance away, followed by hungry snarls. A couple, man and woman, are frantically driving down the dirt road with a pack of Beowolves on their tail. The woman is holding a standard pistol, but isn’t hitting any worthy shots. The guy is doing his best to keep his cool under pressure, but this is clearly out of his depth. You roll your shoulders and disappear.
The man, constantly looking over his shoulder to see how close their demise is, barely even notices as you appear in front of the car, leg already pulled back. You zip right by the man’s head, flipping his abnormally long hair even more. Your leg connects with the closest Beowolf, acting like a blade to cut right through the beast’s torso. You spin around and let your natural momentum fill your elbow with power as it slams right into the snout of the second Beowolf. That one is knocked over a mile back, instantly indicating that it’s immune to blunt attacks. You charge a little bit of Ki in your finger and shoot a very thin beam of Ki that, on contact, explodes.
“Oh yeah, I can use Krillin’s thing,” you said to yourself, looking up and tossing a small ball of Ki into the air. It swiftly breaks off into four beams that plummet down upon the Grimm and turns them to ash. You smile at your work, then turn around to spot the still fleeing couple. You seemingly disappear from the spectating girl’s view and appear beside the car, casually keeping pace with the vehicle’s max speed on foot.
“You two okay?”
“OH GOD!” The man swerves the car away, knocking his poor unsuspecting friend out of the car. Without hesitation, you catch the girl before she can hit the ground. She grips onto your skin for dear life, curling up and panting from pure adrenaline and fear.
“Hey,” you calmly say, gently shaking her to snap back to reality. “It’s okay. You’re safe.”
“I am?”
“Yeah, you are. Unless I don’t know something. I don’t know a lot of things.”
Your silly rambling manages to ground the girl, slightly relieving the mini panic attack she’s going through.
The car comes back around, stopping nearby so the boy can hop out.
“Carol, are you okay?” He shouts, coming to a stop right in front of you and putting a hand on her arm. “I’m so sorry… I just…”
You put her down, assuring she’s able to stand on two feet. She immediately dashes into her friend, pulling him into a deep hug. She doesn’t say a word, just cries and holds on tight. Hs smiles, both seeing this as a little touching and simply glad she’s okay.
He looks over to you with a warm face. “Thank you, guy. Really, I don’t know if we’d have made it.”
“Hey, don’t worry about it! I’m a certified student of Beacon and I gotta do what I can!” You say with a tall thumbs up.
“Heh… you’re a positive dude, huh? Strong too.”
“Mhm! Do you need a ride?”
“You can do that?”
“Carry you all in the car? Sure thing!”
“Heh… well, thank you but I think we need a relaxing drive.”
“Flying is pretty relaxing.”
“For you, sure, but not us. Thank you for everything, though. Come on, Carol, we’re going back to Vale.”
“Mmm… mhm,” her slight whimpers are all she responds with.
You watch as they get situated in the car and, with one last wave, they drive off.
“Glad they’re okay. Let's get to Piccolo,” you launch from the spot and towards his lookout. “Maybe I’ll stop by the Namekians while I’m there. Definitely Piccolo first though… but he’s a Namekian so, you know, it’s still the same thing, right? What did Blake call that… mental… mental gymyism? I don’t remember.”
You happily twirl through the air, leisurely flying through the air with nowhere near your max speed.
“You don’t seem very eager for training,” Piccolo’s harsh, deep voice speaks behind you.
“GAH!” You turn around, spinning around a few times before halting.
Piccolo, arms crossed and mood following.
“Oh, I, uh, you know, was just enjoying the fresh air.”
“Do not take my offer of training for granted. I may be personally indebted to you for saving my home planet, but that does not mean I have to provide any of what I offered if you do not take me seriously.”
“I am taking you seriously!” You wave your hands frantically. “I’ve even been practicing that one technique you showed me.”
“Can you do it yet?”
“It’s only been a few days!”
“And?”
You let your face drop… then smirk. “Kind of. But it’s not totally ready yet!”
“You’ll show me your progress later. For now, you must get stronger to access the final gift I have for you. Now,” Piccolo uncrosses his arms and gets in a very casual battle-ready stance. “Show me how much stronger you are.”
You smirk, brushing your nose with your thumb before charging in with a massive influx of Ki. You throw a punch that Piccolo weaves past. He’s immediately impressed at your increase of speed, even if you’re still just warming up. But even more impressive is your drastic increase in power within such a short time. He’s curious how strong you could become if challenged properly. Perhaps even the other Saiyans…
You spin around and kick, which Piccolo descends to avoid, but you keep spinning, charging blue energy in your hand to thrust at him and fire, engulfing the guardian. Piccolo is pushed back a bit, arms in an X to defend himself. He flicks his arms up, redirecting the entire blast into the air. With that gone, he immediately bursts forward and connects a devastating punch that both catches you off guard and sends you spiralling towards the direction of the lookout. Breaking through the white fluffy clouds that dot the sky, you eventually manage to stop in the middle of these floating marshmallows. You rub your cheek, a little disappointed that you let yourself be hit so easily.
But you have no time to scold yourself; you can sense Piccolo rapidly approaching. With a quick pivot, you dodge one of Piccolo’s fists and go for a counter attack punch in the gut. As your fist seemingly connects, the Namekian teleports right behind you and drives his elbow into your back, forcing you to spiral towards the ground.
Piccolo relaxes, waiting for you to recover. After a short time of thinking on how to properly train you, he’s come up with a way to perfectly exploit your Saiyan genes. Like how you utilized the aspect of a great power boost after near death, Piccolo is going to exploit your capability of growing stronger against a more powerful opponent. He’s keeping a note on how much of your power you’re using, and making sure he’s always keeping his power well above yours. Not enough that he’d put you down in one attack, but sufficient for you to keep struggling and pushing forward. It just turns out that beating you down over and over is what’ll get you there. Piccolo has no problem with that.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Deep in the snowy mountains at the north of the planet, near the great Atlesian military, is where the Saiyans have chosen to make their temporary home. A home by their standards is a secluded cave in the cliffside, hosting a small plateau to walk around. They have a fire inside the cave which is surrounded by dinosaur bones, most have been picked clean.
Vegeta, Prince of all Saiyans, is staring off the cliffside into the blizzard. He doesn’t need to see to know that Kakarot, Turles, and Raditz are training a short distance away. Between the fact he can sense their massive Ki and the shockwaves the warriors are causing, it’s quite clear something is going on. His arms are crossed, brow furrowed, and about as brooding as Nappa would expect of him. The hulking Saiyan wipes his mouth, tossing away the bone that once hosted a few pounds of meat.
“Not joining them?” Nappa asks, still sitting.
“Why would I waste my time?”
Nappa lets out a laugh. “Act like that and we’ll leave you behind.”
“What did you say?” Vegeta barks, turning his waist to eye his subordinate. “To insinuate that those clowns could ever reach my level-“
“Don’t act all high and mighty anymore, Vegeta,” Nappa stands up and approaches. “You were stronger than all of us, that’s true, but after Namek that gap isn’t too large. The four of us together could overthrow you,” he ends with a smirk.
“Don’t you dare try to threaten me, Nappa,” Vegeta turns his entire body around, clenching his fist before him, “I will turn you to dust without remorse.”
Nappa can feel the pressure exerting from Vegeta. Even if the prince has always been cruel, that’s the way of the Saiyans. Nappa respects that. But things are shifting for the Saiyans. They’re stuck on this planet, free from Frieza’s rule, and with no direction. They all need something to drive them now, aside from endlessly becoming stronger.
“Get out of my sight, Nappa. Go waste your time training with those weaklings.”
“Hmph,” Nappa grunts. “While you stand there, doing nothing, Kail grows even stronger. You can sense that too, can’t you?”
Vegeta has nothing to respond with, so Nappa leaves it alone. He respects his prince, respects his power, but now there’s a Saiyan whose strength is beyond imagination and Vegeta wants to ignore it. Turles has brought you up in conversation a few times now. Your different life, your different perspective. True, Nappa would’ve delighted in beating you to paste before, but it’s a different time now. You’re intriguing to the Saiyan veteran. Whether the others admit to it or not, you’re intriguing to them too. Even with all of Vegeta’s brooding and pride, Nappa’s certain that he’ll come around to interacting with you. There’s no way the prince will accept being the second fiddle of the Saiyan race.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
On the lookout, you lay flat on your back, completely exhausted. Your clothes are dirtied, scratched up a bit, but it’s not an uncommon occurrence. It’s actually more surprising that you only got a few scratches and bruises while training under Piccolo’s near criminal three-hour training session. At least he let you have a drink of water once an hour. It was still a lot of fun, though. You know Piccolo is holding back for your sake, but having a stronger opponent only pushes you to surpass whatever roadblock Piccolo puts in front of you.
“You performed adequately, Saiyan.”
“I… did what?” You puzzlingly ask.
Piccolo sighs. “You did well. You’re already leaps ahead of when we started.”
“Well… that’s good to know… but when does my body… come back?”
“Hmph,” Piccolo relaxes his body, turns towards you, and tosses a senzu bean on your chest. “When you eat that.”
“Aaaah… senzu… bean…” Your arm, slow and shaky, lifts off the ground and goes for the bean. It takes an excruciatingly long time for your arm to reach the glorious healing bean. Finally, your hand splats on the green bean, fingers dragging along your undershirt as the senzu is snatched. You lift your head up and toss the beautiful healer towards your mouth. Instead, it bops off your nose, lands on your cheekbone, and falls beside your face. “Life isn’t fair.”
“Indeed,” Piccolo’s irritated voice leaks out.
You furrow your brow, focusing on the bean and lift it up with your own sort of telekinesis. It’s Ki based, unlike what you’ve seen Professor Goodwitch do. You hover the bean over your mouth and let it drop, finally consuming the lovely bean and restoring your power to max. You spring up, flipping around in a ball a few times before touching the ground.
“Alright! I’m ready to go!”
“Good. We’re going to continue our training with the Instant Transmission,” Piccolo states.
“Oh, yeah! You used it a few times when we were training, right? Guess I was actually going to hit you,” you say with a wide, proud grin.
“No, I was hoping you would do the same. Utilizing it in battle and transportation are two different skills.”
“Like… actually?”
“I… no, I,” Piccolo sighs, recollecting himself. “Just use it. The Namekians below the Lookout, lock onto them and try,” Piccolo places two fingers on his forehead, keeping an eye on you.
“I’ll try. I haven’t been able to do it right, though.”
“Remember, when locking onto a target’s Ki you have to transmit your own to their location. It’s reliant on your ability to focus on your target’s signature the entire time.”
“I remember,” you close your eyes, easily getting a lock on the nearby group’s Ki. “It’s just… the application…”
Even if you’re focused on that Ki, transferring your entire body there isn’t so easy. Being able to dematerialize yourself and appear somewhere else is something completely out of your field. But so was Kaioken, so was the Spirit Bomb, and you managed to master those. But that was over the course of a year. It’s barely been a week of training with the Instant Transmission, and the best you can do is make your body flicker a bit with no actual teleportation. It doesn’t surprise Piccolo that you’re still unable to do it. He lowers his hand and starts to walk backwards.
“Forget the others. Focus on me. Teleport to me.”
“Oh, uh… sure…” You take a deep breath and shift your focus to Piccolo, easily locking onto his powerful, nearby signature. However, even with the target being so close, it’s still too difficult to teleport across the lookout. Your calm concentration becomes strained, easily notable by Piccolo.
“Stop!”
Your focus wavers as you look to your trainer. “What?”
“Take a moment to relax. We’ll try again when you’ve collected yourself.”
“Oh… sure… sorry. It’s just a strange technique.”
“It was an interesting technique to learn. The Yardrats have many unique techniques.”
“Yardrats?” You tilt your head.
“The species I learned this technique from. I spent many years wandering the galaxy before becoming the Guardian of Remnant. I learned many techniques from a variety of species. Though, your Kaioken and Spirit Bomb were ones I’m unfamiliar with. I’m sure there are a vast amount of legendary warriors in the Otherworld that know techniques lost to the universe.”
“Huh… you know,” you start smiling. “This is the most you’ve ever said to me, Piccolo.”
Despite speaking about his genuine thoughts, this is what you retort with. It’s absolutely simple and has no nuisance at all… even if it is accurate. He won’t deny that beating you down for a few hours did lighten his mood a little. But you’re certainly a lot more tolerable than the other Saiyans, and your battle on Namek deserves a lot of respect. You’re no longer Ozpin’s little project, you’re a legitimate warrior who’s proven himself in the universe. If only…
Piccolo, momentarily lost in thought, brings himself back to the world to see you lying on the ground, eyes closed, fingers to your forehead. He smirks, soon crossing his arms and watching your progress. You still have a long way to go, but Piccolo will assure you get there as quickly as possible.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Even with another two hours of practise, you’re still unable to teleport yourself even across the Lookout. Where one person might get demoralized, you just find it to be a great challenge and reason to push forward.
“I’ll get it next time, definitely!” You say with a determined grin, standing in front of the structure that acts as Piccolo’s home on the Lookout.
“Doubtful, but we’ll see,” Piccolo shakes his head. “We’ll continue our training tomorrow.”
“Alrighty!” You turn away to the bright open sky, which is starting to be painted orange. “The sun’s going down…” You note, taking a few steps that soon turn into a jog. “I said I was going to visit Crystal today. But I still have that training to do…” You shift to a full sprint, soon jumping forward, past the edge of the lookout and start falling. “AND I was invited to that sleepover!” You spin around a few times, rapidly coming closer and closer to the forest. “Maybe I can bring Crystal along with the others. I wonder if Lucent would let her…”
You soon swoop up, passing over the treeline and treading over the small camp that the Namekians have made. Even with the Grimm as a threat, Nail is more than enough to keep his people safe, not even taking into consideration Piccolo’s watchful eye. You made sure to tell them exactly how to deal with the Grimm: Beat’em, blast’em drown’em, or throw’em into space. It’s rare for a Grimm to be immune to the first three, but if they do run into that then space is a guaranteed victory.
As you pass over the camp, some of the young Namekians, including Dende, spot you leisurely passing by. The young ones enthusiastically wave, and the elders follow their children’s example, if a little more respectful. You want to stop and talk with them some more, but you have a lot planned for the rest of the night. You’re just glad they’re settling in well. From what you understand, the Namekians can use their Dragon Balls to transport themselves back to Namek, but since Frieza and his force went silent on the planet, Piccolo and Ozpin predicted his family would investigate. It was unanimously decided that remaining on Remnant until Namek is certainly safe is the best course of action for the peaceful race.
You wave back at the Namekians with a wide smile, assuring them your friendliness. It’s unnecessary, as they already consider you a hero and savior of their people, but it’s just in your nature to keep up the positivity.
You quickly burst away, towards Crystal’s village. As you travel, you think about what you know. People investigating Frieza’s disappearance… you remember what Turles said, about the tyrant’s brother and father, and how they’re just as strong or stronger than Frieza was. That alone is so mind boggling to you. The fact that someone as strong as Frieza exists was insane enough, but to consider that there are two others that could measure up… it’s both scary and exciting to think about.
But you’re about to reach Crystal, so you shouldn’t get too excited. At least not in that way. You’re excited you get to hang out with her again. Yang wasn’t wrong when saying you’ve been spending a lot of time with Crystal since returning from Namek. How couldn’t you? She, and everyone else in the village, died because you transformed into a monster and killed them all. You’ve gone to the otherworld and another planet since you’ve last seen them, and you want to make up for all that time… especially because their memories aren’t correct. Part of the wish, as you were told, as all of the members of the village, whether they died or survived, have had their memories altered to account for the time lost. As part of that, they all believe that you’ve simply been absent in school the entire time up to the point where you, RWBY, and the Saiyans arrived.
This has a side effect of Lucent and Crystal criticizing you for still only being a first year despite spending two years at the school, but you can put up with that if it means they’re alive and safe. You wouldn’t have let it bother you even if all the unfortunate events never took place.
And so, you come into range of the village, assuring to hover right over it before letting gravity pull you back to the ground. The loose tie of your belt flutters upward, almost trying to reach for your equally waving hair. In seconds, you hit the height of the buildings, slowing yourself down so you don’t make a big mess of the landscape.
“Dropping in, (Y/N)?” One of the women asks. You recognize her as the wife of the jeweler, but she never really worked on the stall. He always liked selling the products himself. But now she’s the one at the front stall of Lucent’s store.
“Yep,” you turn around and smile. “So… why’re you there? Where’s Lucent?”
“He’s out for a bit. Hunting or something. I wasn’t too excited to do this since now I smell like meat. Not exactly what I imagined experiencing as a little girl, but he said he'd give us a nice dinner. I guess what he’s getting won’t be sold. You’re gonna eat it all, huh?”
“Nope,” you shake your head. “I’m looking for Crystal. Is she here?”
“Yes, actually,” the woman looks over her shoulder. “Hey, Crystal! (Y/N) is here!”
“Comiiiiing!” Her angelic voice seeps out of the building.
It takes no more than fifteen seconds for Crystal to come out, brushing herself off. “Hey, (Y/N)!”
“Sorry I’m late,” you immediately apologize. “I got caught up in training.”
“It’s okay, I knew you’d make it. So, do you want to explore? Or are you hungry?”
“Actually, I was wondering if you wanted to come out with me!”
“Come out with you?” She raises her brow.
“Like a date?” The woman says with a teasing voice.
“Uh… crap, I forgot what those were,” you say, smacking your head to try and recall the word. “Well, apparently we have a long weekend, so I was invited to my friend’s house. It’s their team, another team, and me. You should come along too!”
“Really?” Crystal is honestly confused that you’d bring her along to a school related event. You’ve never done that before. “W-Well, of course! It’s… a…”
“Sleepover! That’s what they called it.”
“For the weekend?”
“Yep!”
“That sounds lovely! You should totally go, Crystal. When was the last time you were out of the village?” The looming lady chips in.
“You’re right,” she replies with a smile. “And if you want me there, I’d love to go. Will some of your friends who showed up earlier be there?”
“The girls, yeah! You’ll get to meet all my friends! I’m sure you’ll all get along great!”
“Okay… um, so, are we going now?”
“I… uh…” The uncertainty instantly sets in. “I don’t know. I’ll go ask!”
“And I’ll start packing. Would you mind letting my dad know if I’m gone before he’s home?”
“Of course, dear!”
You instantly take off, barely making it out of the village before Crystal is screaming at you. “(Y/N)!”
You stop and turn around. “Yeah?”
“Why not just text them with your scroll?”
“My… scroll- oh yeah!” You pull the scroll out of your sash while landing back on the ground. You browse through the little piece of technology, trying to find Yang’s contact. “You know, it’d probably be faster if I flew there,” you finally start to type in a message.
“Sure, but now we get to hang out a little longer. Come on, we can hang out in my room until we’re ready.”
Crystal leads the way while you follow along, trying to type out a proper message.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
You lay on Crystal’s bed, snoring away while Crystal packs up the last of her belongings. Most of it is clothing with some bathroom necessities, but it’s quite a bit. She sadly didn’t have you as a reference for what she’d be doing there, such as swimming, so she’s prepared for it all. She’s become more excited the more she’s thought of it, mostly because she gets to really meet your friends. You are her best friend, she cares about you immensely, so meeting and learning about the people you’ve adapted into your life is important to her. She would assume you feel the same way, whether you’re conscious of it or not.
She zips up the suitcase she’s stealing from her father and sets it by the door. You’re still sleeping, as you have been for a few hours. But you’re nearing the time that Yang asked you to drop by. Crystal leaves her room and looks in the main room, her father still absent. This isn’t totally uncommon, but she can’t help but worry. It’s her dad, her only family. It’s only natural for the young girl to be concerned.
Crystal sighs, her isolated face downcast without her father. But she shouldn’t put such a weight on her heart before this little adventure. She turns around, grabbing her scroll and typing up a message for her father. She doesn’t want to make her father worry when he comes home. As she types, she goes beside you and taps your head.
“Wake up, (Y/N). It’s time to go.”
“Mmmmmmmmmmm,” you roll onto your stomach, getting comfortable again.
Crystal turns around, hops, and lands on your back. “Come on,” she says, putting her scroll away now that her message has been delivered. “Come oooooooooon,” she wiggles in place, grinding on your back.
“I… I HAVE TO GET TO CLASS!” You shout, shooting right up and knocking Crystal over onto the floor. “Oh, Crystal!” You jump off the bed and help her back to her feet.
“I should’ve known better,” she laughs off. “Are you ready?”
“Yeah, sure!” You nod. “I’ll have to leave after I drop you off,” you say whilst turning around, approaching and opening the window.
“Why?” She collects her belongings and follows you to the window.
You wrap a hand around her waist and hover out of the window, then ascend into the sky. You adjust, making sure Crystal can get comfortable on your back.
“I teach some of the others how to, you know, fly and stuff,” you explain while starting your course to the Xiao Long household.
“You’ve never taught me!”
“You’ve never asked! I don’t think I’m very good at it, though. I disappear a lot.”
“You are really fast. I mean, look at how much ground we’re passing,” she tightens her legs’ grip on you while leaning to the side, watching the swiftly passing terrain.
“I’m not going that fast,” you innocently state. “If you hold on really tight, we can go faster.”
“Oh… um…” Crystal leans against you, wrapping both arms around you so the suitcase dangles below. “Okay… should I hold on really tight?”
“Pretty tight, yeah. Give me this,” you gently take her luggage into your own hands. “Alrighty!” Ensuring your small Ki barrier is sufficient to keep Crystal safe, you blast off at speeds that Crystal can’t even comprehend. Within seconds, you reach your destination.
“I… aah… did we enter another dimension or something?” Her vision is almost blurry, flashing – brain not comprehending exactly what just happened.
“Uh… no,” you shake your head, slowly descending to the sisters’ house. “We just flew.”
“Were you always that fast?”
“Huh? No, I’ve gotten really strong and fast recently,” you land on the ground, letting Crystal get her bearings after entering the twilight zone. “Are you ready?”
“Not really… I could use a minute.”
“Hey, (Y/N)!” Yang’s familiar voice calls out.
You and Crystal look at the door where Yang is waving. “We were wondering when you’d show up.”
“I’m on time!” You confidently shout back. “We’re on time, right?” You whisper to your friend.
“We are.”
“Awesome!”
You and Crystal approach the house, but you stop a few feet back. “Well, I have to go do something. I’ll be back, though. You’ll take care of Crystal, right?”
“Of course. We can do some girl talk; kick Ren and Jaune out.”
“It’s wonderful to formally meet you,” Crystal bows. “I’ve heard so much about you.”
“You have?” Yang raises a brow.
Not really paying attention to their conversation, you take off into the sky and make a b-line towards Beacon. With your speed, it takes absolutely no time to reach the moonlit school grounds. There’s already a few students there, practicing the basic Ki exercises you’ve taught them. Team TREE is even there, which is always nice to see. They’re really good friends of yours. This is actually the first time you’ve seen them out of uniform, but you don’t think they’re in anything fancy. All of them are in baggy pajama pants, each being in a different colour – Topaz in his name’s colour, Ecru in his signature sandy colour, matching his hair and eyes, Ruber in magenta pants that resemble his hair, and Eminence in violet.
You land, taking a quick breath and putting on a smile. “Did any of you sense me coming?”
“No,” the voices blend together.
“Oh… well, crud,” you cross your arms, perplexed. “Well, we’re gonna have a good lesson. I’ve gotten a whole ton stronger, so I think I can help you guys out.”
“How does your strength help us?” Topaz immediately questions, quick to point out any flaws in what you do like the true friend he is.
“Well… uh…” You scratch your chin. “I really know my own strength, so it’ll help you guys! Cause I know and then you’ll know!”
“No, no, I follow the logic,” Eminence confidently nods. “I don’t think you give him enough credit.”
Topaz slowly turns toward her, face totally done with the sass she’s doling out. The girl giggles, content with her fooling.
“So, I want to see what all of you have learned or mastered since last time. Can you all make a basic Ki ball?”
Everyone nods or replies with weak “Yes,” Yep,” and “Uh huh.” To your pleasant surprise, each of the near dozen students before you generate balls of Ki, each varying in colour. Most are yellow, but there are some blues, greens, and even a red. You take a sense of pride seeing the progress that all these people have made thanks to your teaching.
Maybe this is what Master Roshi feels like… seeing how far his students come. Wonder what he’d think of me now?
“Alrighty, we’ll have to branch out from this. What do you guys want to learn next?” You enthusiastically start numbering each option off with your fingers. “Flying? Enhancing your body? Shooting some massive blasts? Sensing people? Uh… maybe powering up your Semblances?”
“We can do all that?” Someone pipes up.
“Of course! You can do a lot of stuff. I know my friend can read minds, I can levitate stuff… uh…”
“What’s going on here?” A hardy voice asks from above.
Everyone looks up, seeing the great Nappa, arms crossed, looking down on you and your fellow students. His massive bulk, sharp eyes, and intimidating stature strikes fear in the humans and Faunus. Nappa can’t help but take pride in that fact. It reminds him of the conquering days, arriving on pathetic planets and ravaging their useless fighters.
“Oh, hey Nappa!” You cheerily wave at him while he lands beside you. “I wasn’t paying attention. I’ve gotten so used to all your signatures being around.”
“Well, I wanted to see what you waste your time on… seems to be these fools,” he focuses on the meek students.
“H-Hey!”
“Shh,” Ruber finally speaks up, having been content in watching. “He looks like one of the Saiyans. Like the one who attacked Beacon last year.”
“Wait, really?” The girl replies, a little more fearful. “My sister was there…”
“Ah, don’t worry about him,” you wave off, trying to quell their worry. “Nappa won’t hurt anyone.”
“I can if I want to,” he quickly bites back, assuring he’s not being commanded to do anything by you. “But that’s not why I’m here.”
“Oh!” You clap your hands. “Are you here to train with them?”
“What?” Nappa laughs. “You’re insulting me, Kail. Is that what all this is?” He opens his arms like he’s presenting. “Training?”
“They want to learn about Ki, so I was teaching them?”
“You’re teaching them? No, no, you’re not up for that.”
“This guy’s talking sense,” Topaz whispers to Ecru.
“That’s mean,” his teammate quietly replies.
“But not wrong.”
“Get out of here, kid,” Nappa surprises you with an extremely powerful punch, sending you flying away from Beacon, your scream quickly fading out.
The students are left in shock, but that’s swiftly washed over with fear. “Now,” Nappa cracks his knuckles. “You’re about to learn from a real warrior.”
“B-But we agreed to train with (Y/N). We don’t know who you really are…”
“I have more combat experience than that boy has lived. Now no more questions!” Nappa’s voice booms over the small students. “I want to see what he’s taught you!”
The group collectively creates the Ki balls in their hands, just as they did before. Nappa keeps watching, expecting something more. It isn’t until there’s a short period of silence, each group staring at each other.
“That’s it?” Nappa asks, hoping he’s wrong.
“Yeah.”
“About so.”
“More or less.”
“Barely.”
“That’s pathetic!” Nappa roars. “Right now, I want you to throw those puny blasts at me.”
“We’re not sure ho-“
Nappa raises two fingers, making the ground below the students glow. “You’re going to throw those at me or I’m going to blow you all to smithereens.”
Panicking, all the students throw the blasts as if they were playing dodgeball. The blasts go towards Nappa, not all of them hitting the mark, but they are at least thrown. All the blasts that hit the behemoth result in a small explosion, but nothing that actually harms him. Nappa adopts a toothy grin at their success.
“Now that’s what I’m talking about!” Nappa shouts, wafting the smoke away. “Now do it again! And you don’t have to throw it like that,” Nappa raises his hand towards the sky, firing a weak blast. “You can just fire it. NOW DO IT AGAIN!” He screams, pointing both arms towards the students. “I want to at least be massaged by your attacks!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“WAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAH!” You move across the planet faster than any ship possibly could. Your altitude drops, pulling you down into Vacuo’s desert. You bounce across the coarse, rough sand, getting everywhere in your clothes. You can’t lie, it’s kind of irritating. You dig your heels and hands into the sand, dragging across the arid wastes until you finally stop. You take a breath then stand up straight, shaking yourself off. “That was rude,” you rub your cheek. “I wasn’t expecting him to hit me. Oh well,” you shrug, carefreely.
You burst off the spot, creating a small dust tornado in your wake. You fly right back to Beacon, not taking much time at all, and bear witness to Nappa yelling at everyone as they blast him.
“I’VE EATEN BUGS WITH MORE BITE THAN THIS, COME ON!” He shouts, constantly getting hit with Ki blast from all angles. “PUT YOUR BACKS INTO IT! YOU’RE TRYING TO KILL ME, NOT TICKLE ME!”
You hover over Nappa, getting his attention. “What’s going on?”
“You were being too soft with them! You need to give them motivation, LIKE IF I’M NOT FEELING THESE IN A MINUTE THEN I’LL START FIRING BACK!”
“So… you’re just asking them to blast you?”
“I’m making them get used to using their blast rapidly, and HOPEFULLY WITH MORE POWER!”
“Huh… I guess.”
“Just sit back, Kail. Just watch as a true, experienced warrior handles these recruits.”
“I… okay, I guess. Just don’t actually hurt them!”
“That depends on them!” He says with a laugh.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“You have?” Yang raises a brow at her friendly acquaintance.
“Of course,” Crystal says with a wide smile, but that disappears when you burst into the air and head towards Beacon. She watches for a moment, but that’s only because she can follow your speed for mere seconds. With a sigh, she turns back towards her friend’s friends, eager to make them her own. “May we go inside? I’d love to meet everyone.”
Yang is smirking at you taking off, sensing the small gathering of students at Beacon. “Yeah, of course,” she turns around and leads the way for Crystal. “We have more guests!” Yang shouts as soon as she enters the doorway.
Crystal walks in, taking a quick look around the house. Her eyes are almost instantly drawn to the people sitting around the couches. She remembers you talking about them, and even the girls she’s seen before. With deduction, she recognizes who would be the members of team JNPR.
“Hi,” Crystal waves. “It’s nice to finally meet you all formally,” she bows her head.
“Heya! I’m Ruby Rose!” She salutes.
“Weiss Schnee,” she greets with true formality.
“Blake Belladonna,” her greeting is friendly but plain.
“Jaune Arc,” he warmly smiles, assuring the new person feels welcomed.
“Nora Valkyrie!” She wiggles in place.
“Hello there, I’m Pyrrha Nikos,” she happily waves.
“Lie Ren, but please call me Ren,” he respectfully returns her bow.
“And I’m Yang,” the blonde taps her thumb above her chest. “But you knew that one.”
“Yes, it’s nice to have faces to the names. (Y/N) has mentioned you all. Thank you so much for understanding his odd tendencies. He had a lot of difficulty making friends.”
In truth, even Crystal has difficulty with that. Not because of her social quirks, but as a result of her isolated village. There aren’t that many young adults in the village. There are some kids nowadays, yes, but Crystal was simply born at an unfortunate time when nobody else was having kids. Your random appearance was a blessing for her in more ways than one. Perhaps one of the perks will come into play now. If she can make more friends, guys and girls, then she’ll feel another sense of happiness in her life that she never really had. She has a feeling it won’t even be awkward without you here. These people you’ve surrounded yourself with are good, you always attract good people to you. She sometimes wishes she had that trait as well.
“That’s hard to believe,” Blake speaks out. “He’s a very talkative person. Straightforward too.”
“Maybe a little too straightforward,” Weiss mentions.
“Hey, he’s not here. We shouldn’t gossip,” Jaune defends you.
“That’s true,” Ruby nods. “So, can we start the horror marathon?”
“Take a seat, Crystal,” Yang gestures to the couch. “I’ll take your things to your room. You don’t mind sleeping with other people around, do you?”
“It’s not a problem at all,” she keeps a pleasant smile.
“Alright,” Yang gently takes Crystal’s bag from her and heads for the stairs. “Remember, lil’ sis, you’re the one who wanted to watch some horror movies.”
“I know! I’ve beaten so many Grimm that no movie could scare me!”
“Oooooh, challenge!” Nora excitedly claps. “Ren, you should pick one.”
“Ren?” Weiss questions.
“Ren is quite the connoisseur of horror movies,” Pyrrha points out. “He’s shown me movies I didn’t even know existed.”
“Remember that one you were in?” Jaune chuckles.
“It was just a poster!” Pyrrha blushes. “And I didn’t appreciate him breaking through my,” Pyrrha’s eyes gaze down at her chest. “Armour…”
“We should watch that one first,” Ruby bounces.
“I’d be interested in it,” Crystal chips in. “I haven’t watched a scary movie before.”
Ruby cackles devilishly, rubbing her hands together. “I shall not be the one scared tonight.”
“Yes, you will,” Yang’s voice travels down the stairs.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
And so, Nappa puts all the students through hell. Only giving them short breaks, he assured they were all worked until they could no longer stand. Now, all of them lie on the grass, panting heavily, staring up at the sky.
“I have to say, you’re all a bunch of whimps if you’re tired already. But, it’s a good thing I’m here. From now on, the great Nappa will be teaching you.”
“Eeehhhh?” The students moan, unable to even speak.
“You are? But-“
“Trust me, Kail, this is best for them. They’ll learn more from me! I expect to see you all here tomorrow!”
“Tomorrow?” Eminence moans. “But we-“
“No excuses! What, when was your schedule before.”
“Once a week,” you answer.
“And you expect them to make progress?” Nappa loudly replies, insulted for the students. “No, I’m not letting that slide. You all want to be stronger? The greatest fighters on the planet?”
“We’re just… students…” Topaz weakly replies.
“Isn’t this a school of fighters? How can you call yourselves warriors if you run away from becoming stronger! No way! You’re all coming back tomorrow!” Nappa marches up to the ground eyeing each of their faces. “I’ll remember all of you, I know your Ki signatures, and I’m making sure that you’ll all become stronger! Do not let laziness and hesitation stop you from rising! I won’t let it!” The brutish man rants. “Now go, recover, sleep, eat, and I will see you all here tomorrow!”
Nappa scans for any doubt, and reluctance, but it doesn’t seem to be there. The students slowly get to their feet, talking amongst themselves as they start to spread out. None of them thank you or Nappa for your time, none of them are leaving with a smile. They may have gotten some intense training that’ll have a lasting effect, both positive and negative, but that doesn’t mean the process was fun. At least Topaz got to see you get smacked away. That entertained him greatly.
Nappa stands with pride, watching all his pupils leave. You notice the little glimmer in his eyes that makes you raise a brow.
“Why’d you do that?”
Nappa smirks. “They’re weaklings, They’re beneath my help… but it reminds me of the old days. I’m a Saiyan Elite, Kail, I was the best of the best. I used to see these pathetic low-class warriors that would barely hurt me more than all of them. Sometimes, I would grant them my time and let them at least try to fight, then beat them down so our Saiyan genes would make them stronger. I…” Nappa pauses for a moment, getting lost in thought. “Teaching those kids reminded me of the old days on Planet Vegeta. It reminded me of when I was taking care of Vegeta and Turles and Kakarot and that brat Raditz; when they were small and needed my training to become warriors. They don’t need my help anymore, hell, most of them are stronger than me. But this…” He exhales contently. “It lets me relive the old times. Bah, look at me,” he waves off. “Maybe I am getting to be an old Saiyan.”
“Hm… Turles told me, when we were going to Namek, that you would talk about the old days on our planet. You think about that a lot?”
“Of course, I do. I’m dedicated to the fight,” he finally turns to you completely, hands on his hips. “Always. But our race has dwindled down to a handful. Hmph…” Nappa shakes his head. “But we’re the five strongest Saiyans in history! We don’t need any of the others.”
“Really?” You lean forward to get in Nappa’s view. “I don’t think you should think that.”
“Why? We Saiyans are made to be strong! If you were weak, you were sent away to die or become strong!”
“Just cause people are weak, doesn't make them worthless. You just helped a lot of weak people, and you had a good time, right?” You end with a hopeful smile.
“Well… I-”
“And wasn’t I a low class or whatever?” You push the point. “Heck, when I got here I wasn’t even the strongest person on the planet. But isn’t that fun!” You look ahead with optimism in your eyes, something that Nappa’s drawn to. “If you’re the strongest, what do you have to work up to? But when there are people beyond you, showing you how strong you could become… it’s what gets my stomach all warm and my fists shaking. Frieza was sooooo strong, but now I know that level can be reached. I won’t stop until I’m stronger than that!” You raise your clenched fist in the air.
Nappa is left with something to think about. You’re right, you were a weakling as a baby with no foreseen future, and yet now you’re more powerful than even Vegeta. From Nappa’s view, you’re a complete outlier to the Saiyan mold… and yet here you are, with a fighting spirit that burns brighter than most of his comrades, and with the power to back it up. Yet you STILL desire more, and are excited for it. Those Saiyan traits remain woven into you, even if you never knew about your heritage. You’re so different… yet the strongest.
He doesn’t get it.
Nappa stares out towards Vale, unsure how to continue with this train of thought. So, he changes it. “Nah, I just trained those pipsqueeks so we can have some stronger opponents when we try and take the planet. Would be boring if it was only you,” he says with a belly laugh.
“That… that’s a joke, right?” The burly man keeps laughing. “Nappa? Nappa, that’s a joke!” But the elder Saiyan’s hardy laugh is all that acts as a response, echoing through Beacon’s grounds.
In the distance, watching with silence, is Ozpin. He’s been overseeing Nappa’s training the entire time, ensuring the safety of his students with the brutish Saiyan. But Nappa did push them further than you were able to thanks to his lack of compassion. Considering him being one of the oldest, veteran Saiyans… it’s interesting to see. Ozpin smirks, taking a look up at the moon. The symbol of destruction.
Chapter 25: Rest and Relaxation! The Brewing Storm in the Universe!
Chapter Text
Chapter 25: Rest and Relaxation! The Brewing Storm in the Universe!
With the classes over and Nappa having taken off to wherever the Saiyans are residing, you finally have the chance to return to your friends. It’s a beautiful, cool night, especially when flying high in the clear skies. There’s barely any Grimm presence, so you can very happily enjoy the slow flight, twirling around, taking in deep breaths, and staring at the reflection of the moon in the water. You’ve come to appreciate nature throughout your life, coming to love every aspect of the planet. Well, every aspect you’re aware of. You need to spend a little more time with the snow and desert, but it’s just so cold and hot. Your inner shirt gets so sticky and gross. That’s why you prefer Vale and Mistral, it’s such a calm environment… in terms of nature. There’s Grimm and Saiyans and giant Mutated Leviathans; all the works. Ignore that, and these places are amazing.
Lost in thought, you take ten minutes to reach Patch, which is a far cry from the seconds it should take. But you swoop down, landing in front of the door and slowly opening it up. The door creaks as you push, meeting a flashing TV screen that has a main menu option. It’s cycling through various characters looking around, running, and some shots of monsters. You get in the house and close the door behind you, finally seeing all your friends sleeping on the ground.
Nora and Ren are on one of the couches, the former wrapped tightly around her stoic comrade. Whether he agreed to that or not will forever be a mystery. Blake is curled up in a corner, almost like a cat, with the blanket wrapped around her as if she was a caterpillar. She’s in touch with her animal side tonight. You can just see Ruby’s hair escaping from under a blanket, along with Crystal being under the same one, but actually resting like a normal person. Lastly there’s Weiss, resting peacefully on the other couch.
“They don’t have any beds?” You whisper, crossing your arms. “And where’s Yang?” You follow up those words with a deep breath, searching for her Ki signature.
“(Y/N)!” Yang whispers from the open front door.
You turn around, seeing her gesturing you to follow her. You do, leaving the house and closing the door gently behind you.
“You’re still awake?”
“I wanted to see if you’d come back,” Yang swings her legs exaggeratedly while wandering around the front yard, eyes locked on you. “We watched a movie, Ruby got terrified like I thought. Crystal was pretty scared too,” she chuckles. “It was a good time. You had fun?”
“Oh, yeah! Nappa showed up and stole my students!” You cross your arms and pout. “And I think he’s a better teacher than me. He is older, though…”
Yang giggles. “Can’t believe you let him do that.”
“I did beat him up,” your words are speedy and casual. “He’s a lot stronger than I remember, though. Pretty cool to see!”
“Is that just how you interact now? Fighting?”
You shrug, remaining stationary as Yang circles you like prey. “Maybe. I’m just glad they’re not blowing anything up or hurting someone. I should invite them somewhere.”
“You want to go up there?” Yang flicks her head towards the roof of her house.
You nod, gently ascending off the ground and taking a seat on the roof. Yang lands beside you, setting her arms behind her as support and staring up at the night sky. “So, you think they’d want to sightsee?”
“I don’t really know. Nappa seemed to like helping our friends… and Turles… he’s kinda weird. Not in a bad way, though!” You keep a positive smile up. “But he doesn’t seem like the others.”
“Hm… you’re not like the others either.”
“I know. I was raised here! And happy about it. I don’t think I like the super battle crazed-“ You notice Yang chuckling, so you turn to her. “What?”
“No, it’s just,” she does her best to contain it, as to not wake her slumbering friends. “You’re pretty battle crazy.”
“Hey! I… well, I do have a lot of fun fighting.”
“Did you have fun fighting Frieza?” She raises a brow, slowly steering the conversation towards a looming topic.
“Well… yeah, I’d say so,” you casually nod. “He was so strong… I’ve never had as much fun in my life, even if I almost died,” you end with a laugh.
“Hm… you know,” Yang pauses to sigh. “When we snuck on your ship, I thought it was just gonna be a fun trip to another planet to beat up some aliens. The first humans, the first Huntresses, to fight for another planet. We got really excited about it,” Yang gently leans back, adjusting so she can lay on the roof. You keep yourself sitting straight, but curiously gaze at her as she speaks. “Then we got there… I’ve never been more scared in my life. Everyone was so much stronger than us… if you weren’t there, if the other Saiyans weren’t there, we wouldn’t have stood a chance. We were… useless,” her frustration is laced in each word that leaves her lips. “We didn’t stand a chance, even with all our training. And I’ve never even… Frieza,” she uses the broken moon as a sort of destresser, always enjoying the beautiful moon. Not as much as the sun, though, but she can’t really stare at that the same way. “I’ve never seen my allies… people fighting alongside me just die like that. For Frieza to be so casual, to enjoy himself as he killed his own ally, killed people we were fighting alongside... we all nearly died there in moments and I just…” Her voice rises, something she recognizes. “I’ve never been so scared in my life. When Frieza looked at us, deciding whether to kill us or not, I had nothing. I… I’m the strongest on my team; I should be thinking how to get them out of there. I’m the big sister; I should be thinking how to make sure my sister is safe. But with him… I just thought… ‘I’m going to die.’ It was so selfish…”
“Yang, it’s-“
“But then there was you!” She leans back up, mimicking your stature. “You showed up, and just waltzed up to him like it was nothing. I’ve never seen you so calm and confident before… and you did it! You beat him!”
“Barely,” you clarify. “If it wasn’t for all of you… for Vegeta, Nappa, Raditz, Turles, Kakarot, I only won because of all of you guys. I never would’ve launched the Spirit Bomb without you girls. I don’t think it’s fair to say you were useless. Really, I wouldn’t have won without you.”
Yang stares at you for a short time then looks out to the sky, contemplating it all. You immediately realize you didn’t do the best job at making her feel better. So, you tell the truth.
“I was scared too, you know,” you add on.
“What? You just said you were excited!”
“Yeah, it was. But Frieza… he was so different from anyone else I’ve fought. He wasn’t just strong, he was… hehehe, evil, I guess. When I realized I was totally outmatched, that I was going to fail everyone – the Namekians, the Saiyans, Piccolo, you guys – and there was nothing I could do about it.”
“But you did! That, what did you call it, Spirit Bomb?” You nod in response. “I have to ask you about that later, but, seriously…” She stares at you intently. “You were amazing. You ARE amazing. Despite everything, you managed to beat some galactic emperor! Nobody is going to beat that! You’re the strongest guy I know!”
You snicker. “No, Frieza was way tougher than I am, and Piccolo too. I’m happy about that, though. I wanna be stronger, want to go beyond, and seeing what Frieza can do… I need to make it there. I need to be just as strong as he was. But once I get there… once I reach Piccolo. I need to keep finding something. It’ll be boring if I’m the strongest, you know? I just want to be… I’m just… you know, (Y/N),” you say with a wide smile.
“Just…” She stares at your very casual face, despite it all. Despite the horrific battle that took place, you seemed to have moved past it easily. It’s something Yang can’t do, that her team can’t do. They can’t just let that go, they can’t just forget the dead bodies falling around them. But you… you’re already passed it, likely because you never saw them die and they’re still alive right now. Your reaction to the deaths around you have been very odd in comparison to how much you seem to care about your allies. When you destroyed your village in Great Ape, you were affected more by the guilt others were throwing at you than anything internal. You justified it by saying you don’t remember, you’ve only been told it happened. Some could say it’s a concerning mindset, but Yang may see it as lightening the load on your psyche. You’re so strong, so kind, so unwavering. “Just (Y/N)… yeah, that’s pretty accurate,” she says with a smile, focusing again on the clouds. “Do you ever watch the clouds?”
“I did all the time when I was a kid!” You mirror Yang’s relaxed position, staring up at the dark sky and fluffy clouds. “When I got Nimbus, I loved going through the clouds… then I learned to fly and I could do it on my own, but when I want to be a cloud, just hang out there, I use my good buddy Nimbus.”
“You’re pretty lucky to have a flying cloud,” Yang stops and shakes her head. “I don’t like that I’m so casual about a flying yellow cloud. Did you do a lot of weird things like that when you were younger?”
“Mhm. Finding Master Roshi, meeting Krillin, beating up Yamcha when he tried to rob me, battling Tien and the Crane School… Tien was really tough. He beat me when I was a kid.”
“He did?”
“Yeah. He was told to kill me, but he just couldn’t do it. I think I rubbed off on him,” you say with a chuckle. “He disobeyed his master… plus, I beat him up pretty bad. Krillin and Yamcha definitely could’ve protected me. It’s kinda fun to think back then… I don’t think I would’ve ever expected to fight in space, so, it’s weird.”
“Never thought you’d be an alien, either, huh?”
“Yeah, that’s true. I was happy with Faunus… ness. Is that how you say it?”
“You can say it however you want, (Y/N). They’re your words. I just enjoy listening to them.”
“What about you? How’s things going with your mother?”
“We’ve been speaking more. She may actually be dropping by this weekend.”
“Really?”
“I don’t want her to,” Yang speaks plainly. “But… maybe Ruby would like to talk with her. Too bad dad isn’t here. I’m sure she’d like to see you again… maybe.”
You and Yang take a deep sigh, continuing to look up at the clouds. It’s times like these, after great strife, that you can relax. This will be the best time to take advantage of it, and taking advantage is exactly what Yang will do.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
With the bright, shining sun warming all of Remnant, it’s a perfect day for your group of amigos to have a swell day. And to start that day, Ren and Crystal are whipping up a miracle in the kitchen. Ruby wanted to help, since it was her house, but Ren was very adamant about there being the least amount of people possible in his kitchen. The only reason Crystal is allowed is because of her wide cooking experience. She was happy to lend a hand, of course, since she wants to be as friendly as possible.
Not everyone is around to smell the divine creations in the kitchen; the ones still sleeping being you, Yang, Jaune, and Nora. Weiss was one of the first to awaken, showering quickly and making some tea to accompany her loneliness. Ren and Blake were quick to wake up afterwards, Blake being the first upon hearing the whistling tea pot. The rest started waking up one after another, like reverse dominos, with Ruby being the last person to get up..
“So, Ren, how long have you been cooking?” Crystal asks, hair tied in a ponytail to keep any loose strands from falling into the food. She flips the french toast over to give the other side some love.
“Quite some time. Nora is someone who eats quite a lot, but she’s not the most phenomenal cook. So, I took on the role.”
“You two have been together for a long time?”
“Indeed, for…” Ren stops stirring the pancake mix, thinking back to when he met Nora. There’s no major reaction, no true breakdown, no smirk, frown, tear, chuckle, anything. He just remembers. “For most of my life.”
“Were your parents friends?” She innocently asks.
“No, they weren’t,” Ren shakes his head. “We simply met and remained together until now.”
“So it’s a special relationship?”
Ren pauses again. “Special?”
“Well, yeah. You’ve been together for so long I have to imagine there’s something special about it. I don’t know if you two are like siblings or dating or-“
“Dating?” Ren stumbles on the word, finally showing some emotion in the conversation.
“Oh, I don’t know! I’m sorry if that upset you,” Crystal hastily apologizes. “I was just thinking of special relationships. You’re lucky to have someone so loyal to you! She seems like a really fun person, too! Very loud. It reminds me of (Y/N).”
“Is that a special relationship too?” Ren looks over at his assistant whilst pouring the mix onto the pan.
“Yeah,” Crystal nods. “Like you, he’s been around forever. He was my first real friend.”
“She was too…”
The two cooks pause for a moment, reflecting on what’s been said and how similar their situations are. Unknown to them, as they haven’t shared it, both their villages had little to no friends to make, and only an outsider freed them from that isolation they both suffered from. But that doesn’t matter now. They’re all here, together, happy.
“We should finish and wake them up,” Crystal takes the first finished French toast off the pan and replaces it with a new one.
“I agree.”
While the cooks continue preparing food, up the stairs, into the rooms, are where you and Yang sleep. After talking up a storm most of the night, you both flew into Yang’s room and fell asleep. Yang, in her bed, and you, on the floor with a pillow and blanket. The sweet scent of the food isn’t potent enough to awaken you from the slumber. Perhaps if they brought the food up to the room, though…
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Kakarot and Raditz are high above the clouds, undisturbed by the blistering winds and hostile snow. The two brothers have been adamant about becoming stronger, their resolve being ironed after Namek. The massive power boost they achieved from it has shown them that they’re not restricted by their low class status, much like you. Kakarot feels more competitive when thinking about you. He was stronger than you the first time you fought, yet you managed to force him to flee. Then he comes back and you’re head and shoulders above him in power. Right now, you are the goal post for the Saiyans, not Vegeta.
The Prince still refuses to train with anyone, even his loyal companion Nappa. Not that it’s an option, Nappa not returning since his departure last night. He’s still on the planet, Vegeta can sense it, so he has no need to chase him. Nappa is capable, and the royal Saiyan has no need for him at the moment.
“Still brooding?” Turles pipes up, softly landing on the snowy plateau. Vegeta eyes Turles, seeing him holding some coloured crystals. “These?” Turles notices Vegeta’s momentary interest. “Raw Dust from underground. Seemed interesting to me.”
“That’s what killed you on Namek.”
“I didn’t know enough about it,” Turles calmly responds. “I’m assuring that next time I do not suffer the same fate..”
“How pathetic,” Vegeta looks away. “You should rely on your own power, not what you get from some stupid crystal.”
“It’s foolish for a warrior to dismiss tools that’ll lead to his victory. It’s no different than killing a leader to save yourself from slaughtering his army,” Turles replies with no fear towards the Prince.
Vegeta stares down the impudent low-class warrior. He turns away, staring off into the blizzard. Turles snickers, making his way towards the cave. “You won’t get any stronger standing around, Vegeta. You’ll remain second to Kail.”
Vegeta raises his hand over his shoulder, beside his head, and fires a blast at Turles. The Saiyan leans back, dodging the hit and allowing it to explode against the side of the cave, shaking the mountain.
Turles stares into the cave, then to Vegeta. “You almost destroyed our home.”
“You nearly got yourself killed,” Vegeta coldly replies.
“Mm… I suppose. Perhaps you should join in on training, Vegeta. You have to put us in our place. We’re not that far behind you.”
“Nappa spoke such foolishness.”
“Well,” Turles enters the cave, speaking a little loudly for his Prince. “I’d hope you would respect Nappa and I’s word. We’re not complete fools like the brothers. But they’re catching up too!” He ends louder than ever.
“Tsk,” Vegeta crosses his arms, one finger rapidly tapping. The very thought that these morons could reach his level pains him. He was clearly the strongest of his team… that hasn’t changed… that HASN’T CHANGED.
That thought echoes in his head, forcing Vegeta to take off into the air. Turles looks back out of the cave, smirking. He knows Vegeta is still the strongest of their group, but that doesn’t change the fact that all of them are catching up. Surpassing the arrogant Prince Vegeta would be quite an entertaining endeavour, but he learned something when training with you. Pushing each other, using one another as a goal post to surpass yourself and your partner. It’s important. If Vegeta can realize that everyone else is catching up, perhaps he’ll realize he has to keep ahead. The next step would be him realizing how much weaker he is than you, and finding a goal to reach. Instead of the Saiyans being threatened by others being strong, like before, now it can be used as a motivator. At least, that’s what Turles would like to see. Perhaps even Nappa is recognizing this. Who knows?
Kakarot and Raditz stare at each other, panting; small, bleeding scratches along their body and armour. It takes a mere moment for Vegeta to ascend between them, stopping in sight of both Saiyans. He eyes both, then takes a deep breath and assumes a fighting stance.
“You’re getting too full of yourselves.”
“Full of ourselves?” Raditz scoffs. “That’s a good one. I’ll be happy to show you my power, Prince.”
“Nice to see you get off your royal butt and train!”
“This isn’t training,” Vegeta plainly states.
The two brothers charge at the same time with more speed than Vegeta expected. He blocks each punch, but the momentum and power of both overwhelm his body. He pushes himself back, giving more space between his opposition. Kakarot and Raditz quickly pursue, throwing a flurry of attacks that keeps Vegeta on the defensive. Any time he’d be able to retaliate against one man, the other attacks, forcing Vegeta to defend. This never happened before, not when putting these chumps in their place. He was always faster, sharper, stronger. It’s clear to him, and the two attacking, that Vegeta is stronger than them individually. But two brothers acting together make up the difference, resulting in the Prince being pressured without any ability to fight back.
In an angry rage at their power, Vegeta howls as he releases an explosive wave from his body, sending the clouds breezing away and while the Saiyan brothers spiral in the air. They both recover, smirking.
“You seem a little worried, Vegeta,” Raditz taunts.
“We’re pretty strong this time around, huh?”
Vegeta seemingly disappears from place, revealing himself in front of Kakarot with his fist wound.
“Silence, clown!” He screams before throwing a fury fueled punch.
The fist connects with Kakarot’s palm, a wave of wind pressure flowing past the Saiyan. Kakarot is pushed back, but he holds his ground against the Prince’s punch… something he’s never done before. Kakarot smirks, a massive flood of ego entering the young warrior. The two Saiyans stare at each other, their interacting arms shaking under the strain of their clash. Kakarot charges a Ki blast in his hand and throws it at Vegeta’s chest, forcing the powerful opponent back.
“That was barely worth your effort, Kaka-“
Raditz cuts Vegeta off with a swift kick to the back of his head. Without skipping a beat, the two brothers charge at Vegeta’s helpless form. The two slam their fists into Vegeta’s back, knocking him even further away, then charge up their individual blasts. Vegeta recovers mid air, absolutely furious at their assault. His fury blinds him for a moment too long, enough time for the brothers to fire their attacks. The two beams, Raditz’s being white with black lightning cascading around it, and Kakarot’s being a simple blue.
“Don’t get cocky, you low class wretches!” The royal Saiyan screams, managing to catch both the beams and temporarily hold them back. But the power of these beams, the energy Kakarot and Raditz are putting out, there’s nothing Vegeta can do. The power of his clenched teeth could split a moon in half. He releases small purple blasts from his hands, causing the swirling energy to explode right in front of Vegeta.
Kakarot and Raditz relax, feeling as though this whole spectacle is over. As the smoke clears, Vegeta’s frustrated visage becomes apparent. He’s hunched over, fists clenched, breath heavy, veins visible. The prince’s wrath has risen beyond comprehension. One may assume it’s anger towards his Saiyan comrades, but it isn’t… it’s a different kind of fury.
The Prince bursts away, leaving a trail in his wake without a word being said. Turles ascends to the level of Kakarot and Raditz, watching his Prince retreat.
“Taught him a lesson, finally.”
“Think he’ll kill us?” Kakarot jokingly says.
“No,” Turles shakes his head. “Come on, I want to train before I study the crystals more.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
The massive spike in Vegeta’s power pierces through your brain like lightning. Your body fills with energy, shooting up and looking towards where Vegeta was fighting.
That feels like fun! Oh, yeah…
You get a sense of what’s around you, feeling that most of your friends are up and about. The sweet smell of food soon fills your potent nostrils, completely distracting you from the potential problem arising to the north. You spring to your feet, only in your boxers, and run out the door. Your uncaring, loud nature wakes the slumbering yellow dragon, but she isn’t too bothered by it. Yang sits up, rubbing her eyes; the chirping birds and shining sun indicating it’s the morning.
“Huh, everyone else is awake… I should get ready. Maybe we can go to the beach like Crystal mentioned,” she yawns while stretching.
You glide down the stairs, showing your desire to eat by not bothering with even descending stairs. You fly over some of the others, surprising them with a half naked flying man, before landing in the kitchen and spotting the growing pile of food. Pancakes, french toast, bacon, eggs of all styles, multiple pitchers of juice and milk, everything that would make you fall in love. In fact, that’s very easy to see as your pure black eyes have been replaced by bright pink hearts.
“I knew it would take you up,” Crystal says before turning around, her wide smile quickly changing to a frown.
“Why aren’t you dressed?”
“It’s fine,” Blake walks past, taking a seat at the long table.
“We’ve seen it all before,” Weiss follows her teammate.
“Seen it… all before?”
“All before,” Ruby shivers, entering the room as well.
“First time I met him, he was naked,” Yang shouts from the stairs, still in her sleeping tank top and short shorts.
“WHAT!” Crystal blurts in terror. “Why would you do that, (Y/N)? We talked about this!” She turns to scold you, but you’re not even paying attention. You’ve already grabbed four plates of food and are stuffing your face without a care in the world. Crystal sighs, pinching the bridge of her nose. “I’m sorry, he-“
Yang enters the room, having heard Crystal’s outburst. She waves her off. “It’s fine. Honestly, it wasn’t terrible to look at.”
“Nope,” Blake shakes her head, gathering a respectable bit of food for herself.
“I should wake Nora before everything is gone,” Ren says aloud, though not to anyone specifically, before leaving the room. His and Crystal’s mountain of food is being picked at slowly by everyone except Yang and Crystal.
“Ooooh,” Crystal shakes her head even more.
Yang pats Crystal’s shoulder, assuring her with a warm smile. “Trust me, we’re not offput. We like him too much… aaaand,” Yang smirks, glancing at you. “It’s part of his charm. Can’t say you don’t mind him being shirtless right now, huh?” She playfully nudges then subsequently starts getting food for herself.
“I… I mean… that’s not fair!”
“I know,” Ruby shakes her head, eating a pancake filled with chocolate chips. “It isn’t fair. They get to eat all that and not worry.”
“Oh, that’s… aren’t you Huntresses? Is that even a problem?”
Ruby slowly drags her eyes towards Crystal, slowly taking a dramatic bite of her food. Crystal just stares at the young leader, locked in her silver eyes – her own being filled with confusion. It’s almost like she becomes deaf to the world as the young Rose stares mysteriously at the girl, continuing to take slow, drawn out bites.
“Wait, there are chocolate chips?” You look past your nine stack of plates.
Ruby instantly becomes defensive, looking at you like a wild animal and barking, “They’re mine!” Before bursting into petals, swiping both the chocolate chips and the pancakes made with them and fleeing the room.
Blake and Weiss casually sit at the table, entertained as you take off from place and chase their leader.
“I thought she liked strawberries,” Weiss notes.
“Have you ever seen her eat some?”
“Fair enough,” the white haired one nods, returning to her simple dining experience.
They hear Ruby burst out the door.
“STAY AWAY!”
“You have to share!” You respond, following her out the door and into the sky.
“THEY’RE MIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIINE!”
“Pancakes?” Nora, as if rising from the dead, throws herself off her back, over the couch, and into the kitchen. She sees your food, which you’ve foolishly abandoned. She smirks, jumping onto your chair, nearly falling over, then digs in.
“I hope none of our neighbors sees a flying naked man,” Yang calmly says before drinking some orange juice. “Meh, it should be fine. You should come eat, Crystal. You wanted to go to one of the beaches, right?”
“Oh, yeah,” Crystal halfheartedly responds, staring out the door. “Are… are they gonna be okay?” She points towards the exit.
“They’re fine,” Yang waves off. “Well, how about we all finish up and then head over there? Everyone brought towels and stuff, yeah? We have extras.”
There’s a muffling surge of “Yes,” “Yeah,” “Mhm,” “Absolutely,” and everything in between.
“We’ll gather our things, walk off the food, and then have a nice day at the beach. Oh, that’ll be so relaxing,” Weiss coos. “It’s been so long since I’ve been to a beach.”
“You are quite pale,” Blake remarks.
“Hey! That’s just my natural skin tone!”
“Pale?”
“You were pale when I met you!” Weiss snaps back.
“No, I wasn’t. I was the least pale,” Blake affirms.
“She’s right,” Pyrrha nods. “You’ve all gotten a lot more colour!” She says with a beaming smile.
“This is an odd conversation topic,” Ren points out, somehow at the table without anyone, save Nora, noticing his return. “But I believe the beach will be entertaining and relaxing.
“Then let’s EAT UP!” Nora stands out and cheers.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Piccolo stands on the Lookout, eyes closed as he feels out the universe. Nail, his warrior comrade, stands not far behind him.
“What do you see? Are you checking in on our home?”
“Yes,” Piccolo bluntly says. “It… appears that Frieza’s Force is leaving the planet. Most of the ships have left,” Piccolo opens his eyes and turns to face Nail. “You should return to your planet within a week’s time.” Nail smiles, eternally grateful that his people can make a safe return. “You’ll have to grow stronger to protect them,” Piccolo glances as it Namekian comrade for a moment.
“Indeed. Before now, I would not believe that such powerful, evil forces existed. I will not allow these events to repeat themselves. However…” Nail contemplates his next words. He understands Piccolo’s position, but… “Forgive me for my straightforwardness, as I mean no disrespect, but I must ask why you did not come to defeat Frieza yourself?” Nail says as respectfully as possible, attempting to avoid confrontation. “Grand Elder Guru’s memories have shown me what technique you use, the ones from planet Yardrat. You could’ve appeared on Namek and defended it any time you wished.”
Piccolo keeps his visage steady, but internally he’s upset. He agrees, he could’ve gone and stopped Frieza himself. Under normal circumstances, he would’ve. But…
“Being Guardian of this planet does not bind you to it. You can leave. Why didn’t you? I’m certain my assertation of your power is correct. You’re the strongest Namekian I’ve ever known. You show concern for our wellbeing, but not enough to come fight yourself? Your words and feelings do not align with your actions.”
“I was asked to not,” Piccolo reveals.
“Asked not to? Who dared to put my people in pain, in anguish!” Nail’s temper flares for a moment.
“Someone extremely important…” Ozpin’s condescending smile looms over Piccolo. “They want the Saiyans to become stronger, and that happens through combat.”
“Then why not just train them yourself and act when necessary?”
“I will act when necessary.”
“Our planet being attacked wasn’t one of those times?”
Piccolo doesn’t answer, deciding to remain calm in the face of Nail’s fury. “Your people are safe, your planet is intact, and you’ll be returning to peace soon. There’s no need to lament what could’ve happened. I’m… sorry our people had to suffer so much for this peace to be attained.”
“Many things could have happened,” Ozpin chimes in, slowly walking with the dull tap of his cane echoing in the Namekians’ ears. His appearance makes Piccolo’s heart tick a few beats faster. Not of fear, but confusion. Piccolo is acute, powerful, and extremely awake. He doesn’t like that Ozpin can appear on his own Lookout without his knowledge. “And this was one of the best outcomes. Unfortunately, it wasn’t THE best,” he accentuates that word. “Piccolo, we must prepare. Our job… isn’t quite finished yet.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“Why didn’t you put any pants on?” Crystal sighs, walking alongside you in the long line of friendly, young Huntsmen-in-Training.
“Why would I? I’d be taking it off anyway,” you cheerily reply, holding an assortment of umbrellas and a basket filled with snacks.
“He has a point,” Blake supports your claim.
Crystal is almost blown away at how comfortable everyone is around you. She always thought you’d be an outcast – somehow who’d be ostracized because of how different you were. Not your Faunus traits, but your deeper personality. Your misunderstandings of general civilization, of decency, of conversation, it’s been so lost on you growing up in the mountains. But these people, all of them, they’re more than okay with who you are. It… it’s such a happy outcome. Perhaps she has to stop worrying, stop seeing you as someone who needs help fitting in… someone who doesn’t need help anymore. You’re strong, you’re friendly, you’re liked… you’re just a kid in school, like everyone else.
While you talk with Weiss and Yang, smiling and laughing with the girls, Crystal watches. This is what you needed. This is what you deserve.
It doesn’t take very long to reach one of Patch’s beaches, being such a tiny island. The ocean before you, however, is expansive and beautiful. The sun is gleaming off the clear blue water that’s so inviting for you.
You stab the umbrellas in a line, not really sure how everyone wants them, then go sprinting towards the ocean. You throw off each article of clothing every step, tossing them atop the dotted umbrellas.
“CAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAANNNOOOOOOOOOOON-“ You leap into the air, launching yourself miles away from the beach. “baaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaall,” your faint voice is still audible, but it’s nothing compared to the thunderclap of a splash and the bombshell of an eruption. Even from a distance, the water droplets drizzle over your friends, who have smartly taken cover under the umbrellas.
“He’s having fun,” Ren states.
“I wanna do that too!” Nora throws off her loose clothing, leaving her in the two piece pink bikini she chose.
“Ruby, you want to help me set up the volleyball net?” Yang asks, already pulling the packaging out of her bag.
“Sure!” The young sibling cheerily hops close to help.
The others set up their blankets, Jaune and Ren moving some of the umbrellas around to give small bits of space. Each of the umbrellas are patterned with two colours that, by no coincidence, are representative of the teammates. The one Weiss and Ruby set up under has a diagonal break of red and white. Blake and Yang’s has a zig-zag black and yellow.
Meanwhile, you’re deep under the water, cheeks full of air like a squirrel with nuts. You happily look around the dark depths of the ocean, watching large fish, bigger than you, swim around frantically. They don’t seem too happy about your intrusion, likely because of the irritating entrance you made. You tread in place, enjoying watching all the fish swim around in their natural environment, but you will need air and you want to know if everyone saw your cool dive. You swim up, not using any powers to speed yourself up, and break through the water barrier.
“Hey!” You shout, waving.
The girls have already set up their volleyball net while Weiss, Crystal, Ren, and Blake are relaxing beneath their umbrellas. Weiss is merely relaxing with a drink she concocted before leaving, Blake is reading, and the remaining two are observing everyone’s happenings. Crystal, whose attention is mostly focused on you, waves back. She can’t hear you, but your movement is relatively visible to her. What’s even more visible is a ginormous shark-like Grimm, its size rivaling Beacon tower, shatters through the water line right under you. It swallows you whole, twirling a little bit before gravity pulls it back into the water.
“(Y/N)!” Crystal screams in anguish, going full sprint towards the water.
“He’s fine!” Yang says, leaning over to grab a volleyball.
“Nothing to worry about,” Blake agrees, causally turning to a new page in her book.
“W… What?” Crystal slowly turns around. “How can you not care? He just-“
From the water, a little further back, the Grimm is involuntarily lifted out of the water. It’s wiggling on its side, indicating to the group watching that you’re pushing it up from the inside. Going decently high into the air, a strong yellow glow burns brightly within the Grimm, growing brighter and brighter, spreading throughout its body, until the creature finally explodes. With the Grimm’s small bits turning to ash, you’re left hovering mid air, your aura flaring.
“I THOUGHT OF ANOTHER WAY!” You cheerily shout, followed by a few laughs as you fly back to the beach. “Get eaten,” you elaborate just as you land. “And then blow it up!”
Crystal immediately comes to your side, checking if you have any wounds. “Are you okay? Did you get any in your mouth? Feel ill?”
“What if it’s a Beowolf?” Weiss brings up.
“Well…” That gives you pause, making you scratch your chin. “I guess it only works for big ones.”
“I don’t like the thought of getting eaten,” Weiss shakes her head. “Grimm even touching me isn’t a treat.”
“I like touchin’em!” Yang snickers.
“Isn’t that because you beat them up?” Jaune pipes up.
“Yeah!” Yang replies with a toothy grin. “Now, come on! Let's play some volleyball! Girls first!”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
The teams were simple – Ruby, Crystal, and Pyrrha on one side with Yang, Nora, and Blake on the other. Weiss was the only girl who didn’t participate, opting to finally go in the water with a floating donut, completely relaxing in the cool water and hot sun. For such a regal, elegant woman, she’s completely blobbed out from pure comfort. She’s just lucky her friends are distracted; else they’d poke fun at her for it.
The girls in the game are really into it, eyes sharp and on the ball at all times. It’s somewhat entertaining to hear their intense grunts and yelps each time they hit the ball. You, Jaune, and Ren are all intently watching the game, if for different reasons. You’re completely innocent in your gaze, just enjoying the game between the girls and how they’re holding back for Crystal’s sake. Even though Pyrrha and Nora are far weaker than the members of RWBY, they’ve still been training with Ki. You can tell their Ki levels are higher than before, though still nothing compared to even your friends at Roshi’s. But Crystal is a regular person, not even a fighter like everyone else here. She’s just a typical girl without any of the training or Ki experience the others have, so she has no chance in a serious match – even if this is just a game of volleyball.
But for the other two, it’s a typical setup. The boys are all staring at the girls, all in bikinis and swimsuits, jumping around, hitting the ball, diving, swaying, all things that can make certain aspects look rather enticing. Jaune and Ren, though rather controlled individuals, can’t help but look at their teammates with red faces. You look over at them, noticing the flushed tint.
“Is it really hot?” You ask, looking over your shoulder, rolling onto your back and holding yourself steady as you fumble to pull two bottles of water out of the bag with your vision being upside down. You eventually get it, though knocking the bag onto its side in the process. You leave it alone, instead rolling back to a sitting position and holding the water out. “Here! You guys are super red!”
“Oh… uh…” Ren sheepishly grabs the water.
“It definitely is really hot,” Jaune chuckles, trying to hide the reasoning.
You return your gaze to the game, utterly entertained by the girl’s and their coordination. To your surprise, and maybe the others, Ruby is excelling at this without any use of her Semblance. You never knew she had this kind of speed and reflexes to match, though it makes sense given her Semblance is based around these kinds of attributes.
“Pyrrha!” Ruby shouts as the red haired champion sets up the ball for her.
Ruby jumps up and slams the ball towards the other side, only for her sister to slam it with a sideways hammer fist, something that certainly isn’t regulation. Without pause, Ruby uses her flight to spin around, gathering a little momentum, and slaps the ball. There’s a rush of air behind her hand from the pressure Yang put behind it, but the determined leader, with a bit of unnecessary grunting and wailing, manages to completely redirect the ball and slap it into the sand.
“WOOOOOOOOOOHOOOOOOOOOOOO!” Ruby cheerfully twirls midair.
“Yeah! Nice job Ruby! You’re the champion of balls!” You throw your hands in the air.
Everyone, save the relaxing heiress, look over at you. Ruby gives you a thumbs up and proud, toothy smile.
“She’s what now?” Crystal asks for clarification.
“She’s really good with balls. You see how she handled it! A total master! A wonder with such soft hands.”
“I…” Yang picks up the ball, her eyes shadowed by her hair. “AGREE!” Yang smiles, floating up to Ruby and giving her a high five. “Nice job, Rubes!”
“HEHEHEHE!” The leader keeps her confidence high.
“(Y/N), you shouldn’t-“
“Don’t worry,” Pyrrha reassures with an upbeat attitude. “We all know he doesn’t mean it.”
“Unlike some others,” Blake’s squints at the other two boys, who immediately gulp down the water as if their life depends on it.
“You know, I wish there were some better waves,” Yang descends to the sand, ball under her arm, gazing longingly to the sea. “Surfing would be really fun.”
“We don’t have any surfboards… and only you know how to surf,” Ruby points out, landing beside her sister. “Wait, have any of you done it?”
Her response is a bunch of shrugs or nos, except for you, “What’s surfing?”
“Oh… you know what,” Yang’s smile grows. “I’ll show you! We can go rent some from Vale. It’s not like we can’t fly,” Yang slaps the ball against Ruby’s chest, knocking the wind out of the poor young girl and forcing her onto the ground. “(Y/N), come with me! We’re going to rent some! Maybe… five of them?”
“I’d love to try it!” Pyrrha nods.
“YEAH! Water skateboarding!” Nora howls.
“You’ve never done that either,” Ren points out, but is ignored by his excited partner.
“Come on, we have to go to Vale!” Yang starts to fly again.
“Okay!” You hop off the sand and soar into the air. “We’ll be right back! You should play a round with them, Weiss!”
“Maybe…” The sleepy singer’s voice replies.
Without any wasted time, you and Yang take off on a course towards Vale. You follow her speed, not being much faster than an aircraft. You catch up in no time, immediately starting up a conversation.
“Why’re we going so slow?”
“Because it’s a beautiful day,” she extends her arms to display her reasoning. “Why not take a little time to fly through the clouds?”
“Cause people are waiting for us?”
“Bah,” Yang waves off. “They’ll be fine. We had a good talk with Crystal when you were gone. She’s a really nice girl. Cares about you a lot.”
“Oh, that’s good!” You perk up. “She’s been my friend for a long time. I’d be sad if she didn’t.”
“Have you told her?”
“What? I tell everyone a lot of stuff.”
“That you’re an alien?”
“Oh…” Your eyes drift down as you think about that a little more. “Well… no… I thought I wouldn’t mention it since everyone forgot about the big monkey thing.”
“Right…” The flashes of that day come back to Yang. In hindsight, that isn’t nearly as scary as the more recent events that have transpired. But in context, watching you transform, kill everyone, nearly kill her… it’s a different fear than what Frieza could instill. “But it’s still a part of you, right? And a lot of people know now. Wouldn’t it be good to tell her?”
“I guess… she has asked about my tail a few times. I just said a Grimm got the drop on me.”
“You did just get eaten,” Yang playfully points out.
“That was so gross,” you shiver in the air. “It was so cold and slimy. So I heated it up!”
“You blew it up!”
“It’s the same thing!”
“It’s really not,” Yang shakes her head, eying Vale’s public beach. “We’re almost there. We’ll just land.”
“Ooooooooooh,” you sound as if you’ve connected the dots of the universe.
“What?” Yang asks with a slight chuckle.
“I remember you girls don’t like when your skin is showing. I know you punch a lot of guys that look at your pecs,” you rapidly tap your own. “Wait, boobs, right! But we’re on a beach and everyone will be like that.”
“You’re a modern-day genius, (Y/N). Never change,” she looks at you with a wide, genuine smile.
“Hehe, yeah!”
You and Yang descend upon the beach, having already been spotted by some of those who’ve been relaxing on this lovely afternoon. Seeing two people spontaneously fly in from above, land, then continue walking and talking like it’s a normal occurrence is definitely not a normal occurrence for them. But most of the men, and some of them women, are distracted by the brawler’s form in a two-piece, yellow bikini. Then again, you’re quite admired by some onlookers as well. With unique hair, pure black eyes, and such a muscular stature, it’s just lucky for everyone that you and Yang are 18 now. Lucky for them, at least.
“I’ve never come to this beach before,” you bring up. “There was always this nice little spring by my house. It had a waterfall with a big pond that a ton of fish lived in. I swam there all the time. Never in clothes, though. I have to say, it’s still weird being under the water and clothed.”
“You have a strange gauge of what’s weird,” Yang shakes her head, soon turning to a young onlooker and winking. “Was fighting an alien on another planet weird?”
“No, that was fun!”
“Yet bathing suits are strange?”
“Well… yeah. Is it not for you?”
You both reach a large shack with various surf boards on display of various lengths, widths, and patterns. You’re immediately distracted from Yang’s potential response by the beautiful boards before you.
“Whoa… THESE ARE SO COOL! Yang!” You fly up to one hanging from the ceiling. “This one’s orange and blue! Can I use this one?”
“That’s a kid’s one, (Y/N). Granted, by how you’re acting…”
The man “working” at the shack – sitting on a rainbow hamak – lifts his head up to see you floating above him. He has wide, tinted glasses with shaggy blond hair that, from what Yang can tell, is dyed. No shirt, long swim trunks, shell bracelets – Yang can’t imagine anything more typical. She’d like to see him surf to clarify whether he’s a fake or not. “That’s, like… some real enthusiasm. You Huntspeople?”
“Oh, that’s a good one,” you flip right around, your swim suit nearly drooping to reveal your hidden area. “It’s easier than Huntresses and Huntsmen.”
“We’re actually just hoping for a few surf boards,” Yang’s eyes catch you pointing up at the orange and blue board, tickling it with your toes. “Boards not for children.”
You frown, slowly lowering yourself to the ground and landing on your back, spread eagle on the ground. “I just want the cool board.”
“We have one for adults, man, just like that one.”
“REALLY?” You instantly are back on your feet.
“Yeah, of course. Orange and blue is a sweet combo.”
“YEAH!” You and the lovely man fist bump over this true bro moment.
Yang rolls her eyes, though enjoying the simple happiness of you two. “So we can get some?”
“Yeah… just, uh…” He swoops himself out of the hamak and rolls his shoulders. “How many do you need?”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Four surfboards is what you and Yang returned with. Not enough for everyone to go at once, but not everyone wanted to in the first place. Jaune and Pyrrha were the first to take to the sea, along with you and Yang.There’s just one problem now, something Yang is very vocal about.
“There’s no waves…” She states the obvious, looking out to the calm sea.
“WAH!” You shout, followed by a splash.
Pyrrha and Jaune laugh at your silly error. Your head pokes through the water, eyes sad that you failed again.
“You’re not supposed to just stand on it,” Yang shakes her head. “Come here!”
“I don’t wanna leave my board,” you grab hold of it.
“Pfft, okay then,” Yang floats off her board and picks it up. “Catch!” Yang throws the board like a javelin.
The board plants in the sand, forcing some to erupt on Weiss and Weiss alone, despite her being in the middle of her two teammates. Yang tries to hold in the laughter, especially as the distant bombardment of Weiss can be heard, but she focuses on what’s important.
“We’re gonna work together on it. Come on, take a seat on it.” Yang says while floating over and sitting a little further up so you can take place behind her.
You climb onto the board, straddling it and placing your hands on Yang’s shoulders. The cool tingle of your hands touching her skin makes Yang jolt a bit. “Like this?”
“Probably lower. Around my waist.”
“Oh, okay!” You scoot closer, wrapping both your arms around her waist and pulling your front against her back.
Jaune and Pyrrha raise a brow at your extreme contact with Yang, especially when you’re missing so much clothing. They take a gander at the beach, where Crystal and Ruby are trying to calm down the raging Weiss. All things considered, it’s good that Crystal isn’t looking.
“Whoa, there, buddy. A little too close, don’t you think?” Yang looks over her shoulder, purple eyes locking with yours.
“Not really. Is it?” You innocently tilt your head.
“Heh… maybe another time,” she pats your hand. “We can’t be so close when surfing… if we even surf…”
“We need waves, right?” You clarify.
“Mhm,” she nods.
“Okay, let's get started then!” You slide back and hold your hand out to the side. “HYA!”
You release a simple beam to your right, then curve it around.
“That’s a brilliant idea!” Yang’s voice is fueled with excitement.
You keep it going forward, then turn it again so the waves will come towards the shore, and more importantly, you. The beam lowers to the water and expands, ensuring the waves are large and rideable.
“Okay!” You stop feeding the blast. “Show me how to surf!”
“You’re gonna have to follow my movements,” Yang shouts as she prepares herself for the larger than expected wave.
“I can do that!” You nod.
You and Yang start paddling yourselves towards the wave, Pyrrha and Jaune not far behind but rather far away. The intensity of the waves grows every second, along with your excitement. Without saying a word, Yang gets on her feet and you mirror her. You may have no idea what you’re doing, but following Yang’s movements is extremely easy, especially everything being so slow paced in relation to fighting.
But this… this is a different experience. As you both turn the board and ride the wave, the tunnel forming and water droplets cooling your skin, the colour of the sun shining through the water and illuminating this liquid tunnel… it’s all so surreal. Fighting has always been your favourite pastime, the thing that drives you beyond, and while this doesn’t meet the level of fun you get from battle, it’s certainly an experience you won’t easily forget. It infact reminds you of your love for this planet – the people, the animals, nature. It’s what makes this planet beautiful. It’s what makes you want to grow stronger and protect it.
Your fascination and inner thought take up the entire ride, only coming back when you and Yang ride out of the tunnel and start to slow down.
“So, you got it? Was that fun?”
“THAT WAS AWESOME!” Your voice echoes across Patch. “I wanna try again!”
“Then try on your own,” she floats off the board and makes way towards the beach. “I’ll go grab my board.”
“Right!” You nod, shuffling closer to the middle and readying another blast in your hand. “Okay, let's go!” You completely disregard what you just learned, instead standing on the board and using your flying to push the board ahead and extreme speeds.
Yang watches, shaking her head with a smile. “Not what I meant but as long as he’s having fun.” She stops midair, crossing her arms and watching while you zoom right into a new wave you’ve created, laughing the entire time from pure enjoyment. Your childlike innocent fun mixed with what she’s seen of you. There’s a small flutter in her chest as you break through the wave, board in hand and smile gleaming brighter than the sun. You quickly turn around and throw your board far into the ocean, quickly speeding after it while firing a few Ki balls to make more waves.
Pyrrha and Jaune watch from a distance, a little dumbstruck. “He’s not making any for us,” Jaune sighs.
“He’s having fun! I’m sure we could ask!” She keeps her positivity up. “Or maybe we can try and learn to make them on our own,” Pyrrha raises her dominant hand, focusing a moment, and creates a small red Ki ball. “I’m sorry, I don’t think this will make good waves,” she thrusts her hand forward so the ball traverses along the water. It splits the water, but nowhere near as potently as yours did.
“Wha- you can do that!?” Jaune waves his hands. “When? I thought we train together?”
“I’m sorry!” Pyrrha rubs the back of her head.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
For over an hour, the gang all manages to keep themselves entertained. You’re the only one still surfing, with Ruby, Blake, and Nora just coming back to the shore after taking their turn. Crystal is tanning under the burning sun while Pyrrha, Yang, Weiss, and Jaune play volleyball.
“I’m super hungry,” Ruby stretches after planting her board into the ground.
“I think getting out the snacks would be nice,” Blake nods. “We could-“
A sharp sense goes through all of RWBY and Ren’s heads, making each of them drop what they’re doing and turn to a focal point in the sky. Within seconds, Vegeta bursts onto the scene, landing on the shore where the sand and water explode around, landing near some of the exposed teens and tanning, scared Crystal.
The normal girl scurries back, instinctively wanting to go towards you but the stranger is in the way. Her heart races, breaths speed up, as the dust settles and she lays eyes on the Saiyan Prince. He stands in between Remnant’s residents and you, eyes focused on the latter.
“Oh… oh, you’re one of (Y/N)’s friends,” Crystal’s hand rests on her heaving chest. She stands up, putting a smile on. “Hi there! Are you joining us? You could… could’ve been a little less scary.”
RWBY can tell that Vegeta isn’t in a mood to talk. His intimidating visage, his sharp eyes, everything makes him seem like he wants something bad.
“KAIL!” Vegeta turns towards the ocean.
You stop mid air, mid trick. “Oh, Vegeta,” you smile, quickly flying towards the shore and landing across from him. “I was too busy surfing,” you chuckle. “You should try it. It’s a lot of fun,” you extend your arm, offering the board to him.
Vegeta clenches his fists.
“You’re going to fight me. Right. Now.”
Hello there! Nice to see you all again. I hope you enjoyed the chapter! It’s fun doing this less serious, less arc stuff. Especially with the stuff coming up. I wish I could be putting these chapters out faster, but as I get older it becomes harder to find the time. I could time manage a little better but, hey, we all have things to do. Anyway, again, I hope you had fun reading and look forward to the next one! It already had some good progress on it! See you then!
Chapter 26: Vegeta Stakes his Pride as a Saiyan! Truths Revealed for Everyone!
Chapter Text
Chapter 26: Vegeta Stakes his Pride as a Saiyan! Truths Revealed for Everyone!
A blanket of tension coats everyone on the beach. You, however, still floating over the water, are out of the blanket’s cover. You’re more confused than anything else.
“Fight you? Why?” You fly towards the beach and land, just out of the range of the tense cover. “I think it would be a lot more fun if you tried-“
Vegeta raises his hand towards the group, unleashing a Ki blast that purposefully weaves through them and connects in the forest, shaking the island and eradicating a small section of its forest.
“HEY!” Yang hollers.
The other members of RWBY get into a fighting stance, putting themselves between Vegeta and their friends. Sure, the team isn’t even the slightest match for the Saiyan Prince, but they have a lot more of a chance at surviving an attack than the others
Crystal’s confusion is displayed by her eye movements. The defensive stance RWBY takes, the cruel nature of Vegeta, your calm manner… it’s all so perplexing.
“Isn’t he your friend? Why would you want to fight him?” Crystal, having not gotten an answer, looks to the prince. “Why would you hurt us?”
“Silence, insect,” Vegeta coldly replies, not even looking at her. “I will defeat this low-class wretch and prove that I am the strongest Saiyan.”
“Don’t talk to her that way!” Weiss barks. “You have no right to be this rude to people who helped you.
Vegeta momentarily looks at Weiss, the woman who dares backtalk him. But she’s so insignificant that he doesn’t deem her worthy of argument.
“Saiyan?” Crystal repeats. “What is that? Your team?” She focuses on you, who’s still deadlocked on Vegeta.
“He’s an alien, remember?” Jaune answers.
“An… a what? Alien?” Crystal shows a little frustration at that claim. “That’s mean, he’s a Faunus!”
Jaune looks back at her, quickly piecing together that she doesn’t know anything about what’s happened recently. He’s aware that she perished and was brought back by wish-granting balls – a story Ruby told very eagerly – but had no idea your very nature was hidden from her.
“Why would you say something so mean to your friend? Is that… just a joke? Cause he’s a little silly,” Crystal half-heartedly smiles, attempting to remain cheery in this situation.
“Now fight me, Kail. I won’t miss next time.”
You frown at Vegeta, though not viewing his threat as anything serious. “That’s not a very nice way to ask, Vegeta. You know I’m always up for a good spar,” you switch to a smile. “Besides, you should know you wouldn’t land a real hit on them.”
Vegeta frowns at the remark that you’re just so much stronger that you render his threat mute. But… “This isn’t sparring. I want you to fight me with everything you have. Fight me with all that power you fought Frieza with!”
“Frieza?” Crystal repeats, her head tilting to anyone who could answer her. “Wait, who is that? Someone at Beacon? But what’s with this alien stuff? Nobody answered me,” she looks to Jaune first, then the others. None of them answer her, but the look in their eyes make her question everything. “An alien… is a joke.”
“Don’t worry, Vegeta’s just a big ol’ grouch,” you smile at your dear friend. “Nothing to worry about.”
“I’m right here,” Vegeta snarls.
“Right, right,” you return your attention to him. “So… a real fight, huh? We haven’t gone one-on-one in a while. Okay, let’s go!” You end with a smirk, blasting off into the sky and far away from the island and towards the sea.
“Tsk,” Vegeta takes off after you. His eyes are locked on you, ready to attack the second you stop. Vegeta winds up a punch and throws it, only for you to casually catch it the moment you turn around. The wind pressure blasts by you, but you’re firm and calm.
“We’re getting right into it, huh? Come on, you said it was a serious fight. Use your full,” you casually push his fist back then slam your own into his gut. “POWER!” You shout, then hammerfist him down into the water.
You watch Vegeta helplessly plummet into the ocean, the water erupting upon his contact with it. You have some idea why Vegeta is so dead set on fighting you. From what you’ve gathered from the other Saiyans, and even what Vegeta told you himself before you fought Frieza, defeating that man was Vegeta’s dream. It’s likely he never expected to come back to life after that, so now he has to live with the fact that you’re the strongest Saiyan, that you defeated Frieza, and that you’re the pinnacle of his proud warrior race. You don’t really understand it, but it’s probably tearing him apart from the inside. Holding back on him, letting him win, that’s disrespectful to Vegeta; you know that. If you fight him, beat him, with your full power against his then perhaps he’ll experience what you do – that drive to become stronger in the face of someone else who has great power.
You roll your shoulders then pat your cheeks. “I have to get serious, serious, serious. Vegeta deserves it. Serious!” You end with a nod, then zoom down into the water to meet your opponent, who you sense is already on the way.
You both wind your punches and connect them right at the recently settled water’s surface. Once again, the ocean parts in wake of you overwhelming Saiyans. You both push as hard as you can before zooming past one another. You turn around, seeing Vegeta swooping around and throwing a roundhouse. You duck under it, quickly turning around as Vegeta does the same, eying each other for a mere moment. With your turning momentum, you throw a right hook. Vegeta blocks it with his arm then attempts a knee, which you handily catch in your other palm.
There’s but a second pause in combat where your tension rises, along with your power levels. Clouds start to form, lightning crashes into the clear waters, waves wash outwards from your location.
“HAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAA!” Your voices echo beyond the planet itself as a massive yellow flash erupts from between you.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
It’s not long after both you and Vegeta disappear from view that the shockwaves of your attacks ripple in the sky. It’s loudly heard across Patch, and lightly felt. For RWBY, it’s normal. For JNPR, it’s surprising but familiar. For Crystal, this is beyond anything she’s ever known.
The girl starts pacing, scratching her head, rubbing her arms, unsure how to process everything. “It’s not true, right? An alien? He was always a little different, but… but he’s just a Faunus. A kind, silly… childish Faunus, in the best way!”
“Silly… yeah,” Yang nods. “But a lot has happened.”
“A lot has happened? What do you mean? He would tell me if a lot had happened!” Her frustration born from confusion reveals itself for a moment before she sighs, staring at the sand around her toes. “He would tell me…”
The group feel for Crystal, leading to Pyrrha and Ruby coming to her side for support – a hand on her shoulder, smiles to comfort her. They can imagine how shocking this is for her, considering it wasn’t the greatest pill to swallow when it was revealed last year. But she has a deeper connection to why she’s perplexed. While in this deep thought, this contemplative state, the immense power surging out from your battle doesn’t even phase her.
“Then… what happened? I want to know about my friend,” Crystal weakly speaks
So distracted with your battle and Crystal’s dismay, the girls fail to notice the incoming powers from behind them.
“Looks like he finally got fed up,” Turles says as he lands on the beach, crossing his arms and staring out towards the battle.
Raditz, Kakarot, and Nappa land sequentially, all making a jagged line in the sand.
“It’s about time. Our royal highness has been too stubborn to get stronger. He was once the driving force of strength,” Nappa starts speaking.
Their presence is surprising to most, but Crystal is the one who takes more notice. All of them have brown tails like you did. All of them are strong, chiseled, and, for the most part, have wild jet-black hair. She never thought anything of it before, when she first saw them.
“You… aren’t his friends,” she finally realizes. “But you look just like him.”
The Saiyans turn around, revealing their pure black eyes; another trait that links you to them.
“What is this woman blabbering about?” Raditz cruelly speaks.
“Hey, leave her alone!” Nora comes to her defense.
Turles, the more observant of the group, can see that the one who spoke has support around her. “Like him? Heh…” The Saiyan chuckles. “Did you just learn he’s a Saiyan?”
“A Saiyan… Saiyan… an alien.”
“A member of the greatest fighters in all the universe!” Nappa proudly broadcasts. “And he’s the strongest one.”
“What does it matter if he’s the strongest?” Crystal’s emotions burst to the surface. “He’s… he’s…”
“It means everything,” Kakarot replies, breaking off from the line and approaching Crystal. “We fight. We’re made to fight. Even Kail, as much of a bastard as he is, has the true Saiyan nature to fight,” he stops before Crystal, Ruby, and Pyrrha.
“He… does like fighting,” Crystal’s eyes droop.
“Kakarot, she’s hurting! Be nicer!” Ruby chastises.
“Wha- I’m just telling her the truth!”
“Well tell it nicer!” Ruby replies.
“I… tsk…” Kakarot angrily snarls. “... Fine,” he crosses his arms.
“Hahahahaha,” Raditz cuts in. “Being bossed around, Kakarot? Poor baby brother.”
“You want to take that back, Raditz?” Kakarot turns around, ready to fight.
“Enough,” both Nappa and Turles say, though their unison is unintentional.
“This is important for Vegeta,” Nappa keeps talking. “We’re going to stay and watch without making any problems. Besides, I have kids to whip into shape.”
“What now?” Weiss quickly questions.
“Don’t worry about it, child,” the brute lazily waves off.
Crystal returns to her inner thoughts, unsure how to process this. Everyone knows, everyone is okay with it… there are aliens, YOU are an alien, and that’s supposed to be okay? It’s something she has to just brush under the rug? This isn’t some small lie, some omission of the truth, this is a complete reality shattering revelation. Aliens… you’re one of them… you’re fighting aliens… what has happened to that kid she met? What’s happened? Why haven’t you told her?
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Your fists keep moving at light speed, colliding, parrying, or hitting Vegeta. It’s a near invisible battle where neither of you has stopped throwing attacks. To Vegeta’s dismay, few of his hits are landing while a plethora of your punches has made contact. But, as you both know, the more Vegeta is beaten against someone who’s stronger than him, the more his power will grow. He never managed to exploit this against Frieza, as it was barely a fight to begin with.
Over and over, your attacks manage to overwhelm Vegeta until you send him seering over the water with a powerful haymaker. Vegeta shakes his head while being pushed back, trying his best to recover from the attack. You charge after Vegeta, flying in small spirals as you reach him and slam your knee into his stomach, then flick your leg up to launch Vegeta into the air.
Now with his hands towards you, he unleashes a purple volley toward you and the planet. Without hesitation, you charge forward, swirling around to knock away every blast right into the sky so the planet isn’t damaged. Vegeta is frustrated that you’re able to counter and knock away everything he has without even tapping into your full power.. You follow through, coming up with an uppercut that Vegeta barely dodges, flipping backwards while getting some distance from you. As he returns to normal orientation, you surprise him with a right hook wound to pummel him down into the sea. The water explodes as Vegeta’s body penetrates its surface, erupting over the area like a harsh storm. You fly directly down to follow Vegeta, but are surprised when the Prince is already coming back at you. His fists lodges into your stomach, holding you in place as he pulls back his left arm and starts punching you upwards, hit after hit, as the water fills the area around you.
His speed and strength just increased. Whoa, it’s weird to see it from the other side. Let's see how high we can take you, Vegeta!
You catch his left fist, then right, then headbutt the Saiyan back to the bowels of the ocean. You dive in, traversing the deep blue waters to close in on your opponent. A few purple beams appear from the dark depths, swirling around you to attack in intervals. You knock away the first, intercept the other with your own blue blast, then catch the last and crush it. That moment where you stop the last is when Vegeta speeds in with a kick. You catch it with ease, surprising the Prince and allowing you to pull Vegeta’s leg past you, bringing his body closer so you can raise your arm and punch him even deeper into the ocean.
As Vegeta descends, darkness surrounding him, his eyes are lock on you. You’re looking down on him, almost a little sad that he’s performing subpar. That disappointing glare, the growing darkness; Vegeta’s final moments on Namek return to him. He cried in front of you, begged you to defeat Frieza. With all Vegeta’s heart, he thought it was the end. He truly believed you were going to be the final Saiyan for the rest of time, and needed the pride Vegeta held dear to defeat Frieza. But now Vegeta has to continue to live in that world, and in the shadow of your victory. You, the Saiyan who defeated Frieza. You, a low-class warrior who’s surpassed him, who carries the fire of the Saiyan Warrior Race. You… are a Super Saiyan. A shining Saiyan that’s blinding the Prince… and yet he knows you’re not even going all out against him.
Bubbles spiral around the prince as the Ki surging in his body forms heat. His frustration and anger explode outwards as he charges towards you. You’re surprised by this sudden boost in power and react accordingly – shifting to the defensive. Vegeta slugs you, one after another, but you manage to block each attack. The force of them pushes you higher and higher, eventually leaving the ocean altogether. He goes for another hook, but you seemingly teleport below him and completely shatter his world with an uppercut. You immediately burst upward, following and passing by Vegeta’s body to sledgehammer him back towards the planet.
Vegeta manages to recover just before his body is fully submerged in the water once more. He lifts himself up, looking up at you with growing irritation. You’re holding back…
“You’re insulting me, Kail!” Vegeta howls. “This isn’t the power you used against Frieza! SHOW ME YOUR SUPER SAIYAN POWER!”
Super Saiyan? That again? I don’t even know what that is, but Vegeta can’t handle the 20x Kaioken. I don’t really think I can handle it very well… but out of respect to Vegeta.
“HYAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAA!” Your massive red influx of Ki washes over the battlefield, tinting everything in the Kaioken’s red. You’re only using 10x, but it’s still far more than you know Vegeta can handle.
The Prince smiles, despite his body faltering under the pressure of your power. You both charge at each other, but Vegeta barely moves before your fist is buried in his stomach, nearly pushing through it completely. Vegeta exerts blood from his mouth, landing on your bare chest, before you pull back your other hand and drive your fist into his cheek. Vegeta wasn’t keeping pace before, but with your power multiplying by ten, it’s nearly impossible to even react to your speed. It’s exactly like when he combatted Frieza.
Over and over you chase Vegeta down, knocking him further and further away from Patch and towards Vacuo. The more humid weather, the dryer air, it all signals this region. You soar over Vegeta and hammerfist him towards the sandy, unoccupied beach, then circle around right before he hits the ground and kick him back to the sky. You release the Kaioken and place your fingers against your head, trying to use this moment to practice Instant Transmission. You lock onto his moving Ki, trying to relocate yourself behind him but to no avail.
“Darn it, why am I bad at this? Oh, hey,” you look around. “Oh, hey, I’m still in my swim trunks at another beach. How nice!”
“KAIL!” Vegeta huffs and puffs, battered and bruised by your attacks. Even still, you can feel his Ki is larger than when the fight started. Not nearly enough to close the distance, but its still there. However, his frustration has also swelled beyond belief. “YOU BETTER NOT GET COMPLACENT! I AM VEGETA, PRINCE OF ALL SAIYANS, AND THAT INCLUDES YOU! I AM THE STRONGEST, AND I WILL DEFEAT YOU AND BECOME A SUPER SAIYAN!” His body is surrounded by purple Ki as he puts one hand against another and lifts it up. “NOW FACE MY GALICK GUN!”
“Heh,” you power up and shift to the Kamehameha stance. “Whatever you say, Vegeta. But you’ll have to work for it!” You keep your cheer up. “Cause I’ll keep training too!”
With both your attacks growing in power, the entire western side of Sanus is quaking. The sand around you is swirling, the water is crashing against itself, unsure how to react to the pressure exerting from both you and Vegeta. Your beams, blue and purple, surge in your hands to their peaks before you throw then at each other, unleashing attacks with planetary destructiveness. The beams zoom toward each other, but suddenly dissipate the moment they make contact.
“Huh?”
“What!”
Where the beams would’ve collided, Ozpin stands with his cane angled to have been between both blasts. He returns the accessory to his side and fixes his glasses.
“This isn’t the time to cause havoc on our planet. Please, show some restraint.”
“Ozpin?” You say, surprised. “You… stopped those?”
“How could a pathetic human nullify my Galick Gun?”
Ozpin slowly glides down to the beach, landing beside you. “Having an eventful weekend?”
“Yeah, actually! I went surfing!”
“Oh, that must’ve been exciting.”
“Mhm! Lots of fun! But, Ozpin, when did you have that power? You stopped my attack!”
“Oh, it’s not my power,” Ozpin humbly chuckles. “I just know a few techniques.”
“Know a few techniques my ass,” Vegeta soars down, marching up to Ozpin the second he touches the ground. “Your power level is nothing! No technique you have could conjure-“
“When it comes to protecting this planet, I shall do whatever it takes,” Ozpin quickly corrects. “You Saiyans becoming stronger is all well and good. I like it. But, please, control yourselves..”
“Hehe,” you rub the back of your bushy hair. “Sorry about that. We got carried away.”
“Tsk,” Vegeta bursts off into the sky without another word.
“Hey, Vegeta!” You shout for him.
“Don’t worry,” Ozpin casually says. “He won’t do anything rash. I believe the Saiyans will calm themselves.”
“Really?”
“You did.”
“Didn’t I hit my head?”
“You hit Vegeta’s head,” the Headmaster jokes.
“Hehehe, that’s true. I guess. I should get back to everyone. Have… uh… fun here!” You wave and take off.
“Of course!” Ozpin calmly waves. As you disappear from view, Ozpin’s scroll rings. “Oh?” He slips it out of his pocket and answers. “Hello, Professor Briefs. What can I do for you today? Oh, yes, the ship. Of course, I’m sorry for the delay. I’ll bring that to you immediately.” Ozpin follows up his words by tapping his cane twice.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“He’s leaving?” Turles raises a brow, still standing on the beach.
“Their battle wasn’t finished yet,” Raditz points out.
“It was over when it started,” Nappa cracks his neck. “But I don’t know why he just left. Maybe he just knows now.”
As the Saiyans speak, the residents of Remnant are uneasy just by their presence. This is supposed to be a vacation, a relaxing time, and here are these space warriors talking about a fight with their friend. Let alone Crystal still coming to terms with aliens existing and you being one of them. She’s unsure what exactly she’s going to say to you, or even how you’ll react to her distress. You care, but your emotional maturity and capability to process other’s distresses are less than optimal. But she’s still getting support from Ruby and Pyrrha, exactly as she needs.
“Do you have to be here?” Yang asks. “We’d rather be alone.”
The Saiyans turn around to acknowledge the brash blonde.
“I suppose there’s no point in us being here. I’d like to pursue Vegeta,” Turles plans.
“Or leave him alone until he calms down,” Kakarot pipes up. “You know how Vegeta can be.”
“Then let's leave these kids to their games. Nothing more for us here,” Nappa takes off.
The other Saiyans follow, save for Turles, who bows his head to the girls. “Enjoy your time,” he says before departing.
It’s not even a few seconds after the warriors take off when you return, a big smile on your face despite your trunks being a little scuffed.
“Heya!” You cheerily wave. “I’m sad the others didn’t stay. Did they know why Vegeta came around?” You soon come to lay eyes on Crystal, who seems extremely distressed. At least, a normal person would think that. She just looks a little confused to you. “Are you okay, Crystal? You don’t have to worry,” you wave off. “They’re actually kinda nice in their own way.”
“(Y/N)… what’s a Saiyan?” Crystal asks, barely louder than a whisper.
You become perplexed, not really wanting to explain it to her. But you’re not much of a liar, especially when directly asked about something.
“Well… Saiyans are… are… um…” You rub the back of your head as you come up witha response. “People! People from not around here. Not much different from us here on Remnant.”
“They’re aliens,” she clarifies.
“Yeah!” You reply.
“Are you a Saiyan?”
“Well…” The others remain silent, knowing this is a conversation you have to have. Nobody is giving you support here, even if you want it. “Yeah!”
“How long have you known that?”
“Um… how long has it been? A year? Yeah, cause I trained with King-“
“A year?” She blurts out in surprise. “You knew that for a year and you never told me?” Her voice is a little shaky at this point, making everyone unsure if she’s going to lash out in anger or burst into tears. “Why… why wouldn’t you tell me? These friends knew… but I couldn’t? I just…” She shakes her head, still not looking you in the eyes. “Why?”
This one is hard to answer, and everyone knows it. To her knowledge, thanks to the Dragon Ball’s wish, everyone involved in the Great Ape incident has no recollectio and believe that the village continued on peacefully for the year that it was gone. Revealing that would bring up another batch of problems that even you don’t think is a good idea.
“Well… I was busy. I got to train with King Kai in the Otherworld and-”
“Otherworld?” She repeats, almost laughing at a new place she’s never heard of. “What’s that?”
“Oh, it’s where dead people go, I think. But I never went to the other-”
“You went to the afterlife?” Ren pipes up, speaking for some others who didn’t even know that.
“(Y/N),” she almost seems frustrated now, as if you’re lying to her. “I know you. I know how fast you are, I know that you could drop by and talk with me whenever you want. But… but you haven’t. You didn’t even drop by for your first year! I wanted to know all the wonderful things you were doing at Beacon and hear about your friends. But you never came by, you never even wrote me a letter… I get that you might have been busy but now… aliens, afterlife, Saiyans, Frieza, all of this just doesn’t make any sense! You’re my best friend, (Y/N), and it’s like you just totally shut me out to all of this! Just…” Her tears are streaming down her face at this point. She doesn’t want to be like this - frustrated - but it’s just her human reaction. “I just want to know… why? We always told each other everything…”
You’re in a losing battle since Crystal was already dead when you learned about Saiyans. You could have told her after she was revived, and it would’ve gone smoother, most likely, if she didn’t know that everyone else was already aware. Yang can understand her, to a degree. To her, you’re the closest person in her life. It’d be like if Ruby kept something so important a secret. She’d feel hurt, for sure, but probably not react to this degree. Or maybe Yang is just giving herself more credit than she should. It’s easy to think of how one would react when they’re not in the situation, hazy from emotion.
“Well, they were just around when everything was happening. A lot of people know I’m a Saiyan. I remember they tried to keep me up in Altus.”
“Atlas,” Weiss corrects.
“Yeah, that.”
Crystal remains silent, her mind flooded with emotions and thoughts and… she can’t right now. She doesn’t want to be angry at you, she wants to understand where you’re coming from and she’s certain that almost anything you say right now would upset her. She knows, or at least wants to believe, that you would never intentionally lie to her. There has to be a reason, and she just won’t listen to it right now. She needs to cool off.
“I’d like to go back to the house, please.”
“But I-“
“We’ll… we’ll talk about it later, okay?” She sternly reiterates.
“I’ll walk her back,” Yang quickly comes to her side and turns her towards the path. “Come on, we’ll get you all warmed up and cheery,” she says with a reassuring smile. As your trusty blonde friend takes the reins she turns her head and gives you an “okay” hand sign.
You’re just gonna have to leave it to Yang, for now. But… that doesn’t really bother you as much as it should. You turn around, take a deep breath, then run towards the surfboard. “So, anyone else wanna do it? It’s honestly a lot of fun!”
“Really?” Ruby raises an eyebrow. “You’re just gonna go back to normal?”
“That does seem kinda mean,” Jaune adds in.
“This is kind of your fault though, Jaune,” Blake comes to your defense.
“I… well, I didn’t mean to,” Jaune sighs. “I didn’t know she… didn’t know.”
“That’s okay!” You jump over and pat Jaune’s back. “Crystal’s always been my best friend. She’ll come around.”
“That’s it?” Weiss comments. “You’re just going to leave it cause she’ll understand eventually?” She crosses her arms and leans forward. Sure, she has a ton of respect for you, but that doesn’t mean she won’t criticize you.
“Well, yeah. Honestly,” you rub the back of your head and chuckle. “I don’t know what else to do. Plus, Yang is with her! She’s a lot better at explaining stuff than I am,” you say with confidence.
While that may be an excuse for most, there’s something about your tone of voice, your face tells everyone its genuine. It’s hard to be angry at someone who is wholeheartedly unsure of how to press on, yet so trusting in another friend to help them. It is a lesson at Beacon to trust in your team, and your friends, especially when all of them are aware of your massive ineptitude at social cues. But perhaps that’s the trade off for now. You’re immensely strong and can protect everyone from threats they couldn’t comprehend, and they help you out when you can’t explain yourself or say something stupid.
Either way, they do realize that it’s out of their hands for now. Everyone should be focusing on the fun, like you are.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Yang and Crystal walk for a short while, not a word uttered by either. Yang is very casual, strutting through the forest in an exposed bikini with no weapons at all, while Crystal has her arms crossed, slouched a bit, barely paying attention to the steps she’s taking.
Yang’s keeping a subtle eye on her, checking if Crystal has any tells of wanting to talk. But she’s drowning in her thoughts, not focusing. Yang rolls her shoulders and decides to intervene. After all, she’s better with words than you are.
“So… you really mad at him?” She takes a step into the issue.
“Mm…” Crystal bites her thumbnail. “I want to be.”
“So you’re not?”
“You know him,” the powerless woman slightly shifts to meet Yang’s gaze. “He doesn’t even know how to really hurt someone like this.”
“He’s a little slow in that regard, but he has a good heart. Everyone at Beacon knows that.”
“That makes it hard to be mad at him a lot. He flies into my room while I’m changing and doesn’t understand the boundary, he struggles to figure out the difference between men and women’s bathrooms.”
“They both have toilets! How am I supposed to know,” Yang mocks your tone.
Crystal chuckles a bit, relating to those very words. “He was always different… but he lived alone for most of his life. I understood him not grasping basic customs. But we’ve been friends for so long… something like this just… it’s not like him. I just can’t understand why he didn’t tell me anything.” She looks ahead again. “I try to think of some excuse for him, but I can’t… he doesn’t even drop by for a whole year, then he’s showing up almost every day, and now he’s an alien? A-And other people knew? Why did Atlas know? Why do all you know? Does my dad know? I just…” She raises her hands, slightly making a fist as if the point is lost to her. “It doesn’t add up.”
And now it’s up to Yang to figure out a way to explain it without having to say Crystal died. A lie of omission, but only on that part. As crazy as it all sounds, if Crystal can accept that you’re an alien then perhaps she’ll believe the rest of it.
“You know, he’s been fighting real hard for everyone,” Yang says with a slight chuckle. “One of those guys you saw, the other Saiyans, they showed up at Beacon one day. Nearly killed innocent people,” another lie. “And almost killed (Y/N). That’s when he was told he was a Saiyan.”
“They… attacked? But what about the Huntsmen?”
“Heh,” Yang rubs her nose. “I’m telling you, the Saiyans are much stronger than you think. (Y/N) was probably the strongest guy I knew, but Kakarot was beating him. And then, after a miracle, we’re told that more of them are on the way, all stronger than Kakarot.”
“Kakarot… so those other guys?”
“Yeah, they all were coming to take over Remnant. So, for a year, (Y/N) went off and trained somewhere special. I guess in the afterlife,” she looks up at the sky with a bewildered smile. “Crazy to think about, yet it totally sounds like him. None of us saw him for a whole year. He didn’t just leave you behind, Crystal. He left everyone so he could defend us.”
“Did… did he?” Crystal’s voice is a little shaky.
“Yeah… and, if you can’t tell, he did manage to repel them. But, not long after, he had to go defend another planet.”
“What?” Crystal finally gives Yang her full attention. “Another planet? He went into space?”
“Yep,” Yang chuckles. “Me and my team went too.”
“Space… space, I can barely believe it.”
“You kind of have to with (Y/N),” Yang keeps the tone light. “We had to. But, you know,” Yang places a hand on Crystal’s shoulder, offering support. “(Y/N) protected another planet. He saved them. I saw him fight with everything he had against someone who was way stronger than him.”
“Mm…” Crystal stops moving, looking up at the sky. “He’s been… helping people.”
“Yeah, he’s got a good heart,” Yang stops a few steps ahead, looking back at the girl. “And, you know what? He was always thinking about you.”
“Are… you just saying that?”
“No, he talked about you a lot… look,” Yang saunters towards Crystal. “He… missed you. Missed you more than you could know,” she speaks truth, even if Crystal’s view of it isn’t whole. “So, I wouldn’t get too angry at him. My guess? He’s just been so happy to spend time with you that he forgot.”
“Ha,” Crystal unintentionally chuckles. “Darn it, he’s always hard to be mad at. I hate it.”
Yang laughs. “Not the worst quality a guy can have. So,” Yang crosses her arms, lifting up her assets a bit as a result. “Do you want to the house? You seem cooled off now.”
“Mm… no, I’d like to go back. Honestly, I still can’t believe there are aliens. And what was a Frieza?”
“Oh…” Yang shakes her head, leading the way once more. “I’ll let you know all about Namek.”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
It’s practically guaranteed that any confrontation you have on Remnant is recorded and documented by Dr. Gero. He already has 11 Androids created, but none of them are truly what Gero wants. Especially after watching this new display from you. Your power, along with the other Saiyans, are astronomically stronger than they were before. It’s infuriating to the doctor, who thought he was making progress.
Sure, his orders from Ironwood is to create such a powerful defender for the planet that will establish Atlas as the only one who has the proper tools to protect Remnant. There’s always been the outlier, the Turtle School, but they have never come to the defense of the Kingdoms as Atlas has. But now with your presence known to the Kingdoms’ councils and Headmasters, and even partly to the public thanks to Merlot’s stunt, it’s critical to show that Atlas is still in control. But that’s not possible anymore.
But that’s just the surface. It’s Gero’s reputation on the line too. General Ironwood knows the state of Gero’s Androids, and was very interested in the battle that just took place. The cold-hearted General’s words still linger in Gero’s mind.
“If you’re incapable of the job, then maybe Pietro will be. He’s been creating fighters of his own…”
Gero’s hands clench to a fist atop his keyboard. The thought that his genius would be replaced by an inept fool like Pietro Polendina is maddening. He already saw Arthur Watts’ downfall, and he shall not be following him. But Gero’s hit a wall. Even if he takes this data, creates beings just as strong, the evidence shows how much a Saiyan can grow in mere days. He needs an edge. A way to make his Androids already leaps and bounds beyond you and your kind. But how…
“Still confused, dear?” The soothing voice of Gero’s wife bounces off the laboratory walls.
Gero doesn’t even look back, already seeing the shadow of his wife posed at the door.
“Confused is not the correct term.”
“Then how about an outside perspective?” She partly teases.
From anyone else, it would infuriate the doctor. But she knows he doesn’t see it like that from her. She’s a scientist too, who wants to push this project beyond anything Atlas has done before. Her husband needs to be challenged, teased, so he can spit in the notion’s face and push beyond. That fire she sees when he’s invigorated…. It excites her.
“We need to infuse our Androids with Ki, like the Saiyans.”
“I know,” Gero frustratedly barks. “It amplifies their power beyond what our technology can produce. I don’t know how-“
“Then don’t create Ki. Adapt Ki.”
Gero pauses, soon turning around on his spinning chair with a brow raised. “What are you saying?”
“I’m saying we shouldn’t be trying to create something new,” the woman confidently approaches, hips swaying with each step. “We should take our technology and put it…” She stops before Gero, gesturing to her body. “In ourselves.”
“You’re… we make cyborgs,” the gears start turning. “Take our technology and implement it within people who can already harness Ki,” he stands up, pacing as everything pieces together. It puts a wide smile on his wife’s face. “That would allow us to perhaps manipulate Ki with our technology, learn about it more, harness it.”
“I love it when you show off your genius.”
“But we need volunteers. There aren’t any in Atlas who-“
“I know a few,” the woman clicks her scroll, presenting the profiles of a Beacon team: TREE. “These folks know our friend, (Y/N). Their leader seems to have a grudge against him, for whatever pathetic, teenage reason. But we can use that.”
“You can use that.”
“Yes,” she snickers. “I am the more persuasive one of us. Especially with poor young men.”
“Very well,” the doctor doesn’t seem to care about the physical manipulation his wife is willing to put out. Seduction? It’s part of getting the job done. That’s all that matters. “I’ll start looking into implementing our technology with a human body.”
“And I’ll get the human bodies,” she says with excitement. “Oh, isn’t this just fun?”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
Elsewhere in Atlas, Ozpin and Dr. Brief stand before the circular spaceship. It has a few dents, paint scratches, and is soaked inside and out. Ozpin can only assume that Frieza’s goons found it and tossed it in the water. They very well could’ve outright destroyed it.
“Well,” Brief huffs his cigarette. “Better wet than busted. I can work on this.”
“I know you can. I must say, your gravity chamber is astounding.”
“Isn’t it, eh?” Brief chuckles. “I dare say there’s little Gero and I can manage when we put our minds to it. I’ve even been thinking of making an entire room for this. I’m sure the General would approve of usage in his school.”
Ozpin’s fingers dance upon the top of his cane as he thinks. “That would be quite the asset. Have you already started?”
“Not quite. Gero has some of the blueprints set up. He wants to adjust the gravity to beyond one hundred, but that’s not very useful for anyone besides those Saiyans. I doubt most students could handle more than three times,” he ends with a chuckle.
“Indeed,” Ozpin smiles. “Well, I’ll let you get to it, doctor. Thank you again for all your support,” he turns and bows his head.
“Not at all. I say, it’s a blast helping you. Always something fun.”
Ozpin's smile fades as his scroll buzzes. He swiftly takes it out of his pocket and looks over it. It’s a message from Glynda, the woman who took part in the council meetings for him today. Not that the council was very happy about it, but they are mostly bark. However…
“They’re after the Saiyans again.”
With that sentence, a file is attached with a recording of the scuffle you and Vegeta got into. The file continues, showing a brief moment of conversation during the meeting.
“Once again, these creatures terrorize our world! Houses were knocked over, entire stocks of food destroyed! And who pays for this?”
“And what does Ozpin have to say about this, Ms. Goodwitch? Does he not take responsibility?”
“There is no responsibility to take! These are otherworldly invaders! We should be focusing on getting them off our planet!”
Ozpin shuts off his scroll, taking a moment to ponder this development. He has responsibility over you, yes, but the other Saiyans are still an outlier. The Kingdoms’ leaders already have distrust towards you, but now that there’s more… The bigger problem is, unlike you, the others won’t be so easily adopted into Beacon. It’s the only way Ozpin can have some sort of control over their actions and protect them. Last thing he wants is a war between Remnant and the Saiyans. You and Nappa are already quite calm, but the others…
Ozpin turns around, gazing at the ship which Briefs is now inside, examining any damage.
“May I make one more request of you, dear friend?” Ozpin speaks up.
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
“And a one,” you flip down the dirt road, landing on one hand. “And a seven!” You throw yourself a dozen feet forward, landing on the other arm. “Come on! You’re behind!” You shout to your friends, who’re slowly following along.
They’re all walking normally, except for Nora who’s skipping along happily. Most of them are just worried about what the conversation will be when you return, and others are trying to come up with an excuse for you. Ruby hopes that Yang has managed to mitigate the situation to a degree. After all, there’s no way her older sister would just randomly walk Crystal home without some sort of plan. At least, she hopes not. Yang is generally smarter, at least in a people sense, than people give her credit for.
The uncertainty leads Pyrrha to speak up, not wanting to see a continuing conflict between friends.
“Have you thought of what you’re going to say?” Her voice stretches out to you.
“Huh?” You are upside down again, this time holding yourself up with your right hand. “Oh, not really. I’m sure Crystal will be fine,” without even pushing up, you flip around and land on your feet, facing your friends. “She’s really cool like that.”
“She was pretty mad,” Jaune adds.
“She was mad when I walked in on her without clothes the first time, too.”
“First time,” Blake picks out the wording.
“But she cooled off.”
“The fact he thinks those are on the same level,” Weiss pinches the bridge of her nose. “Lord, help us.”
“Crystal’s a really understanding person. I know she’ll get it.”
“It’s not good to rely on someone’s understanding, (Y/N),” Blake says as they catch up with you, now all walking together. “That makes them have to just agree instead of getting to the heart of the issue.”
“What does that even mean?” You scratch your head.
“You’re not telling her the truth,” Ruby clarifies.
“You know the truth is that I turned into a giant ape and destroyed the village, killing everyone,” you blatantly say. “I don’t know how well that would go over.”
“You know…” Jaune raises a finger. “He’s got a point.”
“Besides, even if she was alive I wouldn’t have seen her much. I WAS gone for a year, if you remember,” you mimic Jaune’s intelligent finger raise, lifting your chin to establish a look of superiority. “And then went to Namek not long after. I was kinda busy,” having not been far away from the Xiao Long homestead, your group comes within eyesight of it. “So, you know, I wouldn’t have seen her anyway.”
“A lie of omission. I honestly thought that was beyond you,” Weiss casually insults.
“Nothing is beyond me!”
“Except the meaning,” Weiss giggles.
“What… what does that mean?”
Your words are met with a mix of short chuckles and annoyed moans, but it’s all in good fun. Your group approaches and opens the door, Ruby being the leader as this is her house. As the confines of the house are let outside, a wonderful smell spirals around all of you.
Your nose lifts in the air, almost making you fly as you sniff and sniff.
“That. Smells. AMAZING!” You exclaim, quickly darting to the kitchen where Crystal and Yang have come up with yet another large feast for everyone.
“Thought you’d be hungry after all that,” Yang remarks, grabbing a sandwich and salad for herself and sitting down. “Hey, Rubes, you’re gonna be the one to tell dad we have no food, right?”
“What?” Ruby enters the room with everyone behind, though the young leader is more focused on her sister than the food. “Why do I have to? YOU COOKED!”
“It’s the job of a little sister to take the fall.”
“NOooooooooOOOOOOOOOOO!”
“How did you even make all this so quickly?” Ren raises a brow, taking in the variety of food. It’s not as large of a quantity as breakfast, but its certainly a lot considering the short time allotted to them.
“Yang is very fast,” Crystal puts some plates of food down for everyone, making it very clear which seat is yours with about four plates at one seat. “I told her what to do and she prepped everything. I just made sure it had a special touch.”
“You do have a special touch,” you nod, admiring all the food. “So,” you move in front of her, honest eyes gazing into hers. “Does that mea-“
“I’ll let you go this once,” she cheekily replies. “Yang here told me some stories, and I’d like to hear them from you.”
“Really?”
She only replies with a joyful nod. The fact she isn’t upset, angry, anything like that just fills you with a glee you can’t describe. You pull the girl into a warm hug right away, which surprises her for a moment but she does hug you back.
“I’m happy you're not mad.”
“Me too,” she rubs your back. “Now,” she pulls back then knocks on your stomach. “Lets get your belly filled!”
“YEAH!” You instantly shift to your chair and start eating the food placed down for you.
Everyone else grabs plates and gets into place, but Yang’s eyes keep switching between you and Crystal. She talked to your friend a lot, learned a lot about her perspective, not only about you being an alien but you in general. It’s… interesting for her. The way you two hugged in front of everyone tightens her stomach just a bit.
Yang looks down at her food then shakes her head, waving her wild hair around. She quietly chuckles, well aware of what this feeling is. She isn’t Ruby, she isn’t Weiss, she isn’t emotionally ignorant.
“Darn…”
XXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXXX
The Saiyans have yet to speak with their prince, even hours after his battle with you. Instead, they remain at a distance, now making a temporary home of one of Mistral’s great mountains. Vegeta is on his own, staring up at the sky as rain pours down upon him. He cares little for the damp state of his body; his mind needs the cooling of this overcast. Your power being so much greater than his, Piccolo’s mysterious power, and even Ozpin’s ability to nullify both his attack and yours, there’s so much around the Saiyan Prince and it’s weighing on him. He has to surpass everyone. He MUST be the strongest warrior in the universe. The strongest Saiyan in the universe.
While the others wait, either for them to get bored or Vegeta to acknowledge them, Kakarot and Raditz, who’ve commandeered a massive stick, play tic-tac-toe in the dirt while Turles keeps himself sheltered from the storm. Nappa has taken a temporary absence from the group, explaining he “Has something to do.” None of them argued, and, even if they have the means to track him, they don’t bother. They’re more focused on Vegeta, though that endeavor has been useless since his state of mind is unknown to them. Is he going to train to beat you? Is he just going to blow up the planet? Vegeta was never the greatest leader ever, but he kept everyone in line and on track. Reeled them in if they got rowdy. But now, with Vegeta so uncertain, the team is lost – purposeless.
And purpose is one man’s expertise. A set of shoes and a cane clack against the stone as Ozpin arrives. The three follower Saiyans look to him right away, Turles being the only one curious as to why the rain isn’t touching him. The Saiyan pushes off the wall and approaches.
“What are you doing here, human?”
“I’m here with an offer,” Ozpin calmly explains. “For all of you,” his voice being loud enough for Vegeta to hear.
Quint_Polaris on Chapter 1 Tue 31 Oct 2017 04:34PM UTC
Comment Actions
Chinsangan on Chapter 1 Wed 01 Nov 2017 12:36PM UTC
Comment Actions
A Lamp (Guest) on Chapter 1 Thu 02 Nov 2017 12:40AM UTC
Comment Actions
Chinsangan on Chapter 1 Thu 02 Nov 2017 07:13PM UTC
Comment Actions
Quint_Polaris on Chapter 2 Thu 30 Nov 2017 02:40AM UTC
Comment Actions
Quint_Polaris on Chapter 3 Thu 04 Jan 2018 09:25PM UTC
Comment Actions
Chinsangan on Chapter 3 Fri 05 Jan 2018 05:09PM UTC
Comment Actions
Random678 on Chapter 3 Tue 27 Feb 2018 08:44PM UTC
Comment Actions
Quint_Polaris on Chapter 4 Tue 27 Feb 2018 01:09AM UTC
Comment Actions
WolfRoseTheRonin on Chapter 4 Sun 28 May 2023 01:06PM UTC
Comment Actions
Yuma (Guest) on Chapter 4 Mon 11 Sep 2023 11:38AM UTC
Comment Actions
Universe's Biggest Douchebag (Guest) on Chapter 26 Fri 09 Jun 2023 06:07PM UTC
Comment Actions
Chinsangan on Chapter 26 Fri 09 Jun 2023 06:59PM UTC
Comment Actions